This is a modern-English version of Baltimore Catechism, No. 4: An Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism of Christian Doctrine for the Use of; Sunday-School Teachers and Advanced Classes, originally written by Kinkead, Thomas L..
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
Produced by Dennis McCarthy
Created by Dennis McCarthy
An
Explanation
Of The
Baltimore Catechism
of Christian Doctrine
An
Explanation
Of The
Baltimore Catechism
of Christian Doctrine
For The Use of
Sunday-School Teachers and Advanced Classes
For the Use of
Sunday School Teachers and Advanced Classes
(Also known as Baltimore Catechism No. 4)
(Also known as Baltimore Catechism No. 4)
by Rev. Thomas L. Kinkead
by Rev. Thomas L. Kinkead
Nihil Obstat:
D. J. McMahon
Censor Librorum
Nihil Obstat:
D. J. McMahon
Book Censor
Imprimatur:
+ Michael Augustine
Archbishop of New York
New York, September 5, 1891
Imprimatur:
+ Michael Augustine
Archbishop of New York
New York, September 5, 1891
Nihil Obstat:
Arthur J. Scanlan, S.T.D.
Censor Librorum
Nihil Obstat:
Arthur J. Scanlan, S.T.D.
Censor Librorum
Imprimatur:
+ Patrick J. Hayes, D.D.
Archbishop of New York
New York, June 29, 1921
Imprimatur:
+ Patrick J. Hayes, D.D.
Archbishop of New York
New York, June 29, 1921
{Transcriber's Note: This book is commonly known as "The Baltimore Catechism No. 4" and is the last part of a four volume e-text collection. See the author's note to Baltimore Catechism No. 3 for the background and purpose of the series. This e-text collection is substantially based on files generously provided by http://www.catholic.net/ with some missing material transcribed and added for this release. Transcriber's notes in this series are placed within braces, and usually prefixed "T.N.:".}
{Transcriber's Note: This book is commonly known as "The Baltimore Catechism No. 4" and is the last part of a four-volume e-text collection. See the author's note to Baltimore Catechism No. 3 for the background and purpose of the series. This e-text collection is largely based on files generously provided by http://www.catholic.net/ with some missing material transcribed and added for this release. Transcriber's notes in this series are placed within braces and typically prefixed with "T.N.:".}
APPROBATIONS
His Eminence Cardinal Gibbons: "I thank you for the copy of The Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism which has just reached me. A Religious spoke to me in very high terms of your book. I regard the opinion as of great value."
His Eminence Cardinal Gibbons: "I appreciate the copy of The Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism that just arrived. A Religious mentioned your book to me very favorably. I consider that opinion to be very important."
Most Rev. M. A. Corrigan, D.D., Archbishop of New York:
"I congratulate you on the good which it is likely to do."
Most Rev. M. A. Corrigan, D.D., Archbishop of New York:
"I congratulate you on the positive impact it is likely to have."
Most Rev. William Henry Elder, D.D., Archbishop of Cincinnati: "I think the work will be a very serviceable one. I hope it will meet with great success."
Most Rev. William Henry Elder, D.D., Archbishop of Cincinnati: "I believe this work will be very useful. I hope it achieves a lot of success."
Most Rev. Thomas L. Grace, D.D., Archbishop of Siunia: "Your book entitled An Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism supplies a want which is generally felt by the clergy and others engaged in teaching Catechism. Apart from the very satisfactory development of the answers to the questions and apt illustrations of the subjects treated, the additional questions inserted in your book give it a special value."
Most Rev. Thomas L. Grace, D.D., Archbishop of Siunia: "Your book titled An Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism fulfills a need that is commonly experienced by the clergy and others involved in teaching Catechism. Besides the well-developed answers to the questions and relevant examples of the topics discussed, the extra questions included in your book add significant value."
Most Rev. P. J. Ryan, D.D., Archbishop of Philadelphia: "Your explanation of the Baltimore Catechism is excellent and must be of very great service to teachers of Sunday schools and to all who desire a clear exposition of Catholic doctrine, either for themselves or to communicate it to others. We give the work our cordial approval."
Most Rev. P. J. Ryan, D.D., Archbishop of Philadelphia: "Your explanation of the Baltimore Catechism is outstanding and will be very helpful to Sunday school teachers and anyone who wants a clear understanding of Catholic doctrine, whether for themselves or to share with others. We wholeheartedly endorse this work."
Most Rev. William J. Walsh, D.D., Archbishop of Dublin, Primate of Ireland: "I have had a copy of your admirable work for some weeks past, and on several points it has been of very great use to me and to the committee [a committee of professors of theology, moral as well as dogmatic; priests of long and of wide experience in the work of instructing children in the Catechism; experienced examiners of children; accomplished scholars and writers of English; members both of religious and of secular collegiate communities; and representatives of the missionary priesthood, secular and regular, appointed to draft a new Catechism]."
Most Rev. William J. Walsh, D.D., Archbishop of Dublin, Primate of Ireland: "I've had a copy of your excellent work for a few weeks now, and it has been incredibly helpful to me and the committee on several points [a committee of theology professors, both moral and dogmatic; priests with extensive experience teaching children the Catechism; seasoned examiners of children; skilled scholars and writers in English; members of both religious and secular colleges; and representatives of the missionary priesthood, both secular and regular, assigned to draft a new Catechism]."
Right Rev. D. M. Bradley, D.D., Bishop of Manchester: "I am sure this 'Explanation' will be welcomed by the teachers in our schools and indeed by all whose duty it may be to instruct others in the teachings of the Church."
Right Rev. D. M. Bradley, D.D., Bishop of Manchester: "I am sure this 'Explanation' will be appreciated by the teachers in our schools and by everyone who has the responsibility of teaching others about the teachings of the Church."
Right Rev. Thomas F. Brennan, D.D., Bishop of Dallas: "I like the book very much and will not only recommend it to the priests and good sisters of my diocese, but will also use it myself at catechism every Sunday in the Cathedral. The list of questions and general index render its use very easy."
Right Rev. Thomas F. Brennan, D.D., Bishop of Dallas: "I really like the book and will not only recommend it to the priests and good sisters in my diocese, but I’ll also use it myself at catechism every Sunday in the Cathedral. The list of questions and general index make it really easy to use."
Right Rev. M. E. Burke, D.D., Bishop of Cheyenne: "Your Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism is excellent, and it supplies a much needed means of useful and necessary catechetical instruction for our Sunday schools. It will be found an excellent textbook for Catholic schools and academies throughout the country and a most useful manual for all who are engaged in the instruction of our children."
Right Rev. M. E. Burke, D.D., Bishop of Cheyenne: "Your explanation of the Baltimore Catechism is excellent, and it provides a much-needed resource for effective and essential catechetical instruction in our Sunday schools. It will serve as a fantastic textbook for Catholic schools and academies across the country and as a valuable manual for everyone involved in teaching our children."
Right Rev. L. De Goesbriand, D.D., Bishop of Burlington: "I consider your book, the Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism, as an admirable work. Nothing can be found more clear, more satisfactory."
Right Rev. L. De Goesbriand, D.D., Bishop of Burlington: "I see your book, the Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism, as an excellent piece. Nothing is clearer or more satisfying."
Right Rev. John Foley, D.D., Bishop of Detroit: "I congratulate you upon producing a work so useful to those having charge of souls in such clear, concise, and instructive a style. I shall gladly commend it to the Rev. Clergy."
Right Rev. John Foley, D.D., Bishop of Detroit: "I congratulate you on creating a work that's so helpful for those responsible for guiding souls, presented in a clear, concise, and educational style. I will happily recommend it to the Rev. Clergy."
Right Rev. H. Gabriels, D.D., Bishop-elect of Ogdensburg: "Your book will furnish solid material to priests who wish to preach at low Masses the catechetical instructions prescribed by the council of Baltimore. A rapid perusal of some of its pages has convinced me that it is just what was often looked for in vain in this important branch of the holy ministry."
Right Rev. H. Gabriels, D.D., Bishop-elect of Ogdensburg: "Your book will provide valuable resources for priests who want to deliver catechetical instructions at low Masses as outlined by the council of Baltimore. A quick look through some of its pages has convinced me that it offers exactly what has often been sought after, but not found, in this crucial area of the holy ministry."
Right Rev. N. A. Gallagher, D.D., Bishop of Galveston: "Having read your Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism, I wish to say that it is in my opinion a very useful book for priests as well as for teachers; and that it is a valuable book to place in the hands of those who wish to become acquainted with the teachings of Holy Church. I have just ordered ten copies from the Publishers for my own distribution."
Right Rev. N. A. Gallagher, D.D., Bishop of Galveston: "After reading your Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism, I want to say that I believe it is a very helpful book for both priests and teachers; and it is a great resource for those who want to learn about the teachings of the Holy Church. I've just ordered ten copies from the publishers for my own distribution."
Right Rev. Leo Haid, O.S.B., D.D., Vicar Apostolic of North Carolina: "I am very glad you gave us such a sensible, simple, and complete explanation of the Baltimore Catechism. I wish it were in the hands of every teacher of Christian doctrine. In this Vicariate, where priests are few, and often obliged to receive converts into the Church without that thorough instruction which resident pastors can give, your book will be hailed with joy. I will do my utmost to make it known. Please send me one dozen copies."
Right Rev. Leo Haid, O.S.B., D.D., Vicar Apostolic of North Carolina: "I'm really glad you provided us with such a clear, straightforward, and comprehensive explanation of the Baltimore Catechism. I wish every Christian doctrine teacher had it. In this Vicariate, where there are few priests and they often have to welcome converts into the Church without the thorough instruction that local pastors can offer, your book will be received with great joy. I will do everything I can to spread the word. Please send me a dozen copies."
Right Rev. John J. Hennessy, D.D. Bishop of Wichita: "From what I have seen of your book I am delighted with the method which you have adopted for explanation. It makes the Catechism easy and interesting to both teacher and pupil. I shall heartily recommend your book to our clergy for introduction into our schools."
Right Rev. John J. Hennessy, D.D. Bishop of Wichita: "From what I’ve seen of your book, I am thrilled with the approach you’ve taken for explanation. It makes the Catechism easy and engaging for both teachers and students. I will strongly recommend your book to our clergy for use in our schools."
Right Rev. A. Junger, D.D., Bishop of Nesqually: "I am sure your work will not fail to obtain its object. There is not the least doubt that it will be of the greatest and best use for Sunday school teachers and advanced classes who will make use of it, and to whom we highly recommend it. Such a work was needed, as our Baltimore Catechism does not and cannot contain all the necessary explanations."
Right Rev. A. Junger, D.D., Bishop of Nesqually: "I’m confident your work will achieve its goal. There’s no doubt that it will be incredibly useful for Sunday school teachers and advanced classes who will use it, and we highly endorse it for them. This kind of resource was necessary because our Baltimore Catechism doesn’t and can’t provide all the essential explanations."
Right Rev. John J. Keane, D.D., Rector of the Catholic University,
Washington:
"The character of the work speaks for itself."
Right Rev. John J. Keane, D.D., Rector of the Catholic University,
Washington:
"The quality of the work is evident on its own."
Right Rev. W. G. McCloskey, D.D., Bishop of Louisville: "What I have already seen of it gives me the impression that it is a meritorious work which ought to be encouraged."
Right Rev. W. G. McCloskey, D.D., Bishop of Louisville: "What I've seen of it so far makes me think it's a valuable effort that should be supported."
Right Rev. James McGolrick, D.D., Bishop of Duluth: "I think you have prepared a thoroughly practical work in your Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism. You have in well selected and plain English enabled teachers to give useful lessons from the text itself without the need of resort to other books. Your book will find its way to the desk of every Catholic teacher, and we hope to the home of every Catholic family. I am glad you marked the Scripture references, for the higher classes after Confirmation can unite their Scripture lessons with such study of your book as to prepare themselves for teaching. Your series of questions and good index are certainly very useful."
Right Rev. James McGolrick, D.D., Bishop of Duluth: "I believe you've created a really practical resource in your Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism. You've used clear and straightforward English, allowing teachers to give valuable lessons directly from the text without needing to rely on other books. Your book will reach the desks of every Catholic teacher, and we hope it will also make its way into the homes of every Catholic family. I'm glad you included the Scripture references, as the older classes after Confirmation can combine their Scripture lessons with your book to prepare for teaching. Your series of questions and helpful index are certainly very useful."
Right Rev. Camillus P. Maes, D.D., Bishop of Covington: "I have examined your Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism on some of the most important points of doctrine and morals. I find its teachings sound, and the manner of presenting them practical. I take pleasure in commending your book to priests and teachers, and in congratulating you for having bestowed so much time on the greatest of all pastoral work, viz: giving children a thorough and sound knowledge of Holy Church and of her divine teachings."
Right Rev. Camillus P. Maes, D.D., Bishop of Covington: "I have reviewed your Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism on several key points of doctrine and morals. I find its teachings solid, and the way they are presented is practical. I am pleased to recommend your book to priests and teachers, and I congratulate you for dedicating so much time to the most important pastoral work, which is providing children with a thorough and sound understanding of Holy Church and her divine teachings."
Right Rev. C. E. McDonnell, D.D., Bishop-elect of Brooklyn:
"I beg you to accept my hearty congratulations."
Right Rev. C. E. McDonnell, D.D., Bishop-elect of Brooklyn:
"I sincerely congratulate you."
Right Rev. R. Manogue, D.D., Bishop of Sacramento: "We have ponderous works from distinguished authors on the Catechism in general, but yours—An Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism—is the simplest, most concise, most natural and instructive I have yet encountered. It is good not only for advanced pupils, teachers, preachers and priests, but also for the sacred precincts of every Catholic family."
Right Rev. R. Manogue, D.D., Bishop of Sacramento: "We have extensive works from prominent authors on the Catechism in general, but yours—An Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism—is the simplest, most concise, most natural, and most informative I have come across. It is valuable not only for advanced students, teachers, preachers, and priests, but also for the sacred spaces of every Catholic family."
Right Rev. Tobias Mullen, D.D., Bishop of Erie: "Your book appears to me a very meritorious production. In your preface you observe it has been designed for the use of Sunday school teachers and that it 'should do good in any Catholic family' I think you might have added that any clergyman having the care of souls, whether giving private instructions or preparing for the pulpit, would derive great benefits from its perusal."
Right Rev. Tobias Mullen, D.D., Bishop of Erie: "Your book seems like a highly commendable work. In your preface, you mention that it was created for Sunday school teachers and that it 'should do good in any Catholic family.' I believe you could have also noted that any clergyman responsible for caring for souls, whether providing private instruction or preparing for a sermon, would greatly benefit from reading it."
Right Rev. H. P. Northrop, D.D., Bishop of Charleston: "The Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism, plain and practical, clear and comprehensive, was a work very much needed. From a general examination, I think you have done your work well, and you deserve the thanks of all teachers of catechism and those who have charge of our schools. You have simplified the work of the teacher by putting in his hand such a ready handbook and commentary on the text he is supposed to explain. If they do what they expect their pupils to do—study the lesson—with such a help as you have furnished them, the work of the Sunday school will be much more satisfactory. I hope the hearty appreciation of those for whom you have labored will crown your work with abundant success."
Right Rev. H. P. Northrop, D.D., Bishop of Charleston: "The Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism, straightforward and practical, clear and thorough, was a much-needed resource. From a overall review, I believe you have done an excellent job, and you deserve the gratitude of all catechism teachers and those in charge of our schools. You’ve made the teacher's job easier by providing a handy guide and commentary on the text they are expected to explain. If they approach the lesson as they ask their students to—by studying it—with the help you've provided, the work of the Sunday school will be significantly more fulfilling. I hope the genuine appreciation from those you’ve worked for will bring your efforts great success."
Right Rev. Henry Joseph Richter, D.D., Bishop of Grand Rapids: "The aim of your book is excellent. To judge from the portions which I have read, your labor has been successful. I recommend the book to all Catholic adults, but especially to teachers and converts, as a convenient handbook of appropriate, plain, and solid instructions on the doctrine of the Catholic Church."
Right Rev. Henry Joseph Richter, D.D., Bishop of Grand Rapids: "The purpose of your book is outstanding. Based on the sections I’ve read, your effort has paid off. I suggest this book to all Catholic adults, particularly to teachers and converts, as a handy guide filled with clear, straightforward, and substantial teachings on the doctrine of the Catholic Church."
Right Rev. S. V. Ryan, D.D., Bishop of Buffalo: "I think your work fully meets all you claim for it. It will serve as a good textbook for an advanced catechism class, and a very useful handbook for catechists in instructing converts or our own people what they should know and what they are bound to believe in regard to our holy faith. The book will, I think, do good in any Catholic family."
Right Rev. S. V. Ryan, D.D., Bishop of Buffalo: "I believe your work truly delivers on everything you say it does. It will be an excellent textbook for an advanced catechism class, and a very handy guide for catechists teaching converts or our own community about what they need to know and what they must believe concerning our faith. I think the book will benefit any Catholic family."
Right Rev. L. Scanlan, D.D., Bishop of Salt Lake: "I consider it a most useful if not necessary book, not only for Sunday school teachers and for advanced classes, but for all who may desire to have a clear, definite knowledge of Christian doctrine."
Right Rev. L. Scanlan, D.D., Bishop of Salt Lake: "I see this as a very helpful if not essential book, not just for Sunday school teachers and advanced classes, but for anyone who wants to have a clear and definite understanding of Christian doctrine."
CONTENTS
PRAYERS
The Lord's Prayer
The Angelical Salutation
The Apostles' Creed
The Confiteor
An Act of Faith
An Act of Hope
An Act of Love
An Act of Contrition
The Blessing before Meals
Grace after Meals
The Manner in Which a Lay Person Is to Baptize in Case of Necessity
The Lord's Prayer
The Angelic Greeting
The Apostles' Creed
The Confiteor
A Statement of Faith
A Statement of Hope
A Statement of Love
A Statement of Remorse
The Blessing Before Meals
Grace After Meals
How a Lay Person Should Baptize in Case of Emergency
CATECHISM
Lesson 1—On the End of Man
Lesson 2—On God and His Perfections
Lesson 3—On the Unity and Trinity of God
Lesson 4—On Creation
Lesson 5—On Our First Parents and the Fall
Lesson 6—On Sin and Its Kinds
Lesson 7—On the Incarnation and Redemption
Lesson 8—On Our Lord's Passion, Death, Resurrection and Ascension
Lesson 9—On the Holy Ghost and His Descent upon the Apostles
Lesson 10—On the Effects of the Redemption
Lesson 11—On the Church
Lesson 12—On the Attributes and Marks of the Church
Lesson 13—On the Sacraments in General
Lesson 14—On Baptism
Lesson 15—On Confirmation
Lesson 16—On the Gifts and Fruits of the Holy Ghost
Lesson 17—On the Sacrament of Penance
Lesson 18—On Contrition
Lesson 19—On Confession
Lesson 20—On the Manner of Making a Good Confession
Lesson 21—On Indulgences
Lesson 22—On the Holy Eucharist
Lesson 23—On the Ends for which the Holy Eucharist Was Instituted
Lesson 24—On the Sacrifice of the Mass
Lesson 25—On Extreme Unction and Holy Orders
Lesson 26—On Matrimony
Lesson 27—On the Sacramentals
Lesson 28—On Prayer
Lesson 29—On the Commandments of God
Lesson 30—On the First Commandment
Lesson 31—The First Commandment—On the Honor and Invocation of the
Saints
Lesson 32—From the Second to the Fourth Commandment
Lesson 33—From the Fourth to the Seventh Commandment
Lesson 34—From the Seventh to the Tenth Commandment
Lesson 35—On the First and Second Commandments of the Church
Lesson 36—On the Third, Fourth, Fifth and Sixth Commandments of the
Church
Lesson 37—On the Last Judgment and Resurrection, Hell, Purgatory and
Heaven
Lesson 1—On the Purpose of Humanity
Lesson 2—On God and His Attributes
Lesson 3—On the Oneness and Trinity of God
Lesson 4—On Creation
Lesson 5—On Our First Parents and the Fall
Lesson 6—On Sin and Its Types
Lesson 7—On the Incarnation and Redemption
Lesson 8—On Our Lord's Suffering, Death, Resurrection, and Ascension
Lesson 9—On the Holy Spirit and His Coming upon the Apostles
Lesson 10—On the Effects of Redemption
Lesson 11—On the Church
Lesson 12—On the Characteristics and Signs of the Church
Lesson 13—On Sacraments in General
Lesson 14—On Baptism
Lesson 15—On Confirmation
Lesson 16—On the Gifts and Fruits of the Holy Spirit
Lesson 17—On the Sacrament of Confession
Lesson 18—On Sorrow for Sin
Lesson 19—On Confession
Lesson 20—On How to Make a Good Confession
Lesson 21—On Indulgences
Lesson 22—On the Holy Eucharist
Lesson 23—On the Purposes for Which the Holy Eucharist Was Instituted
Lesson 24—On the Sacrifice of the Mass
Lesson 25—On Anointing of the Sick and Holy Orders
Lesson 26—On Marriage
Lesson 27—On Sacramentals
Lesson 28—On Prayer
Lesson 29—On God's Commandments
Lesson 30—On the First Commandment
Lesson 31—The First Commandment—On Honoring and Invoking the Saints
Lesson 32—From the Second to the Fourth Commandment
Lesson 33—From the Fourth to the Seventh Commandment
Lesson 34—From the Seventh to the Tenth Commandment
Lesson 35—On the First and Second Commandments of the Church
Lesson 36—On the Third, Fourth, Fifth, and Sixth Commandments of the Church
Lesson 37—On the Last Judgment and Resurrection, Hell, Purgatory, and Heaven
PREFACE
It must be evident to all who have had experience in the work of our Sunday schools that much time is wasted in the classes. Many teachers do little more than mark the attendance and hear the lessons; this being done, time hangs heavily on their hands till the school is dismissed. They do not or cannot explain what they are teaching, and the children have no interest in the study.
It should be clear to everyone who has worked in our Sunday schools that a lot of time is wasted in the classes. Many teachers do little more than take attendance and listen to the lessons; once that's done, they have a lot of unproductive time until the school ends. They either don't know how to explain what they're teaching or fail to explain it, leaving the kids uninterested in the subject.
The Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism is intended for their use. The explanations are full and simple. The examples are taken from Holy Scripture, from the parables of Our Lord, from incidents in His life, and from the customs and manners of the people of His time. These are made applicable to our daily lives in reflections and exhortations.
The Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism is meant for their use. The explanations are thorough and easy to understand. The examples come from the Bible, the parables of Jesus, events from His life, and the customs and behaviors of people in His time. These are connected to our everyday lives through reflections and encouragements.
The plan of the book makes it very simple and handy. The Catechism is complete and distinct in itself, and may be used with or without the explanations. The teacher is supposed, after hearing the lesson, to read the explanation of the new lesson as far as time will allow. It may be read just as it is, or may be learned by the teacher and given to the children in substance.
The layout of the book is straightforward and convenient. The Catechism is self-contained and can be used with or without the added explanations. The teacher is expected, after going over the lesson, to read the explanation of the new lesson as much as time permits. It can be read as is, or the teacher can learn it and present it to the kids in their own words.
The Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism will be found very useful also for the instruction of adults and converts. The priest on the mission is often called upon to instruct persons who can come to him but seldom, and only for a short time; and who, moreover, are incapable of using with profit such books as The Faith of Our Fathers, Catholic Belief, or works of controversy. They are simply able to use the Child's Catechism when explained to them. If the Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism is in their hands, they may read the explanations and study the Catechism with pleasure.
The Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism is very helpful for teaching adults and converts. A missionary priest often has to teach people who can only meet with him occasionally and for a short time; plus, they usually can't make good use of books like The Faith of Our Fathers, Catholic Belief, or controversial works. They can only benefit from the Child's Catechism when it’s explained to them. If they have the Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism, they can read the explanations and study the Catechism with enjoyment.
Indeed the book should do good in any Catholic family. The majority of our people are children as far as their religious knowledge goes. They may, it is true, have books on particular subjects, such as the Duties of Parents to Their Children, The Sure Way to a Happy Marriage, etc.; but a book that explains to them in the simplest manner all the truths of their religion, and applies the same to their daily lives, ought to be useful.
Indeed, this book should be beneficial for any Catholic family. Most of our people have a limited understanding of their faith. They might have books on specific topics, like the Responsibilities of Parents to Their Children or The Sure Way to a Happy Marriage, etc.; however, a book that clearly explains all the truths of their religion and connects those truths to their everyday lives should be helpful.
The chief aim of the book is to be practical, and to teach Catholics what they should know, and how these truths of their Catechism are constantly coming up in the performance of their everyday duties. It is therefore neither a book of devotion nor of controversy, though it covers the ground of both. As in this book the explanations are interrupted by the questions and answers of the Catechism proper, it will, it is hoped, be read with more pleasure than a book giving solid page after page of instructions.
The main goal of this book is to be practical and to teach Catholics what they need to know, showing how the truths of their Catechism relate to their everyday responsibilities. It's not just a book of prayers or debates, but it touches on both topics. Since the book includes interruptions for questions and answers from the Catechism, we hope it will be more enjoyable to read than a traditional book filled with solid instructions.
Wherever a fact is mentioned as being taken from Holy Scripture, it will generally be given in substance and not in the exact text; though the reference will always be given, so that those wishing may read it as it is in the Holy Scripture. The children are not supposed to memorize the explanation as they do the Catechism itself, yet the teacher, having once read it to them, should ask questions on it. The book may be used as a textbook or catechism for the more advanced classes, and the complete list of numbered questions on the explanations—given at the end—will render it very serviceable for that purpose.
Wherever a fact is mentioned as coming from the Bible, it will usually be presented in a paraphrased form rather than the exact wording; however, the reference will always be included so that those interested can read it directly from the Bible. Children aren’t expected to memorize the explanations as they do with the Catechism itself, but after the teacher reads it to them, they should ask questions about it. This book can be used as a textbook or catechism for more advanced classes, and the complete list of numbered questions on the explanations—provided at the end—will make it very useful for that purpose.
As the same subject often occurs in different parts of the Catechism, explanations already given may sometimes be repeated. This is done either to show the connection between the different parts of the Catechism, or to impress the explanation more deeply on the minds of the children, or to save the teacher the trouble of always turning back to preceding explanations. The numbering of the questions and answers throughout the Catechism, and the complete index of subjects and list of questions at the end, will, it is hoped, make these comparisons and references easy, and the book itself useful.
As the same topic often appears in different sections of the Catechism, explanations may sometimes be repeated. This is done to either highlight the connection between various parts of the Catechism, to make the explanation stick more in the minds of the children, or to make it easier for the teacher by not having to constantly refer back to previous explanations. The numbering of the questions and answers throughout the Catechism, along with the complete index of topics and list of questions at the end, is intended to make these comparisons and references straightforward, and to make the book itself helpful.
With the hope, then, that the Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism may do all the good intended, I commend it to all who desire a fuller knowledge of their holy religion that they may practice it more faithfully.
With the hope that the Explanation of the Baltimore Catechism can achieve its intended purpose, I recommend it to anyone looking for a deeper understanding of their faith, so they can live it out more faithfully.
Rev. Thomas L. Kinkead
June 21, 1891,
Feast of St. Aloysius
Rev. Thomas L. Kinkead
June 21, 1891,
Feast of St. Aloysius
An
Explanation
Of The
Baltimore Catechism
of Christian Doctrine
An
Explanation
Of The
Baltimore Catechism
of Christian Doctrine
Basic Catholic Prayers
Basic Catholic Prayers
THE LORD'S PRAYER
Our Father, Who art in Heaven, hallowed be Thy name. Thy kingdom come. Thy will be done on earth as it is in Heaven. Give us this day our daily bread. And forgive us our trespasses, as we forgive those who trespass against us. And lead us not into temptation, but deliver us from evil. Amen.
Our Father, who is in Heaven, may Your name be honored. May Your kingdom come. May Your will be done on earth as it is in Heaven. Give us today our daily bread. And forgive us our mistakes, as we forgive those who make mistakes against us. And don’t let us fall into temptation, but rescue us from evil. Amen.
This is the most beautiful and best of all prayers, because Our Lord Himself made it. (Matt. 6:9; Luke 11:2). One day when He was praying and explaining to His Apostles the great advantages of prayer, one of them said to Him: "Lord, teach us to pray." Then Jesus taught them this prayer. It contains everything we need or could ask for. We cannot see its full meaning at once. The more we think over it, the more clearly we understand it. We could write whole pages on almost every word, and still not say all that could be said about this prayer. It is called "the Lord's," because He made it, and sometimes the "Our Father," from the first words.
This is the most beautiful and greatest of all prayers because Our Lord Himself created it. (Matt. 6:9; Luke 11:2). One day, while He was praying and explaining to His Apostles the tremendous benefits of prayer, one of them said to Him, "Lord, teach us to pray." Then Jesus taught them this prayer. It includes everything we need or could ask for. We can't grasp its full meaning right away. The more we reflect on it, the clearer our understanding becomes. We could write pages on almost every word and still not cover everything that can be said about this prayer. It is called "the Lord's" because He created it, and sometimes "the Our Father," based on the first words.
We say "Our," to show that we are all brethren, and that God is the Father of us all, and therefore we pray not for ourselves alone but for all God's children.
We say "Our" to show that we are all brothers and sisters, and that God is the Father of us all. Therefore, we don't pray just for ourselves, but for all of God's children.
We say "Father," because God really is our Father. We do not mean here by Father the First Person of the Blessed Trinity, but the Blessed Trinity itself—one God. What does a father do for his children? He gives them their natural existence, provides them with food and clothing, teaches, protects, and loves them, shares with them all that he has, and when he dies leaves them his possessions. Now, in all these ways, and in a much truer sense, God is our Father. He created us and gives us all that is necessary to sustain life. He gives light, heat, and air, without any one of which we could not live. He provides for us also food and clothing, and long before we need or even think of these things God is thinking of them. Did you ever reflect upon just how much time and trouble it costs to produce for you even one potato, of which you think so little? About two years before you need that potato, God puts it into the mind of the farmer to save the seed that he may plant it the following year. In the proper season he prepares the ground with great care and plants the seed. Then God sends His sunlight and rain to make it grow, but the farmer's work is not yet ended: he must continue to keep the soil in good condition and clear away the weeds. In due time the potato is taken from the ground, brought to the market, carried to your house, cooked and placed before you. You take it without even thinking, perhaps, of all this trouble, or thanking God for His goodness. This is only one article of food, and the same may be said of all the rest. Your clothing is provided for you long before you need it. The little lamb upon whose back the wool is growing, from which your coat is someday to be made, is even now far away on some mountain, growing stronger with the food God gives it till you need its wool. The little pieces of coal, too, that you so carelessly throw upon the fire were formed deep down in the earth hundreds of years ago. God produces all you use, because He foresees and knows you will use it. Moreover He protects us from danger; He teaches us by the voice of our conscience and the ministers of His Church, our priests and bishops. He loves us too, as we may learn from all that He does for us, and from the many times He forgives us our sins. He shares what He possesses with us. He has given us understanding and a free will resembling His own. He has given us immortality, i.e., when once He has created us, we shall exist as long as Himself—that is, forever. When Our Lord died on the Cross, He left us His many possessions—His graces and merits, the holy Sacraments, and Heaven itself.
We call Him "Father" because God truly is our Father. We don't mean by Father just the First Person of the Blessed Trinity, but the entire Blessed Trinity—one God. What does a father do for his children? He gives them life, provides food and clothes, teaches, protects, and loves them, shares everything he has, and when he passes away, he leaves them his belongings. In all these ways, and in an even deeper sense, God is our Father. He created us and gives us everything we need to live. He provides light, heat, and air—without any of these, we couldn't survive. He also provides food and clothing, and long before we need or even think about these things, God is already considering them. Have you ever thought about how much time and effort it takes to grow even one potato, which you might take for granted? About two years before you need that potato, God inspires the farmer to save the seed for planting next year. In the proper season, he carefully prepares the soil and plants the seed. Then, God sends sunlight and rain to help it grow, but the farmer's work isn't done yet: he must keep the soil healthy and remove the weeds. Eventually, the potato is harvested, taken to the market, brought to your home, cooked, and put on your plate. You might take it without even realizing the effort involved, or thanking God for His goodness. This is just one type of food, and the same goes for everything else. Your clothes are ready for you long before you need them. The little lamb that will grow the wool for your coat is out there on some mountain, getting stronger with the food God provides until you're ready for its wool. The coal you casually toss into the fire was formed deep in the earth hundreds of years ago. God produces everything you use because He knows in advance that you'll need it. Additionally, He protects us from danger; He teaches us through our conscience and through the ministers of His Church, the priests and bishops. He loves us, as we can see from all He does for us and the countless times He forgives our sins. He shares His possessions with us. He has given us understanding and free will like His own. He has granted us immortality, meaning that once He creates us, we will exist for as long as He does—that is, forever. When Our Lord died on the Cross, He left us many possessions—His grace and merits, the holy Sacraments, and Heaven itself.
It is surely, then, just and right to call God Father. Our natural fathers give us only what they, themselves, get from God. So even what they give us also comes from Him.
It is definitely fair and proper to refer to God as Father. Our natural fathers provide us with only what they themselves receive from God. Therefore, even what they give us ultimately comes from Him.
Before the time of Our Lord, the people in prayer did not call God Father. They feared Him more than they loved Him. When He spoke to them—as He did when He gave the Commandments to Moses—it was in thunder, lightning, and smoke. (Ex. 19). They looked upon God as a great and terrible king who would destroy them for their sins. He sent the deluge on account of sin, and He destroyed the wicked city of Sodom with fire from Heaven. (Gen. 7:19). They called Him Jehovah, and were afraid sometimes even to pronounce His name. But Our Lord taught that God, besides being a great and powerful king—the Ruler of the universe and Lord of all things—is also a kind and good Father, who wishes His children not to offend Him because they love Him rather than because they fear Him, and therefore He taught His disciples and all Christians to call God by the sweet name of Father.
Before the time of Our Lord, people in prayer didn’t refer to God as Father. They feared Him more than they loved Him. When He spoke to them—as when He gave the Commandments to Moses—it was with thunder, lightning, and smoke. (Ex. 19). They viewed God as a great and terrifying king who would punish them for their sins. He sent the flood because of sin, and He destroyed the wicked city of Sodom with fire from Heaven. (Gen. 7:19). They called Him Jehovah and were sometimes even afraid to say His name. But Our Lord taught that God, besides being a powerful king—the Ruler of the universe and Lord of all things—is also a kind and loving Father, who wants His children to avoid offending Him out of love rather than fear. Therefore, He taught His disciples and all Christians to call God by the loving name of Father.
"Who art in Heaven." The Catechism says God is everywhere. Why then do we say, "Who art in Heaven," as if He were no place else? We say so to remind us, first, that Heaven is our true home, and that this world is only a strange land in which we are staying for a while to do the work that God wishes us to do here, and then return to our own home; second, that in Heaven we shall see God face to face and as He is; third, that Heaven is the place where God will be for all eternity with the blessed.
"Who is in Heaven." The Catechism says God is everywhere. So why do we say, "Who is in Heaven," as if He doesn't exist anywhere else? We say this to remind us, first, that Heaven is our true home and that this world is just a temporary place where we are staying to do the work God wants us to do before returning to our home; second, that in Heaven we will see God face to face and as He truly is; third, that Heaven is the place where God will be for all eternity with the blessed.
"Hallowed" means made holy or sacred. Halloween is the name given to the evening before the feast of All Hallows or All Saints.
"Hallowed" means made holy or sacred. Halloween is the name given to the evening before the feast of All Hallows or All Saints.
"Thy kingdom come." This petition contains a great deal more than we at first see in it. In it we ask that God may reign in our hearts and in the hearts of all men by His grace in this life, and that we and all men may attain our eternal salvation, and thus be brought to reign forever with God in Heaven—the kingdom of His glory. As the Church on earth is frequently called the kingdom of Christ, and as all the labors of the Church are directed to the salvation of souls, we pray also in this petition that the Church may be extended upon earth, that the true religion may be spread over the whole world, that all men may know and serve the true God and cheerfully obey His holy laws; that the devil may have no dominion over them. While saying this petition we may have it in our minds to pray even for particular ways in which the true religion can be spread; for example, by praying that the missionaries may meet with success and all the missions prosper; that priests and bishops may be ordained to preach the Gospel; that the Church may overcome all her enemies everywhere, and the true religion triumph.
"Your kingdom come." This request means a lot more than we realize at first. We ask that God rule in our hearts and in the hearts of everyone through His grace in this life, and that we and everyone else may achieve eternal salvation, ultimately reigning forever with God in Heaven—the kingdom of His glory. Since the Church on earth is often called the kingdom of Christ, and since all of the Church's efforts are focused on saving souls, we also pray in this request for the Church to grow on earth, for true religion to spread across the world, so that everyone may know and serve the true God and gladly follow His holy laws; that the devil may not have control over them. While we say this request, we might also think about specific ways in which true religion can be shared; for instance, by praying that missionaries find success and that all missions flourish; that priests and bishops may be ordained to preach the Gospel; that the Church may overcome all her enemies everywhere, and that true religion may prevail.
"Thy will be done on earth as it is in Heaven." In Heaven all the angels and saints obey God perfectly; they never offend Him; so we pray that it may be on earth as it is in Heaven, all men doing God's will, observing His laws and the laws of His Church, and living without sin.
"Your will be done on earth as it is in Heaven." In Heaven, all the angels and saints perfectly obey God; they never offend Him. So, we pray that it may be on earth as it is in Heaven, with everyone doing God's will, following His laws and the laws of His Church, and living without sin.
"Give us this day our daily bread." In this petition "bread" means not merely bread, but everything we need for our daily lives; such as food, clothing, light, heat, air, and the like; also food for the soul, i.e., grace. If a beggar told you that he had not tasted bread for the whole day, you would never think of asking him if he had eaten any cake, because you would understand by his word bread all kinds of food. We say "daily," to teach us not to be greedy or too careful about ourselves, and not to ask for unnecessary things, but to pray for what we need for our present wants.
"Give us today our daily bread." In this request, "bread" doesn't just refer to bread itself, but to everything we need for our daily lives, such as food, clothing, light, heat, air, and more; it also includes nourishment for the soul, meaning grace. If a beggar told you he hadn’t had any bread all day, you wouldn’t think to ask if he had eaten any cake because you’d understand that he means all kinds of food by saying bread. We say "daily" to remind us not to be greedy or overly concerned about ourselves, and not to ask for unnecessary things, but to pray for what we truly need for today.
"And forgive us our trespasses as we forgive those who trespass against us." "Trespasses" means here our sins, our offenses against God. When we trespass we enter places we should not, or where we are forbidden to go. So when we sin we go where we should not go, viz., out of the path of virtue that leads to God, and into the way of vice that leads to the devil.
"And forgive us our sins as we forgive those who sin against us." "Sins" here refers to our wrongdoings, our offenses against God. When we sin, we enter places we shouldn't be, or where we're forbidden to go. So when we sin, we stray from the path of virtue that leads to God and head down the path of vice that leads to the devil.
"As we forgive them." We take this to mean: we forgive others who have offended us, and for that reason, God, You should forgive us who have offended You. Our Lord told a beautiful parable, i.e., a story by way of illustration, to explain this. (Matt. 18:23). A very rich man had a servant who owed him a large sum of money. One day the master asked the servant for the money, and the poor servant had none to give. Now the law of the country was, that when anyone could not pay his debts, all that he had could be sold and the money given to the one to whom it was due, and if that was not sufficient, he and his wife and his children could be sold as slaves. The servant, knowing this, fell on his knees and begged his master to be patient with him, and to give him time and he would pay all. Then his master was moved to pity, granted not only what he asked, but freed him from the debt altogether. Afterwards when this servant, who had just been forgiven the large sum, was going out, he found one of his fellow servants who owed him a very small sum of money, and taking hold of him by the throat, demanded payment. Now, this poor servant, having nothing to give just then, implored his assailant to be patient with him and he would pay all. But the hard-hearted servant—though he himself had a little while before asked and obtained the very same favor from his own master—would not listen to the request or wait longer, but went and had his fellow servant cast into prison till he should pay the debt. The other servants, seeing how unforgiving this man was who had himself been forgiven, went and told all to their master, and he, being angry at such conduct, had the unforgiving servant brought back and cast into prison.
"As we forgive them." We understand this to mean: we forgive those who have wronged us, and for that reason, God, You should forgive us for our wrongs against You. Our Lord shared a poignant parable, a story to illustrate this point, to explain it. (Matt. 18:23). A very wealthy man had a servant who owed him a significant amount of money. One day, the master asked the servant to pay up, but the poor servant had no money to give. The law of the land stated that if anyone couldn't pay their debts, everything they owned could be sold to settle the debt, and if that wasn’t enough, the debtor and their family could be sold into slavery. The servant, aware of this, fell to his knees and begged his master to be patient and give him time to repay the full amount. Moved by compassion, his master granted not just a delayed payment but forgave him the entire debt. Later, this newly forgiven servant encountered a fellow servant who owed him a small sum of money. He grabbed him by the throat and demanded payment. The poor fellow servant, unable to pay at that moment, pleaded with him to be patient and that he would pay everything. However, the unforgiving servant—who had just been granted the same mercy from his own master—refused to listen or wait, and had his fellow servant thrown into prison until he could settle the debt. The other servants, witnessing how unmerciful this man was despite having been forgiven, reported everything to their master, who, angered by such behavior, summoned the unforgiving servant and had him imprisoned.
"And lead us not into temptation." "Temptation" means a trial to see whether we will do a thing or not. Here it means a trial made by some person or thing—the devil, the world, or our own flesh—to see whether we will sin or not. God does not exactly lead us into temptation; but He allows us to fall into it. He allows others to tempt us. We can overcome any temptation to sin by the help or grace that God gives us. Therefore we ask in this petition that God will always give us the grace to overcome the temptation, and that we may not consent to it. A temptation is not a sin. It becomes sin only when we are overcome by it. When we are tempted we are like soldiers fighting a battle: if the soldiers are conquered by their enemy, they are disgraced; but if they conquer their enemy, they have great glory and great rewards. So, when we overcome temptations, God gives us a new glory and reward for every victory.
"And lead us not into temptation." "Temptation" refers to a test to see if we will do something or not. In this context, it means a test created by someone or something—the devil, the world, or our own desires—to see if we will sin. God doesn't directly lead us into temptation; instead, He allows us to encounter it. He permits others to tempt us. We can resist any temptation to sin with the help or grace that God provides. So, in this request, we ask that God always grants us the grace to resist temptation, and that we do not give in to it. A temptation by itself is not a sin. It only becomes sin when we succumb to it. When we are tempted, we are like soldiers in a battle: if the soldiers are defeated by their enemy, they face shame; but if they defeat their enemy, they gain great honor and rewards. Likewise, when we overcome temptations, God grants us new honor and rewards for each victory.
"Deliver us from evil." From every kind of evil, and especially the evil of being conquered by our spiritual enemies, and thus falling into sin, and offending God by becoming His enemy ourselves. It would be a sin to seek temptation, though we have a reward for resisting it when it comes.
"Deliver us from evil." From all types of evil, especially the evil of being defeated by our spiritual foes, which leads us to sin and offends God, turning us into His enemies. It would be wrong to seek out temptation, even though there's a reward for resisting it when it arrives.
"Amen" means, be it so. May all we have asked be granted just as we have asked it.
"Amen" means, let it be so. May everything we've requested be granted exactly as we've asked.
THE ANGELICAL SALUTATION
Hail, Mary, full of grace! the Lord is with thee: blessed art thou
amongst women, and blessed is the fruit of thy womb, Jesus. Holy Mary,
Mother of God, pray for us sinners, now and at the hour of our death.
Amen.
Hail, Mary, full of grace! The Lord is with you: you are blessed among women, and blessed is the fruit of your womb, Jesus. Holy Mary, Mother of God, pray for us sinners, now and at the hour of our death. Amen.
Next in beauty to the Lord's Prayer comes this prayer. It is made up of three parts:
Next in beauty to the Lord's Prayer is this prayer. It consists of three parts:
"Hail, full of grace! the Lord is with thee: blessed art thou amongst women" was composed by the angel Gabriel, for these are the words he used when he came to tell the Blessed Virgin that she was selected to be the Mother of God (Luke 1:28). All her people knew that the Redeemer promised from the time of Eve down to the time of the Blessed Virgin was now to be born, and many good women were anxious to be His mother, and they believed the one who would be selected the most blessed and happy of all women.
"Hail, full of grace! The Lord is with you: blessed are you among women," was spoken by the angel Gabriel, as these are the words he used when he came to inform the Blessed Virgin that she was chosen to be the Mother of God (Luke 1:28). Everyone knew that the Redeemer promised from the time of Eve until the Blessed Virgin was about to be born, and many virtuous women were eager to be His mother, believing that the chosen one would be the most blessed and happy of all women.
"The Lord is with thee" by His grace and favor, since you are the one He loves best. He is with all His creatures, but He is with you in a very special manner.
"The Lord is with you" by His grace and favor, since you are the one He loves the most. He is with all His creatures, but He is with you in a very special way.
After the visit of the angel, the Blessed Virgin went a good distance to visit her cousin, St. Elizabeth, who was the mother of St. John the Baptist (Luke 1:39). When St. Elizabeth saw her, she, without being told by the Blessed Virgin what the angel had done, knew by the inspiration of the Holy Ghost what had taken place, and said to the Blessed Virgin: "Blessed art thou amongst women and blessed is the fruit of thy womb." That is "blessed" because, of all the women that have ever lived or ever shall live, you are the one selected by God to be the mother of His Son and Our Redeemer, and blessed is that Son Himself. This is the second part of the prayer. The third part, from "Holy Mary" to the end, was composed by the Church.
After the angel's visit, the Blessed Virgin traveled a good distance to see her cousin, St. Elizabeth, the mother of St. John the Baptist (Luke 1:39). When St. Elizabeth saw her, without needing the Blessed Virgin to explain what the angel had done, she, inspired by the Holy Spirit, understood what had happened and said to the Blessed Virgin: "Blessed are you among women, and blessed is the fruit of your womb." That is "blessed" because, out of all the women who have ever lived or will ever live, you are the one chosen by God to be the mother of His Son and Our Redeemer, and blessed is that Son Himself. This is the second part of the prayer. The third part, from "Holy Mary" to the end, was created by the Church.
"Hail." This was the word used by the people of that country in saluting one another when they met. We say when meeting anyone we know, "Good day," or "How do you do?" or some such familiar expression used by all in salutation. So these people, instead of saying, "Good day," etc., said "Hail" i.e., I wish you health, I greet you, etc. The angel did not say "Mary," because she was the only one present to address.
"Hail." This was the word used by the people of that country when greeting each other. We might say "Good day," or "How do you do?" or something similar when we meet someone we know. So these people, instead of saying "Good day," etc., said "Hail," meaning I wish you health, I greet you, etc. The angel did not say "Mary," because she was the only one there to address.
"Full of grace." When anything is full it has no room for more. God's grace and sin cannot exist in the same place. Therefore when the Blessed Virgin was full of grace, there was no room for sin. So she was without any sin and gifted with every virtue.
"Full of grace." When something is full, there’s no space for anything else. God’s grace and sin can’t coexist. So, when the Blessed Virgin was full of grace, there was no space for sin. That’s why she was without any sin and was endowed with every virtue.
"Holy Mary," because one full of grace must be holy.
"Holy Mary," because someone who is full of grace must be holy.
"Mother of God," because her Son was true God and true man in the one person of Christ, Our Lord.
"Mother of God," because her Son was both true God and true man in the one person of Christ, Our Lord.
"Pray for us," because she has more power with her Son than all the other saints.
"Pray for us," because she has more influence with her Son than all the other saints.
"Sinners," and therefore we need forgiveness.
"Sinners," and so we need forgiveness.
"At the hour of our death" especially, because that is the most important time for us. No matter how bad we have been during our lives, if God gives us the grace to die in His friendship, we shall be His friends forever. On the other hand, no matter how good we may have been for a part of our lives, if we become bad before death, and die in that state, we shall be separated from God forever, and be condemned to eternal punishment. It would be wrong, therefore, to live in sin, with a promise that we shall die well, for God may not give us the grace or opportunity to repent, and we may die in sin if we have lived in sin. Besides this, the devil knows how much depends upon the state in which we die, and so he perhaps will tempt us more at death than at any other time; for if we yield to him and die in sin, we shall be with him forever—it is his last chance to secure our souls.
"At the time of our death," especially, because that's the most significant moment for us. No matter how poorly we have behaved throughout our lives, if God grants us the grace to die in His friendship, we will be His friends for eternity. Conversely, no matter how good we might have been at certain points in our lives, if we turn to wrongdoing before death and die in that state, we will be separated from God forever and condemned to eternal punishment. So, it would be misguided to live in sin while promising ourselves that we will die well, because God may not offer us the grace or chance to repent, and we might die in sin if we have lived in sin. Moreover, the devil understands how critical our state is at death, so he may tempt us more at that moment than at any other time; because if we give in to him and die in sin, we will be with him forever—it’s his last opportunity to seize our souls.
Besides the Hail Mary there is another beautiful prayer on the same subject, called the Angelus. It is a little history of the Incarnation, and is said morning, noon, and evening in honor of Our Lord's Incarnation, death, and resurrection. It is made up of three parts. The first part tells what the angel did, viz.: "The angel of the Lord declared unto Mary. And she conceived of the Holy Ghost." After saying these words, we say one Hail Mary in honor of the angel's message. The second part tells what Mary answered, viz.: "Behold the handmaid of the Lord. Be it done unto me according to thy word." We say another Hail Mary in honor of Mary's consent. The third part tells how Our Lord became Man, viz.: "And the Word was made flesh. And dwelt among us." The "Word" means here the Second Person of the Blessed Trinity; and "made flesh" means, became man. Then another Hail Mary is said in honor of Our Lord's goodness in humbling Himself so much for our sake. After these three parts we say: "Pray for us, O Holy Mother of God! that we may be made worthy of the promises of Christ"; and, finally, we say a prayer in honor of Our Lord's Incarnation, Passion, and Resurrection. This beautiful prayer is said three times a day in all seminaries, convents, and religious houses. The time for saying it is made known by the ringing of a bell called the "Angelus bell." In many parishes the church bell rings out the Angelus. In Catholic countries the people stop wherever they are and whatever they are doing, and bowing their heads, say the Angelus when they hear its bell. It is a beautiful practice and one most pleasing to our Blessed Lord and His holy Mother. Good Catholics should not neglect it.
Besides the Hail Mary, there’s another beautiful prayer on the same topic called the Angelus. It’s a brief account of the Incarnation, recited morning, noon, and evening to honor Our Lord’s Incarnation, death, and resurrection. It consists of three parts. The first part tells what the angel did: “The angel of the Lord declared to Mary. And she conceived by the Holy Spirit.” After saying these words, we say one Hail Mary in honor of the angel’s message. The second part shares what Mary replied: “Behold the handmaid of the Lord. Let it be done to me according to your word.” We say another Hail Mary in honor of Mary’s consent. The third part explains how Our Lord became Man: “And the Word was made flesh. And dwelt among us.” Here, “Word” refers to the Second Person of the Blessed Trinity, and “made flesh” means He became human. Then, we say another Hail Mary in honor of Our Lord’s goodness in humbling Himself for our sake. After these three parts, we say: “Pray for us, O Holy Mother of God! that we may be made worthy of the promises of Christ”; and finally, we say a prayer in honor of Our Lord’s Incarnation, Passion, and Resurrection. This beautiful prayer is recited three times a day in all seminaries, convents, and religious houses. The times for saying it are signaled by the ringing of a bell called the "Angelus bell." In many parishes, the church bell rings for the Angelus. In Catholic countries, people stop wherever they are and whatever they’re doing, bow their heads, and say the Angelus when they hear the bell. It’s a lovely practice and one that pleases our Blessed Lord and His holy Mother. Good Catholics should not overlook it.
I might mention here another kind of prayer often said in honor of our blessed Mother. It is the Litany. In this form of prayer we call Our Lady many beautiful names which we know are most dear to her, asking her after each one to pray for us. We address her first by names reminding her that she is the Mother of God and has therefore great influence with her divine Son. We say: Mother of Christ, Mother of Our Creator, Mother of Our Redeemer, etc., pray for us. Next we remind her that she is a virgin and should take pity on us who are exposed to so many temptations against holy purity. We call her virgin most pure, virgin most chaste, etc., and again ask her to pray for us. Lastly we call her all those names that could induce her to hear us. We say: health of the weak, refuge of sinners, help of Christians, pray for us.
I want to mention another type of prayer often offered in honor of our blessed Mother. It’s called the Litany. In this form of prayer, we address Our Lady by many beautiful names that we know are dear to her, asking her to pray for us after each one. We start by reminding her that she is the Mother of God and has great influence with her divine Son. We say: Mother of Christ, Mother of Our Creator, Mother of Our Redeemer, etc., pray for us. Next, we acknowledge that she is a virgin and ask for her compassion towards us who face numerous temptations against holy purity. We refer to her as virgin most pure, virgin most chaste, etc., and again ask her to pray for us. Finally, we use names that might urge her to hear our pleas. We say: health of the weak, refuge of sinners, help of Christians, pray for us.
In addition to the Litany of the Blessed Virgin, we have the Litany of the Holy Name of Jesus, the Litany of the Blessed Sacrament, the Litany of the Sacred Heart, the Litany of St. Joseph, and many others—all made up in the same form. We have also the Litany of all the Saints, in which we beg the help and prayers of the different classes of saints—the Apostles, martyrs, virgins, etc.
In addition to the Litany of the Blessed Virgin, we have the Litany of the Holy Name of Jesus, the Litany of the Blessed Sacrament, the Litany of the Sacred Heart, the Litany of St. Joseph, and many others—all structured in the same way. We also have the Litany of all the Saints, where we ask for the help and prayers of the various groups of saints—the Apostles, martyrs, virgins, and so on.
THE APOSTLES' CREED
I believe in God, the Father Almighty, Creator of Heaven and earth; and in Jesus Christ, His only Son, Our Lord, Who was conceived by the Holy Ghost, born of the Virgin Mary, suffered under Pontius Pilate, was crucified; died, and was buried. He descended into Hell; the third day He arose again from the dead; He ascended into Heaven, sitteth at the right hand of God, the Father Almighty; from thence He shall come to judge the living and the dead. I believe in the Holy Ghost, the holy Catholic Church, the communion of saints, the forgiveness of sins, the resurrection of the body, and the life everlasting. Amen.
I believe in God, the Almighty Father, Creator of heaven and earth; and in Jesus Christ, His only Son, Our Lord, who was conceived by the Holy Spirit, born of the Virgin Mary, suffered under Pontius Pilate, was crucified, died, and was buried. He descended into Hell; on the third day, He rose again from the dead; He ascended into heaven and sits at the right hand of God, the Almighty Father; from there He will come to judge the living and the dead. I believe in the Holy Spirit, the holy Catholic Church, the communion of saints, the forgiveness of sins, the resurrection of the body, and life everlasting. Amen.
A creed is a definite list or summary of all the things one believes. The "Apostles' Creed" is therefore a list or collection of all the truths the Apostles believed. The "Apostles" were the twelve men that Our Lord selected to be His first bishops. We know they were bishops because they could ordain priests and consecrate other bishops. They lived with Our Lord like a little family during the three and a half years of His public life; they went with Him and learned from Him wherever He preached. Besides these He had also His disciples, i.e., followers who went with Him frequently but did not live with Him. Our Lord wished His doctrine to be taught to all the people of the world, and so He told His Apostles that they must go over the whole world and preach in every country. During the life of Our Lord and for a short time after His death they preached in only one country, viz., Palestine—now called the Holy Land—in which country the Jews, up to that time God's chosen people, lived. Since the Apostles were to preach to all nations, the time came when they must separate, one going to one country, and another to another. In those days there were no steamboats or railroads, no post offices, telegraph offices, telephones, or newspapers. If the Apostles wished to communicate with anyone they had either to go to the place themselves or send a messenger. By walking or riding it might have taken them months or years in those days to make a journey that we can make now in a few days; and for an answer to a message which we can get now by telegraph in a few hours they might have had to wait months. The Apostles knew of all these inconveniences, and before leaving the places they were in pointed out the chief truths that all should know and believe before receiving Baptism, that Christian teachers who should come after them might neglect nothing—just as we use catechisms containing the truths of religion, for fear the teachers might forget to speak of some of them. There are "twelve articles" or parts in the Apostles' Creed, and each part is meant to refute some false doctrine taught before the time of the Apostles or while they lived. Thus there were those—as the Romans—who said there were many gods; others said not God, but the devil created the earth; others taught that Our Lord was not the Son of God: and so on for the rest. All these false doctrines are denied and the truth professed when we say the Apostles' Creed.
A creed is a clear list or summary of everything one believes. The "Apostles' Creed" is, therefore, a collection of all the truths that the Apostles believed. The "Apostles" were the twelve men chosen by Our Lord to be His first bishops. We know they were bishops because they could ordain priests and consecrate other bishops. They lived with Our Lord like a close-knit family during the three and a half years of His public life; they accompanied Him and learned from Him wherever He preached. In addition to these, He also had His disciples, followers who often traveled with Him but didn't live with Him. Our Lord wanted His teachings to reach everyone in the world, so He instructed His Apostles to go throughout the entire world and preach in every country. During Our Lord's life and shortly after His death, they preached only in one country, namely Palestine—now known as the Holy Land—where the Jews, until then God's chosen people, resided. Since the Apostles were meant to preach to all nations, the time came for them to separate, with each going to a different country. Back then, there were no steamboats or railroads, no post offices, telegraph offices, telephones, or newspapers. If the Apostles wanted to communicate with someone, they had to go there in person or send a messenger. Walking or riding could take them months or even years to make a journey that we can complete in just a few days; and for a reply to a message that we can get now via telegraph in a few hours, they might have had to wait months. The Apostles were aware of all these challenges, and before leaving the places they were in, they highlighted the key truths that everyone should know and believe before receiving Baptism, ensuring that Christian teachers who followed them would miss nothing—much like we use catechisms containing the truths of religion to prevent teachers from forgetting certain aspects. There are "twelve articles" or parts in the Apostles' Creed, and each part is meant to contradict some false doctrine that was taught before the time of the Apostles or during their lives. For instance, there were those like the Romans who claimed there were many gods; others said the earth was created by the devil, not God; others taught that Our Lord was not the Son of God; and so on. All these false doctrines are rejected, and the truth is affirmed when we recite the Apostles' Creed.
Just as in the Lord's Prayer we do not see all its meaning at first, so in the Apostles' Creed we find many beautiful things only after thinking carefully over every word it contains.
Just like the Lord's Prayer, where we don’t grasp all its meaning right away, the Apostles' Creed reveals many beautiful ideas only after we take the time to carefully consider each word it includes.
"I believe," without the slightest doubt or suspicion that I might be wrong.
"I believe," without any doubt or concern that I could be wrong.
"In God" by the grace that He gives me to believe and have full confidence in Him.
"In God" through the grace He gives me to believe and fully trust in Him.
"God," to show that there is only one.
"God," to indicate that there is just one.
"The Father," because He brought everything into existence and keeps it so (see Explanation of the Lord's Prayer).
"The Father," because He created everything and continues to sustain it (see Explanation of the Lord's Prayer).
"Almighty," i.e., having all might or power; because He can do whatever
He wishes. He can make or destroy by merely wishing.
"Almighty," meaning having all power; because He can do anything
He desires. He can create or destroy just by wanting it.
"Creator." To create means to make out of nothing. God alone can create. When a carpenter makes a table, he must have wood; when a tailor makes a coat, he must have cloth. They are only makers and not creators. God needs no material or tools. When we make anything, we make it part by part; but God makes the whole at once. He simply wills and it is made. Thus He said in the beginning of the world: "Let there be light; and light was made." For example, suppose I wanted a piano. If I could say, "Let there be a piano" and it immediately sprang up without any other effort on my part, although neither the wood, the iron, the wire, the ivory, nor anything else in it ever existed till I said, "Let there be a piano," then it could be said I created a piano. No one could do this, for God alone has such power.
"Creator." To create means to make something from nothing. Only God can truly create. When a carpenter builds a table, he needs wood; when a tailor makes a coat, he needs fabric. They are just makers, not creators. God doesn’t need any material or tools. When we create something, we do it piece by piece; but God creates the whole thing at once. He simply wills it, and it comes into existence. That’s what He meant at the beginning of the world: "Let there be light; and light was created." For instance, if I wanted a piano and I could say, "Let there be a piano," and it just appeared without any further effort from me, even though none of the wood, metal, strings, or keys existed until I said, "Let there be a piano," then I could say I created a piano. But no one can do this; only God has that kind of power.
"Heaven and earth" and everything we can see or know of.
"Heaven and earth" and everything we can see or know about.
"Jesus Christ." Our Lord is called by many names, but you must not be confused by them, for they all mean the same person, and are given only to remind us of some particular thing connected with Our Lord. He is called "Jesus," which signifies Saviour, and "Christ," which means anointed. He is called the "Second Person of the Blessed Trinity," and when we call Him "Our Lord," we mean the Second Person of the Blessed Trinity after He became man. He is called the "Messias" and the "Son of David" to show that He is the Redeemer promised to the Jews. Also at the end of all our litanies He is called the "Lamb of God," because He was so meek and humble and suffered death so patiently. In the Litany of the Holy Name of Jesus we will find many other beautiful names of Our Lord, all having their special signification.
"Jesus Christ." Our Lord is known by many names, but don't let that confuse you, as they all refer to the same person and are meant to remind us of something specific about Our Lord. He is called "Jesus," which means Savior, and "Christ," which means anointed. He is referred to as the "Second Person of the Blessed Trinity," and when we call Him "Our Lord," we are referring to the Second Person of the Blessed Trinity after He became human. He is known as the "Messiah" and the "Son of David" to indicate that He is the Redeemer promised to the Jews. At the end of all our litanies, He is called the "Lamb of God" because He was so gentle and humble and endured death with so much patience. In the Litany of the Holy Name of Jesus, we will find many other beautiful names of Our Lord, each carrying its own special meaning.
"His only Son," to show that God, the First Person of the Blessed Trinity, was His real Father. We are called God's children, but we are only His created and adopted children.
"His only Son," to show that God, the First Person of the Blessed Trinity, was His true Father. We are called God's children, but we are merely His created and adopted children.
"Who was conceived," i.e., He began to exist by the power of the Holy
Ghost in the womb of His Mother, the Blessed Virgin.
"Who was conceived," meaning He came into existence through the power of the Holy
Ghost in the womb of His Mother, the Blessed Virgin.
"Suffered." We shall see in the explanation of the Passion what He suffered.
"Suffered." We will see in the explanation of the Passion what He went through.
"Under" means here, at the time a man named Pontius Pilate was governor. If anyone were put to death today in this country, we should say he was executed under Governor or President so-and-so. "Crucified," i.e., nailed to a cross. We say "died," because Our Lord is the Giver of Life, and no one could take His life away unless He allowed it. Therefore we say He died, and not that He was killed, to show that He died by His own free will and not against His will.
"Under" refers to the period when a man named Pontius Pilate was the governor. If someone were executed today in this country, we would say they were executed under Governor or President so-and-so. "Crucified," meaning nailed to a cross. We say "died" because Our Lord is the Giver of Life, and no one could take His life away unless He permitted it. Therefore, we say He died, not that He was killed, to emphasize that He died by His own free will and not against His will.
"Was buried." This we say to show that He was really dead; because if you bury a man who is not really dead he must die.
"Was buried." We say this to indicate that He was truly dead; because if you bury someone who isn’t really dead, they definitely have to die.
"Hell" here does not mean the place where the damned are, but a place called "Limbo." You know that when our first parents sinned, Heaven was closed against them and us, and no human being could be admitted into it till after the death of Our Lord; for He by His death would redeem us—make amends for our fall and once more open for us Heaven. Now from the time Adam sinned till the time Christ died is about four thousand years. During that time there were at least some good men, like Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, Moses, David, and others, in the world, who tried to serve God as best they could—keeping all the divine laws known to them, and believing that the Messias would some day come to redeem them. When, therefore, they died they could not go to Heaven, because it was closed against them. They could not go to Hell, because they were good men. Neither could they go to Purgatory, because they would have to suffer there. Where could they go? God in His goodness provided a place for them—Limbo—where they could stay without suffering till Our Lord reopened Heaven. Therefore, while Our Lord's body lay in the sepulchre, His soul went down into Limbo, to tell these good men that Heaven was now opened for them, and that at His Ascension He would take them there with Him.
"Hell" here doesn’t refer to the place for the damned, but to a place called "Limbo." You know that when our first parents sinned, Heaven was closed off to them and us, and no one could enter until after the death of Our Lord; for He would redeem us with His death—making up for our fall and reopening Heaven. The time from Adam's sin to Christ’s death is about four thousand years. During that period, there were some good men in the world, like Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, Moses, David, and others, who tried to serve God as best as they could—keeping all the divine laws known to them, and believing that the Messiah would come someday to redeem them. So, when they died, they couldn’t go to Heaven because it was closed to them. They couldn’t go to Hell because they were good men. They also couldn’t go to Purgatory because they wouldn’t have to suffer there. Where could they go? God, in His goodness, provided a place for them—Limbo—where they could stay without suffering until Our Lord reopened Heaven. So, while Our Lord's body lay in the tomb, His soul went down into Limbo to tell these good men that Heaven was now open for them and that at His Ascension, He would take them there with Him.
"The third day." Not three full days, but the parts of three days, viz.,
Friday afternoon, Saturday, and Sunday morning.
"The third day." Not three full days, but parts of three days, namely,
Friday afternoon, Saturday, and Sunday morning.
"He arose" by His own power: and this was the greatest of all Our Lord's miracles. Some others, like the prophets and Apostles, have, by the power God gave them, raised the dead to life; but no dead person ever raised himself. Our Lord is the first and only one to do this, and by so doing, showed they could not take away His life unless He wished to give it up; for since He could always take back His life, how could they destroy it?
"He rose" by His own power: and this was the greatest of all Our Lord's miracles. Some others, like the prophets and Apostles, have raised the dead to life by the power God gave them; but no dead person ever raised themselves. Our Lord is the first and only one to do this, and in doing so, He showed that they could not take away His life unless He chose to give it up; for since He could always take back His life, how could they destroy it?
"He ascended" forty days after His Resurrection.
"He rose" forty days after His Resurrection.
"Right hand of God." We know God is a pure spirit having no body; and if He has no body He can have no hands. Why then do we say right hand? When the President of the United States invites anyone to dine at his house, he makes the invited guest sit at his right hand, and thus shows his respect by giving him the place of highest honor.
"Right hand of God." We understand that God is a pure spirit and doesn't have a physical body; therefore, if He has no body, He can't have hands. So why do we refer to the right hand? When the President of the United States invites someone to dinner at his home, he has the guest sit at his right side, which signifies his respect by giving them the seat of highest honor.
When Our Lord ascended into Heaven, He went up in the human body He had upon earth, and His Father placed Him as man, in His glorified body, in the place, after His (the Father's) own, the highest in Heaven; but remember, only as man, because as God He is equal to His Father in all things.
When our Lord ascended into Heaven, He went up in the human body He had on earth, and His Father placed Him as a man, in His glorified body, in the highest place in Heaven, just after His (the Father's) own; but remember, only as a man, because as God He is equal to His Father in everything.
"From thence"—that is, from the right hand of God.
"From there"—that is, from the right hand of God.
"To judge." To examine them, to pronounce sentence upon them; to reward them in Heaven or punish them in Hell.
"To judge." To look at them, to pass judgment on them; to reward them in Heaven or punish them in Hell.
"The living and the dead." We may take this in a double sense. As the general judgment will come suddenly and when not expected, all will be going on in the world as usual—some attending to business, others taking their ease as they do now, or as they were doing when the deluge came upon them. Just when the judgment is about to take place, God will destroy the earth; and then all those living in the world will perish with its destruction and then be judged. The "dead" means, therefore, all those who died before the destruction of the world, and the "living" all those who were on earth when the time of its destruction came. Or the "living" may mean also those in a state of grace, and the "dead" those in mortal sin; for God will judge both classes.
"The living and the dead." We can understand this in two ways. The final judgment will happen suddenly and unexpectedly, while life in the world will be going on as usual—some people will be busy with their work, others will be relaxing just as they are now, or like those who were living when the flood struck. Right before the judgment happens, God will destroy the earth; then everyone living will perish along with its destruction and will be judged afterward. The "dead" refers to everyone who died before the world's destruction, and the "living" refers to those who were on earth when the destruction occurred. Alternatively, the "living" could also refer to those in a state of grace, while the "dead" could mean those in mortal sin; God will judge both groups.
"Holy Ghost," i.e., the Third Person of the Blessed Trinity. Ghost is an old word meaning spirit. When persons say that a ghost appeared, they mean that the spirit of some dead person appeared. These stories about ghosts are told generally to frighten children or timid persons. If those who thought they saw a ghost always examined what they saw, they would find that the supposed ghost was something very natural; probably a bush swayed by the wind, or a stray animal, or perhaps some person trying to frighten them. Ghost here does not mean the spirit of a dead person, but the Holy Spirit, which is the proper name for the Third Person of the Blessed Trinity.
"Holy Spirit," meaning the Third Person of the Blessed Trinity. Spirit is a contemporary term that refers to an incorporeal entity. When people say they saw a ghost, they mean that the spirit of a deceased individual appeared. These ghost stories are typically shared to scare children or people who are easily frightened. If those who thought they saw a ghost took the time to investigate what they were witnessing, they would discover that the so-called ghost was something quite ordinary; likely a bush moving in the wind, a stray animal, or maybe someone just trying to spook them. Here, "ghost" does not refer to the spirit of a deceased person, but rather to the Holy Spirit, which is the correct name for the Third Person of the Blessed Trinity.
"The communion of saints." There are three parts in the Church. We have, first, the Church Militant, i.e., the fighting Church, made up of all the faithful upon earth, who are still fighting for their salvation. The Holy Scripture tells us our life upon earth is a warfare. We have three enemies to fight. First, the devil, who by every means wishes to keep us out of Heaven—the place he once enjoyed himself. The devil knows well the happiness of Heaven, and does not wish us to have what he cannot have himself; just as you sometimes see persons who, through their own fault, have lost their situation trying to keep others out of it.
"The communion of saints." There are three parts to the Church. We have, first, the Church Militant, meaning the fighting Church, which consists of all the believers on earth who are still striving for their salvation. Holy Scripture tells us that our time on earth is a battle. We have three enemies to contend with. First, the devil, who will do anything to keep us out of Heaven—the place he once enjoyed. The devil knows very well the joy of Heaven and doesn't want us to experience what he can no longer have; just like you sometimes see people who, due to their own mistakes, have lost their position trying to prevent others from getting it.
Our second enemy is the world. This does not mean the earth with all its beauty and riches, but the bad people in the world with their false doctrines; some telling us there is no God, Heaven, or Hell, others that we should pay no attention to the teaching of the Church or the laws of God, and advising us by word and example to resist our lawful superiors in Church or State and give free indulgence to our sinful passions.
Our second enemy is the world. This doesn’t refer to the earth with all its beauty and riches, but to the bad people in the world with their false beliefs; some telling us there’s no God, Heaven, or Hell, others suggesting that we should disregard the teachings of the Church or the laws of God, and encouraging us by words and actions to defy our rightful leaders in the Church or the State and to give in to our sinful desires.
The third enemy is our own flesh. By this we mean our concupiscence, that is, our passions, evil inclinations, and propensity to do wrong. When God first created man, the soul was always master over the body, and the body obedient to the soul. After Adam sinned, the body rebelled against the soul and tried to lead it into sin. The body is the part of our nature that makes us like the brute animals, while the soul makes us like to God and the angels.
The third enemy is our own nature. By this, we mean our desires, which include our passions, bad tendencies, and the urge to do wrong. When God first created humans, the soul was always in control of the body, and the body followed the soul's lead. After Adam sinned, the body went against the soul and tried to pull it into sin. The body represents the part of us that resembles brute animals, while the soul connects us to God and the angels.
When we sin, it is generally to satisfy the body craving for what it has not, or for that which is forbidden. Why did God leave this concupiscence in us? He left it, first, to keep us humble, by reminding us of our former sins, and, secondly, that we might overcome it and have a reward for the victory.
When we sin, it's usually to satisfy our physical desire for what we lack or for what's off-limits. Why did God allow this desire to exist within us? He did it, first, to keep us humble by reminding us of our past mistakes, and second, so we can overcome it and earn a reward for that victory.
The second branch of the Church is called the Church Suffering. It is made up of all those who have gone through this world and are now in Purgatory.
The second branch of the Church is called the Church Suffering. It consists of all those who have passed through this world and are now in Purgatory.
Some of them while on earth fought well, but not as well as they could have done; they yielded to some temptations, fell into some small sins, received some slight wounds from their spiritual enemies, or they have not satisfied God entirely for the temporal guilt due to their great sins; therefore they are in Purgatory till they can be completely purified from all their sins and admitted into Heaven.
Some of them, while they were on Earth, fought well, but not as well as they could have; they gave in to some temptations, committed some small sins, received minor wounds from their spiritual enemies, or they haven't fully satisfied God for the temporary guilt from their major sins. That's why they are in Purgatory until they can be completely cleansed of all their sins and allowed into Heaven.
The last or third branch of the Church is called the Church Triumphant, and is made up of the angels and all those who have lived at one time upon earth and who are now in Heaven with God, enjoying their rewards for overcoming their spiritual enemies and serving God while upon earth. They are triumphant or rejoicing because they have reached their heavenly home.
The last or third branch of the Church is called the Church Triumphant, and it consists of the angels and all those who once lived on Earth and are now in Heaven with God, enjoying their rewards for overcoming their spiritual struggles and serving God while they were on Earth. They are triumphant or rejoicing because they have reached their heavenly home.
You must not think that those only are saints who have been canonized by the Church and whose names are known to us; for all in Heaven are saints, as we also shall be if admitted into that happy eternity. God wishes all to be saints, for He wishes all to be saved. You know we can pray to the saints and ask their help and prayers; but how could we know that certain men or women are really in Heaven? We can know it when the Church canonizes them, and thus gives proof that they were great spiritual heroes in the service of God and can be more confidently appealed to on account of their eminent sanctity and powerful intercession.
You shouldn't think that only those who have been canonized by the Church and whose names we recognize are saints; everyone in Heaven is a saint, and we will be too if we are welcomed into that joyful eternity. God wants everyone to be saints because He wants everyone to be saved. As you know, we can pray to the saints and ask for their help and prayers; but how can we know that certain men or women are truly in Heaven? We can know when the Church canonizes them, which proves that they were remarkable spiritual heroes in God's service and can be called upon with more confidence because of their exceptional holiness and powerful intercession.
Therefore the Church by canonization tells us for certain that such and such persons are truly in Heaven. But might not the Church be deceived like ourselves?
Therefore, the Church, through canonization, tells us for sure that certain individuals are truly in Heaven. But could the Church not be mistaken, just like we can be?
No! for Christ has promised to be always with His Church, and the Holy Ghost is ever directing her, so that she cannot err in faith or morals. If the Church made us pray to persons who are not saints, she would fall into the worst of errors, and Our Lord would have failed to keep His promise—a saying that would be blasphemous, for Christ, being God, is infinitely true and could not deceive or be deceived. To canonize, therefore, does not mean to make a saint, but to declare to the whole world that such a one was a saint while upon earth. After death we cannot merit, so our reward in Heaven will be just what we have secured up till the moment of our death; hence holiness is acquired in the Church Militant.
No! Christ has promised to always be with His Church, and the Holy Spirit is continually guiding her, so she cannot stray in faith or morals. If the Church led us to pray to people who aren’t saints, she would fall into the worst kind of error, and Our Lord would have failed to keep His promise—which would be blasphemous, because Christ, being God, is infinitely true and cannot deceive or be deceived. So, to canonize does not mean to make someone a saint, but to announce to the entire world that this person was a saint while they were alive. After we die, we can’t earn any more merit, so our reward in Heaven will be exactly what we’ve achieved up until the moment of our death; therefore, holiness is attained in the Church Militant.
How does the Church canonize a saint? Let us suppose some good man dies, and all his neighbors talk about his holy fife, how much he did for the poor, how he prayed, fasted, and mortified himself. All these accounts of his life are collected and sent to Rome, to the Holy Father or to the cardinals appointed by him to examine such statements. These accounts must show that the good man practiced virtue in a more than ordinary manner, that he either performed some miracles while he lived, or that God granted miracles after his death through his intercession.
How does the Church canonize a saint? Imagine a good person passes away, and all their neighbors speak about their holy life, how much they did for the poor, how they prayed, fasted, and lived a life of self-discipline. All these stories about their life are gathered and sent to Rome, to the Pope or to the cardinals he has appointed to review such claims. These accounts must demonstrate that the good person practiced virtue in an extraordinary way, that they either performed miracles while alive, or that God allowed miracles to happen after their death through their intercession.
These accounts are not examined immediately after his death, but sometimes after a lapse of fifty years or more, so that people might not exaggerate his good works because they knew him personally.
These accounts aren't reviewed right after his death, but sometimes it's been fifty years or more, so that people won't inflate his good deeds just because they knew him personally.
When these accounts are examined, one is appointed to prevent, if he can, the canonization. He is sometimes called the devil's advocate, because it is his business to find fault with all the accounts and miracles, and prove them false if possible. This is done to make certain that all the accounts are true and the miracles real. If everything is found as represented, then the good man is declared venerable, later beatified, i.e., called blessed, and still later canonized, i.e., declared a saint. If he is only beatified, he can be honored publicly only in certain places or by certain persons; but if he is canonized, he can be honored throughout the whole Church by all the faithful.
When these accounts are reviewed, someone is appointed to try to prevent the canonization, if possible. This person is sometimes referred to as the devil's advocate because it's their job to challenge all the accounts and miracles and prove them false if they can. This process ensures that all the accounts are accurate and the miracles are genuine. If everything checks out as claimed, then the good person is declared venerable, later beatified (meaning called blessed), and eventually canonized (declared a saint). If someone is only beatified, they can be publicly honored only in certain places or by certain individuals; but if they are canonized, they can be honored throughout the entire Church by all the faithful.
Thus we understand the three branches of the one true Church—the Church Militant, i.e., all those who are on earth trying to save their souls; the Church Suffering, those in Purgatory, having their souls purified for Heaven; and the Church Triumphant, those already in Heaven.
Thus we understand the three branches of the one true Church—the Church Militant, meaning all those who are on earth striving to save their souls; the Church Suffering, those in Purgatory, having their souls purified for Heaven; and the Church Triumphant, those already in Heaven.
The "communion of saints" means that these three branches of the Church can help one another. We help the souls in Purgatory by our prayers and good works, and the saints in Heaven pray for us. But "communion of saints" means still more. Let us take an example. Suppose there are in a family, living together, a mother and three sons. The eldest son earns a large salary, the second son enough to support himself, and the youngest very little. They give their earnings to their mother, who from the combined amounts provides for the wants of all and draws from the large salary of the eldest to supply the needs of the youngest. Thus he who has too little for his support is—through his mother—aided by the one who has more than he needs. Now, the Church is our mother, and some of her children—the great saints—were rich in good works and did more than was necessary to gain Heaven, while others did not do enough. Then our mother, the Church, draws from the abundant satisfaction of her rich children to help those who are poor in merit and good works. The greatest treasure she has to draw from for that purpose is the more than abundant merits of Our Lord and the superabundant satisfaction of the Blessed Virgin and the greatest saints. Our Lord could have redeemed us all by the least suffering, and yet He suffered dreadful torments, and even shed His blood and died for us. The Blessed Virgin never sinned, yet she performed many good works and offered many prayers. Therefore "communion of saints" means, also, that we all share in the merits of Christ and in the superabundant satisfaction of the Blessed Virgin and of the saints; also in the prayers and good works of the Church and of her faithful and pious children.
The "communion of saints" means that these three branches of the Church can support each other. We help the souls in Purgatory with our prayers and good deeds, and the saints in Heaven pray for us. But "communion of saints" means even more. Let's consider an example. Imagine a family living together with a mother and her three sons. The oldest son earns a high salary, the second son earns enough to support himself, and the youngest earns very little. They all give their earnings to their mother, who uses the combined amounts to take care of everyone's needs, drawing from the oldest son's larger salary to support the youngest. In this way, the one who has too little is helped by the one who has more, through their mother. Now, the Church is our mother, and some of her children—the great saints—were rich in good deeds and did more than enough to gain Heaven, while others didn't do enough. Our mother, the Church, draws from the abundant merit of her richer children to assist those who are poorer in virtue and good works. The greatest treasure she has for this purpose comes from the abundant merits of Our Lord and the overflowing satisfaction of the Blessed Virgin and the greatest saints. Our Lord could have redeemed us all with even the smallest suffering, yet He endured terrible torments, shed His blood, and died for us. The Blessed Virgin never sinned, but she did many good works and offered many prayers. So "communion of saints" also means that we all share in the merits of Christ and the overflowing satisfaction of the Blessed Virgin and the saints, as well as in the prayers and good works of the Church and her faithful and devoted children.
"The forgiveness of sins," i.e., by the Sacrament of Penance, through the power that God gave His priests; also by Baptism.
"The forgiveness of sins," meaning through the Sacrament of Penance, by the authority that God granted to His priests; also through Baptism.
"The resurrection of the body," i.e., on the last day (Matt. 24:29; Luke 21:25). When on the last day, at the general judgment, God's angel sounds the great trumpet, all the dead will arise again and come to judgment, in the same bodies they had while living. But you will say: If their bodies are reduced to ashes and mixed with the earth, or if parts of them are in one place and parts in another, how is this possible? Very easily, with God. If He in the beginning could make all the parts out of nothing, with how much ease can He collect them scattered here and there! When God made man He gave him a body and a soul, and wished them never to be separated. Man was to live here upon earth for a time, and then be taken up into Heaven, body and soul, as Our Lord is there now. But when man sinned, in punishment God commanded that he should die; i.e., that these two dear friends, the body and the soul, should be separated for a time. Death is caused by the separation of the soul from the body. The body and soul together make a man, and neither one alone can be called a man. A dead body is only part of a man. At the resurrection every soul will come from Heaven, Purgatory, or Hell, to seek its own body; they will then be united again as they were in life, never to be separated—to be happy together in Heaven if they have been good upon earth, or miserable together in Hell if they have been bad upon earth.
"The resurrection of the body," meaning on the last day (Matt. 24:29; Luke 21:25). When, on that final day, at the general judgment, God's angel blows the great trumpet, all the dead will rise again and come for judgment, in the same bodies they had while they were alive. But you might wonder: If their bodies are reduced to ashes and mixed with the earth, or if parts of them are in different places, how is this possible? Very easily, with God. If He could create all the parts out of nothing in the beginning, how much easier is it for Him to gather them scattered here and there! When God created man, He gave him a body and a soul, and intended for them never to be separated. Man was meant to live on earth for a time, and then ascend to Heaven, body and soul, just like Our Lord is there now. However, when man sinned, as punishment, God commanded that he should die; that is, that these two dear companions, the body and the soul, should be separated for a time. Death occurs when the soul separates from the body. The body and soul together make a person, and neither one alone can be considered a complete person. A dead body is only part of a person. At the resurrection, every soul will come from Heaven, Purgatory, or Hell to reunite with its own body; they will then be joined again as they were in life, never to be separated—to be happy together in Heaven if they were good on earth, or miserable together in Hell if they were bad on earth.
"Life everlasting"—either, as we have said, in Heaven or Hell. There was a time when we did not exist but it can never be said of us again we do not exist. When once we have been created, we shall live as long as God Himself, i.e., forever. When we have lived a thousand years for every drop of water in the ocean; a thousand years for every grain of sand on the seashore; a thousand years for every blade of grass and every leaf on the earth, we shall still be existing. How short a time, therefore, is a hundred years even if we live so long—and few do—compared with all these millions of years! And yet it depends upon the time we live here whether all these millions of years in the next world will be for us years of happiness or of misery. The whole life of a man extends through the two worlds, viz., from the moment of his creation through all eternity; and surely the little while he stays upon earth must seem very short when, after spending a million of years in the next world, he looks back to his earthly life. There is a good example to illustrate this. If you stand on a railroad, and look away down the track for about a mile, it will seem to you that the rails come nearer and nearer, till at last they touch. It seems so on account of the distance, for where they seem to touch they are just as far apart as where you are standing. So, also, when you look back from eternity, the day of your birth and the day of your death will seem to coincide, and your life on earth appear nothing. Then, if you are among the lost souls you will think, What a fool I was to make myself suffer all this long eternity for that silly bit of earthly pleasure, which is of no benefit to me now! And this thought will serve only to make you more miserable. But, on the other hand, if you look back from a happy eternity, you will wonder at God's goodness in giving you so much happiness for so short a service upon earth.
"Life forever"—whether in Heaven or Hell. There was a time when we didn't exist, but we can never say that about ourselves again. Once we've been created, we will live as long as God Himself, meaning forever. After living a thousand years for every drop of water in the ocean; a thousand years for every grain of sand on the beach; a thousand years for every blade of grass and leaf on the earth, we will still be living. So, how brief a hundred years is, even if we live that long—and few do—compared to all these millions of years! Yet, the time we spend here determines if those millions of years in the next world will be filled with happiness or misery. A person's life stretches across both worlds, from the moment of creation through all eternity; and surely the short time spent on earth will seem very brief when, after spending a million years in the next world, they look back at their earthly life. There's a good example to illustrate this. If you stand on a railroad track and look a mile down, it will seem like the rails get closer and closer until they meet. This happens because of the distance; where they seem to touch, they are just as far apart as where you’re standing. Similarly, when you look back from eternity, the day you were born and the day you die will seem to align, making your life on earth feel insignificant. If you find yourself among the lost souls, you'll think, "What a fool I was to make myself suffer for all this eternity for that trivial earthly pleasure, which is useless to me now!" And this realization will only add to your misery. But if you look back from a joyous eternity, you'll marvel at God's goodness for giving you so much happiness for such a short time on earth.
THE CONFITEOR
I confess to Almighty God, to blessed Mary ever Virgin, to blessed Michael the Archangel, to blessed John the Baptist, to the holy Apostles Peter and Paul, and to all the saints, that I have sinned exceedingly, in thought, word, and deed, through my fault, through my fault, through my most grievous fault. Therefore I beseech blessed Mary ever Virgin, blessed Michael the Archangel, blessed John the Baptist, the holy Apostles Peter and Paul, and all the saints, to pray to the Lord our God for me.
I acknowledge to Almighty God, to the blessed Virgin Mary, to the blessed Archangel Michael, to the blessed John the Baptist, to the holy Apostles Peter and Paul, and to all the saints, that I have sinned greatly, in thought, word, and deed, through my fault, through my fault, through my most serious fault. Therefore, I ask the blessed Virgin Mary, the blessed Archangel Michael, the blessed John the Baptist, the holy Apostles Peter and Paul, and all the saints to pray to the Lord our God for me.
May the Almighty God have mercy on me, forgive me my sins, and bring me to everlasting life. Amen.
May God have mercy on me, forgive my sins, and grant me everlasting life. Amen.
May the Almighty and merciful Lord grant me pardon, absolution, and remission of all my sins. Amen.
May the all-powerful and compassionate Lord forgive me, absolve me, and remove all my sins. Amen.
This is another beautiful prayer. In it we can imagine that we are permitted to enter Heaven. What do we see there? God, the Blessed Virgin, the thousands of angels, the Apostles, all the saints, martyrs, confessors, doctors and virgins. They cease singing God's praises, as we enter, and fix their eyes upon us. Our guardian angel conducts us before the great throne of God, and we kneel down in the presence of the whole court of Heaven, to acknowledge our sins and faults, while all listen attentively. Touched by so sublime a sight and the thought of having offended a God of so much glory, we begin our accusation of ourselves. We fix our eyes first upon God, and say: "I confess," i.e., accuse myself, "to Almighty God." Then we look upon the rest of the blessed, and say: "to the Blessed Mary ever Virgin," etc. Thus we call the whole court of Heaven to be a witness of the fact that we "have sinned," not lightly, but "exceedingly," i.e., very greatly, and in three ways: "in thought," by thinking of things sinful and forbidden; "in word," by lies, curses, slanders, etc.; "in deed," by every bad action that we have committed; and each of us can say: I have done all this "through my fault," i.e., willingly and deliberately; and it was not a small fault, but an exceeding great fault, because God was helping me by His grace to overcome temptations and avoid bad thoughts, words, and actions, and I would not accept His help, but willingly did what was wrong. What am I to do, therefore? Will God pardon all these offenses if I alone ask Him, seeing that all the angels and saints know that I have thus offended Him? What shall I do? I will ask them to help me by their prayers, and to beg God's pardon for me. He may grant their prayers, especially those of the Blessed Mother and of the saints, when He would not grant mine. "Therefore I beseech the Blessed Mary ever Virgin," etc., "to pray to the Lord our God for me."
This is another beautiful prayer. In it, we can imagine that we are allowed to enter Heaven. What do we see there? God, the Blessed Virgin, thousands of angels, the Apostles, all the saints, martyrs, confessors, doctors, and virgins. They stop singing God's praises as we enter and turn their attention to us. Our guardian angel leads us to the great throne of God, and we kneel before the entire court of Heaven to acknowledge our sins and faults while everyone listens carefully. Moved by such an awe-inspiring sight and the realization of having offended a God of immense glory, we begin to confess our wrongdoings. We fix our gaze on God first and say: "I confess," meaning I accuse myself, "to Almighty God." Then we turn to the rest of the blessed and say: "to the Blessed Mary ever Virgin," etc. In this way, we call upon the whole court of Heaven to witness that we "have sinned," not lightly, but "exceedingly," meaning very greatly, and in three ways: "in thought," by thinking of sinful and forbidden things; "in word," by lying, cursing, slandering, etc.; "in deed," by every bad action we've committed; and each of us can say: I have done all this "through my fault," meaning willingly and deliberately; and it was not a small fault, but an exceedingly great one, because God was helping me by His grace to overcome temptations and avoid bad thoughts, words, and actions, and I turned down His help, choosing to do what was wrong instead. So what should I do? Will God forgive all these offenses if I alone ask Him, knowing that all the angels and saints are aware of how I’ve offended Him? What should I do? I will ask them to help me with their prayers and to plead with God for my forgiveness. He may grant their prayers, especially those of the Blessed Mother and the saints, when He would not grant mine. "Therefore I beseech the Blessed Mary ever Virgin," etc., "to pray to the Lord our God for me."
When we kneel down to say the Confiteor, if we could imagine what I have just described to take place, how well we should say it! With what attention, respect, and sorrow we should ask the prayers of the saints! When we say the Confiteor, and indeed any prayer, we say it in the presence of God, and of the whole court of Heaven, though we are not in Heaven and cannot see God. The angels and saints do hear us and will pray for us. When, therefore, you are saying the Confiteor, imagine that you see all I have described, and you will never say it badly.
When we kneel to say the Confiteor, if we could picture what I just described happening, how well we would say it! With such attention, respect, and remorse, we would ask for the prayers of the saints! When we say the Confiteor, and really any prayer, we do it in the presence of God and the entire court of Heaven, even if we’re not in Heaven and can’t see God. The angels and saints hear us and will pray for us. So, when you’re saying the Confiteor, imagine you can see everything I described, and you will never say it poorly.
AN ACT OF FAITH
O my God! I firmly believe that Thou art one God in three divine persons, Father, Son and Holy Ghost; I believe that Thy divine Son became man, and died for our sins, and that He will come to judge the living and the dead. I believe these and all the truths which the Holy Catholic Church teaches, because Thou hast revealed them, Who canst neither deceive nor be deceived.
O my God! I truly believe that You are one God in three divine persons, Father, Son, and Holy Spirit; I believe that Your divine Son became human, died for our sins, and that He will come to judge the living and the dead. I believe these and all the truths that the Holy Catholic Church teaches because You have revealed them, and You cannot deceive or be deceived.
An "act," i.e., a profession, of faith. The whole substance of the act of faith is contained in this: I believe all that God has revealed and the Catholic Church teaches. We might mention one by one all the truths God has revealed, i.e., made known to us, and all the truths the Catholic Church teaches as revealed by God. For example, we might say, I believe in the Holy Trinity, in the Incarnation of Our Lord in the Holy Eucharist, in the Immaculate Conception of the Blessed Virgin, in the infallibility of the Pope, and so on, till we write an act of faith twenty pages long, and yet it would all be contained in the words: I believe all God has revealed and the Catholic Church teaches. Hence we find in prayerbooks and catechisms acts of faith differing in length and words, but they are all the same in substance and have the same meaning. The act of faith in our Catechism gives a few of the chief truths revealed, that it may be neither too short nor too long, and that all may learn the same words.
An "act," meaning a declaration, of faith. The entire essence of the act of faith is this: I believe everything that God has revealed and what the Catholic Church teaches. We could list all the truths God has revealed to us and all the truths that the Catholic Church teaches as God's revelations. For instance, we could say, I believe in the Holy Trinity, in the Incarnation of Our Lord in the Holy Eucharist, in the Immaculate Conception of the Blessed Virgin, in the infallibility of the Pope, and so on, until we create a twenty-page act of faith, yet all of it would be summed up in the words: I believe everything God has revealed and what the Catholic Church teaches. Therefore, we see in prayer books and catechisms acts of faith that vary in length and wording, but they all share the same essence and meaning. The act of faith in our Catechism presents a few of the main truths revealed, so it is neither too short nor too long, allowing everyone to learn the same words.
AN ACT OF HOPE
O my God! relying on Thy almighty power and infinite goodness and promises, I hope to obtain pardon of my sins, the help of Thy grace, and life everlasting, through the merits of Jesus Christ, my Lord and Redeemer.
O my God! Relying on Your almighty power, endless goodness, and promises, I hope to receive forgiveness for my sins, the support of Your grace, and eternal life, through the merits of Jesus Christ, my Lord and Redeemer.
The substance of this act is: I hope for Heaven and the means to obtain it. The means by which I will obtain it are the pardon of my sins by God, and the grace which He will give me in the reception of the Sacraments and in prayer, by which grace I will be able to know Him, love Him, and serve Him, and thus come to be with Him forever. Here again we could make a long act by mentioning all the things we hope for; viz., a good death, a favorable judgment, a place in Heaven, etc.
The essence of this act is: I hope for Heaven and the ways to get there. The way I will achieve this is through God's forgiveness of my sins and the grace He gives me through the Sacraments and prayer. With that grace, I will be able to know Him, love Him, and serve Him, and in doing so, be with Him forever. We could also create a long list of all the things we hope for; like a good death, a favorable judgment, a place in Heaven, etc.
AN ACT OF LOVE
O my God! I love Thee above all things, with my whole heart and soul because Thou art all-good and worthy of all love. I love my neighbor as myself for the love of Thee. I forgive all who have injured me, and ask pardon of all whom I have injured.
O my God! I love You above everything, with my whole heart and soul because You are all-good and deserving of all love. I love my neighbor as myself for Your sake. I forgive everyone who has hurt me, and I ask for forgiveness from everyone I have hurt.
The substance of this act is: I love God above all things for His own goodness, and my neighbor as myself for the sake of God. An act of love and an act of charity are the same thing with different names. We are accustomed to call such things as the giving of alms or help to the poor, the doing of some good work that we are not bound to do for another, charity. Surely there are many motives that may induce persons to help others in their distress; but what is the chief Christian motive, if it be not the love we bear our brother-man because he is, like ourselves, a child of God, and the desire we have to obey God, who wishes us to help the needy? The sufferings of others excite our pity, and the more we love them the more sorry are we to see them suffer. Thanks to God for all His mercies to us; He might have made us, instead of this man, poor and in suffering, but He has spared us and afflicted him; we know not why God has done so, and therefore we help him, moved by these considerations even when we feel he is not deserving of the help, because we know his unworthiness will not prevent God from rewarding our good intention. We may be charitable to our neighbor by saying nothing hurtful about him, by never telling his faults without necessity, etc. Therefore real charity, in its widest sense, and love are just the same.
The essence of this act is: I love God above all else for His goodness, and I love my neighbor as myself for the sake of God. An act of love and an act of charity are essentially the same thing, just called by different names. We usually refer to giving to those in need or helping the poor, or doing good deeds that we’re not obligated to do for others, as charity. There are many reasons that might inspire people to help others in their time of need; however, what is the primary Christian motivation if not the love we have for our fellow human beings because they are, like us, children of God, and the desire to follow God's command to assist those in need? The suffering of others stirs our compassion, and the more we love them, the more we feel their pain. We thank God for all His mercies toward us; He could have made us, instead of this person, poor and suffering, but He has spared us and chosen to afflict him. We don’t know why God has arranged things this way, and that’s why we help him, moved by these thoughts even when we feel he doesn’t deserve our help, because we trust that his shortcomings won't prevent God from rewarding our good intentions. We can show charity to our neighbors by not speaking ill of them, by refraining from mentioning their faults unless absolutely necessary, etc. Thus, true charity, in its broadest sense, and love are really one and the same.
AN ACT OF CONTRITION
O my God! I am heartily sorry for having offended Thee, and I detest all my sins, because I dread the loss of Heaven and the pains of Hell, but most of all because they offend Thee, my God, Who art all-good and deserving of all my love. I firmly resolve, with the help of Thy grace, to confess my sins, to do penance, and to amend my life.
O my God! I am truly sorry for having offended You, and I hate all my sins because I fear losing Heaven and facing the pains of Hell, but most of all because they hurt You, my God, who is all-good and deserves all my love. I am determined, with Your grace, to confess my sins, do penance, and change my life.
The substance of this act is: O my God! I am very sorry for all my sins, because by them I have offended Thee, and with Thy help, I will never sin again. It is well to know what the acts contain in substance, for we can use these short forms as aspirations during the day, when we probably would not think of saying the long forms. A fuller explanation of the qualities of our contrition will be given in Lesson Eighteen.
The essence of this act is: Oh my God! I am truly sorry for all my sins, because I have offended You, and with Your help, I will never sin again. It's helpful to know what the acts essentially mean, as we can use these short phrases as aspirations throughout the day when we might not think to say the longer versions. A more detailed explanation of the qualities of our contrition will be provided in Lesson Eighteen.
THE BLESSING BEFORE MEALS
Bless us, O Lord, and these Thy gifts which we are to receive from Thy bounty, through Christ our lord. Amen.
Bless us, O Lord, and these gifts we are about to receive from Your generosity, through Christ our Lord. Amen.
GRACE AFTER MEALS
We give Thee thanks for all Thy benefits, O Almighty God, Who livest and reignest forever. And may the souls of the faithful departed, through the mercy of God, rest in peace. Amen.
We thank You for all Your blessings, O Almighty God, who lives and reigns forever. And may the souls of the faithful departed, through God's mercy, rest in peace. Amen.
"Grace" means thanks. We saw in the explanation of the Our Father how God provides us with all we need, and most frequently with food. It is the least we can do, therefore, to thank Him for it, when it is just placed before us. We should thank Him also after we have eaten it and found it good, pleasing, and refreshing. When God provides us with food He thereby makes a kind of promise that He will allow us to live awhile longer and give us strength to serve Him. How shameful it is, then, to turn God's gifts into a means of offending Him, as some do by the sin of gluttony! Again, it is very wrong to murmur and be dissatisfied with what God gives us. He does not owe us anything, and need not give unless He wishes. What would you think of a beggar of this kind? He comes to your door hungry, and you, instead of simply giving him some bread to appease his hunger, take him into your house and give him a good dinner, new clothing, and some money. Now, instead of being thankful, suppose he should complain because you did not give him a better dinner, finer clothing, and more money, and should look cross and dissatisfied; what would you think of him? Would you not be tempted to turn the ungrateful fellow out of your house, with an order never to come again, telling him he deserved to starve for his ingratitude? We are not quite as ungrateful as the beggar when we neglect grace at meals, because in saying our daily prayers we thank God for all His gifts, our food included, and hence it is not a sin to neglect grace at meals. But do we not show some ingratitude when we murmur, complain, and are dissatisfied with our food, clothing, or homes? God, even when we are ungrateful, still gives; hence His wonderful goodness and mercy to us.
"Grace" means thanks. We saw in the explanation of the Our Father how God provides us with everything we need, especially food. It’s the least we can do to thank Him for it when it’s just placed in front of us. We should also thank Him after we’ve eaten and found it satisfying, enjoyable, and refreshing. When God provides us with food, He makes a kind of promise that He’ll let us live a bit longer and give us strength to serve Him. How shameful it is, then, to turn God's gifts into a way of offending Him, as some do through the sin of gluttony! It's also wrong to complain and be unhappy with what God gives us. He doesn’t owe us anything and doesn't have to give unless He wants to. What would you think of such a beggar? He comes to your door hungry, and instead of just giving him some bread to satisfy his hunger, you take him into your home and offer him a nice dinner, new clothes, and some money. Now, imagine if, instead of being grateful, he complains because you didn’t give him a better dinner, nicer clothes, and more money, acting grumpy and unsatisfied; what would you think of him? Wouldn’t you feel tempted to throw the ungrateful guy out of your house, telling him he deserves to starve for his ingratitude? We’re not quite as ungrateful as the beggar when we forget to say grace at meals, because in our daily prayers we thank God for all His gifts, including our food, so it’s not a sin to skip grace at meals. But don’t we show some ingratitude when we grumble, complain, and are unhappy with our food, clothing, or homes? Even when we are ungrateful, God still gives; that reflects His incredible goodness and mercy to us.
THE MANNER IN WHICH A LAY PERSON IS TO BAPTIZE IN CASE OF NECESSITY
Pour common water on the head or face of the person to be baptized, and say while pouring it: "I baptize thee in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost."
Pour regular water on the head or face of the person being baptized, and say while pouring it: "I baptize you in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit."
N.B. Any person of either sex who has reached the use of reason can baptize in case of necessity.
N.B. Any person, regardless of gender, who has reached the age of reason can perform a baptism in an emergency.
CATECHISM
Questions marked * are not in No. 1 Catechism.
Questions marked * are not in No. 1 Catechism.
A catechism is any book made up in question and answer form, no matter what it treats of. We have catechisms of history, of geography, etc. Our Catechism is a book in the same form treating of religion. It is a little compendium of the truths of our religion, of all we must believe and do. It contains, in the simplest form, all that a priest learns during his many years of study. The theology he learns is only a deeper and fuller explanation of the Catechism. A whole book might be written on almost every question. For example, might we not write a book on each of the first three questions—the World, God, and Man? There is consequently much meaning in the Catechism, which must be made known to us by explanation. You should therefore learn the Catechism by heart now, even when you do not fully understand it; because afterwards, when you read books on religion or hear sermons, all these questions and answers will come back to your mind. Sermons will help you to understand the questions, or the questions will help you to understand the sermons.
A catechism is any book structured in a question and answer format, regardless of its subject. We have catechisms about history, geography, and more. Our Catechism is a book in the same style that focuses on religion. It’s a brief summary of the truths of our faith, covering everything we need to believe and do. It includes, in the simplest terms, all that a priest learns throughout his many years of study. The theology he studies is just a deeper and more comprehensive explanation of the Catechism. You could write an entire book on almost any question. For instance, could we not write a book on each of the first three questions—the World, God, and Man? Therefore, there’s a lot of meaning in the Catechism that needs to be explained to us. That’s why you should memorize the Catechism now, even if you don’t fully understand it; later, when you read books about religion or listen to sermons, all these questions and answers will come back to you. Sermons will help you grasp the questions, or the questions will aid you in understanding the sermons.
Lesson 1
ON THE END OF MAN
Lesson 1
ON THE END OF HUMANITY
The end of a thing is the purpose for which it was made. The end of a watch is to keep time. The end of a pen is to write, etc. A thing is good only in proportion to the way it fulfills the end for which it was made. A watch may be very beautifully made, a very rare ornament, but if it will not keep time it is useless as a watch. The same may be said of the pen, or of anything else. Now for what purpose was man made? If we discover that, we know his end. When we look around us in the world, we see a purpose or end for everything. We see that the soil is made for the plants and trees to grow in; because if there was no need of things growing, it would be better to have a nice clean solid rock to walk upon, and then we would be spared the trouble of making roads, and paving streets. But things must grow, and so we must have soil. Again, the vegetables and plants are made for animals to feed upon; while the animals themselves are made for man, that they may help him in his work or serve him for food. Thus it is evident everything in the world was made to serve something else. What then was man made for? Was it for anything in the world? We see that all classes of beings are created for something higher than themselves. Thus plants are higher than soil, because they have life and soil has not. Animals are higher than plants, because they not only have life, but they can feel and plants cannot. Man is higher than animals, because he not only has life and can feel, but he has also reason and intelligence, and can understand, while animals cannot. Therefore we must look for something higher than man himself, but there is nothing higher than man in this world, and so we must look beyond it to find that for which he was made. And looking beyond it and considering all things, we find that he was made for God—to know Him, to love Him, and to serve Him both in this world and in the next. Again, we read in the Bible (Gen. 1) that at the creation of the world all things were made before man, and that he was created last. Therefore, if all these things could exist without man, we cannot say he was made for them. The world existed before him and can exist after him. The world goes along without any particular man, and the same may be said of all men. Neither was man made to stay here awhile to become rich, or learned, or powerful, because all do not become rich—some are very poor; all are not learned—some are very ignorant; all are not powerful—some are slaves. But since all men are alike and equal in this, that they have all bodies formed in the same way, and all souls that are immortal, they should all be made for the same end. For example, you could not make a pen like a watch if you want it to write. Although pens differ in size, shape, etc., they have all one general form which is essential to them. So, although men differ in many things, they are all alike in the essential thing, viz., that they are composed of body and soul, and made to the image and likeness of God. Hence, as pens are made only to write with, so all men must have only one and the same end, namely, to serve God.
The purpose of something is the reason it was created. The purpose of a watch is to keep time. The purpose of a pen is to write, and so on. Something is only good to the extent that it fulfills the purpose for which it was made. A watch might be beautifully designed and a rare ornament, but if it doesn't keep time, it’s useless as a watch. The same goes for a pen or anything else. So, what purpose was humanity made for? If we figure that out, we understand our purpose. When we look around the world, we see a purpose or end for everything. The soil exists to support the growth of plants and trees; without the need for growth, a solid rock would suffice for walking, saving us the hassle of building roads and paving streets. But things need to grow, so we have soil. Similarly, vegetables and plants are meant for animals to eat, while animals exist for humans, helping us with work or providing food. It’s clear that everything in the world serves a purpose. But what was humanity made for? Was it for something in the world? We see that all types of beings are created for something greater than themselves. Plants are above soil because they have life, while soil doesn’t. Animals are above plants because they have life and can feel, something plants cannot. Humans are above animals because they have life, can feel, and also possess reason and intelligence, which animals do not. Therefore, we must seek something higher than humans, but there is nothing higher in this world, so we need to look beyond it to discover what humanity was made for. When we look beyond and consider the bigger picture, we realize that humans were created for God—to know Him, love Him, and serve Him in this life and the next. Additionally, the Bible (Gen. 1) states that at the creation of the world, everything was made before humans, and they were created last. Therefore, if all these things could exist without humanity, we can't say humans were made for them. The world existed before humans and can continue after them. The world functions without any specific individual, and the same goes for all people. Humans weren’t created to stay here temporarily just to become rich, knowledgeable, or powerful, as not everyone achieves wealth—some are very poor; not everyone is educated—some are very ignorant; not everyone is powerful—some are enslaved. However, since all humans are alike and equal in that they have bodies formed similarly and immortal souls, they should all have the same purpose. For instance, you can't design a pen to function like a watch if its purpose is to write. Even though pens vary in size and shape, they all share a general form essential to their function. Similarly, although people differ in many ways, they are all united in the essential aspect that they are made of body and soul, and created in the image and likeness of God. Thus, just as pens are made solely for writing, all humans must have one common purpose, which is to serve God.
1 Q. Who made the world? A. God made the world.
1 Q. Who created the world? A. God created the world.
The "world" here means more than the earth—more than is shown on a map of the world. It means everything that we can see—sun, moon, stars, etc.; even those things that we can see only with great telescopes. Everything, too, that we may be able to see in the future, either with our eyes alone, or aided by instruments, is included in the word "world." We can call it the universe.
The "world" here means more than just the earth—it's more than what you see on a map. It includes everything we can see—like the sun, moon, stars, and even things we can only see through powerful telescopes. It also covers everything we might be able to see in the future, whether with just our eyes or with the help of tools. We can call it the universe.
2 Q. Who is God? A. God is the Creator of Heaven and earth, and of all things.
2 Q. Who is God? A. God is the Creator of Heaven and Earth, and of everything in it.
3 Q. What is man? A. Man is a creature composed of a body and soul, and made to the image and likeness of God.
3 Q. What is man? A. Man is a being made up of a body and soul, created in the image and likeness of God.
"Creature," i.e., a thing created. Man differs from anything else in creation. All things else are either entirely matter, or entirely spirit. An angel, for example, is all spirit, and a stone is all matter; but man is a combination of both spirit and matter—of soul and of body.
"Creature," meaning something that is created. Humans are different from anything else in creation. Everything else is either completely material or completely spiritual. For instance, an angel is all spirit, and a stone is all matter; however, humans are a mix of both spirit and matter—of soul and body.
*4 Q. Is this likeness in the body or in the soul? A. This likeness is chiefly in the soul.
*4 Q. Is this similarity found in the body or in the soul? A. This similarity is mainly in the soul.
*5 Q. How is the soul like to God? A. The soul is like God because it is a spirit that will never die, and has understanding and free will.
*5 Q. How is the soul similar to God? A. The soul is similar to God because it is a spirit that will never die, and has understanding and free will.
My soul is like to God in four things.
My soul is like God in four ways.
(1). It is "a spirit." It really exists, but cannot be seen with the eyes of our body. Every spirit is invisible, but every invisible thing is not a spirit. We cannot see the wind. We can feel its influence, we can see its work—for example, the dust flying, trees swaying, ships sailing, etc.—but the wind itself we never see. Again, we never see electricity. We see the light or effect it produces, but we never see the electricity itself. Yet no one denies the existence of the wind or of electricity on account of their being invisible. Why then should anyone say there are no spirits—no God, no angels, no souls—simply because they cannot be seen, when we have other proofs, stronger than the testimony of our sight, that they really and truly exist?
(1). It is "a spirit." It really exists, but we can't see it with our physical eyes. Every spirit is invisible, but not everything invisible is a spirit. We can't see the wind. We can feel its effects and see what it does—like dust blowing, trees moving, ships sailing, etc.—but we never see the wind itself. Similarly, we never see electricity. We see the light or effects it produces, but we never see the electricity itself. Yet, no one doubts the existence of wind or electricity just because they are invisible. So why should anyone claim that there are no spirits—no God, no angels, no souls—just because we can't see them, when we have other stronger evidence, beyond our sight, that they really exist?
(2). My soul will "never die," i.e., will never cease to exist; it is immortal. This is a very wonderful thing to think of. It will last as long as God Himself.
(2). My soul will "never die," meaning it will never stop existing; it is immortal. This is a truly amazing thing to consider. It will endure as long as God Himself.
(3). My soul "has understanding," i.e., it has the gift of reason. This gift enables man to reflect upon all his actions—the reasons why he should do certain things and why he should not do them. By reason he reflects upon the past, and judges what may happen in the future. He sees the consequences of his actions. He not only knows what he does, but why he does it. This is the gift that places man high above the brute animals in the order of creation; and hence man is not merely an animal, but he is a rational animal—an animal with the gift of reason.
(3). My soul "has understanding," meaning it has the gift of reason. This gift allows a person to think about all their actions—the reasons for doing certain things and why they shouldn't. Through reason, they reflect on the past and consider what might happen in the future. They see the consequences of their actions. They not only know what they do but also why they do it. This is the gift that elevates humans above other animals in the order of creation; therefore, a person is not just an animal but a rational animal—an animal with the gift of reason.
Brute animals have not reason, but only instinct, i.e., they follow certain impulses or feelings which God gave them at their creation. He established certain laws for each class or kind of animals, and they, without knowing it, follow these laws; and when we see them following their laws, always in the same way, we say it is their nature. Animals act at times as if they knew just why they were acting; but it is not so. It is we who reason upon their actions, and see why they do them; but they do not reason, they only follow their instinct.
Brutish animals don’t have reason, just instinct; in other words, they act on certain impulses or feelings that God gave them at creation. He set specific laws for each type of animal, and they follow these laws without even realizing it. When we observe them acting in the same way, we say it’s their nature. Sometimes animals seem to know why they’re acting a certain way, but that’s not true. We are the ones who think about their actions and understand the reasons behind them; they don’t reason—they simply follow their instinct.
If animals could reason, they ought to improve in their condition. Men become more civilized day by day. They invent many things that were unknown to their forefathers. One man can improve upon the works of another, etc. But, we never see anything of this kind in the actions of animals. The same kind of birds, for instance, build the same kind of nests, generation after generation, without ever making change or improvement in them. When man teaches an animal any action, it cannot teach the same to its young. It is clear, therefore, that animals cannot reason.
If animals could think, they should be able to improve their situation. People are becoming more civilized every day. They invent many things that their ancestors didn't know about. One person can build on the work of another, and so on. But we never see anything like that in the behavior of animals. The same types of birds, for example, build the same kind of nests, generation after generation, without ever changing or improving them. When a person teaches an animal a behavior, the animal can’t pass that knowledge on to its offspring. It’s clear, then, that animals cannot reason.
Though man has the gift of reason by which he can learn a great deal, he cannot learn all through his reason; for there are many things that God Himself must teach him. When God teaches, we call the truths He makes known to us Revelation. How could man ever know about the Trinity through his reason alone, when, after God has made known to him that It exists, he cannot understand it? It is the same for all the other mysteries.
Though humans have the ability to reason and can learn a lot, they can't understand everything just through reason alone; there are many things that God Himself must teach them. When God teaches, we refer to the truths He reveals to us as Revelation. How could anyone ever know about the Trinity just through reason, when, after God has revealed that it exists, they still can’t fully grasp it? The same goes for all the other mysteries.
(4). My soul has "free will." This is another grand gift of God, by which I am able to do or not do a thing, just as I please. I can even sin and refuse to obey God. God Himself—while He leaves me my free will—could not oblige me to do anything, unless I wished to do it; neither could the devil. I am free therefore, and I may use this great gift either to benefit or injure myself. If I were not free I would not deserve reward or punishment for my actions, for no one is or should be punished for doing what he cannot help. God would not punish us for sin if we were not free to commit or avoid it. I turn this freedom to my benefit if I do what God wishes when I could do the opposite; for He will be more pleased with my conduct, and grant a greater reward than He would bestow if I obeyed simply because obliged to do so. Animals have no free will. If, for example, they suffer from hunger and you place food before them, they will eat; but man can starve, if he wills to do so, with a feast before him. For the same reason man can endure more fatigue than any other animal of the same bodily strength. In traveling, for instance, animals give up when exhausted, but man may be dying as he walks, and still, by his strong will-power, force his wearied limbs to move. But you will say, did not the lions in the den into which Daniel was cast because he would not act against his conscience, obey the wicked king and offend God—as we read in Holy Scripture (Dan. 6:16)—refrain from eating him, even when they were starving with hunger? Yes; but they did not do so of themselves, but by the power of God preventing them: and that is why the delivery of Daniel from their mouths was a miracle. It is clear, because the same lions immediately tore in pieces Daniel's enemies when they were cast into the den.
(4). My soul has "free will." This is another amazing gift from God, which allows me to choose whether to do something or not, just as I want. I can even sin and choose to disobey God. God Himself—while giving me my free will—cannot force me to do anything unless I decide to do it; the same goes for the devil. I am free, and I can use this great gift either to help or harm myself. If I weren't free, I wouldn’t deserve reward or punishment for my actions, because no one should be punished for something beyond their control. God wouldn’t punish us for sin if we were not free to commit or avoid it. I benefit from this freedom when I choose to do what God wants me to do when I could easily choose otherwise; He will be more pleased with my actions and reward me more generously than if I obeyed simply because I had to. Animals don’t have free will. For example, if they’re hungry and you put food in front of them, they will eat; but a person can choose to starve even with a feast before them. Similarly, a person can endure more exhaustion than any other animal of the same physical strength. In traveling, for instance, animals stop when they’re tired, but a person might be dying as they walk and still force their tired body to continue moving through sheer willpower. But you might ask, didn’t the lions in the den where Daniel was thrown because he wouldn’t go against his conscience, obey the evil king and defy God—as we read in the Bible (Dan. 6:16)—refrain from eating him, even while starving? Yes, but they didn’t do so of their own accord; it was by God’s power preventing them: and that’s why Daniel’s deliverance from their jaws was a miracle. It’s clear, because those same lions immediately tore apart Daniel’s enemies when they were thrown into the den.
6 Q. Why did God make you? A. God made me to know Him, to love Him, and to serve Him in this world, and to be happy with Him forever in the next.
6 Q. Why did God create you? A. God created me to know Him, to love Him, and to serve Him in this world, and to be happy with Him forever in the next.
"To know" Him, because we must know of a thing before we can love it. A poor savage in Africa never longs to be at a game or contest going on in America, because he does not know it and therefore cannot love it. We see a person and know him; if he pleases us we love him, and if we love him we will try to serve him; we will not be satisfied with doing merely what he asks of us, but will do whatever we think might give him pleasure. So it is in regard to God. We must first know Him—learn who He is from our catechisms and books of instruction, but especially from the teaching of God's ministers, the Holy Father, bishops and priests. When we know Him, we shall love Him. If we knew Him perfectly, we should love Him perfectly; so the better we know Him the more we shall love Him. And as it is our chief duty to love Him and serve Him upon earth, it becomes our strict duty to learn here whatever we can of His nature, attributes, and holy laws. The saints and angels in Heaven know God so well that they must love Him, and cannot therefore offend Him.
"To know" Him, because we need to understand something before we can truly love it. A poor person in Africa doesn't long to be part of a game or event happening in America because they don’t know about it, so they can’t love it. We see someone and get to know them; if we find them appealing, we love them, and if we love them, we want to serve them; we won’t just do what they ask, but we’ll go out of our way to do things that please them. It's the same with God. We must first know Him—learn who He is from our teachings and instruction books, particularly from the guidance of God's ministers, the Holy Father, bishops, and priests. When we know Him, we will love Him. If we knew Him perfectly, we would love Him perfectly; so the better we know Him, the more we will love Him. And since our main duty is to love and serve Him while we’re on earth, it's essential that we learn as much as we can about His nature, attributes, and holy laws. The saints and angels in Heaven know God so well that they must love Him, and therefore cannot offend Him.
You have all seen some person in the world, or maybe several persons, whom you have greatly admired; still you did not love them perfectly; there was always some little thing about them in looks, manners, or disposition that could be rendered more pleasing; some defect or want you would like to see supplied; some fault or imperfection you would like to see corrected. Now suppose you had the power to take all the good qualities you found in the persons you loved and unite them in one person, in whom there would be nothing displeasing, but everything perfect and beautiful. Do you not think you would love such a person very much indeed?
You’ve all seen someone in the world, or maybe several people, whom you admired a lot; still, you didn’t love them completely; there was always something small about them in looks, behavior, or personality that could be improved; some flaw or gap you wished could be filled; some fault or imperfection you wanted to see fixed. Now, imagine you had the ability to take all the good qualities from the people you loved and combine them in one person, who would have nothing unappealing but be entirely perfect and beautiful. Don’t you think you would love such a person a whole lot?
Moreover, suppose you knew that person loved you intensely, would it not be your greatest delight to be ever with such a friend? Well, then, all the lovable qualities and beauties you see in created beings come from God and are bestowed by Him; yet all the good qualities on earth and those of the angels and saints in Heaven, and even of the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph, if united in one person would be nothing compared to the goodness and beauty of God. How good and how lovable, therefore, must He be! And what shall we say when we think that He loves us with a greater love than we could ever love Him, even with our most earnest efforts? Try then first to know God and you will surely love and serve Him. Do not be satisfied with the little you learn of Him in the Catechism, but afterward read good books, and above all hear sermons and instructions.
Moreover, if you knew that person loved you deeply, wouldn’t it be your greatest joy to always be with such a friend? Well, all the lovable qualities and beauty you see in other people come from God and are given by Him; yet all the good qualities on earth, as well as those of angels and saints in Heaven, and even the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph—if combined in one person—would pale in comparison to the goodness and beauty of God. How good and lovable, therefore, must He be! And what can we say when we realize that He loves us with a greater love than we could ever give Him, even with our best efforts? So, first seek to understand God, and you will definitely love and serve Him. Don't be content with just the little you learn about Him in the Catechism; afterward, read good books, and most importantly, listen to sermons and teachings.
"In this world." Because unless we do what is pleasing to Him in this world we cannot be with Him in the next. Our condition in the next world depends entirely upon our conduct in this. Thus we have discovered the answer to the great question, What is the end of man; for what was he made?
"In this world." Because if we don't do what makes Him happy in this life, we can't be with Him in the next one. Our situation in the afterlife completely depends on how we act here. So we have found the answer to the big question: What is the purpose of humanity, and why were we created?
*7 Q. Of which must we take more care, our soul or our body? A. We must take more care of our soul than of our body.
*7 Q. Which should we prioritize more, our soul or our body? A. We should prioritize our soul over our body.
*8 Q. Why must we take more care of our soul than of our body? A. We must take more care of our soul than of our body, because in losing our soul we lose God and everlasting happiness.
*8 Q. Why should we pay more attention to our soul than to our body? A. We should pay more attention to our soul than to our body because if we lose our soul, we lose God and eternal happiness.
Every sensible person will take most care of that which is most valuable. If a girl had a hundred dollars in a ten-cent pocket-book, you would consider her a great fool if she threw away the hundred dollars for fear of spoiling the pocket-book. Now, he is a greater fool who throws away his soul in order to save his body some little inconvenience, or gratify its wicked desires or inclinations. Wherever the soul will be, there the body will be also; so we should, in a certain way, try to forget the body and make sure of getting the soul safely into Heaven. You would not think much of the wisdom of a boy who allowed his kite to be smashed in pieces by giving his whole attention to the tail of the kite. If he took care to keep the kite itself high in air and away from every danger, the tail would follow it; and even if the tail did get entangled, it would have a good chance of being freed while the kite was still flying. But of what use is it to save a worthless piece of rag, if the kite—the valuable thing—is lost? Just in the same way, of what use is our body if our soul is lost? And remember we have only one soul. Therefore, make sure to save the soul, and the body also will be saved—that is, the whole man will be saved; for we cannot save the soul and lose the body; they will both be saved or both be lost.
Every sensible person takes great care of what is most valuable. If a girl had a hundred dollars in a ten-cent wallet, you'd think she was foolish if she tossed away the hundred dollars out of fear of ruining the wallet. Now, he's an even bigger fool who sacrifices his soul just to avoid minor inconveniences for his body or to satisfy its sinful desires. Wherever the soul ends up, the body will follow; so we should, in a sense, try to forget about the body and focus on ensuring our soul gets safely to Heaven. You wouldn't think much of a boy's wisdom if he let his kite get ruined by only paying attention to the tail. If he focused on keeping the kite itself flying high and away from danger, the tail would naturally follow; and even if the tail got tangled, it would likely be freed while the kite was still in the air. But what good is it to save a worthless piece of fabric if the kite—the valuable part—is lost? Similarly, what good is our body if our soul is lost? And remember, we only have one soul. So, make sure to save the soul, and the body will be saved too—that is, the whole person will be saved; because we cannot save the soul and lose the body; they'll either both be saved or both be lost.
9 Q. What must we do to save our souls? A. To save our souls, we must worship God by faith, hope, and charity; that is, we must believe in Him, hope in Him, and love Him with all our heart.
9 Q. What do we need to do to save our souls? A. To save our souls, we must worship God through faith, hope, and love; that is, we need to believe in Him, have hope in Him, and love Him with all our heart.
"Worship," that is, give Him divine honor. We honor persons for their worth and excellence, and since God is the most excellent, we give Him the highest honors, differing from others not merely in degrees but in kind—divine honors that belong to Him alone. And justly so, for the vilest animal upon the earth is a thousand times more nearly our equal than the most perfect creature, man or angel, is the equal of God. In speaking of worship, theologians generally distinguish three kinds, namely: latria, or that supreme worship due to God alone, which cannot be transferred to any creature without committing the sin of idolatry; dulia, or that secondary veneration we give to saints and angels as the special friends of God; hyperdulia, or that higher veneration which we give to the Blessed Virgin as the most exalted of all God's creatures. It is higher than the veneration we give to the other saints, but infinitely inferior to the worship we give to God Himself. We show God our special honor by never doubting anything He reveals to us, therefore by "faith"; by expecting with certainty whatever He promises, therefore by "hope"; and finally by loving Him more than anyone else in the world, therefore by "charity."
"Worship" means giving Him divine honor. We honor people for their worth and excellence, and since God is the most excellent, we give Him the highest honors that differ from others not just in degree but in kind—divine honors that belong to Him alone. This is just, because even the most despised animal on earth is a thousand times more our equal than the most perfect creature, whether human or angel, is to God. When discussing worship, theologians typically identify three types: latria, or the supreme worship due only to God, which cannot be given to any creature without committing the sin of idolatry; dulia, or the secondary respect we show to saints and angels as special friends of God; and hyperdulia, or the higher honor we give to the Blessed Virgin as the most exalted of all God's creatures. While it is greater than the respect we show to other saints, it is still infinitely less than the worship we give to God Himself. We demonstrate our special honor to God by never doubting anything He reveals to us, which is through "faith"; by expecting with certainty whatever He promises, which is through "hope"; and finally, by loving Him more than anyone else in the world, which is through "charity."
But someone may say, I think I love my parents more than God. Well, let us see. Suppose your mother should command you to commit a sinful act (a thing no good mother would do) and you have therefore to choose between offending her or Almighty God. Now, although you love your mother very much, if in this instance you prefer to displease her rather than commit the sin that offends God, you show that you love God more than her. Again, many who dearly love their parents leave them that they may consecrate their lives to the special service of God in some religious community and thus prove their greater love for Him. The love we have for God is intellectual rather than sentimental; and since it is not measured by the intensity of our feelings, how are we to know that we love Him best? By our determination never to offend Him for any person or thing in the world, however dear to us, and by our readiness to obey and serve Him before all others.
But someone might say, "I think I love my parents more than God." Well, let’s consider this. Imagine your mother tells you to do something wrong (something no good mother would actually do), and you have to choose between upsetting her or upsetting God. Now, even though you love your mother a lot, if in this situation you decide to upset her instead of doing the wrong thing that offends God, that shows you love God more than her. Similarly, many people who truly love their parents leave them behind to dedicate their lives to serving God in a religious community, which proves their greater love for Him. The love we have for God is more about understanding than just feelings; and since it’s not measured by how strongly we feel, how do we know we love Him the most? By our commitment to never offend Him for anyone or anything in the world, no matter how close to us, and by being ready to obey and serve Him above all else.
10 Q. How shall we know the things which we are to believe? A. We shall know the things which we are to believe from the Catholic Church, through which God speaks to us.
10 Q. How will we know what to believe? A. We will know what to believe from the Catholic Church, which is how God communicates with us.
"Catholic Church" in this answer means the Pope, councils, bishops, and priests who teach in the Church.
"Catholic Church" in this answer refers to the Pope, councils, bishops, and priests who instruct within the Church.
11 Q. Where shall we find the chief truths which the Catholic Church teaches? A. We shall find the chief truths which the Catholic Church teaches in the Apostles' Creed.
11 Q. Where can we find the main beliefs taught by the Catholic Church? A. We can find the main beliefs taught by the Catholic Church in the Apostles' Creed.
"Chief," because the Apostles' Creed does not contain in an explicit manner all the truths we must believe. For example, there is nothing in the Apostles' Creed about the Sacrament of the Holy Eucharist, about the Immaculate Conception of the Blessed Virgin, or the infallibility of the Pope; and yet we must believe these and other articles of faith not in the Apostles' Creed. It contains only the "chief" and not all the truths.
"Chief," because the Apostles' Creed does not explicitly include all the truths we should believe. For instance, the Apostles' Creed says nothing about the Sacrament of the Holy Eucharist, the Immaculate Conception of the Blessed Virgin, or the infallibility of the Pope; yet we must believe in these and other articles of faith that aren't mentioned in the Apostles' Creed. It contains only the "chief" truths, not all of them.
12 Q. Say the Apostles' Creed. A. I believe in God, the Father Almighty, Creator of Heaven and earth; and in Jesus Christ, His only Son, Our Lord, Who was conceived by the Holy Ghost, born of the Virgin Mary, suffered under Pontius Pilate, was crucified, died, and was buried; He descended into Hell; the third day He arose again from the dead; He ascended into Heaven, and sitteth at the right hand of God, the Father Almighty; from thence He shall come to judge the living and the dead. I believe in the Holy Ghost, the holy Catholic Church, the communion of saints, the forgiveness of sins, the resurrection of the body, and the life everlasting. Amen.
12 Q. Say the Apostles' Creed. A. I believe in God, the Father Almighty, Creator of heaven and earth; and in Jesus Christ, His only Son, our Lord, who was conceived by the Holy Spirit, born of the Virgin Mary, suffered under Pontius Pilate, was crucified, died, and was buried; He descended to hell; on the third day He rose again from the dead; He ascended into heaven and sits at the right hand of God, the Father Almighty; from there He will come to judge the living and the dead. I believe in the Holy Spirit, the holy Catholic Church, the communion of saints, the forgiveness of sins, the resurrection of the body, and everlasting life. Amen.
"Descend" means to go down, and "ascend" to go up.
"Descend" means to go down, and "ascend" means to go up.
Lesson 2
ON GOD AND HIS PERFECTIONS
Lesson 2
ABOUT GOD AND HIS PERFECTIONS
A "perfection" means a good quality. We say a thing is perfect when it has all the good qualities it should have.
A "perfection" means good quality. We say something is perfect when it has all the qualities it should have.
13 Q. What is God? A. God is a spirit infinitely perfect.
13 Q. What is God? A. God is a spirit who is infinitely perfect.
"A spirit" is a living, intelligent, invisible being. It really exists, though we cannot see it with the eyes of our body. It has intelligence and can therefore think, understand, etc. It is not because we cannot see it that we call it a spirit. To be invisible is only one of the qualities of a spirit. It is also indivisible, that is, it cannot be divided into parts. God is such a being. He is "infinitely perfect," that is, He has every perfection in the highest degree. "Infinite" means to have without limit. If there were any perfection God did not have, He would not be infinite. He is unlimited in wisdom, in power, in goodness, in beauty, etc. But you will tell me persons on earth and the angels and saints in Heaven have some wisdom and power and beauty, and therefore God cannot have all, since He has not the portion with which they are endowed. I still say He is infinite, because what the angels and others have belongs to God, and He only lends it to them. "Perfect" means to be without any defect or fault.
"A spirit" is a living, intelligent, invisible being. It truly exists, even though we can't see it with our physical eyes. It has intelligence and can think, understand, and more. Just because we can't see it, doesn't mean we call it a spirit. Being invisible is just one of the qualities of a spirit. It is also indivisible, meaning it can't be broken down into parts. God is such a being. He is "infinitely perfect," which means He possesses every perfection to the highest degree. "Infinite" means having no limits. If there were any perfection that God lacked, He wouldn't be infinite. He is limitless in wisdom, power, goodness, beauty, and more. However, you might point out that people on earth, along with the angels and saints in Heaven, have some wisdom, power, and beauty, so therefore God cannot possess all of these since He doesn't have the same portion they do. I still argue that He is infinite because what the angels and others have belongs to God, and He only grants it to them. "Perfect" means to be without any defects or faults.
14 Q. Had God a beginning? A. God had no beginning; He always was and always will be.
14 Q. Did God have a beginning? A. God has no beginning; He always was and always will be.
Was there ever a time when we could say there was no God? There was a time when we could say there was no Heaven or earth, no angels, men, or animals; but there was never a time when there was no God. We may go back in thought millions and millions of years before the Creation, and God was then existing. He had no beginning and will never cease to exist. This is a mystery; and what a mystery is will be explained in the next lesson.
Was there ever a time when we could say there was no God? There was a time when we could say there was no Heaven or Earth, no angels, people, or animals; but there was never a time when there was no God. We can think back millions and millions of years before Creation, and God was still there. He had no beginning and will never stop existing. This is a mystery; and what a mystery is will be explained in the next lesson.
15 Q. Where is God? A. God is everywhere.
15 Q. Where is God? A. God is everywhere.
"Everywhere"—not spread out like a great cloud, but whole and entire in every particular place: and yet there is only one God, and not as many gods as there are places. How this can be we cannot fully understand, because this also is a mystery. A simile, though it will not be perfect, may help you to understand. When we speak of God, we can never give a true and perfect example; for we cannot find anything exactly like Him to compare to Him. If I discharge a great cannon in a city, every one of the inhabitants will hear the report; not in such a way that each hearer gets his share of the sound, but each hears the whole report, just as if he were the only one to hear it. Now, how is that? There are not as many reports as there are persons listening; and yet each person hears the whole report.
"Everywhere"—not scattered like a huge cloud, but complete and whole in every specific place: and yet there is only one God, not as many gods as there are locations. We can't fully understand how this works, because it's also a mystery. A comparison, although it won't be perfect, might help you grasp it. When we talk about God, we can never provide a true and perfect example; because we can't find anything exactly like Him to compare to Him. If I fire a large cannon in a city, every resident will hear the sound; not in a way that each person shares the sound, but each hears the entire report, as if they were the only one listening. So, how does that work? There aren't as many sounds as there are people listening; and yet each person hears the complete sound.
16 Q. If God is everywhere, why do we not see Him? A. We do not see God because He is a pure spirit and cannot be seen with bodily eyes.
16 Q. If God is everywhere, why don’t we see Him? A. We don’t see God because He is a pure spirit and can’t be seen with physical eyes.
"Pure spirit," that is, not clothed with any material body—spirit alone.
"Pure spirit," meaning not dressed in any physical body—just spirit alone.
17 Q. Does God see us? A. God sees us and watches over us.
17 Q. Does God see us? A. God sees us and looks out for us.
"Watches" to protect, to reward or punish us. He watches continually; He not only watches, but keeps us alive. God might have created us and then paid no more attention to us; but if He had done so, we should have fallen back again into nothingness. Therefore He preserves us every moment of our lives. We cannot draw a breath without Him. If a steam engine be required to work ceaselessly, you cannot, after setting it in motion, leave it henceforth entirely to itself. You must keep up the supply of water and fire necessary for the generation of steam, you must oil the machinery, guard against overheating or cooling, and, in a word, keep a constant watch that nothing may interfere with its motion. So also God not only watches His creatures, but likewise provides for them. Since we depend so much upon Him, is it not great folly to sin against Him, to offend, and tempt Him as it were? There are some birds that build their nests on the sides of great rocky precipices by the seacoast. Their eggs are very valuable, and men are let down by long ropes to take them from the nest. Now while one of these men is hanging over the fearful precipice, his life is entirely in the hands of those holding the rope above. While he is in that danger do you not think he would be very foolish to tempt and insult those on whom his life depends, when they could dash him to pieces by simply dropping the rope? While we live here upon earth we are all hanging over a great precipice, namely, eternity; God holds us by the little thread of our lives, and if He pleased to drop it we should be hurled into eternity. If we tempt or insult Him, He might drop or cut the thread while we are in mortal sin, and then, body and soul, we go down into Hell.
"Watches" to protect, reward, or punish us. He watches us constantly; He not only observes but keeps us alive. God could have created us and then ignored us; but if He had done that, we would have reverted to nothingness. Instead, He sustains us every moment of our lives. We can’t take a breath without Him. Just like a steam engine needs constant maintenance, you can’t simply set it in motion and leave it to run on its own. You need to continuously supply the water and fire necessary for steam, lubricate the machinery, prevent overheating or cooling, and keep a watchful eye to ensure nothing disrupts its operation. Similarly, God not only watches over His creations but also takes care of them. Since we rely on Him so heavily, isn’t it foolish to sin against Him, to offend and tempt Him? Some birds build their nests on steep cliffs by the sea. Their eggs are very valuable, and men are lowered by long ropes to collect them. While one of these men is hanging over the dangerous edge, his life is completely in the hands of those holding the rope above. While he is in such danger, it would be incredibly foolish for him to challenge and insult those who control his safety, as they could easily let him fall. As we live here on earth, we are all suspended over a great precipice—eternity; God holds us by the thin thread of our lives, and if He chose to cut it, we would plunge into eternity. If we tempt or offend Him, He might sever that thread while we are steeped in sin, and then, body and soul, we would fall into Hell.
18 Q. Does God know all things? A. God knows all things, even our most secret thoughts, words, and actions.
18 Q. Does God know everything? A. God knows everything, including our deepest thoughts, words, and actions.
Certainly God "knows all things." First, because He is infinitely wise, and if He were ignorant of anything He would not be so. Secondly, because He is everywhere and sees and hears all. Darkness does not hide from His view, nor noise prevent Him from hearing. How could we sin if we thought of this! God is just here, looking at me and listening to me. Would I do what I am going to do now if I knew my parents, relatives, and friends were watching me? Would I like them to know that I am thinking about things sinful, and preparing to do shameful acts? No! Why then should I feel ashamed to let God see and know of this wicked thought or action? They might know it and yet be unable to harm me, but He, all-powerful, could destroy me instantly. Nay, more; not only will God see and know this evil deed or thought; but, by His gift, the Blessed Mother, the angels and saints will know of it and be ashamed of it before God, and, most of all, my guardian angel will deplore it. Besides, this sin will be revealed to the whole world on the last day, and my friends, relatives, and neighbors will know that I was guilty of it.
Certainly, God "knows all things." First, because He is infinitely wise, and if He were unaware of anything, He wouldn't be wise. Second, because He is everywhere and sees and hears everything. Darkness cannot hide from His view, nor can noise prevent Him from hearing. How could we sin if we thought about this! God is right here, watching me and listening to me. Would I do what I'm about to do if I knew my parents, relatives, and friends were watching me? Would I want them to know that I'm thinking about sinful things and getting ready to do shameful acts? No! So why should I feel ashamed to let God see and know about this wicked thought or action? They might know it and still not be able to hurt me, but He, being all-powerful, could destroy me instantly. Moreover, not only will God see and know this evil deed or thought, but through His gift, the Blessed Mother, the angels, and the saints will also know of it and feel ashamed before God, and most importantly, my guardian angel will mourn it. Additionally, this sin will be revealed to the entire world on the last day, and my friends, relatives, and neighbors will know that I was guilty of it.
19 Q. Can God do all things? A. God can do all things, and nothing is hard or impossible to Him.
19 Q. Can God do all things? A. God can do anything, and nothing is difficult or impossible for Him.
20 Q. Is God just, holy, and merciful? A. God is all just, all holy, all merciful, as He is infinitely perfect.
20 Q. Is God just, holy, and merciful? A. God is completely just, completely holy, and completely merciful, as He is infinitely perfect.
"All just"—that is, most just. "Just" means to give to everyone what belongs to him—to reward if it is merited or to punish if it is deserved. "Holy"—that is, good. "Merciful" means compassionate, forgiving, less exacting than severe justice demands. In a court a just judge is one who listens patiently to all the arguments for and against the prisoner, and then, comparing one with the other, gives the sentence exactly in accordance with the guilt. If he inflicts more or less punishment than the prisoner deserves, or for money or anything else gives an unfair sentence, then he is an unjust judge. The judge might be merciful in this way. The laws say that for the crime of which this prisoner is proved guilty he can be sent to prison for a term not longer than ten years and not shorter than five: that is, for anything between ten and five years. The judge could give him the full ten years that the law allows and be just. But suppose he believed that the prisoner did not know the law and did not intend to be as wicked as he was proved; or that it was his first offense, or that he heard the prisoner's mother, who was old and infirm, pleading for him and saying he was her only support; or other extenuating circumstances that could awaken sympathy: the judge might be merciful and sentence him for the shortest term the law allows. But if the judge dismissed every prisoner, no matter how guilty, without punishment, he would not be a merciful but an unjust judge, who would soon be forced to leave the court. In the same way, God is often merciful to sinners and punishes them less than He could in strict justice. But if He were to allow every sinner to go without any punishment whatsoever—as unbelievers say He should do, by having no Hell for the wicked—then He would not be just. For as God is an Infinite Being, all His perfections must be infinite; that is, He must be as infinitely just as He is infinitely merciful, true, wise, or powerful.
"All just"—that is, mostly just. "Just" means giving everyone what they deserve—rewarding when it's deserved or punishing when it's merited. "Holy"—that is, good. "Merciful" means compassionate, forgiving, and less strict than what harsh justice requires. In a court, a just judge is one who patiently listens to all the arguments for and against the defendant, and then, weighing them against each other, delivers a sentence that matches the guilt exactly. If he imposes more or less punishment than the defendant deserves, or if he gives an unfair sentence because of money or anything else, then he is an unjust judge. The judge might be merciful in this case. The laws state that for the crime this defendant is proven guilty of, he can be sentenced to prison for a term that is no longer than ten years and no shorter than five: that is, anywhere between five and ten years. The judge could give him the full ten years that the law allows and still be just. But suppose he believes that the defendant didn’t know the law and didn’t mean to be as wicked as he was found to be; or that it was his first offense; or that he heard the defendant's elderly mother pleading for him, saying he was her only support; or other circumstances that might invoke sympathy: the judge could be merciful and sentence him to the shortest term the law allows. But if the judge let every defendant go, regardless of guilt, with no punishment, he wouldn’t be merciful but an unjust judge, who would quickly be forced to leave the court. In the same way, God often shows mercy to sinners and punishes them less than He could according to strict justice. But if He allowed every sinner to go without any punishment at all—as nonbelievers claim He should, by having no Hell for the wicked—then He wouldn’t be just. For since God is an Infinite Being, all His qualities must be infinite; that is, He must be as infinitely just as He is infinitely merciful, true, wise, or powerful.
Now He has promised to punish sin; and since He is infinitely true, He must keep His promise.
Now He has promised to punish sin; and since He is infinitely truthful, He must keep His promise.
Lesson 3
ON THE UNITY AND TRINITY OF GOD
Lesson 3
ON THE UNITY AND TRINITY OF GOD
"Unity" means to be one, and "Trinity," three in one.
"Unity" means being one, and "Trinity" means three in one.
21 Q. Is there but one God? A. Yes; there is but one God.
21 Q. Is there only one God? A. Yes; there is only one God.
22 Q. Why can there be but one God? A. There can be but one God because God, being supreme and infinite, cannot have an equal.
22 Q. Why can there only be one God? A. There can only be one God because God, being the highest and limitless, cannot have an equal.
"Supreme," that is, the highest. "Equal," when two are equal one has everything the other has. You could say one pen is the equal of another if it is just as nice and will write just as well; one mechanic is the equal of another if he can do the work equally well. Two boys are equal in class if they have exactly the same marks at the end of the month or year. You could not have two persons chief. For example, you could not have two chief generals in an army; two presidents in the nation, or two governors in a state, or two mayors in a city, or two principals in a school, unless they divide equally their power, and then they will be equals and neither of them chief. God cannot divide His power with anyone—so as to give it away entirely—because we say He is infinite, and that means to have all. Others have only the loan of their power from God. Therefore, all power and authority come from God; so that when we disobey our parents or superiors who are placed over us, we disobey God Himself.
"Supreme," meaning the highest. "Equal," when two things are equal, one has everything the other has. You could say one pen is equal to another if it's just as nice and writes just as well; one mechanic is equal to another if he can do the job just as well. Two boys are equal in class if they have exactly the same grades at the end of the month or year. You can't have two leaders. For example, you can't have two chief generals in an army; two presidents in a nation, or two governors in a state, or two mayors in a city, or two principals in a school, unless they share their power equally, in which case they would be equals and neither would be the leader. God cannot share His power with anyone—completely—because we say He is infinite, which means to have everything. Others only have power on loan from God. Therefore, all power and authority come from God; so when we disobey our parents or superiors placed over us, we are disobeying God Himself.
23 Q. How many persons are there in God? A. In God there are three divine persons really distinct and equal in all things—the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost.
23 Q. How many people are there in God? A. In God, there are three distinct and equal divine persons—the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit.
"Distinct," not mingled together. We call the first and second persons Father and Son, because the second is begotten by the first person, and not to indicate that there is any difference in their age. We always see in the world that a father is older than his son, so we get the idea perhaps that it is the same in the Holy Trinity. But it is not so. God the Father, and God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost existed from all eternity, and one did not exist before the other. God the Son is just as old as God the Father, and this is another great mystery. Even in nature we see that two things may begin to exist at the same time, and yet one be the cause of the other. You know that fire is the cause of heat; and yet the heat and the fire begin at the same time. Though we cannot understand this mystery of the Father and Son, we must believe it on the authority of God, who teaches it. First, second, and third person in the Blessed Trinity does not mean, therefore, that one person was before the other, or brought into existence by the other.
"Distinct," not mixed together. We refer to the first and second persons as Father and Son because the second is generated by the first person, and this does not imply any difference in their age. We often see in the world that a father is older than his son, which might lead us to think the same is true in the Holy Trinity. But that’s not the case. God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy Spirit have existed from all eternity, and none existed before the other. God the Son is just as old as God the Father, and this is another great mystery. Even in nature, we can see that two things may come into existence at the same time, while one is the cause of the other. For example, fire causes heat; yet, heat and fire start at the same moment. Although we may not fully understand this mystery of the Father and Son, we must accept it based on the authority of God, who teaches it. The first, second, and third persons in the Blessed Trinity do not imply that one person existed before the other or was brought into being by the other.
24 Q. Is the Father God? A. The Father is God and the first Person of the Blessed Trinity.
24 Q. Is the Father God? A. The Father is God and the first Person of the Blessed Trinity.
25 Q. Is the Son God? A. The Son is God and the second Person of the Blessed Trinity.
25 Q. Is the Son God? A. The Son is God and the second Person of the Blessed Trinity.
26 Q. Is the Holy Ghost God? A. The Holy Ghost is God and the third Person of the Blessed Trinity.
26 Q. Is the Holy Spirit God? A. The Holy Spirit is God and the third Person of the Blessed Trinity.
27 Q. What do you mean by the Blessed Trinity? A. By the Blessed Trinity I mean one God in three Divine Persons.
27 Q. What do you mean by the Blessed Trinity? A. By the Blessed Trinity, I mean one God in three Divine Persons.
*28 Q. Are the three Divine Persons equal in all things? A. The three Divine Persons are equal in all things.
*28 Q. Are the three Divine Persons equal in everything? A. The three Divine Persons are equal in everything.
29 Q. Are the three Divine Persons one and the same God? A. The three Divine Persons are one and the same God, having one and the same divine nature and substance.
29 Q. Are the three Divine Persons one and the same God? A. The three Divine Persons are one and the same God, sharing the same divine nature and essence.
Though they are one and the same, we sometimes attribute different works to them. For example, works of creation we attribute to God the Father; works of mercy to God the Son; and works of love and sanctification to the Holy Ghost; and you will often find them thus spoken of in pious books; but all such works are done by all the Persons of the Trinity; because such works are the works of God, and there is but one God.
Though they are one and the same, we sometimes assign different roles to them. For instance, we attribute acts of creation to God the Father; acts of mercy to God the Son; and acts of love and sanctification to the Holy Spirit. You'll often see them referred to this way in religious texts, but all these actions are carried out by all the Persons of the Trinity because these actions are the works of God, and there is only one God.
*30 Q. Can we fully understand how the three Divine Persons are one and the same God? A. We cannot fully understand how the three Divine Persons are one and the same God, because this is a mystery.
*30 Q. Can we fully understand how the three Divine Persons are one and the same God? A. We cannot fully understand how the three Divine Persons are one and the same God, because this is a mystery.
"Fully"—entirely. We can partly understand it. We know what one God is and we know what three persons are; but how these two things go together is the part we do not understand—the mystery.
"Fully"—entirely. We can sort of grasp it. We know what one God is and we understand what three persons are; but how these two aspects fit together is what we don’t understand—the mystery.
*31 Q. What is a mystery? A. A mystery is a truth which we cannot fully understand.
*31 Q. What is a mystery? A. A mystery is a truth that we can't fully grasp.
"A truth," that is, a revealed truth—one made known to us by God or His Church. It is a truth which we must believe though we cannot understand it. Let us take an example. When a boy goes to school he is taught that the earth is round like an orange and revolving in two ways, one causing day and night and the other producing the seasons: spring, summer, autumn, winter. The boy goes out into the country where he sees miles of level land and mountains thousands of feet in height. Again he goes out on the ocean where sailors tell him it is several miles in depth.
"A truth," which is a revealed truth—one that God or His Church has made known to us. It’s a truth that we need to believe even if we can’t fully understand it. For example, when a boy goes to school, he learns that the earth is round like an orange and spins in two ways, one causing day and night and the other creating the seasons: spring, summer, autumn, and winter. The boy then goes out into the countryside where he sees miles of flat land and mountains towering thousands of feet high. Later, he goes out on the ocean where sailors tell him it is several miles deep.
Now he may say: how can the earth be round if deep valleys, high mountains, and level plains prove to my senses the very opposite, and the countless things at rest upon its surface tell me it is motionless. Yet he believes even against the testimony of his senses that the earth is round and moving, because his teacher could have no motive in deceiving him; knows better than he, having learned more, and besides has been taught by others who after long years of careful study and research have discovered these things and know them to be true. If therefore we have to believe things that we do not understand on the authority of men, why should we not believe other truths on the authority of God? Yes, we must believe Him. If a boy knew all his teacher knew there would be no need of his going to school; he would be the equal in knowledge of his teacher, and if we knew all that God knows we would be as great as He. As well might we try to empty the whole ocean into the tiny holes that children dig in the sand by its shore, as fully to comprehend the wisdom of God. This is the mistake unbelievers make when they wish to understand with their limited intelligence the boundless knowledge and mysterious ways of God, and when they cannot understand refuse to believe. Are they not extremely foolish? Would you not ridicule the boy who refuses to believe that the earth is round and moving because he cannot understand it? As he grows older and learns more he will comprehend it better; so we, when we leave this world and come into the presence of God, shall see clearly many things that are unintelligible now. For the present, we have only to believe them on the authority of God teaching us. Another example. We take two little black seeds that look just alike and place them in the same kind of soil; we put the same kind of water upon them; they have the same sunlight and air, and yet when they grow up one has a red flower and one a blue. Where did the red and where did the blue come from? From the black seed, or the brown soil, or the pure water, air and sunlight? We do not know. It is there, and that is all. We see it and believe it, though we do not understand it.
Now he might say: how can the earth be round when deep valleys, high mountains, and flat plains contradict that, and the countless things resting on its surface make it seem motionless? Yet, he believes that the earth is round and moving, even against what his senses tell him, because his teacher has no reason to deceive him; he knows more than he does, having learned more, and has also been taught by others who, after years of careful study and research, have discovered and confirmed these truths. So, if we have to accept things we don’t understand based on human authority, why shouldn’t we accept other truths based on God’s authority? Yes, we must believe Him. If a boy knew everything his teacher knew, there would be no need for him to go to school; he would equal his teacher in knowledge, and if we knew everything God knows, we would be as great as Him. It’s just as futile to try to empty the entire ocean into the tiny holes children dig in the sand by the shore as it is to fully grasp the wisdom of God. This is the error unbelievers make when they attempt to understand with their limited intelligence the limitless knowledge and mysterious ways of God, and when they can’t understand, they refuse to believe. Isn’t that incredibly foolish? Would you not laugh at the boy who refuses to believe that the earth is round and moving just because he can’t understand it? As he grows older and learns more, he will understand it better; likewise, when we leave this world and come into the presence of God, we will clearly see many things that are incomprehensible now. For now, we must believe them on God’s authority. Another example: we take two identical little black seeds and plant them in the same kind of soil; we give them the same type of water; they receive the same sunlight and air, and yet when they grow, one has a red flower and the other a blue one. Where did the red come from and where did the blue? From the black seed, or the brown soil, or the pure water, air, and sunlight? We don’t know. It exists, and that’s all. We see it and believe it, even though we don’t understand it.
So if we refuse to believe everything we do not understand, we shall soon believe very little and make ourselves ridiculous.
So if we refuse to believe anything we don't understand, we'll soon believe very little and look foolish.
Lesson 4
ON CREATION
Lesson 4
ON CREATION
This lesson treats of God bringing everything into existence. The chief things created may be classed as follows: (1) The things that simply exist, as rocks, and minerals—gold, silver, iron, etc. (2) Things that exist, grow, and live like plants and trees. (3) Things that grow, live, and feel, like animals. (4) Things that grow, live, feel, and understand, like men. Besides these we have the sun, moon, stars, etc.; all things too that we can see, and also Heaven, Purgatory, Hell, and good and bad angels. All these are the works of God's creation. All these He has called into existence by merely wishing for them.
This lesson is about God creating everything. The main things created can be divided into the following categories: (1) Non-living things, like rocks and minerals—gold, silver, iron, etc. (2) Living things that grow, like plants and trees. (3) Living beings that grow and feel, like animals. (4) Living beings that grow, feel, and have understanding, like humans. In addition, we have the sun, moon, stars, etc.; all the visible things, as well as Heaven, Purgatory, Hell, and both good and bad angels. All of these are the works of God's creation. He has brought them into existence simply by wishing for them.
*32 Q. Who created Heaven and earth, and all things? A. God created Heaven and earth, and all things.
*32 Q. Who made Heaven and earth, and everything in them? A. God made Heaven and earth, and everything in them.
"Heaven," where God is and will always be. It means, too, everything we see in the sky above us. "Earth," the globe on which we live.
"Heaven," where God is and always will be. It also refers to everything we see in the sky above us. "Earth," the planet we live on.
*33 Q. How did God create Heaven and earth? A. God created Heaven and earth from nothing, by His word only; that is, by a single act of His all-powerful will.
*33 Q. How did God create Heaven and earth? A. God created Heaven and earth from nothing, just by speaking; that is, with one powerful act of His will.
34 Q. Which are the chief creatures of God? A. The chief creatures of God are angels and men.
34 Q. What are the main creations of God? A. The main creations of God are angels and humans.
35 Q. What are angels?
A. Angels are pure spirits without a body, created to adore and enjoy
God in Heaven.
35 Q. What are angels?
A. Angels are pure spirits without a body, created to worship and enjoy
God in Heaven.
"Angels" are not the same as saints. Saints are those who at one time lived upon the earth as we do, and who on account of their very good lives are now in Heaven. They had bodies as we have. The angels, on the contrary, never lived visibly upon the earth. In the beginning God was alone. We take great pleasure in looking at beautiful things. God, seeing His own beauty, and knowing that others would have very great pleasure and happiness in seeing Him, determined to create some beings who could enjoy this happiness; and thus He wished to share with them the happiness which He Himself derived from seeing His own beauty. Therefore He created angels who were to be in Heaven with Him, singing His praises and worshipping before His throne.
"Angels" are different from saints. Saints were once people who lived on earth like us, and because of their extraordinary lives, they're now in Heaven. They had physical bodies like we do. Angels, on the other hand, never visibly lived on earth. In the beginning, God was alone. We find great joy in observing beautiful things. God, recognizing His own beauty and knowing that others would find immense joy and happiness in seeing Him, decided to create beings who could experience this happiness; He wanted to share the joy that He felt from witnessing His own beauty. So, He created angels to be in Heaven with Him, singing His praises and worshiping at His throne.
The angels are not all equal in dignity, but are divided into nine classes, or choirs, according to their rank or office, and, as theologians tell us, arranged from the lowest to the highest and named as follows; angels, archangels, virtues, powers, principalities, dominations, thrones, cherubim, and seraphim. Archangels are higher than angels and are so called because sent to do the most important works. It was the Archangel Michael who drove Lucifer from Heaven and the Archangel Gabriel who announced to the Blessed Virgin that she was to be the Mother of God. The angels receive their names from the duties they perform. The word angel signifies messenger.
The angels aren’t all equal in rank; they’re divided into nine classes or choirs based on their position and role. As theologians explain, they’re arranged from the lowest to the highest and listed as follows: angels, archangels, virtues, powers, principalities, dominations, thrones, cherubim, and seraphim. Archangels are above angels and are called that because they are sent to carry out the most important tasks. It was the Archangel Michael who expelled Lucifer from Heaven, and the Archangel Gabriel who told the Blessed Virgin that she was going to be the Mother of God. The angels get their names based on the tasks they carry out. The word angel means messenger.
*36 Q. Were the angels created for any other purpose? A. The angels were also created to assist before the throne of God and to minister unto Him; they have often been sent as messengers from God to man; and are also appointed our guardians.
*36 Q. Were the angels created for any other purpose? A. The angels were also created to serve before God's throne and to minister to Him; they have often been sent as messengers from God to people; and they are also assigned as our guardians.
The duties of the angels are many. Some remain always in Heaven with God; some are sent to earth to be our guardians and to remain with us. Each of us has an angel to take care of us. He is with us night and day, and offers our prayers and good works to God. He prays for us, exhorts us to do good and avoid evil; and he protects us from dangers spiritual and temporal. How unfortunate then must one be to cause him to return to Heaven with sad complaints to God; such as: "The one whom I have in charge will not obey Thy laws or use the grace Thou sendest him: with all my efforts to save him, he continues to do wrong." He will be doubly sad when he sees other angels returning with good reports and receiving new graces for those whom God has committed to their care. If you love your guardian angel, never impose on him the painful duty of bringing to God the report of your evil doings.
The responsibilities of angels are many. Some always stay in Heaven with God; others are sent to earth to be our guardians and to be with us. Each of us has an angel looking out for us. He is with us day and night, presenting our prayers and good deeds to God. He prays for us, encourages us to do good and avoid evil; and he shields us from spiritual and earthly dangers. How unfortunate it must be to make him go back to Heaven with sad complaints to God, like: "The person I am responsible for will not follow Your laws or accept the grace You send them: despite all my efforts to save them, they keep doing wrong." He will feel even sadder seeing other angels return with good news and receive new blessings for those God has entrusted to their care. If you care for your guardian angel, never subject him to the painful duty of reporting your bad actions to God.
Now, how do we know that the angels offer our prayers and good works to God? We know it from the beautiful story of Tobias, told in the Holy Scripture. (Tobias). This holy man loved and feared God. He lived at a time when his people were persecuted by a most cruel king, who wished to force them to give up the true God and worship idols, but many of these good people suffered death rather than deny God and obey the wicked king. When they were put to death, their bodies were left lying on the ground, to be devoured by birds of prey or wild animals. Anyone caught burying them was to be put to death by the king's servants. Tobias used to carry the dead bodies of these holy martyrs into his house and bury them at night.
Now, how do we know that the angels present our prayers and good deeds to God? We know it from the beautiful story of Tobias, found in the Holy Scripture. (Tobias). This holy man loved and feared God. He lived at a time when his people were persecuted by a cruel king who wanted to force them to abandon the true God and worship idols, but many of these good people chose to die rather than deny God and obey the wicked king. When they were executed, their bodies were left on the ground to be eaten by birds of prey or wild animals. Anyone caught burying them was to be killed by the king's servants. Tobias used to bring the dead bodies of these holy martyrs into his home and bury them at night.
One day when he returned very tired he lay down by the wall of his house to rest, and, while lying there, some dirt fell into his eyes and he became blind. This Tobias had a young son whose name was also Tobias; and as he himself was now blind and poor, he wished to send his son into a certain city, at a good distance off, to collect some money that he had formerly loaned to a friend. As the young man did not know the way, his father sent him out to look for a guide. Young Tobias went out and found a beautiful young man to be his guide and he consented, and he brought Tobias to the distant city. As they were on their way they sat down by the bank of a river. Tobias went into the water near the edge, and soon a great fish rushed at him. Tobias called to his guide. The guide told him to take hold of the fish and drag it out upon the shore. There they killed it, and kept part of its flesh for food and part for medicine. Then they went on to the city, got the money and returned. The guide told young Tobias to rub the part of the fish he had taken for medicine upon his father's eyes. He did so, and immediately his father's eyes were cured and he saw. Then both the father and son were so delighted with this young guide, that they offered to give him half of all they had. He refused to take it and then told them he was the angel Raphael sent from God to be the guide of this good man's son. He told the old Tobias how he (the angel) had carried up to God his prayers and good works while he was burying the dead. When they heard he was an angel they fell down and reverenced him, being very much afraid. From this beautiful history we know that the angels carry our prayers and good works to God. Again we learn from the Holy Scripture (Gen. 28) in the history of another good man almost the same thing. The patriarch Jacob was on a journey, and being tired, he lay down to rest with his head upon a stone. As he lay there he had a vision in which he saw a great ladder reaching up from earth to Heaven. At the top he saw Almighty God standing, and on the ladder itself angels ascending and descending. Now the holy Fathers of the Church tell us this is what is really taking place; the angels are always going down and up from God to man, though not on a ladder and not visibly as they appeared to Jacob. Besides the guardian angel for each person, there are also guardian angels for each city and for each nation.
One day, after coming home extremely tired, he lay down against the wall of his house to rest. While he was lying there, some dirt got into his eyes, and he became blind. Tobias had a young son also named Tobias, and since he was now blind and poor, he wanted to send his son to a distant city to collect some money he had previously lent to a friend. Since the young man didn't know the way, his father sent him out to find a guide. Young Tobias went out and found a handsome young man to be his guide, and he agreed to help him. He took Tobias to the distant city. On their way, they stopped by the riverbank. Tobias waded into the water near the edge, and suddenly, a large fish attacked him. Tobias called for his guide, who instructed him to grab the fish and pull it to shore. They killed it, keeping part of the flesh for food and part for medicine. Then they continued to the city, got the money, and returned. The guide told young Tobias to apply the part of the fish he had taken for medicine to his father's eyes. He did so, and immediately his father's sight was restored. Both father and son were so grateful to this young guide that they offered to give him half of everything they had. He declined and revealed that he was the angel Raphael, sent by God to guide this good man's son. He told old Tobias how he had carried his prayers and good deeds to God while he was burying the dead. When they realized he was an angel, they fell down in reverence, terrified. From this wonderful story, we learn that angels carry our prayers and good works to God. Moreover, we see a similar account in the Holy Scripture (Gen. 28) involving another good man. The patriarch Jacob was on a journey, and feeling tired, he laid down to rest with his head on a stone. While he rested, he had a vision of a great ladder stretching from earth to Heaven. At the top, he saw Almighty God, with angels ascending and descending on the ladder. The holy Fathers of the Church explain that this is what is truly happening; angels are always moving between God and man, though not on a ladder and not visibly as they did in Jacob’s vision. Besides the guardian angel assigned to each person, there are also guardian angels for each city and nation.
Again (Gen. 19) angels appeared to Lot to warn him about the destruction of the wicked cities of Sodom and Gomorrha. Angels appeared also to the shepherds on the night Our Lord was born (Luke 2). The catechism says angels have no bodies—how, then, could they appear? They took bodies made of some very light substance which would make them visible, and appeared just like beautiful young men, clad in flowing garments, as you frequently see them represented in pictures. Angels were sometimes sent to punish men for their sins, as the angel who killed in one night 185,000 men in the army of the wicked king, Sennacherib, who blasphemed God, and was endeavoring to destroy Jerusalem, God's city. (4 Kgs. 19).
Again (Gen. 19), angels appeared to Lot to warn him about the destruction of the sinful cities of Sodom and Gomorrah. Angels also appeared to the shepherds on the night our Lord was born (Luke 2). The catechism says angels don’t have bodies—so how could they be seen? They took on bodies made of a very light substance that made them visible and appeared like beautiful young men, dressed in flowing garments, just like you often see in pictures. Angels were sometimes sent to punish people for their sins, like the angel who killed 185,000 men in one night in the army of the wicked king, Sennacherib, who blasphemed God and tried to destroy Jerusalem, God's city. (4 Kgs. 19).
But here is a difficulty. If God Himself watches over us and sees all things, why should the angels guard us? It is on account of God's goodness to us; though it is not necessary. He does not wish us to have any excuse for being bad, so He gives us each a special heavenly servant to watch and assist us by his prayers. If a friend received us into his house and did all he could for us himself, we should certainly be satisfied, but if he gave us a special servant, though it would not be necessary, he would show us great respect and kindness. Moreover whatever the angels do for us, we might say God Himself does, for the angels are only obeying His commands.
But here's the issue. If God is watching over us and sees everything, why do we need angels to protect us? It's because of God's goodness to us, although it's not necessary. He doesn’t want us to have any excuses for doing wrong, so He gives each of us a special heavenly helper to watch over us and support us with their prayers. If a friend welcomed us into their home and did everything they could for us, we would definitely appreciate it, but if they provided us with a special servant, even though it wasn't needed, it would show us great respect and kindness. Plus, whatever the angels do for us can be seen as being done by God Himself, since the angels are just following His orders.
*37 Q. Were the angels, as God created them, good and happy? A. The angels as God created them were good and happy.
*37 Q. Were the angels, as God created them, good and happy? A. The angels that God created were good and happy.
*38 Q. Did all the angels remain good and happy? A. All the angels did not remain good and happy; many of them sinned and were cast into Hell; and these are called devils or bad angels.
*38 Q. Did all the angels stay good and happy? A. Not all the angels stayed good and happy; many of them sinned and were thrown into Hell; these are known as devils or evil angels.
God did not admit the angels into His presence at once. He placed them for awhile on probation, as He did our first parents.
God didn't let the angels come into His presence right away. He put them on probation for a while, just like He did with our first parents.
One of these angels was most beautiful, and was named Lucifer, which means light-bearer. He was so perfect that he seems to have forgotten that he received all his beauty and intelligence from God, and not content with what he had, became sinfully proud and wished to be equal to God Himself. For his sin he and all his followers were driven out of Heaven, and God then created Hell, in which they were to suffer for all eternity. This same Lucifer is now called Satan, and more commonly the devil, and those who accompanied him in his fall, devils, or fallen angels.
One of these angels was incredibly beautiful and was named Lucifer, which means light-bringer. He was so flawless that he seemed to have forgotten that he received all his beauty and intelligence from God. Not satisfied with what he had, he became sinfully proud and wanted to be equal to God Himself. Because of his sin, he and all his followers were cast out of Heaven, and God then created Hell, where they would suffer for all eternity. This same Lucifer is now known as Satan, and more commonly as the devil, and those who followed him in his fall are referred to as devils or fallen angels.
Lesson 5
ON OUR FIRST PARENTS AND THEIR FALL
Lesson 5
ABOUT OUR FIRST PARENTS AND THEIR FALL
39 Q. Who were the first man and woman? A. The first man and woman were Adam and Eve.
39 Q. Who were the first man and woman? A. The first man and woman were Adam and Eve.
In the beginning God created all things; something particular on each of the six days of Creation. (Gen. 1). On the first day He made light, on the second, the firmament, or the heavens, and on the sixth day He created man and called him Adam. God wished Adam to have a companion; so one day He caused Adam to fall into a deep sleep, and then took from his side a rib, out of which he formed Eve. Now God could have made Eve as He made Adam, by forming her body out of the clay of the earth and breathing into it a soul, but He made Eve out of Adam's rib to show that they were to be husband and wife, and to impress upon their minds the nature and sacredness of the love and union that should exist between them.
In the beginning, God created everything; something specific each of the six days of Creation. (Gen. 1). On the first day, He made light; on the second, the sky or heavens; and on the sixth day, He created man and named him Adam. God wanted Adam to have a companion, so one day He put Adam into a deep sleep and took a rib from his side, which He used to create Eve. God could have made Eve like He created Adam, by shaping her body from the earth’s clay and breathing a soul into her, but He chose to create Eve from Adam's rib to show that they were meant to be husband and wife, emphasizing the nature and sacredness of the love and union between them.
40 Q. Were Adam and Eve innocent and holy when they came from the hand
of God?
A. Adam and Eve were innocent and holy when they came from the hand of
God.
40 Q. Were Adam and Eve innocent and pure when they were created by God?
A. Adam and Eve were innocent and pure when they were created by God.
God placed Adam and Eve in Paradise, a large, beautiful garden, and gave them power over all the other creatures. Adam gave all the animals their appropriate names and they were obedient to him. Even lions, tigers, and other animals that we now fear so much, came and played about him. Our first parents, in their state of original innocence, were the happy friends of God, without sorrow or suffering of any kind.
God put Adam and Eve in Paradise, a large, beautiful garden, and gave them authority over all the other creatures. Adam named all the animals, and they followed his commands. Even lions, tigers, and other animals that we now fear so much came and played around him. Our first parents, in their innocent state, were happy friends of God, experiencing no sorrow or suffering at all.
*41 Q. Did God give any command to Adam and Eve? A. To try their obedience God commanded Adam and Eve not to eat of a certain fruit which grew in the garden of Paradise.
*41 Q. Did God give any command to Adam and Eve? A. To test their obedience, God told Adam and Eve not to eat a specific fruit that grew in the garden of Paradise.
He told them (Gen. 2) they could take of all the fruits in the garden except the fruit of one tree, and if they disobeyed Him by eating the fruit of that tree, they should surely die. God might have pointed out any tree, because it was simply a test of obedience. He gave them a very simple command, for if we are faithful in little things we shall surely be faithful in greater. Moreover, it is not precisely the consideration of what is forbidden, but of the authority by which it is forbidden that should deter us from violating the command and prove our fidelity. Thus disobedience to our parents and superiors, even in little things, becomes sinful. Someone might say: "Why did God not try their obedience by one of the Ten Commandments?" Let us examine them. "Remember the Sabbath." That one would be unnecessary: for every day was Sabbath with them; the only work was to praise and serve God. "Thou shalt not steal." They could not; everything was theirs; and so for the other Commandments. Therefore, God gave them a simple command telling them: If you obey, you and all your posterity will be happy; every wish will be gratified, neither sorrow nor affliction shall come upon you and you shall never die; but if, on the contrary, you disobey, countless evils, misery and death will be your punishment. The earth, now so fruitful, shall bring forth no crops without cultivation, and after years of toil the dead bodies of yourselves and children must lie buried in its soil. So having the gift of free will they could take their choice, and either keep His command and be happy, or disobey Him and be miserable.
He told them (Gen. 2) they could eat from all the trees in the garden except for one. If they disobeyed Him by eating from that tree, they would definitely die. God could have chosen any tree for this command; it was just a test of obedience. He gave them a very simple rule because if we are faithful in small things, we will surely be faithful in bigger ones. Also, it's not just about what is forbidden, but about the authority behind the prohibition that should stop us from breaking the command and show our loyalty. Therefore, disobeying our parents and leaders, even in minor matters, becomes wrong. Someone might ask, "Why didn't God test their obedience with one of the Ten Commandments?" Let's look at them. "Remember the Sabbath." That one wouldn't work because every day was a Sabbath for them; their only job was to praise and serve God. "You shall not steal." They couldn't steal; everything belonged to them; and the same applies to the other Commandments. So, God gave them a straightforward command telling them: If you obey, you and your descendants will be happy; every wish will be fulfilled, you will not experience sorrow or suffering, and you will never die. However, if you disobey, countless troubles, misery, and death will be your punishment. The earth, which is so fruitful now, will not yield crops without hard work, and after years of labor, your dead bodies and those of your children will have to be buried in its soil. With the gift of free will, they could choose either to follow His command and be happy or to disobey Him and be miserable.
*42 Q. Which were the chief blessings intended for Adam and Eve, had they remained faithful to God? A. The chief blessings intended for Adam and Eve, had they remained faithful to God, were a constant state of happiness in this life and everlasting glory in the next.
*42 Q. What were the main blessings meant for Adam and Eve if they had stayed faithful to God? A. The main blessings meant for Adam and Eve, if they had stayed faithful to God, were continuous happiness in this life and eternal glory in the next.
Our first parents and their children were not to remain in the garden of Paradise forever, but were, after spending their allotted time of trial or probation upon earth, to be taken body and soul into Heaven without being obliged to die.
Our first parents and their children weren't meant to stay in the Garden of Paradise forever. Instead, after they completed their designated time of testing on Earth, they would be taken—body and soul—into Heaven without having to die.
43 Q. Did Adam and Eve remain faithful to God? A. Adam and Eve did not remain faithful to God, but broke His commandment by eating the forbidden fruit.
43 Q. Did Adam and Eve stay loyal to God? A. Adam and Eve did not stay loyal to God; they broke His commandment by eating the forbidden fruit.
As it is told in the Bible (Gen. 3), Eve went to the forbidden tree and was standing looking at it, when the devil came in the form of a serpent and, tempting, told her to take some of the fruit and eat. It does not appear that she went and tasted the fruit of all the other trees and finally came to this one, but rather that she went directly to the forbidden tree first. Do we not sometimes imitate Eve's conduct? As soon as we know a certain thing is forbidden we are more strongly tempted to try it.
As described in the Bible (Gen. 3), Eve approached the forbidden tree and was looking at it when the devil appeared as a serpent and tempted her to take some of the fruit and eat it. It seems she didn't sample the fruit from all the other trees first; instead, she headed straight for the forbidden tree. Don’t we sometimes act like Eve? Once we learn something is off-limits, we feel an even stronger urge to try it.
See, then, what caused Eve's sin. She went into the dangerous occasion, and was admiring the forbidden fruit when the tempter came. She listened to him, yielded to his wicked suggestions, and sinned. So will it be with us if through curiosity we desire to see or hear things forbidden; for once in the danger the devil will soon be on hand to tempt us—not visibly indeed, for that would alarm us and defeat his purpose, but invisibly, like our guardian angels; for the devil is a fallen angel who still possesses all the characteristics of an angel except goodness. But this is not all. Eve not only took and ate the fruit herself, but induced Adam to do likewise. Most sinners imitate Eve in that respect. Not satisfied with offending God themselves, they lead others into sin.
See what caused Eve's sin. She was in a dangerous situation, admiring the forbidden fruit when the tempter appeared. She listened to him, gave in to his evil suggestions, and sinned. The same will happen to us if we, out of curiosity, seek to see or hear forbidden things; once we are in danger, the devil will quickly be there to tempt us—not visibly, of course, since that would scare us and ruin his plan, but invisibly, like our guardian angels; the devil is a fallen angel who still has all the traits of an angel except for goodness. But that’s not all. Eve didn't just take and eat the fruit herself; she also persuaded Adam to do the same. Most sinners follow Eve's example in that regard. Not content with offending God themselves, they lead others into sin.
Why should the devil tempt us? God created man to be in Heaven, but the fallen angels were jealous of man, and tempted him to sin so that he too should be kept out of Heaven and might never enjoy what they lost; just as envious people do not wish others to have what they cannot have themselves.
Why should the devil tempt us? God made humans to be in Heaven, but the fallen angels were jealous of us and tempted us to sin so that we too would be kept out of Heaven and could never enjoy what they lost; just like envious people don't want others to have what they can't have themselves.
44 Q. What befell Adam and Eve on account of their sin? A. Adam and Eve on account of their sin lost innocence and holiness, and were doomed to sickness and death.
44 Q. What happened to Adam and Eve because of their sin? A. Adam and Eve lost their innocence and holiness due to their sin, and they were condemned to illness and death.
They were innocent and holy because they were the friends of God and in a state of grace, but by their sin they lost His grace and friendship. "Doomed" means sentenced or condemned. The first evil result, then, of Adam's sin was that he lost innocence and made his body a rebel against his soul. Then he was to suffer poverty, hunger, cold, sickness, death, and every kind of ill; but the worst consequence of all was that God closed Heaven against him. After a few years' trial, as we said, God was to take him into Heaven; but now He has closed it against Adam and his posterity. All the people in the world could never induce God to open it again; for He closed it in accordance with His promise, and man was an exile and outcast from his heavenly home.
They were innocent and pure because they were friends of God and in a state of grace, but through their sin, they lost that grace and friendship. "Doomed" means sentenced or condemned. The first bad outcome of Adam's sin was that he lost his innocence and turned his body into a rebel against his soul. As a result, he was destined to experience poverty, hunger, cold, sickness, death, and all kinds of suffering; but the worst consequence was that God shut Heaven to him. After a few years of testing, as we mentioned, God intended to bring him into Heaven; but now He has closed it off to Adam and his descendants. No one in the world could persuade God to reopen it; for He closed it based on His promise, and humanity became exiled and cast away from their heavenly home.
45 Q. What evil befell us on account of the disobedience of our first parents? A. On account of the disobedience of our first parents we all share in their sin and punishment, as we should have shared in their happiness if they had remained faithful.
45 Q. What bad stuff happened to us because our first parents disobeyed? A. Because of our first parents' disobedience, we all share in their sin and punishment, just like we would have shared in their happiness if they had stayed faithful.
Does it not seem strange that we should suffer for the sin of our first parents, when we had nothing to do with it? No. It happens every day that children suffer for the faults of their parents and we do not wonder at it. Let us suppose a man's father leaves him a large fortune—houses, land, and money—and that he and his children are happy in the enjoyment of their inheritance. The children are sent to the best schools, have everything they desire now, and bright hopes of happiness and prosperity in the future. But alas! their hopes are vain. The father begins to drink or gamble, and soon the great fortune is squandered. House after house is sold and dollar after dollar spent, till absolute poverty comes upon the children, and the sad condition of their home tells of their distress. Do they not suffer for the sins of their father, though they had nothing to do with them? Indeed, many families in the world suffer thus through the faults of others, and most frequently of some of their members. Could you blame the grandfather for leaving the estate? Certainly not; for it was goodness on his part that made him give. Let us apply this example. What God gave Adam was to be ours also, and he squandered and misused it because he had free will, which God could not take from him without changing his nature; for it is our free will and intelligence that make us men, distinct from and superior to all other animals. They can live, grow, feel, hear, see, etc., as we can, but the want of intelligence and free will leaves them mere brutes. Therefore, if God took away Adam's intelligence and free will, He would have made him a mere animal—though the most perfect.
Doesn’t it seem strange that we should suffer for the sin of our first parents when we had nothing to do with it? Actually, it happens every day that children suffer for their parents' mistakes, and we don’t think twice about it. Imagine a man's father leaves him a huge fortune—houses, land, and money—and he and his children enjoy their inheritance happily. The kids go to the best schools, have everything they want now, and bright hopes for happiness and success in the future. But unfortunately, their hopes are dashed. The father starts drinking or gambling, and before long, the great fortune is wasted. House after house is sold and dollar after dollar spent until the children are left in total poverty, and the sad state of their home shows their distress. Don’t they suffer for their father’s sins, even though they had nothing to do with them? Many families around the world suffer like this because of the mistakes of others, often from within their own ranks. Would you blame the grandfather for leaving the estate? Certainly not; it was gracious of him to give. Let’s apply this example. What God gave to Adam was meant to be ours too, but he wasted and misused it because of his free will, which God couldn’t take away without changing his nature. Our free will and intelligence make us human, distinct from and superior to all other animals. Other creatures can live, grow, feel, hear, see, etc., just as we can, but their lack of intelligence and free will makes them mere beasts. So, if God took away Adam's intelligence and free will, He would have made him just another animal—even the most perfect one.
When a man becomes insane or loses the use of his intelligence and free will, we place him in an asylum and take care of him as we would a tame animal, seldom allowing him to go about without being watched and guarded.
When a man goes insane or loses his ability to think clearly and make his own choices, we put him in a mental hospital and take care of him like we would a domesticated animal, rarely letting him roam free without supervision.
Let us take another example. Suppose I have a friend who is addicted to the excessive drinking of strong liquor, and I say to him: "If you give up that detestable habit for one year, I will make you a present of this beautiful house worth several thousand dollars. It will be yours as long as you live, and at your death you may leave it to your children. I do not owe you anything, but offer this as a free gift if you comply with my request." My friend accepts the offer on these conditions, but the very next day deliberately breaks his promise. I do not give him the house, because he did not keep his agreement; and can anyone say on that account that I am unjust or unkind to him or his children? Certainly not. Well, God acted in the same manner with Adam. He promised him Heaven, a home more beautiful than any earthly palace—the place Our Lord calls His father's house (John 14:2) and says there are many mansions, that is, dwelling places, in it. God promised this home to Adam on condition that he would observe one simple command. He had no right to Heaven, but was to receive it, according to the promise, as a free gift from God, and therefore God, who offered it conditionally, was not obliged to give it when Adam violated his part of the agreement.
Let’s consider another example. Imagine I have a friend who is addicted to drinking excessively. I say to him, "If you quit this terrible habit for a year, I’ll give you this beautiful house that’s worth several thousand dollars. It will be yours for life, and you can pass it down to your kids when you’re gone. I don’t owe you anything, but I’m offering this as a gift if you agree to my terms." My friend accepts, but the very next day he intentionally breaks his promise. I don’t give him the house because he didn’t keep his end of the deal; can anyone say that I’m being unfair or unkind to him or his kids? Absolutely not. In a similar way, God dealt with Adam. He promised Adam Heaven, a home more beautiful than any earthly palace—what Our Lord refers to as His father’s house (John 14:2), where there are many rooms. God promised this home to Adam on the condition that he followed one simple command. He had no right to Heaven, but was to receive it as a free gift from God according to that promise. Therefore, since God offered it conditionally, He was not obligated to give it when Adam broke his part of the agreement.
The example is not a perfect one, for there is this difference in the cases between Adam and my friend: when my friend does not get the house, he sustains a loss, it is true; but he might still be my friend as he was before, and live in my house; but when Adam lost Heaven, he lost God's friendship and grace, and the loss of all grace is to be in sin. So that Adam by breaking the command was left in sin; and as all his children sustain the same loss, they too are all left in sin till they are baptized.
The example isn't perfect because there's a difference between Adam and my friend: when my friend doesn't get the house, he experiences a loss, that's true; but he could still be my friend like before and live in my house. However, when Adam lost Heaven, he lost God's friendship and grace, and losing all grace means being in sin. So, by breaking the command, Adam was left in sin; and since all his descendants face the same loss, they too are all left in sin until they are baptized.
*46 Q. What other effects followed from the sin of our first parents? A. Our nature was corrupted by the sin of our first parents, which darkened our understanding, weakened our will, and left us a strong inclination to evil.
*46 Q. What other effects followed from the sin of our first parents? A. Our nature was damaged by the sin of our first parents, which clouded our understanding, weakened our will, and created a strong tendency toward evil.
Our "nature was corrupted" is what I have said of the body rebelling against the soul. Our "understanding darkened." Adam knew much more without study than the most intelligent men could learn now with constant application. Before his fall he saw things clearly and understood them well, but after his sin everything had to be learned by the slow process of study. Then the "will was weakened." Before he fell he could easily resist temptation, for his will was strong. You know we sin by the will, because unless we wish to do the evil we commit no sin; and if absolutely forced by others to do wrong, we are free from the guilt as long as our will despises and protests against the action. If forced, for example, to break my neighbor's window, I have not to answer in my conscience for the unjust act, because my will did not consent. So, on every occasion on which we sin, it is the will that yields to the temptation. After Adam's sin his will became weak and less able to resist temptation; and as we are sharers in his misfortune, we find great difficulty at times in overcoming sinful inclinations. But no matter how violent the temptation or how prolonged and fierce the struggle against it, we can always be victorious if determined not to yield; for God gives us sufficient grace to resist every temptation; and if anyone should excuse his fall by saying he could not help sinning, he would be guilty of falsehood.
Our "nature was corrupted" refers to the body rebelling against the soul. Our "understanding darkened." Adam knew far more without studying than the smartest people today could learn through constant effort. Before his fall, he understood things clearly and comprehensively, but after his sin, everything had to be learned through the slow process of study. Then the "will was weakened." Before he fell, he could easily resist temptation because his will was strong. We know we sin by choice; unless we desire to do wrong, we don’t commit a sin. If we are forced by others to do something wrong, we are free from guilt as long as our will rejects and protests against the action. For instance, if I’m forced to break my neighbor's window, I am not accountable in my conscience for the wrongful act because my will did not agree. So, on every occasion that we sin, it is the will that gives in to temptation. After Adam's sin, his will became weak and less capable of resisting temptation; and since we share in his misfortune, we often struggle to overcome sinful inclinations. However, no matter how strong the temptation or how long and intense the battle against it, we can always prevail if we are determined not to give in; for God provides us with enough grace to resist every temptation. If anyone tries to excuse their wrongdoing by claiming they couldn't help but sin, they would be lying.
"A strong inclination" to do wrong—that is, unless always on our guard against it. Our Lord once cautioned His Apostles (Matt. 26:41) to watch and pray lest they fall into temptation; teaching us also by the same warning that, besides praying against our spiritual enemies, we must watch their maneuvers and be ever ready to repel their attacks.
"A strong tendency" to do wrong—unless we’re always on guard against it. Our Lord once warned His Apostles (Matt. 26:41) to watch and pray so they wouldn’t fall into temptation; He also teaches us through this warning that, in addition to praying against our spiritual enemies, we need to keep an eye on their moves and be ready to defend ourselves against their attacks.
47 Q. What is the sin called which we inherit from our first parents? A. The sin which we inherit from our first parents is called Original Sin.
47 Q. What do we call the sin we inherit from our first parents? A. The sin we inherit from our first parents is called Original Sin.
*48 Q. Why is this sin called original? A. This sin is called original because it comes down to us from our first parents, and we are brought into the world with its guilt on our souls.
*48 Q. Why is this sin called original? A. This sin is called original because it is passed down to us from our first parents, and we are born into the world with its guilt on our souls.
*49 Q. Does this corruption of our nature remain in us after Original Sin is forgiven? A. This corruption of our nature and other punishments remain in us after Original Sin is forgiven.
*49 Q. Does this corruption of our nature stay with us even after Original Sin is forgiven? A. This corruption of our nature and other consequences continue to affect us even after Original Sin is forgiven.
It remains that we may merit by overcoming its temptations; and also that we may be kept humble by remembering our former sinful and unhappy state.
It’s important that we earn merit by resisting its temptations and also that we stay humble by remembering our past sinful and unhappy state.
50 Q. Was anyone ever preserved from Original Sin? A. The Blessed Virgin Mary, through the merits of her divine Son, was preserved free from the guilt of Original Sin, and this privilege is called her Immaculate Conception.
50 Q. Has anyone ever been saved from Original Sin? A. The Blessed Virgin Mary, thanks to the merits of her divine Son, was kept free from the guilt of Original Sin, and this special grace is known as her Immaculate Conception.
The Blessed Virgin was to be the Mother of the Son of God. Now it would not be proper for the Mother of God to be even for one moment the servant of the devil, or under his power. If the Blessed Virgin had been in Original Sin, she would have been in the service of the devil. Whatever disgraces a mother disgraces also her son; so Our Lord would never permit His dear Mother to be subject to the devil, and consequently He, through His merits, saved her from Original Sin. She is the only one of the whole human race who enjoys this great privilege, and it is called her "Immaculate Conception," that is, she was conceived—brought into existence by her mother—without having any spot or stain of sin upon her soul, and hence without Original Sin.
The Blessed Virgin was to be the Mother of the Son of God. It wouldn’t be right for the Mother of God to be even for a moment the servant of the devil or under his influence. If the Blessed Virgin had been in Original Sin, she would have been serving the devil. Whatever brings shame to a mother also brings shame to her son; therefore, Our Lord would never allow His beloved Mother to be under the devil's control, and so He, through His merits, saved her from Original Sin. She is the only one in all of humanity who has this great privilege, known as her "Immaculate Conception," meaning she was conceived—brought into existence by her mother—without any spot or stain of sin on her soul, and thus without Original Sin.
Our Lord came into the world to crush the power which the devil had exercised over men from the fall of Adam. This He did by meriting grace for them and giving them this spiritual help to withstand the devil in all his attacks upon them. As the Blessed Mother was never under the devil's power, next to God she has the greatest strength against him, and she will help us to resist him if we seek her aid. The devil himself knows her power and fears her, and if he sees her coming to our assistance will quickly fly. Never fail, then, in time of temptation to call upon our Blessed Mother; she will hear and help you and pray to God for you.
Our Lord came into the world to defeat the control that the devil had over humanity since the fall of Adam. He accomplished this by earning grace for them and providing the spiritual support needed to resist the devil in all his attacks. Since the Blessed Mother was never under the devil's control, she has the greatest strength against him next to God, and she will help us resist him if we ask for her support. The devil himself knows her power and fears her, and if he sees her coming to our aid, he will quickly flee. So, during times of temptation, don’t hesitate to call on our Blessed Mother; she will listen to you, help you, and pray to God on your behalf.
Lesson 6
ON SIN AND ITS KINDS
Lesson 6
ON SIN AND ITS TYPES
51 Q. Is Original Sin the only kind of sin? A. Original Sin is not the only kind of sin; there is another kind of sin which we commit ourselves, called actual sin.
51 Q. Is Original Sin the only type of sin? A. Original Sin isn’t the only type of sin; there’s another type of sin we commit ourselves, called actual sin.
Sin is first or chiefly divided into original and actual; that is, into the sin we inherit from our first parents and the sin we commit ourselves. We may commit "actual" sin in two ways; either by doing what we should not do—stealing, for example—and thus we have a sin of commission, that is, a bad act committed; or by not doing what we should do—not hearing Mass on Sunday, for example—and thus we have a sin of omission, that is, a good act omitted. So it is not enough to simply do no harm, we must also do some good. Heaven is a reward, and we must do something to merit it. Suppose a man employed a boy to do the work of his office, and when he came in the morning found that the boy had neglected the work assigned to him, and when spoken to about it simply answered: "Sir, I did no harm"; do you think he would be entitled to his wages? Of course he did not and should do no harm; but is his employer to pay him wages for that? Certainly not. In like manner, God is not going to reward us for doing no harm; but on the contrary, He will punish us if we do wrong, and give no reward unless we perform the work He has marked out for us. Neither would the office boy deserve any wages if he did only what pleases himself, and not the work assigned by his master. In the same way, God will not accept any worship or religion but the one He has revealed. He tells us Himself how He wishes to be worshipped, and our own invented methods will not please Him. Hence we see the folly of those who say that all religions are equally good, and that we can be saved by practicing any of them. We can be saved only in the one religion which God Himself has instituted, and by which He wishes to be honored. Many also foolishly believe, or say they believe, that if they are honest, sober, and the like, doing no injury to anyone, they shall be saved without the practice of any form of religious worship. But how about God's laws and commands? Are they to be despised, disregarded, and neglected entirely, without any fear of punishment? Surely not! And persons who thus think they are doing no harm are neglecting to serve God—the greatest harm they can do, and for which they will lose Heaven. God, we are told, assigned to everyone in this world a certain work to perform in a particular state of life, and this work is called "vocation." One, for instance, is to be a priest; another, a layman; one married; another single, etc. It is important for us to discover our true vocation; for if we are in the state of life to which God has called us, we shall be happy; but if we select our own work, our own state of life without consulting Him, we shall seldom be happy in it. How are we to know our vocation? Chiefly by praying to God and asking Him to make it known to us. Then if He gives us a strong inclination—constant, or nearly constant—for a certain state of life, and the ability to fulfill its duties, we may well believe that God wishes us to be in that state.
Sin is primarily divided into original sin and actual sin; that is, the sin we inherit from our first parents and the sin we commit ourselves. We can commit "actual" sin in two ways: either by doing something we shouldn't do—like stealing—which is a sin of commission, or by failing to do something we should do—like not attending Mass on Sunday—which is a sin of omission. Therefore, it's not enough to just avoid doing harm; we also need to do good. Heaven is a reward, and we must do something to deserve it. Imagine a man who hires a boy to handle the work in his office. If the boy shows up in the morning and hasn’t completed the tasks he was assigned, and when asked about it simply says, "Sir, I didn’t do any harm," do you think he should get paid? Of course, he didn’t—and shouldn’t—do any harm; but should his boss pay him for that? Definitely not. Similarly, God isn't going to reward us for just avoiding harm; instead, He will punish us if we do wrong and won’t reward us unless we fulfill the tasks He has set for us. The office boy also wouldn’t deserve any pay if he only did what pleased him and ignored his boss’s assignments. In the same way, God will not accept any form of worship or religion other than the one He has revealed. He clearly tells us how He wants to be worshipped, and our own made-up methods won’t satisfy Him. This highlights the foolishness of those who claim that all religions are equally valid and that we can be saved by practicing any of them. We can only be saved through the one religion that God Himself established, which is how He wishes to be honored. Many mistakenly believe, or claim to believe, that if they are honest, sober, and do no harm to others, they will be saved without any religious practices. But what about God's laws and commands? Should they be ignored and disregarded without any concern for consequences? Absolutely not! People who think they’re doing no harm are actually neglecting to serve God—the worst harm they can inflict, which could cost them Heaven. We’re told that God has assigned everyone a specific task in this world based on their state of life, referred to as "vocation." For example, some are meant to be priests, others laypeople, some married, others single, etc. It’s essential for us to discover our true vocation; if we follow the state of life that God has called us to, we will be happy. However, if we choose our own path without seeking His guidance, we will likely find little happiness in it. How can we know our vocation? Primarily by praying to God and asking Him to reveal it to us. Then, if He gives us a strong, consistent inclination toward a particular state of life, along with the ability to fulfill its responsibilities, we can believe that God wants us to be in that role.
After we have begged God's assistance, we must ask our confessor's advice in the matter, and listen attentively to what the Holy Ghost inspires him to say. The signs of our vocation are, therefore, as stated: first, a strong desire, and second, an aptitude for the state to which we believe we are called. For example, a young man might be very holy, but if unable to learn, he could never be a priest. Another might be very learned and holy, but if too sickly to perform a priest's duties, he could not, or at least would not, be ordained. Another might be learned and healthy, but not virtuous, and so he could never be a priest. Aptitude, therefore, means all the qualities necessary, whether of mind, or soul, or body. The same is true for a young girl who wishes to become a religious; and the same, indeed, for any person's vocation. We should never enter a state of life to which we are not called, simply to please parents or others. Neither should we be persuaded by them to give up a state to which we are called; for we should embrace our true vocation at any sacrifice, that in it we may serve God better, and be more certain of saving our souls. Thus, parents and guardians who prevent their children from entering the state to which they are called may sin grievously by exposing them to eternal loss of salvation. Their sin is all the greater when they try to influence their children in this matter for selfish or worldly motives. As they may be selfish and prejudiced without knowing it, they too, should ask the advice of their confessor, and good persons of experience. Oh! how many children, sons and daughters, are made unhappy all the days of their life by parents or superiors forcing them into some state to which they were not called, or by keeping them from one to which they were called. This matter of your vocation rests with yourselves and Almighty God, and you are free to do what He directs without consideration for anyone.
After asking for God's help, we need to seek our confessor's advice on the situation and pay close attention to what the Holy Spirit inspires him to say. The signs of our calling are, as mentioned: first, a strong desire, and second, a suitability for the state we believe we are called to. For instance, a young man might be very devout, but if he's unable to learn, he could never be a priest. Another might be knowledgeable and devout, but if he's too unhealthy to fulfill a priest's responsibilities, he wouldn't be ordained. Another might be knowledgeable and healthy, but lacking in virtue, which would prevent him from being a priest. Suitability encompasses all the necessary qualities, whether of mind, soul, or body. This also applies to a young woman who wants to become a nun, and indeed to anyone's vocation. We should never pursue a life path we are not called to just to make our parents or others happy. We also shouldn't be swayed by them to abandon a calling we are meant for; we should embrace our true vocation at any cost, as it allows us to serve God better and have a greater certainty of saving our souls. Thus, parents and guardians who stop their children from pursuing the calling meant for them may commit a serious sin by putting their salvation at risk. Their sin is even worse if they try to influence their children out of selfish or materialistic motives. Since they might unknowingly act out of selfishness and bias, they should also seek the guidance of their confessor and wise, experienced individuals. Oh, how many children, sons and daughters, live their lives unhappy because their parents or superiors force them into paths they aren’t called to or keep them from the ones they are meant to follow. This matter of your vocation lies between you and God, and you are free to follow His guidance without considering anyone else.
52 Q. What is actual sin? A. Actual sin is any willful thought, word, deed, or omission contrary to the law of God.
52 Q. What is actual sin? A. Actual sin is any intentional thought, word, action, or failure to act that goes against the law of God.
Three ways we may sin, by "thought"—allowing our minds to dwell on sinful things; "word"—by cursing, telling lies, etc.; "deed"—by any kind of bad action. But to be sins, these thoughts, words and deeds must be willful; that is, we must fully know what we are doing, and be free in doing it. Then they must be "contrary to the law of God"; that is, violate some law He commands us to obey, whether it be a law He gave directly Himself, or through His Church. We can also violate God's law by neglecting to observe it, and thus sin, provided the neglect be willful, and the thing neglected commanded by God or by His Church.
Three ways we can sin are through "thought"—letting our minds focus on sinful things; "word"—by swearing, lying, etc.; "deed"—through any kind of bad action. But for these to be sins, our thoughts, words, and actions must be deliberate; that is, we need to fully understand what we’re doing and be free to choose it. Then they must be "contrary to the law of God"; meaning, they violate a command He has given us to follow, whether directly from Him or through His Church. We can also break God's law by failing to follow it, and this counts as sin, as long as the neglect is deliberate and the command is from God or His Church.
53 Q. How many kinds of actual sin are there? A. There are two kinds of actual sin—mortal and venial.
53 Q. How many types of actual sin are there? A. There are two types of actual sin—mortal and venial.
"Mortal," that is, the sin which kills the soul. When a man receives a very severe wound, we say he is mortally wounded; that is, he will die from the wound. As breath shows there is life in the body, so grace is the life of the soul; when all the breath is out of the body, we say the man is dead. He can perform no action to help himself or others. So when all grace is out of the soul we say it is dead, because it is reduced to the condition of a dead body. It can do no action worthy of merit, such as a soul should do; that is, it can do no action that God is bound to reward—it is dead. But you will say the soul never dies. You mean it will never cease to exist; but we call it dead when it has lost all its power to do supernatural good.
"Mortal," refers to the sin that kills the soul. When someone suffers a very serious injury, we say they are mortally wounded; that means they will die from the injury. Just as breath indicates there is life in the body, grace represents the life of the soul; when all the breath leaves the body, we say the person is dead. They can't perform any actions to help themselves or others. Similarly, when all grace is gone from the soul, we say it is dead, as it has been reduced to the state of a lifeless body. It can’t perform any actions worthy of merit, which a soul should be able to do; in other words, it can’t do anything that God is obligated to reward—it is dead. However, you may argue that the soul never truly dies. You mean it will never stop existing; but we consider it dead when it has lost all its ability to do supernatural good.
"Venial" sin does not drive out all the grace; it wounds the soul, it weakens it just as slight wounds weaken the body. If it falls very frequently into venial sin, it will fall very soon into mortal sin also; for the Holy Scripture says that he that contemneth small things shall fall by little and little. (Ecclus. 19:1). A venial sin seems a little thing, but if we do not avoid it we shall by degrees fall into greater, or mortal, sin. Venial sin makes God less friendly to us and displeases Him. Now if we really love God, we will not displease Him even in the most trifling things.
"Venial" sin doesn't remove all grace; it hurts the soul and weakens it just like minor wounds weaken the body. If someone frequently commits venial sin, they will soon fall into mortal sin as well; for the Holy Scripture says that he who disregards small things will gradually fall. (Ecclus. 19:1). A venial sin may seem minor, but if we don’t avoid it, we will gradually slip into greater sins, or mortal sins. Venial sin makes God less friendly towards us and upsets Him. If we truly love God, we will not upset Him even in the smallest matters.
54 Q. What is mortal sin? A. Mortal sin is a grievous offense against the law of God.
54 Q. What is mortal sin? A. Mortal sin is a serious violation of God's law.
"Grievous"—that is, very great or serious. "Against the law." If we are in doubt whether anything is sinful or not, we must ask ourselves: is it forbidden by God or His Church? and if we do not know of any law forbidding it, it cannot be a sin, at least for us.
"Grievous"—meaning very serious. "Against the law." If we're unsure whether something is a sin or not, we should ask ourselves: is it forbidden by God or His Church? And if we can't find any law against it, then it can't be a sin, at least for us.
Suppose, for example, a boy should doubt whether it is sinful or not to fly a kite. Well, is there any law of God or of His Church saying it is sinful to fly a kite? If not, then it cannot be a sin. But it might be sinful for another reason, namely, his parents or superiors might forbid it, and there is a law of God saying you must not disobey your parents or superiors. Therefore a thing not sinful in itself, that is, not directly forbidden by God or His Church, may become sinful for some other reason well known to us.
Suppose, for example, a boy wonders whether flying a kite is a sin or not. Is there any law from God or His Church that says flying a kite is sinful? If there isn’t, then it can't be a sin. However, it could be wrong for another reason; namely, his parents or other authority figures might prohibit it, and there is a command from God that says you shouldn't disobey your parents or authority figures. So, something that isn’t sinful in itself—meaning it's not directly prohibited by God or His Church—can still become sinful for other well-known reasons.
We must not, however, doubt concerning the sinfulness or lawfulness of everything we do; for that would be foolish and lead us to be scrupulous. If we doubt at all we should have some good reason for doubting, that is, for believing that the thing we are about to do is or is not forbidden. When, therefore, we have such a doubt we must seek information from those who can enlighten us on the subject, so that we may act without the danger of sinning. It is our intention that makes the act we perform sinful or not. Let me explain. Suppose during Lent a person should mistake Friday for Thursday and should eat meat—that person would not commit a real sin, because it is not a sin to eat meat on an ordinary Thursday. He would commit what we call a material sin; that is, his action would be a sin if he really knew what he was doing. On the other hand, if the person, thinking it was Friday when it was really Thursday, ate meat, knowing it to be forbidden, that person would commit a mortal sin, because he intended to do so. Therefore, if what we do is not known to be a sin while we do it, it is no sin for us and cannot become a sin afterwards. But as soon as we know or learn that what we did was wrong, it would be a sin if we did the same thing again. In the same way, everything we do thinking it to be wrong or sinful is wrong and sinful for us, though it may not be wrong for those who know better. Again, it is sinful to judge others for doing wrong, because they may not know that what they do is sinful. It would be better for us to instruct than to blame them. The best we can do, therefore, is to learn well all God's laws and the laws of His Church as they are taught in the catechism, so that we may know when we are violating them or when we are not, i.e., when we are sinning and when we are not.
We shouldn't doubt the sinfulness or lawfulness of everything we do; that would be silly and make us overly cautious. If we have any doubts, we should have a good reason for them — meaning we should believe that what we’re about to do is or isn’t forbidden. So, when we have such doubts, we need to seek advice from those who can help us understand the issue, so we can act without risking sin. It’s our intention that makes our actions sinful or not. Let me explain. For example, if someone mistakenly thinks it’s Friday during Lent and eats meat, they wouldn’t actually be committing a real sin because it’s not a sin to eat meat on a regular Thursday. They would be committing what we call a material sin; their actions would be sinful if they truly understood what they were doing. On the other hand, if the person, believing it was Friday when it was really Thursday, ate meat while knowing it was forbidden, then they would be committing a mortal sin because that was their intention. Therefore, if we don’t know something is a sin while we’re doing it, it isn’t a sin for us and can’t become a sin later. But as soon as we find out that what we did was wrong, it would be a sin if we did it again. Similarly, everything we do while believing it to be wrong or sinful is considered wrong and sinful for us, even if it isn’t wrong for those who know better. Also, it's wrong to judge others for doing wrong because they might not realize that their actions are sinful. It’s better to teach them than to blame them. So, the best thing we can do is to study God’s laws and the laws of His Church as they are explained in the catechism, so we can discern when we are violating them and when we are not — in other words, when we are sinning and when we are not.
*55 Q. Why is this sin called mortal? A. This sin is called mortal because it deprives us of spiritual life, which is sanctifying grace, and brings everlasting death and damnation on the soul.
*55 Q. Why is this sin called mortal? A. This sin is called mortal because it takes away our spiritual life, which is sanctifying grace, and leads to eternal death and damnation of the soul.
When the soul is sent to Hell it is dead forever, because never again will it be able to do a single meritorious act.
When the soul is sent to Hell, it is dead forever, because it will never again be able to perform a single good deed.
*56 Q. How many things are necessary to make a sin mortal? A. To make a sin mortal three things are necessary: a grievous matter, sufficient reflection, and full consent of the will.
*56 Q. How many things are needed for a sin to be considered mortal? A. For a sin to be considered mortal, three things are required: a serious matter, adequate reflection, and complete consent of the will.
"Grievous matter." To steal is a sin. Now, if you steal only a pin the act of stealing in that case could not be a mortal sin, because the "matter," namely, the stealing of an ordinary pin, is not grievous. But suppose it was a diamond pin of great value, then it would surely be "grievous matter." "Sufficient reflection," that is, you must know what you are doing at the time you do it. For example, suppose while you stole the diamond pin you thought you were stealing a pin with a small piece of glass, of little value, you would not have sufficient reflection and would not commit a mortal sin till you found out that what you had stolen was a valuable diamond; if you continued to keep it after learning your mistake, you would surely commit a mortal sin. "Full consent." Suppose you were shooting at a target and accidentally killed a man: you would not have the sin of murder, because you did not will or wish to kill a man.
"Serious matter." Stealing is a sin. Now, if you steal just a pin, that act wouldn’t be considered a mortal sin, because the "matter," essentially the theft of an ordinary pin, isn't serious. But if it were a diamond pin worth a lot, then it would definitely be "serious matter." "Sufficient reflection" means you need to know what you’re doing at the time of the act. For instance, if you stole the diamond pin thinking it was just a pin with a small piece of glass and little value, you wouldn't have sufficient reflection and wouldn't commit a mortal sin until you realized it was a valuable diamond; if you kept it after discovering your mistake, you would definitely commit a mortal sin. "Full consent." If you were aiming at a target and accidentally killed someone, you wouldn’t be guilty of murder because you didn’t intend to kill anyone.
Therefore three things are necessary that your act may be a mortal sin: (1) The act you do must be bad, and sufficiently important; (2) You must reflect that you are doing it, and know that it is wrong; (3) You must do it freely, deliberately, and willfully.
Therefore, three things are necessary for your action to be a mortal sin: (1) The action you take must be bad and significant enough; (2) You must be aware that you are doing it and understand that it is wrong; (3) You must do it voluntarily, intentionally, and with purpose.
57 Q. What is venial sin? A. Venial sin is a slight offense against the law of God in matters of less importance, or in matters of great importance it is an offense committed without sufficient reflection or full consent of the will.
57 Q. What is venial sin? A. Venial sin is a minor offense against God's law in less important matters, or in more serious matters, it is an offense committed without enough thought or full consent.
"Slight," that is, a small offense or fault; called "venial," not because it is not a sin, but because God pardons it more willingly or easily than He does a mortal sin. "Less importance," like stealing an ordinary, common pin. "Great importance," like stealing a diamond pin. Without "reflection" or "consent," when you did not know it was a diamond and did not intend to steal a diamond.
"Slight," meaning a minor offense or fault; referred to as "venial," not because it isn’t a sin, but because God is more willing or quick to forgive it than a serious sin. "Less importance," like stealing an ordinary, common pin. "Great importance," like stealing a diamond pin. Without "reflection" or "consent," when you didn’t realize it was a diamond and didn’t intend to steal a diamond.
*58 Q. Which are the effects of venial sin? A. The effects of venial sin are the lessening of the love of God in our heart, the making us less worthy of His help, and the weakening of the power to resist mortal sin.
*58 Q. What are the effects of venial sin? A. The effects of venial sin include a decrease in our love for God, making us less deserving of His assistance, and weakening our ability to resist mortal sin.
"Lessening of the love," because it lessens grace, and grace increases the love of God in us. It displeases God, and though we do not offend Him very greatly, we still offend Him. "Weakening of the power to resist." If a man is wounded, it will be easier to kill him than if he is in perfect health. So mortal sin will more easily kill a soul already weakened by the wounds of venial sin.
"Lessening of love" diminishes grace, and grace boosts the love of God within us. It upsets God, and even if we don't offend Him too much, we still do offend Him. "Weakening of the ability to resist." If someone is injured, it's easier to kill them than if they're in perfect health. Similarly, mortal sin can more easily harm a soul already weakened by the wounds of venial sin.
59 Q. Which are the chief sources of sin? A. The chief sources of sin are seven: Pride, Covetousness, Lust, Anger, Gluttony, Envy, and Sloth; and they are commonly called capital sins.
59 Q. What are the main sources of sin? A. The main sources of sin are seven: Pride, Greed, Lust, Anger, Gluttony, Envy, and Laziness; and they are commonly referred to as the capital sins.
A "source" is that from which anything else comes. The source of a river is the little spring on the Mountainside where the river first begins. This little stream runs down the mountain, and as it goes along gathers strength and size from other little streams running into it. It cuts its way through the meadows, and marks the course and is the beginning of a great river, sweeping all things before it and carrying them off to the ocean. Now, if someone in the beginning had stopped up the little spring on the mountain—the first source of the river—there would have been no river in that particular place. It is just the same with sin. There is one sin that is the source, and as it goes along like the stream it gathers strength; other sins follow it and are united with it. Again: each of these "capital sins," as they are called, is like a leader or a captain in an army, with so many others under him and following him. Now, if you take away the head, the other members of the body will perish; so if you destroy the capital sin, the other sins that follow it will disappear also. Very few persons have all the capital sins: some are guilty of one of them, some of two, some of three, but few if any are guilty of them all. The one we are guilty of, and which is the cause of all our other sins, is called our predominant sin or our ruling passion. We should try to find it out, and labor to overcome it.
A "source" is where everything comes from. The source of a river is a small spring on the mountainside where it starts. This little stream flows down the mountain, gaining strength and size from other small streams that join it. It carves its way through the fields, marking the path and starting a great river that sweeps everything in its path and carries it off to the ocean. Now, if someone had blocked the little spring on the mountain—the river's first source—there wouldn’t be a river in that spot. It's the same with sin. There is one sin that acts as the source, and like the stream, it gathers strength as it goes; other sins follow and connect with it. Each of these "capital sins," as they’re called, is like a leader or captain in an army, with many others beneath it. If you remove the leader, the rest will perish; so if you destroy the capital sin, the other sins that come from it will vanish too. Very few people have all the capital sins: some are guilty of one, some of two, and some of three, but hardly anyone has them all. The one we struggle with, which is the root of all our other sins, is known as our predominant sin or ruling passion. We should try to identify it and work to overcome it.
Every one of these capital sins has a great many other sins following it.
Each of these capital sins has a lot of other sins associated with it.
"Pride" is an inordinate self-esteem. Pride comes under the First Commandment; because by thinking too much of ourselves we neglect God, and give to ourselves the honor due to Him. Of what have we to be proud? Of our personal appearance? Disease may efface in one night every trace of beauty. Of our clothing? It is not ours; we have not produced it; most of it is taken from the lower animals—wool from the sheep, leather from the ox, feathers from the bird, etc. Are we proud of our wealth, money or property? These may be stolen or destroyed by fire. The learned may become insane, and so we have nothing to be proud of but our good works. All that we have is from God, and we can have it only as long as He wishes. We had nothing coming into the world, and we leave it with nothing but the shroud in which we are buried; and even this does not go with the soul, but remains with the body to rot in the earth. Soon after death our bodies become so offensive that even our dearest friends hasten to place them under ground, where they become the food of worms, a mass of corruption loathsome to sight and smell. Why, then, should we be so proud of this body, and commit so much sin for it, pamper it with every delicacy, only to be the food of worms? This does not mean, however, that we are not to keep our bodies clean, and take good care of them. We are bound to do so, and could not neglect it without committing sin. The one thing to be avoided is taking too much care of them, and neglecting our soul and God on their account. The followers of pride are: conceit, hypocrisy, foolish display in dress or conduct, harshness to others, waste of time on ourselves, etc.
"Pride" is excessive self-esteem. Pride falls under the First Commandment because when we think too highly of ourselves, we neglect God and claim for ourselves the honor that belongs to Him. What do we have to be proud of? Our looks? Illness can erase every trace of beauty overnight. Our clothes? They’re not ours; we didn’t make them; most of them come from lower animals—wool from sheep, leather from cows, feathers from birds, and so on. Are we proud of our wealth, money, or possessions? These can be stolen or destroyed in a fire. The educated may lose their sanity, so the only thing we can genuinely be proud of is our good deeds. Everything we have is a gift from God, and we can hold onto it only as long as He allows. We came into this world with nothing and leave it with only the shroud we are buried in, and even that stays with our body to decompose in the ground. Soon after death, our bodies become so repulsive that even our closest friends quickly bury them, where they become food for worms, a mass of decay that is disgusting to see and smell. So why should we take pride in this body and sin so much for it, spoiling it with every luxury, only for it to be food for worms? However, this doesn’t mean we shouldn’t keep our bodies clean and care for them. We are obligated to do so and ignoring this would be a sin. The key is to avoid overindulging in caring for our bodies at the expense of our souls and our relationship with God. The traits that come from pride include: self-importance, hypocrisy, foolishness in dress or behavior, harshness towards others, and wasting time on ourselves, among others.
"Covetousness," the same as avarice, greed, etc., is an inordinate desire for worldly goods. "Inordinate," because it is not avarice to prudently provide for the future either for ourselves or others. Covetousness comes under the Tenth Commandment, and is forbidden by it. We must be content with what we have or can get honestly. The followers of covetousness are: Want of charity, dishonest dealing, theft, etc.
"Covetousness," which is similar to avarice and greed, is an excessive desire for material possessions. It's considered "excessive" because it's not greedy to wisely prepare for the future, whether for ourselves or others. Covetousness relates to the Tenth Commandment, which forbids it. We should be satisfied with what we have or can acquire honestly. The consequences of covetousness include a lack of charity, dishonest behavior, theft, and more.
"Lust" is the desire for sins of the flesh; for impure thoughts, words, or actions. It comes under the Sixth and Ninth Commandments, and includes all that is forbidden by those Commandments. It is the habit of always violating, or of desiring to violate, the Sixth and Ninth Commandments. Lust and impurity mean the same thing. The followers of lust are, generally, neglect of prayer, neglect of the Sacraments, and final loss of faith.
"Lust" is the desire for sinful physical pleasures; for inappropriate thoughts, words, or actions. It falls under the Sixth and Ninth Commandments and includes everything that those Commandments prohibit. It is the tendency to continually break or wish to break the Sixth and Ninth Commandments. Lust and impurity are essentially the same thing. Those who indulge in lust often neglect prayer, overlook the Sacraments, and ultimately lose their faith.
"Anger" comes under the Fifth Commandment. It is followed by hatred, the desire of revenge, etc.
"Anger" falls under the Fifth Commandment. It is followed by hatred, the desire for revenge, and so on.
"Gluttony" is the sin of eating or drinking too much. With regard to eating, it is committed by eating too often; by being too particular about what we eat, by being too extravagant in always looking for the most costly things, that we think others cannot have. With regard to drinking, it is generally committed by taking too much of intoxicating liquors. The drunkard is a glutton and commits the sin of gluttony every time he becomes intoxicated. Gluttony, especially in drink, comes in a manner under the First Commandment, because by depriving ourselves of our reason we cannot give God the honor and respect which is His due. Think of how many sins the drunkard commits. He becomes intoxicated, which in itself is a sin. He deprives himself of the use of reason, abuses God's great gift, and becomes like a brute beast. Indeed in a way he becomes worse than a beast; for beasts always follow the laws that God has given to their nature, and never drink to excess. They obey God, and man is the only one of God's creatures that does not always keep His laws. Think too of the number of insane persons confined in asylums, who would give all in this world for the use of their reason, if they could only understand their miserable condition. Yet the drunkard abuses the gift that would make these poor unfortunate lunatics happy. Again, the drunkard injures his health and thus violates the Fifth Commandment by committing a kind of slow suicide. He loses self-respect, makes use of sinful language; frequently neglects Mass and all his religious duties, exposes himself to the danger of death while in a state of sin, gives scandal to his family and neighbors, and by his bad example causes some to leave or remain out of the true Church. By continued intemperance, he may become insane and remain in that condition till death puts an end to his career and he goes unprepared before the judgment seat of God. Besides all this he squanders the money he should put to a better use and turns God's gifts into a means of offending Him. If a father, he neglects the children and wife for whom he has promised to provide; leaves them cold and hungry while he commits sin with the means that would make them comfortable. Drunkenness therefore is a sin accompanied by many deplorable evils. There are three great sins you should always be on your guard against during your whole lives, namely, drunkenness, dishonesty, and impurity. If you avoid these you will almost surely avoid all other sins; for nearly all sins can be traced back to these three. They are the most dangerous, first, because they have most followers, and secondly, because they grow upon us almost without our knowing it. The drunkard begins perhaps as a boy by taking a little, even very little; the second time he takes a little more; the next time still more, then he begins to be fond of strong drink and can scarcely do without it; finally he becomes the slave of intemperance and sells his soul and body for it. The passions of dishonesty and impurity grow by degrees in the same manner. Therefore avoid them in the beginning and resist them while they are under your power. If you find yourself inclined to any of these sins in your youth, stop them at once.
"Gluttony" is the sin of eating or drinking excessively. When it comes to eating, it happens by eating too often, being too picky about what we eat, or always seeking the most expensive items that others might not have. In terms of drinking, it's often committed by consuming too much alcohol. A person who gets drunk is a glutton and commits the sin of gluttony every time they become intoxicated. Gluttony, especially in relation to drinking, falls under the First Commandment, because by losing our reasoning abilities, we can't give God the honor and respect that He deserves. Consider how many sins a drunkard commits. They become intoxicated, which is already a sin. They lose the ability to reason, misuse God's great gift, and resemble a wild animal. In fact, they can become worse than animals; because animals always follow the laws that God has given them, and they never drink excessively. Animals obey God, while humans are the only creatures that often disregard His laws. Also, think of the many mentally ill people in asylums who would give anything to have their reason back, if only they could understand their unfortunate situation. Yet, the drunkard misuses the gift that could bring happiness to those poor souls. Additionally, the drunkard harms their health, violating the Fifth Commandment by effectively committing a form of slow suicide. They lose self-respect, use sinful language, often skip Mass and their religious duties, put themselves at risk of death while in a state of sin, cause scandal to their family and neighbors, and by their bad example, lead some to leave or stay away from the true Church. Through ongoing intemperance, they may become insane and remain that way until death ends their life, facing God unprepared. Beyond all this, they waste money that could be better spent and turn God's gifts into a way of offending Him. If they are a parent, they neglect the children and spouse they promised to care for; they leave them cold and hungry while indulging in sins that should provide for their comfort. Therefore, drunkenness is a sin that comes with many regrettable consequences. There are three major sins you should always watch out for throughout your life: drunkenness, dishonesty, and impurity. If you steer clear of these, you will almost certainly avoid all other sins, as nearly all sins can be traced back to these three. They are the most dangerous because they have the most followers, and they can creep up on us almost unnoticed. A drunkard might start young by taking just a little, then take a bit more the next time, and gradually becomes fond of strong drink, eventually becoming dependent on it. The urges of dishonesty and impurity develop in the same way. So, avoid these temptations in the beginning and resist them while you can. If you find yourself attracted to any of these sins in your youth, stop immediately.
"Envy" is the desire to see another meet with misfortune that we may be benefited by it. We are glad when he does not succeed in his business, we are sorry when anyone speaks well of him, etc. Envy comes under the Eighth Commandment.
"Envy" is the desire to see someone else fail so that we can benefit from their misfortune. We feel pleased when they don’t succeed in their endeavors, and we feel upset when someone has something nice to say about them, etc. Envy falls under the Eighth Commandment.
"Sloth" is committed when we idle our time, and are lazy; when we are indifferent about serving God; when we do anything slowly and poorly and in a way that shows we would rather not do it. They are slothful who lie in bed late in the morning and neglect their duty. Slothful people are often untidy in their personal appearance; and they are nearly always in misery and want, unless somebody else takes care of them. Sloth comes under the First Commandment, because it has reference in a special manner to the way in which we serve God. How, then, shall we best destroy sin in our souls? By finding out our chief capital sin and rooting it out. If a strong oak tree is deeply rooted in the ground, how will you best destroy its life? By cutting off the branches? No. For with each returning spring new branches will grow. How then? By cutting the root and then the great oak with all its branches will die. In the same way our capital sin is the root, and as long as we leave it in our souls other sins will grow out of it. While we are trying to destroy our sins without touching our capital sin—our chief sin—we are only cutting off branches that will grow again. Indeed a great many people are only cutting off branches all the time and that is why they are not benefited as much as they could be by the prayers they say, Masses they hear, Sacraments they receive, and sermons they listen to. But do not imagine that because you are not becoming better, when you pray, hear Mass, and receive the Sacraments, you are doing no good at all. That would be a great mistake, and just such a thing as the devil would suggest to make persons give up their devotions. What is the use, he might say, of your trying to be good? You are just as bad as you were a year ago. Do not listen to that temptation. Were it not for your prayers and your reception of the Sacraments, you would become a great deal worse than you are. Suppose a man is rowing on the river against a very strong tide. He is rowing as hard as he can and yet he is not advancing one foot up the stream. Is he doing nothing therefore? Ah! he is doing a great deal: he is preventing himself from being carried with the current out into the ocean. He is keeping himself where he is till the force of the tide diminishes, and then he can advance. So they who are trying to be good are struggling against the strong tide of temptation. If they cease to struggle against it, they will be carried out into the great ocean of sin and lost forever. Someday the temptation will grow weaker and then they will be able to advance towards Heaven. We feel temptations most when we are trying to resist them and lead good lives, because we are working against our evil inclinations—the strong tide of our passions. We have no trouble going with them.
"Sloth" occurs when we waste our time and are lazy; when we don’t care about serving God; when we do things slowly, poorly, and in a way that shows we’d rather not do them. People are slothful if they stay in bed late and ignore their responsibilities. Slothful individuals often look messy and are usually miserable and needy unless someone else takes care of them. Sloth falls under the First Commandment, as it specifically relates to how we serve God. So, how can we best eliminate sin from our lives? By identifying our main sin and rooting it out. If a strong oak tree is deeply entrenched in the ground, how do you best kill it? By chopping off the branches? No, because with each spring, new branches will just grow back. So how? By cutting the root, and then the entire oak, with all its branches, will die. Similarly, our main sin is the root, and as long as we leave it in our souls, other sins will sprout from it. While we try to eliminate our sins without addressing our main sin—our chief sin—we are merely cutting off branches that will regrow. Many people end up just cutting off branches repeatedly, which is why they don’t gain as much from their prayers, Masses, Sacraments, and sermons as they could. But don’t think that because you aren’t improving while praying, attending Mass, and receiving the Sacraments, you aren’t doing any good at all. That would be a huge mistake, and something that the devil would want us to believe to make us give up our devotions. He might say, “What’s the point of trying to be good? You’re just as bad as you were a year ago.” Don’t listen to that temptation. If you weren’t praying and receiving the Sacraments, you’d be much worse off. Imagine a man rowing on a river against a strong current. He’s rowing as hard as he can, yet he isn’t making any progress upstream. Is he doing nothing? Not at all! He’s actually doing a lot: he’s preventing himself from being swept away into the ocean. He’s staying in place until the current lessens so he can move forward. Likewise, those trying to be good are fighting against the powerful current of temptation. If they stop resisting, they will be swept out into the vast ocean of sin and lost forever. Eventually, the temptation will weaken, and then they’ll be able to move closer to Heaven. We feel temptations the most when we’re trying to resist them and live good lives because we’re pushing back against our bad inclinations—the strong current of our passions. We have no trouble going along with them.
Lesson 7
ON THE INCARNATION AND REDEMPTION
Lesson 7
ON THE INCARNATION AND REDEMPTION
"Incarnation" means to take flesh, as a body. Here it means Our Lord's taking flesh, that is, taking a body like ours, when He became man. "Redemption" means to buy back. Let us take an example. Slaves are men or women that belong entirely to their masters, just as horses, cows, or other animals do. Slaves are bought and sold, never receive any wages for their work, get their food and clothing and no more. As they never earn money for themselves, they can never purchase their own liberty. If ever they are to be free, someone else must procure their liberty. Now, suppose I am in some country where slavery exists. I am free, but I want one hundred dollars; so I go to a slave owner and say: I want to sell myself for one hundred dollars. He buys me and I soon squander the one hundred dollars. Now I am his property, his slave; I shall never earn any wages and shall never be able to buy my freedom. No other slave can help me, for he is just in the same condition as I myself am. If I am to be free, a free man who has the money must pay for my liberty. This is exactly the condition in which all men were before Our Lord redeemed them. Adam sold himself and all his children to the devil by committing sin. He and they therefore became slaves. They could not earn any spiritual wages, that is, grace of God to purchase their liberty; and as all men were slaves one could not help another in this matter. Then Our Lord Himself came and purchased our freedom. He bought us back again, and the price He paid was His own life and blood given up upon the Cross. In His goodness, He did more than redeem us; He gave us also the means of redeeming ourselves in case we should ever have the misfortune of falling again into the slavery of the devil—into sin. He left us the Sacrament of Penance to which we can go as to a bank, and draw out enough of Our Lord's grace—merited for us and deposited in the power of His Church—to purchase our redemption from sin.
"Incarnation" means to take on flesh, like a body. Here, it refers to Our Lord taking on flesh, which means assuming a body like ours when He became human. "Redemption" means to buy back. Let's look at an example. Slaves are men or women who belong completely to their owners, just like horses, cows, or other animals. Slaves are bought and sold, never receive any pay for their work, and only get food and clothing. Since they never earn money for themselves, they can never buy their own freedom. If they are ever to be free, someone else must secure their freedom. Now, suppose I am in a country where slavery exists. I am free, but I want one hundred dollars; so I go to a slave owner and say, "I want to sell myself for one hundred dollars." He buys me, and I soon waste the one hundred dollars. Now I am his property, his slave; I will never earn any wages and will never be able to buy my freedom. No other slave can help me because they are in the same situation as I am. If I'm to be free, a free person with money must pay for my freedom. This is exactly the situation of all people before Our Lord redeemed them. Adam sold himself and all his descendants to the devil by committing sin. He and they, therefore, became slaves. They could not earn any spiritual wages, meaning God’s grace to buy their freedom; and since all people were slaves, no one could assist another in this matter. Then Our Lord came and purchased our freedom. He bought us back, and the price He paid was His own life and blood given upon the Cross. In His goodness, He did more than redeem us; He also provided the means of redeeming ourselves in case we ever fall back into the slavery of the devil—into sin. He left us the Sacrament of Penance, to which we can go like a bank, and withdraw enough of Our Lord's grace—earned for us and stored in the authority of His Church—to buy our redemption from sin.
60 Q. Did God abandon man after he fell into sin? A. God did not abandon man after he fell into sin, but promised him a Redeemer, who was to satisfy for man's sin and reopen to him the gates of Heaven.
60 Q. Did God abandon man after he fell into sin? A. God did not abandon man after he fell into sin, but promised him a Redeemer, who would atone for man's sin and reopen the gates of Heaven for him.
"Abandon" means to leave to one's self. Adam and his posterity were slaves, but God took pity on them. He did not leave them to themselves, but promised to help them.
"Abandon" means to leave someone on their own. Adam and his descendants were enslaved, but God had compassion for them. He didn’t leave them on their own; instead, He promised to help them.
"Gates of Heaven." Heaven has no gates, because it is not built of material—of stone, or iron, or wood. It is only our way of speaking; just as we say "hand of God," although He has no hands. Heaven is the magnificent home God has prepared for us, and its gates are His power by which He keeps us out or lets us in as He pleases. Our Lord, therefore, obtained admittance for us.
"Gates of Heaven." Heaven doesn't have gates because it's not made of physical things—like stone, iron, or wood. It's just a figure of speech; similar to how we say "hand of God," even though He doesn’t have hands. Heaven is the beautiful home God has set up for us, and its gates are His power that determines whether we stay out or are allowed in, according to His will. Therefore, our Lord has secured our entry.
61 Q. Who is the Redeemer? A. Our Blessed Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ is the Redeemer of mankind.
61 Q. Who is the Redeemer? A. Our Blessed Lord and Savior Jesus Christ is the Redeemer of humanity.
62 Q. What do you believe of Jesus Christ? A. I believe that Jesus Christ is the Son of God, the second Person of the Blessed Trinity, true God and true man.
62 Q. What do you believe about Jesus Christ? A. I believe that Jesus Christ is the Son of God, the second Person of the Blessed Trinity, both fully God and fully man.
"True God." He was true God equal to His Father from all eternity. He became man when He came upon the earth about 2,000 years ago, and was born on Christmas Day. Now He is in Heaven as God and man. Therefore, He was God always, but man only from the time of His Incarnation.
"True God." He was truly God, equal to His Father for all time. He became human when He came to Earth around 2,000 years ago and was born on Christmas Day. Now He is in Heaven as both God and man. So, He was always God, but He was only man from the moment of His Incarnation.
*63 Q. Why is Jesus Christ true God? A. Jesus Christ is true God because He is the true and only Son of God the Father.
*63 Q. Why is Jesus Christ true God? A. Jesus Christ is true God because He is the one and only Son of God the Father.
God the Father, first Person of the Blessed Trinity, is His real Father, and St. Joseph was His foster-father, selected by the Heavenly Father to take care of Our Lord and watch over Him while on earth. A foster-father is not the same as a stepfather. A stepfather is a second father that one gets when his real father dies. A foster-father is one who takes a person, whether a relative or a stranger, and adopts him as his son. It was a very great honor for St. Joseph to be selected from among all men to take care of the Son of God; to carry in his arms the great One of whom the prophets spoke; the One for whom the whole world longed during so many thousand years; so that next to our Blessed Mother St. Joseph deserves our greatest honor.
God the Father, the first Person of the Blessed Trinity, is His true Father, and St. Joseph was His foster father, chosen by the Heavenly Father to care for Our Lord and protect Him while He was on earth. A foster father is not the same as a stepfather. A stepfather is a second father that someone has when their real father passes away. A foster father is someone who takes a person, whether they are a relative or a stranger, and adopts them as his son. It was a tremendous honor for St. Joseph to be chosen from among all men to care for the Son of God; to hold in his arms the great One the prophets spoke about; the One whom the entire world had eagerly awaited for thousands of years; therefore, next to our Blessed Mother, St. Joseph deserves our highest honor.
*64 Q. Why is Jesus Christ true man? A. Jesus Christ is true man because He is the Son of the Blessed Virgin Mary, and has a body and soul like ours.
*64 Q. Why is Jesus Christ a true human? A. Jesus Christ is a true human because He is the Son of the Blessed Virgin Mary and has a body and soul just like ours.*
He has all that we have by nature, but not the things we have acquired such as deformities, imperfections, and the like. Everything in Our Lord was perfect. Above all, He had no sin of any kind; nor even inclination to sin. He could be hungry, as He was when He fasted forty days in the desert. (Matt. 4:2). He was thirsty, as He said on the Cross. (John 19:28). He could be wearied; as we read in the Holy Scripture (John 4:6) that He sat down by a well to rest, while His disciples went into the city to buy food. All these sufferings come from our very nature. We say a thing comes from our very nature when everybody has it. Now, everyone in the world may at times be hungry, thirsty, or tired; but everybody in the world need not have a toothache or headache, because such things are not common to human nature, but due to some defect in our body; and such defects Our Lord did not have, because He was a perfect man. Therefore, Our Lord had a body like ours, not as it usually is with defects, but as it should be, perfect in all things that belong to its nature, as Adam's was before he sinned.
He has everything that we naturally have, but not the things we've picked up along the way, like deformities and imperfections. Everything about Our Lord was perfect. Most importantly, He had no sin whatsoever, nor any inclination to sin. He could feel hunger, as He did when He fasted for forty days in the desert (Matt. 4:2). He felt thirst, as He mentioned on the Cross (John 19:28). He could get tired; as we read in Scripture (John 4:6), He sat by a well to rest while His disciples went into the city to buy food. All these feelings come from our very nature. We say something comes from our very nature when everyone experiences it. Now, everyone can occasionally feel hungry, thirsty, or tired; but not everyone suffers from a toothache or headache, because those issues aren't common to human nature, but are due to some defect in our bodies, and Our Lord did not have such defects because He was a perfect man. Therefore, Our Lord had a body like ours, not flawed as ours often is, but as it should be, perfect in all aspects of its nature, just like Adam's was before he sinned.
*65 Q. How many natures are there in Jesus Christ? A. In Jesus Christ there are two natures: the nature of God and the nature of man.
*65 Q. How many natures does Jesus Christ have? A. Jesus Christ has two natures: one that is divine and one that is human.
He was perfect God and perfect man. His human nature was under the full power of His divine nature, and could not do anything contrary to His divine will. You cannot understand how there can be two natures and two wills in one person, because it is another of the great mysteries; but you must believe it, just as you believe there are three Persons in one God, though you do not understand it. Those who learn theology and study a great deal may understand it better than you, but never fully. It will be enough, therefore, for you to remember and believe that there are two natures—the divine nature and the human nature—in the one person of Our Lord.
He was both fully God and fully man. His human nature was completely aligned with His divine nature and could not act against His divine will. You may find it hard to grasp how there can be two natures and two wills in one person, as it is one of the great mysteries; however, you must accept it just as you accept that there are three Persons in one God, even if you don't fully understand it. Those who study theology extensively might get a better grasp of it than you, but they will never understand it completely. So, it's enough for you to remember and believe that there are two natures—the divine and the human—in the one person of Our Lord.
*66 Q. Is Jesus Christ more than one person? A. No, Jesus Christ is but one Divine Person.
*66 Q. Is Jesus Christ more than one person? A. No, Jesus Christ is just one Divine Person.
"But one," so that the Second Person of the Blessed Trinity, the Son of God, the Messias, Christ, Jesus, Our Lord, Our Saviour, Our Redeemer, etc., are all names for the one Person; and, besides these, there are many other names given to Our Lord in the Holy Scripture, both in the Old and the New Testaments.
"But one," so the Second Person of the Blessed Trinity, the Son of God, the Messiah, Christ, Jesus, Our Lord, Our Savior, Our Redeemer, etc., are all names for the one Person; and, besides these, there are many other names given to Our Lord in the Holy Scripture, both in the Old and the New Testaments.
*67 Q. Was Jesus Christ always God? A. Jesus Christ was always God, as He is the Second Person of the Blessed Trinity, equal to His Father from all eternity.
*67 Q. Was Jesus Christ always God? A. Jesus Christ was always God, as He is the Second Person of the Blessed Trinity, equal to His Father from all eternity.
*68 Q. Was Jesus Christ always man? A. Jesus Christ was not always man, but became man at the time of His Incarnation.
*68 Q. Was Jesus Christ always human? A. Jesus Christ was not always human, but became human at the time of His Incarnation.
69 Q. What do you mean by the Incarnation? A. By the Incarnation I mean that the Son of God was made man.
69 Q. What do you mean by the Incarnation? A. By the Incarnation, I mean that the Son of God became human.
70 Q. How was the Son of God made man? A. The Son of God was conceived and made man by the power of the Holy Ghost, in the womb of the Blessed Virgin Mary.
70 Q. How was the Son of God made human? A. The Son of God was conceived and became man through the power of the Holy Spirit, in the womb of the Blessed Virgin Mary.
*71 Q. Is the Blessed Virgin Mary truly the Mother of God?
A. The Blessed Virgin Mary is truly the Mother of God, because the same
Divine Person who is the Son of God is also the Son of the Blessed
Virgin Mary.
*71 Q. Is the Blessed Virgin Mary really the Mother of God?
A. The Blessed Virgin Mary is truly the Mother of God, because the same
Divine Person who is the Son of God is also the Son of the Blessed
Virgin Mary.
*72 Q. Did the Son of God become man immediately after the sin of our first parents? A. The Son of God did not become man immediately after the sin of our first parents, but He was promised to them as a Redeemer.
*72 Q. Did the Son of God become human right after our first parents sinned? A. The Son of God did not become human right after our first parents sinned, but He was promised to them as a Redeemer.
God did not say to Adam when He would send the Redeemer, and so the Redeemer did not come for about 4,000 years after He was first promised. God permitted this long time to elapse in order that mankind might feel and know how great an evil sin is, and what misery it brought upon the world. During these 4,000 years men were becoming gradually worse. At one time—about 1,600 years after Adam's sin—they became so bad that God destroyed by a deluge, or great flood of water, all persons and living things upon the earth, except Noe, his wife, his three sons and their wives, and the animals they had in the ark with them. (Gen. 6). Let me now give you more particulars about this terrible punishment. After God determined to destroy all living things on account of the wickedness of men, He told Noe, who was a good man, to build a great ark, or ship, for himself and his family, and for some of all the living creatures upon the earth. (Gen. 6). When the ark was ready, Noe and his family went into it, and the animals that were to be saved came by God's power, and two by two were taken into the ark. Besides the two of each kind of animals, Noe was required to take with him five more of each kind of clean animals. Clean animals were certain animals which, according to God's law, could be offered in sacrifice or eaten; they were such animals as the ox, the sheep, the goat, etc. Therefore, seven of each of the clean animals, and two of each of the other kinds. Why did He have seven clean animals? Two were to be set free upon the dry earth with the other animals, and the other five were for food and sacrifice. Noe spent a hundred years in making the ark. At that time men lived much longer than they do now. Adam lived over 900 years and Mathusala, the oldest man, lived to be 969 years old. There are many reasons why men live a shorter time now than then. When the door of the ark was closed, God sent a great rain that lasted for forty days and forty nights. All the springs of water broke forth, and all the rivers and lakes overflowed their banks. Men ran here and there to high places, while the water rose higher and higher till it covered the tops of the mountains, and all not in the ark were drowned. The big ark floated about for about a year; for although it stopped raining after forty days, just think of the quantity of water that must have fallen! Think of the rain what would fall during the whole of Lent from Ash Wednesday to Easter Sunday—forty days. It took a long time, therefore, for the waters to go down and finally disappear. When the waters began to go down, Noe, wishing to know if any land was as yet above the water, opened the little window, and sent out a raven or crow over the waters. The raven did not come back, because it is a bird that eats flesh, and it found plenty of dead bodies to feed upon. Then Noe sent out a dove, and the dove came back with the bough of an olive tree in its mouth. From this Noe knew that the earth was becoming dry again. After some days, the ark rested on the top of a mountain named Ararat. When all the waters had dried up, Noe and his family and all the animals passed out of the ark. He offered a sacrifice of thanksgiving, and he and his family settled once more upon the earth. For a while, the descendants of Noe were good, but when they became numerous they soon forgot the deluge and its punishments, and became very wicked. Many forgot the true God altogether, and began to worship the sun, moon, and stars. Some worshipped animals, and others idols of wood or stone. They offered up human victims and committed all kinds of sins most displeasing to God. Many were in slavery; masters were cruel; and things were becoming daily worse, till just before the coming of Our Lord the world was in a terrible condition of misery and sin. The lawmakers tried to remedy these evils by their laws, and the teachers and professors by their teaching; but all was of no avail. God Himself must save the world.
God didn’t tell Adam when He would send the Redeemer, which is why the Redeemer didn’t arrive until about 4,000 years after He was first promised. God allowed this long wait so that humanity could truly understand how serious sin is and the misery it brought to the world. During those 4,000 years, people gradually became worse. At one point—around 1,600 years after Adam’s sin—they got so bad that God decided to wipe out all living things on earth with a flood, except for Noah, his wife, his three sons, their wives, and the animals they had with them in the ark. (Gen. 6). Let me share more details about this severe punishment. After God chose to destroy every living thing because of humanity’s wickedness, He instructed Noah, who was a good man, to build a huge ark for himself, his family, and some of every living creature on earth. (Gen. 6). When the ark was finished, Noah and his family entered it, and the animals meant to be saved came to the ark by God’s power, going in two by two. In addition to the two of each kind of animal, Noah had to take five more of each type of clean animal. Clean animals were those that, according to God’s law, could be sacrificed or eaten, such as oxen, sheep, goats, and so on. So, there were seven of each clean animal and two of each of the others. Why seven clean animals? Two were to be released back onto dry land, and the other five were for food and sacrifice. Noah took a hundred years to build the ark. At that time, people lived much longer than they do now. Adam lived for over 900 years, and Methuselah, the oldest man, lived to be 969 years old. There are many reasons why people have shorter lifespans now compared to then. When the door of the ark was closed, God caused a heavy rain that lasted for forty days and forty nights. The springs of water burst forth, and all the rivers and lakes overflowed. People rushed to high ground as the water kept rising until it covered the tops of the mountains, drowning everyone not on the ark. The ark drifted for about a year; although it stopped raining after forty days, think about how much water fell! Imagine the rain that would come from Ash Wednesday to Easter Sunday—forty days. It took a long time for all that water to recede and finally vanish. As the waters began to go down, Noah wanted to see if any land was appearing, so he opened a small window and sent out a raven. The raven didn’t return because it eats flesh and found plenty of dead bodies to feed on. Next, Noah sent out a dove, which came back with a fresh olive branch in its beak. From this, Noah realized that the earth was drying up. After some time, the ark came to rest on top of a mountain called Ararat. Once all the waters had dried up, Noah, his family, and all the animals exited the ark. He offered a sacrifice in gratitude, and he and his family settled back on earth. For a time, Noah’s descendants were good, but as their numbers grew, they soon forgot about the flood and the consequences of their sins, becoming very wicked. Many completely forgot about the true God and began to worship the sun, moon, and stars. Some worshiped animals, while others made idols from wood or stone. They offered human sacrifices and engaged in all sorts of sins that angered God. Many lived in slavery; masters were cruel, and things continually worsened until just before Our Lord came, the world was in a terrible state of misery and sin. Lawmakers tried to fix these problems with laws, and teachers and scholars tried with their teachings, but none were effective. God Himself needed to save the world.
God gave many promises of the Redeemer. The first one was given in the garden to our first parents. God said (Gen. 3:15) to the serpent: I will put enmities, that is hatred, between thee and the woman; that is, between the devil and the Blessed Virgin—whom the holy writers call the second Eve; because as the first Eve caused our fall, the second Eve helped us to rise again. I will put also a great hatred between the devil and your Redeemer. The next promise of the Redeemer was made to Abraham. (Gen. 15). Another was made to Isaac, and another to Jacob; and later these promises were frequently renewed through the prophets; so that during the four thousand years God encouraged the good people, by promising from time to time the Redeemer.
God made many promises about the Redeemer. The first one was given in the garden to our first parents. God said (Gen. 3:15) to the serpent: I will create hostility, that is, hatred, between you and the woman; that is, between the devil and the Blessed Virgin—whom the holy writers call the second Eve; because while the first Eve caused our fall, the second Eve helped us rise again. I will also create a great dislike between the devil and your Redeemer. The next promise of the Redeemer was made to Abraham (Gen. 15). Another was made to Isaac, and another to Jacob; and later these promises were frequently renewed through the prophets; so that for four thousand years God encouraged the faithful by promising the Redeemer from time to time.
Some of the prophets foretold to what family He would belong, and when He would be born, and when and what He would suffer, and how He would die. They also foretold signs or things that would come to pass just before the advent or coming of the Messias (Gen. 49:10); so that when the people saw these things coming to pass, they could know that the time of the Messias was at hand. Thus when Our Lord came, the whole world was waiting and looking for the promised Redeemer, because the signs foretold had appeared or were taking place. But the majority did not recognize Our Lord when He came, on account of the quiet, humble, and poor way in which He came. They were expecting to see the Redeemer come as a great and powerful king, with mighty armies conquering the world; and in this they were mistaken. If they had studied the Holy Scriptures they would have learned how He was to come—poor and humble.
Some of the prophets predicted which family He would come from, when He would be born, what He would suffer, and how He would die. They also foretold signs that would happen just before the arrival of the Messiah (Gen. 49:10); so when people saw these things happening, they could know that the time of the Messiah was near. When Our Lord arrived, the entire world was waiting for the promised Redeemer because the signs had appeared or were in motion. However, most people didn’t recognize Our Lord when He came, due to the quiet, humble, and poor way He entered the world. They were expecting the Redeemer to arrive as a powerful king, leading mighty armies to conquer the world; and in that expectation, they were wrong. If they had studied the Holy Scriptures, they would have learned that He was meant to come poor and humble.
*73 Q. How could they be saved who lived before the Son of God became man? A. They who lived before the Son of God became man could be saved by believing in the Redeemer to come, and by keeping the Commandments.
*73 Q. How could people who lived before the Son of God became human be saved? A. Those who lived before the Son of God became human could be saved by believing in the coming Redeemer and by following the Commandments.
We have seen that God promised the Redeemer during four thousand years. Now, those who believed these promises and kept all God's Commandments, and observed all His laws as they knew them, could be saved. They could not, it is true, enter into Heaven after their death, but they could wait in Limbo without suffering till Our Lord opened Heaven for them. They were saved only through the merits of Our Lord. And how could this be when Our Lord was not yet born? Do you know what a promissory note is? It is this. When a man is not able to pay his debts just now but will be able afterwards, he gives those to whom he owes the money a promissory note, that is, a written promise that he will pay at a certain time. Now, those who died before Our Lord was born had the Holy Scripture promising that Christ would pay for them and for their sins when He would come. So God saved them on account of this promise and kept them free from suffering till Our Lord came. If any died when they were little infants, their parents answered for them as godfathers and godmothers do now for infants at Baptism.
We have seen that God promised a Redeemer for four thousand years. Now, those who believed these promises, followed all of God’s Commandments, and obeyed His laws as best as they could, could be saved. It’s true that they couldn’t enter Heaven after they died, but they could wait in Limbo without suffering until Our Lord opened Heaven for them. They were saved only through the merits of Our Lord. But how could this happen if Our Lord hadn’t been born yet? Do you know what a promissory note is? It’s this: when a person can’t pay their debts right now but will be able to later, they give a promissory note to those they owe money to, which is a written promise to pay at a certain time. Those who died before Our Lord was born had the Holy Scripture promising that Christ would pay for them and their sins when He came. So God saved them based on this promise and kept them free from suffering until Our Lord arrived. If any died as little infants, their parents took responsibility for them, just like godparents do for infants at Baptism today.
74 Q. On what day was the Son of God conceived and made man? A. The Son of God was conceived and made man on Annunciation Day—the day on which the Angel Gabriel announced to the Blessed Virgin Mary that she was to be the Mother of God.
74 Q. On what day was the Son of God conceived and made man? A. The Son of God was conceived and made man on Annunciation Day—the day when the Angel Gabriel told the Blessed Virgin Mary that she would be the Mother of God.
"Annunciation Day" is the 25th of March. You can easily remember that feast. Everybody knows that St. Patrick's Day is on the 17th of March, and therefore eight days after it comes Annunciation day. There is another feast coming in between them, the feast of St. Joseph, on the 19th of March. Therefore it is easy to remember these three feasts coming all in March and almost together. Annunciation is the name given to that day after the angel came, but it was not called so before. Annunciation means to tell or make known, and this is the day the angel made known to the Blessed Virgin that she was selected for the high office of Mother of God. The Blessed Virgin was expecting the Messias, and was probably praying for His speedy arrival, as were the rest of her people, when suddenly the angel came and said: Hail, full of grace. (See Hail Mary Expl.).
"Annunciation Day" is March 25th. It’s easy to remember this feast. Everyone knows that St. Patrick's Day is on March 17th, so Annunciation Day comes eight days later. There's also another feast in between, the feast of St. Joseph, on March 19th. So, it's simple to recall these three feasts that all happen in March and almost together. The name Annunciation was given to this day because of the angel's visit, but it wasn't called that before. Annunciation means to announce or make known, and this is the day the angel told the Blessed Virgin that she was chosen for the important role of Mother of God. The Blessed Virgin was awaiting the Messiah and likely praying for His swift arrival, just like the rest of her people, when the angel suddenly appeared and said: Hail, full of grace. (See Hail Mary Expl.).
75 Q. On what day was Christ born? A. Christ was born on Christmas Day in a stable at Bethlehem, over nineteen hundred years ago.
75 Q. When was Christ born? A. Christ was born on Christmas Day in a stable in Bethlehem, more than nineteen hundred years ago.
"Christmas Day" is the 25th of December, one week before the New Year. It is called Christmas Day since the time Our Lord was born, over nineteen hundred years ago. "In a stable at Bethlehem." The story of Our Lord's birth is in every way a very sad one. The Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph lived in Palestine—called also the Holy Land since Our Lord lived there. Palestine was the country where God's people, the Jews, lived, and at the time we are speaking of, it was under the power of the Roman Emperor, who had his soldiers and governor there. He wished to find out how many people were there, and so he ordered a census or count of the people to be made. (Luke 2). We take the census very differently now from what they did then. We in the United States, by order of the government, send men around from house to house to write down the names; but in Palestine, when they wanted the number of the people, everyone, no matter where he lived, had to go to the city or town where his forefathers had lived and there register his name with all the others who belonged to the same tribe or family. Now, the forefathers of St. Joseph and the Blessed Virgin belonged to the little town of Bethlehem (Luke 2); so they had to leave Nazareth where they were then living and go to Bethlehem. This was shortly before Christmas. When they got to Bethlehem, they found the place crowded with people who also came to enroll their names. They went to the inn or hotel to seek for lodging for the night. The hotels there were not like ours. They were simply large buildings with small rooms and no furniture; they were called caravansaries. A man was in charge of the building, and by paying him something persons were allowed the use of a room. No food was sold there, so travelers had to do their cooking at home and bring whatever they needed with them. When the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph went to the inn they found all the rooms occupied. Then they went up and down the streets looking for some house where they might stay. Nobody would take them in, because St. Joseph was old and poor and had no money, or little, to give. They were refused at every door, a very sad thing indeed. What were they to do? It was growing dark, and the lights most likely were being lighted here and there in the houses. The old towns were not built as ours are, with houses on the outskirts growing fewer as we advance into the country. They were surrounded by great walls to keep out their enemies. There were several large gates in these walls, through which the people entered or left the city. At night these gates were closed and guarded. Nearly all the people lived within the walls and the country was lonely and almost deserted. Only shepherds were to be found in the country, and they lived in tents, which they carried about from place to place, as soldiers do in time of war. Such was the country about Bethlehem. As St. Joseph and the Blessed Virgin could not find anyplace to stay in the town they were forced to go into the country. They must have suffered also from fear because the country was infested with wolves and wild dogs, so fierce that they sometimes came into the towns and attacked the people in the streets. Besides, many robbers were wandering about waiting for victims. Palestine is a hilly country and there were on the sides of some of the hills large caves in which these robbers frequently took refuge or divided their spoils. Because the shepherds at times, especially in bad weather, brought their animals into these caves, they are often called stables. The Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph found, we are told, one of these cold, dark places, went into it for the night, and there Our Lord was born.
"Christmas Day" is December 25th, one week before the New Year. It's called Christmas Day because that's when our Lord was born, over nineteen hundred years ago, "in a stable at Bethlehem." The story of our Lord's birth is quite sad. The Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph lived in Palestine—also known as the Holy Land because our Lord lived there. Palestine was where God's people, the Jews, lived, and at that time, it was under the Roman Emperor's control, who had soldiers and a governor present. He wanted to know how many people were there, so he ordered a census. (Luke 2). We conduct the census very differently now than they did back then. In the United States, the government sends people from house to house to record names; but in Palestine, everyone had to go to the city or town where their ancestors lived to register their name with others from the same tribe or family. St. Joseph and the Blessed Virgin's ancestors were from the small town of Bethlehem (Luke 2), so they had to leave Nazareth, where they were living, and go to Bethlehem. This was shortly before Christmas. When they arrived, they found Bethlehem crowded with people also there to register. They went to an inn looking for a place to stay for the night. The inns weren’t like ours; they were large buildings with small, unfurnished rooms called caravansaries. A man managed the building, and by paying him, people could use a room. No food was served, so travelers had to bring their own meals. When the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph reached the inn, all the rooms were taken. They walked around the streets looking for a house that would take them in. No one would help them because St. Joseph was old and poor, with little money to offer. They were turned away at every doorstep, which was very sad. What were they supposed to do? It was getting dark, and lights were likely going on in the houses. The old towns weren’t built like ours, with fewer houses as you move into the country. They were surrounded by high walls to keep out enemies, with several large gates through which people could enter or leave. At night, these gates were closed and guarded. Almost everyone lived within the walls, while the countryside was lonely and nearly deserted. Only shepherds roamed the area, living in tents that they moved around, like soldiers during wartime. That was the situation around Bethlehem. Since St. Joseph and the Blessed Virgin couldn’t find a place to stay in the town, they had to go into the countryside. They must have been scared too because the area had wolves and wild dogs that sometimes ventured into town and attacked people on the streets. Additionally, many robbers were lurking around looking for victims. Palestine is hilly, and on some hillsides are large caves where robbers often hid or divided their loot. Because shepherds sometimes brought their animals into these caves, especially in bad weather, they are often referred to as stables. The Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph found one of these cold, dark places, went in for the night, and there our Lord was born.
It was the month of December and must have been quite cold, so the little Infant Jesus must have suffered greatly from the cold. If it had been a stable such as we see in our days it would have been bad enough; but think of this cold, dark, miserable cave, and yet it was Our Lord, the King of Heaven and earth, who was born there. There are few people so poor that they have to live in a cave. What wonderful humility, then, on the part of Our Lord. He could have been born, if He wished, in the grandest palace man could construct and have had thousands of angels to bring Him whatever He needed, for they are His servants in Heaven. But Our Lord became so humble to teach us. What impression should this make on those who are too fond of dress and too vain about their homes.
It was December, and it must have been really cold, so the little Infant Jesus must have suffered a lot from the chill. If it had been a stable like the ones we see today, it would have been bad enough; but just imagine this cold, dark, miserable cave, and yet it was Our Lord, the King of Heaven and Earth, who was born there. Few people are so poor that they have to live in a cave. How amazing is the humility of Our Lord! He could have been born, if He wanted, in the grandest palace anyone could build and had thousands of angels to bring Him whatever He needed, since they are His servants in Heaven. But Our Lord became so humble to teach us. What kind of impression should this leave on those who care too much about clothing and are too vain about their homes?
It was foretold by the prophets that Our Lord would be born in Bethlehem, and when the time was near at hand His parents were living in Nazareth; then the Roman Emperor gave the decree that the census be taken, which obliged Our Lord's parents to go to Bethlehem, and thus Our Lord was born there, and the words of the prophets fulfilled. See how God moves the whole world, if necessary, to accomplish what He desires. But how naturally He does everything. Nobody knew—not even the Roman Emperor himself—that he was giving an edict to fulfill the prophecies and the promises of God. So, at times, people do many things to carry out the designs of God, though they know it not. We should never complain therefore to do unwillingly whatever work we have to perform, because it may be something that God wishes us to do for some very special end. If you look back upon your lives, you can see that God guided and directed you upon many occasions.
It was foretold by the prophets that our Lord would be born in Bethlehem, and when the time was approaching, His parents were living in Nazareth. Then the Roman Emperor issued a decree for a census, which required our Lord's parents to travel to Bethlehem, and that's where our Lord was born, fulfilling the words of the prophets. Look how God moves the entire world, if necessary, to achieve what He wants. But how naturally He does everything. No one knew—not even the Roman Emperor himself—that he was issuing an edict to fulfill the prophecies and promises of God. Similarly, people often do many things unknowingly to carry out God's plans. Therefore, we should never complain about performing tasks reluctantly, as they may be things that God wants us to do for a very specific purpose. If you reflect on your lives, you can see that God has guided and directed you on many occasions.
*76 Q. How long did Christ live on earth? A. Christ lived on earth about thirty-three years, and led a most holy life in poverty and suffering.
*76 Q. How long did Christ live on earth? A. Christ lived on earth for about thirty-three years and led a very holy life filled with poverty and suffering.
The life of Our Lord was spent in the following manner. At the time Our Lord was born in Bethlehem wise men or kings, called Magi, came from the East—perhaps from Persia or Arabia—to adore Him. They saw a strange star, and leaving their own country came to Palestine. When they came as far as Jerusalem, they went to King Herod and asked him where the young King was born. Herod was troubled, for he was afraid the new King would deprive him of his throne. He called together all the priests and asked them about this royal child. They told him and the Magi that, according to the prophecies, the Saviour should be born in Bethlehem. The Wise Men saw the star once more, and followed it to Bethlehem, where it stood over the stable in which Our Lord lay. They entered, and adored the Infant Jesus, and offered Him presents. Now, Herod told them to come back after they had found the newborn King, and tell him where He was, that he too might go and adore Him. But such was not Herod's real intention. He wished not to adore but to kill Him. See, then, how the wicked pretend at times to do good, that they may deceive us and lead us astray. Be always on your guard against a person if you suspect his goodness. But Herod could not deceive God, who, knowing his heart, warned the Wise Men not to return to Herod, but to go back to their own country by another way, which they did. We celebrate the day on which the Wise Men adored the Infant Jesus on the feast of the Epiphany (six days after New Year's Day). When the Magi did not return, Herod knew that they had avoided him. He was very angry indeed, and in order to be sure of killing the poor little Infant Jesus, he had all the infants or children in or near Bethlehem who were not over two years old put to death. We honor these first little martyrs who suffered for Christ on the feast of Holy Innocents—three days after Christmas.
The life of Our Lord was spent in the following way. When Our Lord was born in Bethlehem, wise men or kings, known as Magi, came from the East—possibly from Persia or Arabia—to worship Him. They saw a unique star and left their homeland to travel to Palestine. When they reached Jerusalem, they went to King Herod and asked him where the young King was born. Herod was disturbed because he feared that this new King would take away his throne. He gathered all the priests and asked them about this royal child. They informed him and the Magi that, according to the prophecies, the Savior was to be born in Bethlehem. The Wise Men saw the star again and followed it to Bethlehem, where it rested over the stable where Our Lord lay. They entered, worshiped the Infant Jesus, and presented Him with gifts. Herod had instructed them to return to him after finding the newborn King to let him know where He was, so he could also go and worship Him. However, this was not Herod's true intention. He intended not to worship but to kill Him. Thus, see how the wicked sometimes pretend to do good in order to deceive us and lead us astray. Always be cautious of someone if you have doubts about their goodness. But Herod could not deceive God, who, knowing his heart, warned the Wise Men not to return to Herod but to go back to their own country another way, which they did. We celebrate the day when the Wise Men worshiped the Infant Jesus on the feast of the Epiphany (six days after New Year's Day). When the Magi did not return, Herod realized they had avoided him. He was extremely angry and, to ensure the death of the poor little Infant Jesus, he ordered the killing of all infants or children in or near Bethlehem who were under two years old. We honor these first little martyrs who suffered for Christ on the feast of the Holy Innocents—three days after Christmas.
After the departure of the Wise Men, God sent an angel to St. Joseph warning him of Herod's evil designs, and telling him to fly with Jesus and Mary into Egypt. Then St. Joseph, with the Blessed Virgin and the Infant, set out for Egypt. St. Joseph did not ask the angel how long he would have to stay there; nor did he ask to be allowed to wait till morning. He obeyed promptly; he arose in the night, and started at once. What an example of obedience for us! They must have had many hardships on the way. They must have suffered much from hunger, cold, and fear. They dare not go on the best roads, for we may well suppose that Herod had his spies out watching for any that might escape. So they went by the roughest roads and longest way. In Egypt they were among strangers, and how could a poor old carpenter like St. Joseph find enough work there! The Holy Family must at times have suffered greatly from want. They remained in Egypt for some time. Afterwards, when Herod died, they returned to Nazareth. (Matt. 2).
After the Wise Men left, God sent an angel to St. Joseph to warn him about Herod's evil plans and told him to take Jesus and Mary to Egypt. So, St. Joseph, along with the Blessed Virgin and the Infant, set off for Egypt. St. Joseph didn’t ask the angel how long they would have to stay or if he could wait until morning. He immediately obeyed, got up in the night, and left right away. What a great example of obedience for us! They must have faced many hardships on their journey. They likely struggled with hunger, cold, and fear. They couldn’t take the safest routes, since we can assume Herod had spies watching for anyone trying to escape. So, they took the roughest paths and the longest way. In Egypt, they were among strangers, and how could a poor old carpenter like St. Joseph find enough work there? The Holy Family must have sometimes suffered greatly from lack of resources. They stayed in Egypt for a while. Later, after Herod died, they returned to Nazareth. (Matt. 2).
At twelve years of age Our Lord went to the Temple of Jerusalem to offer sacrifice with His parents. (Luke 2:42). He afterwards returned to Nazareth, and then for eighteen years—called His hidden life—we do not hear anything of Him. Most likely He worked in the carpenter shop with His foster-father, St. Joseph.
At twelve years old, Jesus went to the Temple in Jerusalem to make a sacrifice with His parents. (Luke 2:42). He then returned to Nazareth, and for eighteen years—known as His hidden life—we don't hear anything about Him. Most likely, He worked in the carpenter shop with His foster father, St. Joseph.
At the age of thirty (Luke 3:23), Our Lord began His public life; that is, His preaching, miracles, etc. His public life lasted a little over three years, and then He was put to death on the Cross.
At the age of thirty (Luke 3:23), our Lord began His public life; that is, His preaching, miracles, etc. His public life lasted a little over three years, and then He was executed on the Cross.
*77 Q. Why did Christ live so long on earth? A. Christ lived so long on earth to show us the way to Heaven by His teaching and example.
*77 Q. Why did Christ live so long on earth? A. Christ lived on earth for a long time to show us the way to Heaven through His teachings and example.
Christ went through all the stages of life that each might have an example. He was an infant: then a child; then a young man, and finally a man. He did not become an old man to set an example to the old, because if men follow His example in their youth and manhood they will be good in old age. Youth is the all-important time to learn. If you want a tree to grow straight, you must keep it straight while it is only a little twig. You cannot straighten an old oak tree that has grown up crooked. So you must be taught to do right in your youth, that you may do the same when old. Of the hidden or private life of Our Lord we, as I have said, know nothing, except that He was obedient to His parents; for He wished to give an example also to those holy persons who lead a life hidden from the world. Some books have given stories about what Our Lord did in school, etc., but these stories are not true. The only true things we know of Our Lord are those told in the Holy Scripture, or handed down to us by the Church in her teachings, or those certainly revealed to God's saints. Remember, then, that others are taught best by example, and be careful of the example you give.
Christ experienced all stages of life so that everyone would have a model to follow. He was an infant, then a child, then a young man, and finally an adult. He didn't become an old man to set an example for the elderly, because if people follow His example in their youth and adulthood, they will be good in their later years. Youth is the crucial time for learning. If you want a tree to grow straight, you have to keep it straight when it's still a small twig. You can't fix a crooked old oak tree. So, you need to learn to do what's right when you're young, so you can continue doing the same when you grow older. We don’t know much about the private life of Our Lord, except that He was obedient to His parents; He wanted to provide an example for those holy people who live a life away from the spotlight. Some books have written stories about what Our Lord did in school and so on, but these stories aren't true. The only true things we know about Our Lord are those found in the Holy Scripture, passed down by the Church through her teachings, or those definitely revealed to God's saints. Remember, others learn best by example, so be mindful of the example you set.
Lesson 8
ON OUR LORD'S PASSION, DEATH, RESURRECTION, AND ASCENSION
Lesson 8
ABOUT OUR LORD'S SUFFERING, DEATH, RESURRECTION, AND ASCENSION
The Passion, that is, the terrible sufferings of Our Lord, began after the Last Supper, and ended at His death. On Thursday evening, Our Lord sat down for the last time with His dear Apostles. He had been talking, eating, and living with them for over three years; and now He is going to take His last meal with them before His death. He told them then how He was to suffer, and that one of them was going to betray Him. They were very much troubled, for only Judas himself knew what he was about to do.
The Passion, which refers to the intense suffering of Our Lord, started after the Last Supper and ended with His death. On Thursday evening, Our Lord had His final meal with His beloved Apostles. He had spent over three years talking, eating, and living with them, and now He was about to share this last meal before His death. He told them that He would suffer and that one of them would betray Him. They were very upset, as only Judas knew what he was planning to do.
78 Q. What did Jesus Christ suffer? A. Jesus Christ suffered a bloody sweat, a cruel scourging, was crowned with thorns, and was crucified.
78 Q. What did Jesus Christ go through? A. Jesus Christ experienced intense sweating, a brutal whipping, was crowned with thorns, and was crucified.
After the Supper, Our Lord went with His Apostles to a little country place just outside Jerusalem, and separated from it by a small stream. He told the three Apostles, Peter, James, and John, to stay near the entrance, and to watch and pray, while He Himself went further into the Garden of Olives, or Gethsemani, as this place was called, and throwing Himself upon His face, prayed long and earnestly, but the Apostles fell asleep.
After the meal, Jesus went with His disciples to a small place just outside Jerusalem, separated from it by a little stream. He told the three disciples, Peter, James, and John, to stay near the entrance and keep watch and pray, while He went further into the Garden of Olives, or Gethsemane, as it was called. He knelt down and prayed deeply for a long time, but the disciples fell asleep.
We often find persons who are in great anguish or dread covered with a cold perspiration. Now, Our Lord's agony in the garden was so intense that great drops, not of sweat, but of blood, oozed from every pore, and trickled to the ground. There are three reasons given for this dreadful agony.
We often see people in deep distress or fear covered in a cold sweat. Our Lord's suffering in the garden was so intense that great drops, not of sweat, but of blood, oozed from every pore and dripped to the ground. There are three reasons given for this horrifying agony.
(1) The clear, certain knowledge of the sufferings so soon to be endured. If we were to be put to death tomorrow and knew exactly the manner of our death and the pain it would inflict, how great would be our fear! Our Lord, knowing all things, knew in every particular what He would have to undergo. Moreover, His sufferings were greater than ours could be, even if we suffered the same kind of death; because His body was most perfect, and therefore more susceptible of pain than ours. A wound in the eye, because the most sensitive and delicate part of the body, would cause us greater pain than a wound on the foot or hand. Thus, all the parts of Our Lord's body being so perfect and sensitive, we can scarcely imagine His dreadful torments, the very thought of which caused Him such agony.
(1) The clear, certain knowledge of the suffering that was about to happen. If we knew we were going to be executed tomorrow and exactly how it would happen and the pain it would bring, how intense would our fear be! Our Lord, knowing everything, understood exactly what He would have to face. Furthermore, His sufferings were greater than anything we could experience, even if we went through the same kind of death; because His body was perfect, and therefore more sensitive to pain than ours. An injury to the eye, being the most sensitive part of the body, would hurt us more than a wound on the foot or hand. So, with all the parts of Our Lord's body being so perfect and sensitive, we can hardly imagine His terrible torments, which caused Him such deep anguish just at the thought of them.
(2) The sins, past, present, and future of all men. He knew all things, as we have said, and looking back upon the world He saw all the sins committed, of thought, word, and deed, from the time of Adam down to His own; and seeing all these offenses against His Father, He was very much grieved.
(2) The sins, past, present, and future of all people. He knew everything, as we’ve mentioned, and looking back at the world, He saw all the sins committed—through thought, word, and action—from the time of Adam until His own. And seeing all these offenses against His Father, He was deeply saddened.
(3) The third reason why He grieved. He looked forward and saw how little many persons would profit by all the sufferings He was about to endure. He saw all the sins that would be committed from the time of His death down to the end of the world. He saw us also sinning with the rest. No wonder then that He suffered so much in the garden. This suffering on that night is called "Our Lord's Agony in the Garden." That night Judas, who had betrayed Him to His enemies, came with a great band of soldiers and people, with swords and clubs, to make Our Lord a prisoner. He did not try to escape, but stood waiting for them, though all His Apostles, who had promised to stay with Him, ran away. Then the soldiers led Our Lord to the house of the Chief Priest. Then they gathered the priests, and gave Him a kind of trial, and said He was guilty of death. But at that time the Jews had no power to put persons to death according to the law; so they had to send Our Lord to Pontius Pilate, the Roman Governor, to be condemned, because they were under the power of the Romans. The Jews acted against their laws in the trial of Our Lord.
(3) The third reason why He was troubled. He looked ahead and saw how few people would benefit from all the suffering He was about to endure. He saw all the sins that would be committed from the time of His death until the end of the world. He saw us also sinning along with everyone else. It's no surprise then that He suffered so much in the garden. This suffering that night is known as "Our Lord's Agony in the Garden." That night, Judas, who had betrayed Him to His enemies, arrived with a large group of soldiers and people, armed with swords and clubs, to arrest Our Lord. He didn’t try to run away; instead, He stood there waiting for them, even though all His Apostles, who had promised to stay with Him, fled. Then the soldiers took Our Lord to the house of the Chief Priest. There, they gathered the priests and held a kind of trial, declaring Him guilty of death. However, at that time, the Jews had no authority to execute anyone according to the law; so they had to send Our Lord to Pontius Pilate, the Roman Governor, to be condemned, because they were under Roman rule. The Jews acted against their laws in the trial of Our Lord.
(1) They tried Him at night; and (2) they allowed Him no witnesses in His defense, but even employed false witnesses to testify against Him, and thus acted against all law and justice. Early in the morning they led Him to Pilate, who commanded that He should be scourged. Then they stripped Our Lord of His garments, fastened His hands to a low stone pillar, and there He was "scourged" by the Roman soldiers. The lashes used by the Romans were made of leather, with pieces of bone, iron, or steel fastened into it, so that every stroke would lay open the flesh. It is most likely these were the lashes used upon Our Lord till every portion of His body was bruised and bleeding, and they replaced His garments upon Him. Now, you know if you put a cloth upon a fresh wound the blood will soak into it and cause it to adhere to the mangled flesh. Our Blessed Lord's garment, thus saturated with His blood, adhered to His wounded body, and when again removed caused Him unspeakable pain. Next, the soldiers, because Our Lord had said He was a king—meaning a spiritual king—led Him into a large hall and mocked Him. They made a crown of long, sharp thorns, and forced it down upon His brow with a heavy rod or reed; every stroke driving the thorns into His head, and causing the blood to roll down His sacred face. They again took off His garments, and opened anew the painful wounds. Because kings wore purple, they put an old purple garment upon Him, and made Him a mock king, genuflecting in ridicule as they passed before Him. They struck Him in the face and spat upon Him; and yet it seems our patient Lord said not a word in complaint. Then they put His garments upon Him, and Pilate asked the people what he should do with Him, and they cried, "Crucify Him." It was then Friday morning, and probably about ten or eleven o'clock. They made a cross of heavy beams, and laying it upon His shoulders, forced Him to carry it to Calvary—the place of execution, just outside the city; for it was not allowed to execute anyone in the city. Our Lord had not eaten anything from Thursday evening, and then with all He suffered and the loss of blood, He must have been very weak at eleven o'clock on Friday morning. He was weak, and fell many times under the Cross. His suffering was increased by seeing His Blessed Mother looking at Him. When He arrived at Calvary they tore off His garments and nailed Him to the Cross, driving the rough nails through His hands and feet. It was then about twelve o'clock. From twelve to three in the afternoon Our Blessed Saviour was hanging on the Cross, with a great multitude of His enemies about Him mocking and saying cruel things. Even the two thieves that were crucified with Him reviled Him, though one of them repented and was pardoned before death. Our Lord's poor Mother and His few friends stood at a little distance witnessing all that was going on. When Our Lord was thirsty His executioners gave Him gall to drink. At three o'clock He died, and there was an earthquake and darkness, and the people were sorely afraid.
(1) They tried Him at night; and (2) they let Him have no witnesses in His defense, plus they even brought in false witnesses to testify against Him, acting against all law and justice. Early in the morning, they took Him to Pilate, who ordered that He be whipped. Then they stripped Our Lord of His clothes, tied His hands to a low stone pillar, and there He was whipped by the Roman soldiers. The whips used by the Romans were made of leather, with pieces of bone, iron, or steel attached, so that each strike would tear open the flesh. It's likely these were the whips used on Our Lord until every part of His body was bruised and bleeding, and they put His clothes back on Him. Now, you know if you put fabric on a fresh wound, the blood will soak in and cause it to stick to the damaged flesh. Our Blessed Lord's clothing, soaked with His blood, stuck to His wounded body, and when it was removed again, it caused Him unimaginable pain. Next, the soldiers, because Our Lord had said He was a king—meaning a spiritual king—brought Him into a large hall and mocked Him. They made a crown of long, sharp thorns and forced it down on His head with a heavy rod; each blow drove the thorns into His scalp, making blood run down His sacred face. They took off His clothing again, reopening the painful wounds. Since kings wore purple, they dressed Him in an old purple robe and made Him a mock king, kneeling in mockery as they passed by. They struck Him in the face and spat on Him; yet, it seems our patient Lord didn’t say a word in complaint. Then they put His clothes back on Him, and Pilate asked the crowd what he should do with Him, and they shouted, "Crucify Him." It was then Friday morning, probably around ten or eleven o'clock. They made a cross out of heavy beams, and laying it on His shoulders, forced Him to carry it to Calvary—the execution site, just outside the city; executions weren't allowed inside the city. Our Lord hadn’t eaten anything since Thursday evening, and with all He suffered and the loss of blood, He must have been very weak by eleven o'clock on Friday morning. He was weak, and fell many times under the Cross. His suffering was made worse by seeing His Blessed Mother looking at Him. When He arrived at Calvary, they tore off His clothes and nailed Him to the Cross, driving rough nails through His hands and feet. It was about noon. From twelve to three in the afternoon, Our Blessed Savior hung on the Cross, surrounded by a large crowd of His enemies mocking and saying cruel things. Even the two thieves crucified with Him insulted Him, though one repented and was pardoned before death. Our Lord's poor Mother and His few friends stood at a distance, witnessing everything that was happening. When Our Lord was thirsty, His executioners gave Him gall to drink. At three o'clock, He died, and there was an earthquake and darkness, and the people were very afraid.
But you will ask, how could these soldiers be so cruel? They were Romans; and in those days men called gladiators used to fight with swords before the Roman Emperor and all the people—just as actors play now for the amusement of their audience. People who could enjoy such scenes as men slaying one another in deadly conflict would scarcely be moved to pity by seeing a man scourged. Again, in the early ages of the Church, during the persecutions, the Emperors used to order the Christians to be thrown to wild beasts to be torn to pieces in the presence of the people—who applauded these horrible sights. They who could see so many put to death would not mind putting one to death, even in the most terrible manner.
But you might wonder, how could these soldiers be so brutal? They were Romans, and back then, gladiators fought with swords in front of the Roman Emperor and all the people—just like actors put on shows now for the entertainment of their audience. People who could enjoy watching others kill each other in brutal battles would hardly feel sympathy when seeing a man whipped. Additionally, in the early days of the Church, during the persecutions, Emperors would order Christians to be fed to wild animals to be ripped apart in front of the crowd—who cheered for these gruesome displays. Those who could witness so many deaths wouldn't hesitate to take one life, even in the most horrific way.
79 Q. On what day did Christ die? A. Christ died on Good Friday.
79 Q. On what day did Christ die? A. Christ died on Good Friday.
"Good Friday," so called since that time.
"Good Friday," as it has been called since then.
*80 Q. Why do you call that day "good" on which Christ suffered so sorrowful a death? A. We call that day good on which Christ died, because by His death He showed His great love for man, and purchased for him every blessing.
*80 Q. Why do you call that day "good" on which Christ suffered such a painful death? A. We call that day good on which Christ died because, through His death, He demonstrated His immense love for humanity and secured every blessing for us.
*81 Q. Where did Christ die? A. Christ died on Mount Calvary.
*81 Q. Where did Christ die? A. Christ died on Mount Calvary.
"Mount Calvary," a little hill just outside the city of Jerusalem. For every city they have a special prison or place where all their criminals are executed. Now, as the great Temple of God was in Jerusalem, the city itself was called the City of God, because in the Temple God spoke to the priests in the Holy of Holies. The Temple was divided into two parts: one part, something like the body of our churches, called the Holy, and the other part, where the Ark of the Covenant was kept, called the Holy of Holies. It had about the same relation to the Temple as our altar and sanctuary have to our churches. The Ark of the Covenant was a box about four feet long, two and a half feet high, and two and a half feet wide, made of the finest wood, and ornamented with gold in the most beautiful manner. In it were the tables of stone, on which were written the Commandments of God; also the rod that Aaron—Moses' brother—changed into a serpent before King Pharaoh; also some of the manna with which the people were miraculously fed during their forty years' journey in the desert when they fled out of Egypt. All these things were figures of the true religion. The Ark itself was a figure of the tabernacle, and the manna of the Holy Eucharist. The Holy of Holies was hidden from the people by a veil. Only the Chief Priest was allowed into that sacred place, and but once a year. The veil—called the veil of the Temple—hiding that Holy of Holies, though the things mentioned above were no longer in it, was torn asunder when Our Lord died on the Cross (Matt. 27:51); because after His death there was no need any longer of figures; for after His death we have the tabernacle itself and the real manna, the real bread from Heaven, viz., the body of Our Lord. The veil was rent to show also that God would not remain any longer in the Temple, but would be for the future only in the Christian Church. On account of all these things, therefore, Jerusalem was called the Holy City, and no criminals were put to death in it, but were conducted to Calvary—which means the place of skulls—and were there put to death. I now call your attention to one thing. If the Jews showed such great respect and reverence for the Ark containing only figures of the Blessed Sacrament, how should we behave in the presence of the tabernacle on the altar containing the Blessed Sacrament itself!
"Mount Calvary," a small hill just outside the city of Jerusalem. Every city has a specific place where their criminals are executed. Since the great Temple of God was in Jerusalem, the city was referred to as the City of God because God spoke to the priests in the Holy of Holies. The Temple was divided into two sections: one part, similar to the main area of our churches, called the Holy, and the other part, where the Ark of the Covenant was stored, called the Holy of Holies. It had a similar relationship to the Temple as our altar and sanctuary do to our churches. The Ark of the Covenant was a box about four feet long, two and a half feet high, and two and a half feet wide, made from the finest wood and beautifully adorned with gold. Inside it were the stone tablets with the Commandments of God; the rod that Aaron—Moses' brother—turned into a serpent before King Pharaoh; and some of the manna with which the people were miraculously fed during their forty years in the desert after fleeing Egypt. All of these things symbolized the true religion. The Ark itself represented the tabernacle, and the manna foreshadowed the Holy Eucharist. The Holy of Holies was hidden from the people by a veil. Only the Chief Priest was allowed in that sacred space, and only once a year. The veil—known as the veil of the Temple—hiding the Holy of Holies, although the aforementioned items were no longer inside it, was torn apart when Our Lord died on the Cross (Matt. 27:51); because after His death, there was no longer a need for symbols; after His death, we have the tabernacle itself and the true manna, the real bread from Heaven, that is, the body of Our Lord. The veil was torn to also indicate that God would no longer remain in the Temple but would henceforth be found only in the Christian Church. Because of all these reasons, Jerusalem was called the Holy City, and no criminals were executed there; instead, they were taken to Calvary—which means the place of skulls—and executed there. I want to draw your attention to one thing. If the Jews showed such great respect and reverence for the Ark containing only symbols of the Blessed Sacrament, how should we act in the presence of the tabernacle on the altar that contains the Blessed Sacrament itself!
*82 Q. How did Christ die? A. Christ was nailed to a cross and died on it, between two thieves.
*82 Q. How did Christ die? A. Christ was nailed to a cross and died on it, between two thieves.
"Two thieves," because they thought this would make His death more disgraceful—making Him equal to common criminals. One of these thieves, called the penitent thief, repented of his sins and received Our Lord's pardon before his death. The other thief died in his sins. Holy writers tell us that one of these thieves was saved to give poor sinners hope, and to teach them that they may save their souls at the very last moment of their lives if only they are heartily sorry for their sins and implore God's pardon for them. The other thief remained and died impenitent, that sinners may fear to put off their conversion to the hour of death, thus rashly presuming on God's mercy. Persons who willfully delay their conversion and put off their repentance to the last moment, living bad lives with the hope of dying well, may not accept the grace to repent at the last moment, but may, like the unfortunate, impenitent thief, die as they lived, in a state of sin.
"Two thieves," because they thought this would make His death more disgraceful—making Him equal to common criminals. One of these thieves, known as the penitent thief, regretted his sins and received Our Lord's forgiveness before he died. The other thief died in his sins. Holy writers tell us that one of these thieves was saved to give struggling sinners hope and to show them that they can save their souls at the last moment of their lives if they are truly sorry for their sins and earnestly ask God for forgiveness. The other thief remained unrepentant and died that way so that sinners may fear delaying their conversion until death, rashly assuming on God's mercy. Those who deliberately postpone their conversion and delay their repentance until the end, living sinful lives in hopes of dying well, might not receive the grace to repent at the last moment. Instead, they may, like the unfortunate, unrepentant thief, die as they lived, in a state of sin.
83 Q. Why did Christ suffer and die? A. Christ suffered and died for our sins.
83 Q. Why did Christ suffer and die? A. Christ suffered and died for our sins.
It was not necessary for Our Lord to suffer so much, but He did it to show how much He loved us and valued our souls, and how much He was willing to give for them. We, alas! do not value our souls as Christ did; we sometimes sell them for the merest trifle—a moment's gratification. How sinful!
It wasn’t necessary for Our Lord to endure so much suffering, but He did it to demonstrate how much He loved us and valued our souls, and how much He was willing to sacrifice for them. Unfortunately, we don’t value our souls like Christ did; we often trade them for the smallest things—a fleeting moment of pleasure. How wrong!
*84 Q. What lessons do we learn from the sufferings and death of Christ? A. From the sufferings and death of Christ we learn the great evil of sin, the hatred God bears to it, and the necessity of satisfying for it.
*84 Q. What lessons do we learn from the sufferings and death of Christ? A. From the sufferings and death of Christ, we understand the serious nature of sin, the disdain God has for it, and the need for reconciliation for it.
We learn "the great evil of sin" also from the misery it brought into the world; the "hatred God bears to it," from the punishment He inflicted on the wicked angels and on our first parents for it; and lastly, the "necessity of satisfying for it," from the fact that God allowed His dear and only Son to suffer death itself for the sins even of others.
We understand "the great evil of sin" from the suffering it brought into the world; the "hatred God has for it," from the punishment He imposed on the wicked angels and our first parents because of it; and finally, the "need to make amends for it," from the fact that God allowed His beloved and only Son to die for the sins of others.
*85 Q. Whither did Christ's soul go after His death? A. After Christ's death His soul descended into hell.
*85 Q. Where did Christ's soul go after His death? A. After Christ's death, His soul went down to hell.
*86 Q. Did Christ's soul descend into the hell of the damned? A. The hell into which Christ's soul descended was not the hell of the damned, but a place or state of rest called Limbo, where the souls of the just were waiting for Him.
*86 Q. Did Christ's soul go down to the hell of the damned? A. The hell that Christ's soul went to was not the hell of the damned, but a place or state of rest called Limbo, where the souls of the righteous were waiting for Him.
Hell had many meanings in olden times. The grave was sometimes called hell. Jacob, when he heard that wild beasts had devoured his son Joseph, said: "I will go down with sorrow into hell." He meant the grave. Limbo is not the same as Purgatory. It does not exist now, or, if it does, is only for little children who have never committed actual sin and who have died without Baptism. They will never get into Heaven or see God, but they will not have to suffer pains as they who are in Purgatory or Hell endure.
Hell had many meanings in ancient times. The grave was sometimes referred to as hell. When Jacob heard that wild animals had killed his son Joseph, he said, "I will go down in sorrow to hell." He meant the grave. Limbo is not the same as Purgatory. It doesn't exist now, or if it does, it's only for little children who have never sinned and have died without Baptism. They won't get to Heaven or see God, but they won't suffer the pains that those in Purgatory or Hell experience.
*87 Q. Why did Christ descend into Limbo? A. Christ descended into Limbo to preach to the souls who were in prison—that is, to announce to them the joyful tidings of their redemption.
*87 Q. Why did Christ go down to Limbo? A. Christ went down to Limbo to preach to the souls who were trapped there—that is, to share with them the good news of their salvation.
*88 Q. Where was Christ's body while His soul was in Limbo? A. While Christ's soul was in Limbo His body was in the Holy Sepulchre.
*88 Q. Where was Christ's body while His soul was in Limbo? A. While Christ's soul was in Limbo, His body was in the Holy Sepulchre.
"Sepulchre" is the same as tomb. It is like a little room. In it the coffin is not covered up with earth as it is in the grave, but is placed upon a stand. We call such places vaults, and you can see many of them in any cemetery or burying ground. Sometimes they are cut in the side of elevated ground with their entrance level with the road, and sometimes they are built altogether under the ground. The one in which Our Lord was placed was cut out of the side of a rock, and had for a door a great stone against the entrance. Our Lord was not placed in a coffin, but was wrapped in a linen cloth. It was the custom of the Jewish people and of many other ancient nations to embalm the bodies of the dead, wrap them in cloths, and cover them with sweet spices. (Matt. 27:59). Thus it was that Mary Magdalene and other good women came early in the morning to anoint the body of Our Lord. But you will say, why did they not do it on Friday evening or night? The reason was this: The day with the Jews began at sunset—generally about six o'clock—and ended at sunset on the next evening. We count our twenty-four hours, or day, from twelve at midnight till twelve the next night. Therefore, with the Jews six o'clock on Friday evening was the beginning of Saturday. They kept Saturday, or the Sabbath, instead of Sunday as a day of worship. On that day, which they kept very strictly, it was not allowable to do work of any kind; so they could not anoint Our Lord's body till the Sabbath ended, which was about six o'clock, or sunset on Saturday evening. So, as the Holy Scripture tells us, they came very early in the morning; for Mary Magdalene and these good women were Jews, and strictly observed the Jewish law. You must know that Our Lord Himself, the Blessed Virgin, St. Joseph, and the Apostles were Jews; and that the Jewish religion was the true religion up to the coming of Our Lord; but as it was only a figure and a promise of the Christian religion, it ceased to have any meaning or to be the true religion when the Christian religion itself was established by Our Lord.
"Sepulchre" means tomb. It’s like a small room. Instead of being buried under dirt like in a grave, the coffin is placed on a stand. We call these places vaults, and you can find many of them in any cemetery. Sometimes they are carved into elevated ground with the entrance at road level, and other times they are completely underground. The one where Our Lord was laid was cut out of a rock and had a large stone as its door. Our Lord wasn’t put in a coffin but was wrapped in a linen cloth. It was customary for the Jewish people and many other ancient cultures to embalm the dead, wrap them in cloth, and cover them with fragrant spices. (Matt. 27:59). This is why Mary Magdalene and other faithful women came early in the morning to anoint Our Lord's body. You might wonder why they didn’t do it on Friday evening or night. The reason is that, for the Jews, the day started at sunset—typically around six o'clock—and ended at sunset the next day. We measure our twenty-four-hour day from midnight to midnight. So, to the Jews, six o'clock on Friday evening marked the beginning of Saturday. They observed Saturday, or the Sabbath, instead of Sunday as their day of worship. On that day, which they strictly observed, they were not allowed to work; therefore, they couldn’t anoint Our Lord’s body until the Sabbath was over, which was around six o'clock, or sunset on Saturday evening. As Holy Scripture tells us, they came very early in the morning because Mary Magdalene and these good women were Jews who closely followed Jewish law. You should know that Our Lord, the Blessed Virgin, St. Joseph, and the Apostles were all Jews, and the Jewish religion was the true faith until the coming of Our Lord; however, since it was merely a figure and a promise of the Christian religion, it lost its significance and was no longer the true faith once the Christian religion was established by Our Lord.
89 Q. On what day did Christ rise from the dead? A. Christ rose from the dead, glorious and immortal, on Easter Sunday, the third day after His death.
89 Q. On what day did Christ rise from the dead? A. Christ rose from the dead, glorious and immortal, on Easter Sunday, the third day after His death.
"Rose" by His own power. This is the greatest of all Our Lord's miracles, because all He taught is confirmed by it and depends upon it. A miracle is a work that can be performed only by God, or by someone to whom He has given the power. If anyone performs a real miracle to prove what he says, his words must be true; for God, who is infinite truth, could not sanction a lie—could not help an impostor to deceive us. Now Our Lord said He was the Son of God; that He could forgive sins, etc.; and He performed miracles to prove what He said. Therefore He must have told the truth. So all those whom God sent to do any great work were given the power to perform miracles that the people might know they were really messengers from God. They, on the other hand, who claim—as many have done from time to time in the world—that they have been sent by God to do some great work, and can give no convincing proof of their mission, are not to be believed. Thus, when Martin Luther claimed that he was sent by God to reform the Catholic Church—which had existed nearly 1,500 years before he was born—he performed no miracles, nor did he give any other proof that he had any such commission from God; and he cannot therefore be believed.
"Rose" by His own power. This is the greatest of all Our Lord's miracles because everything He taught is confirmed by it and depends on it. A miracle is something that can only be done by God or by someone to whom He has given the power. If anyone performs a real miracle to prove what they say, their words must be true; for God, who is infinite truth, could not support a lie—could not enable an impostor to deceive us. Now, Our Lord said He was the Son of God; that He could forgive sins, etc.; and He performed miracles to prove what He said. Therefore, He must have been telling the truth. So all those whom God sent to do any great work were given the power to perform miracles so that people would know they were truly messengers from God. On the other hand, those who claim—as many have throughout history—that they have been sent by God to do some great work, and provide no convincing proof of their mission, should not be believed. Thus, when Martin Luther claimed that he was sent by God to reform the Catholic Church—which had existed for nearly 1,500 years before he was born—he performed no miracles, nor did he provide any other evidence that he had such a commission from God; and therefore, he cannot be believed.
God has established all the laws of nature permanently. They will not vary or change, so that we can depend upon them. We can always be sure that the sun will rise and set; that the seasons will come; that fire will burn, etc. Now, if we see three young men in a great fiery furnace without being burned (Dan. 3), we say it is a great miracle; because naturally the fire would burn them up if God did not prevent it. Again, water will not stand up like a high wall without something keeping it back; it will always run about and fill every empty spot near it. If, therefore, we see water standing up like a high wall, as it did in the Red Sea at the command of Moses, and in the River Jordan, we say it is a miracle. So in all cases where the laws of nature do not work in the ordinary manner, we say a miracle is being performed. Now Our Lord performed many such miracles—many times He suspended the laws of nature—which God alone can do, since He alone established them. Our Lord called back the soul to the body after death, thus raising the dead. He healed the sick, gave sight to the blind, cured the lame, etc., when all medicine and natural means were useless. He did all these things instantly as a rule, and without remedies. Therefore His miracles prove His divine power. Since the resurrection was a great miracle, and Our Lord performed it to prove that He was the true and only Son of God, He must have been just what He said He was.
God has permanently established all the laws of nature. They won't change or vary, so we can rely on them. We can always count on the sun to rise and set, the seasons to change, and fire to burn, among other things. If we see three young men in a large fiery furnace without getting burned (Dan. 3), we recognize it as a great miracle; naturally, the fire would consume them if God didn’t intervene. Similarly, water won't stand up like a tall wall without something holding it back; it will always flow and fill any empty space nearby. Therefore, when we see water standing up like a wall, as it did in the Red Sea at Moses’ command and in the River Jordan, we call it a miracle. Whenever the laws of nature don't function as usual, we say a miracle is happening. Our Lord performed many such miracles—He often suspended the laws of nature, which is something only God can do since He alone established them. He brought souls back to their bodies after death, raising the dead. He healed the sick, restored sight to the blind, cured the lame, and more, when all medicine and natural methods had failed. He did all these things immediately and usually without any remedies. Therefore, His miracles demonstrate His divine power. Since the resurrection was a significant miracle, and Our Lord performed it to show that He was the true and only Son of God, He must have been exactly who He claimed to be.
"Glorious." Our Lord rose in the same body He had before His death; but when He rose it had new qualities—it was glorified. The qualities of a glorified body are four, viz.: brilliancy, agility, subtility, and impassability. (1) It has brilliancy; that is, it shines like a light; it gives forth light; the soul shines through the body. You have heard of the Transfiguration of Our Lord. One day He took three of His Apostles—Peter, James, and John—unto a high mountain (Matt. 17); and as He was speaking to them, suddenly His whole body began to shine like the sun. Then Moses and Elias—two great and holy men of the Old Law—came and conversed with Him. The Apostles were astonished and delighted at the sight, and wished to remain there always. Our Lord's body at that time showed one of the qualities of a glorified body. The same three Apostles that saw Him thus transfigured and heard the voice of the Heavenly Father saying, "This is My beloved Son," were present in the garden during Our Lord's agony. He allowed them to see the Transfiguration, so that when they should see Him suffering as man, they would remember that they saw Him on the mountain glorified as God. (2) Agility; that is, a glorified body can move rapidly from one place to another, like the lightning itself. After His resurrection Our Lord was in Jerusalem, and almost immediately He appeared near the village of Emmaus to two disciples going there. (Luke 24). They had left Jerusalem after the Crucifixion, probably through fear, and were going along together talking about what had happened during the days of Our Lord's Passion. Suddenly Our Lord came and walked and talked with them, but they did not know Him. They asked Him to stay that night at their house, for it was growing dark. He did not stop with them, and at supper they knew Him, and then He vanished from their sight. An ordinary person would have to get up and walk away; but He vanished, showing on this occasion the second quality of His glorified body—agility. (3) Subtility; that is, such a body can go where it pleases and cannot be resisted by material things. It can pass through closed doors or gates, and even walls cannot keep it out. It passes through everything, as light does through glass without breaking it. At one time after Our Lord's resurrection the Apostles were gathered together in a room, for they were still afraid of being put to death, and the doors were tightly closed. Suddenly Our Lord stood in the midst of them and said: "Peace be to you." (John 20:19). They did not open the door for Him; neither wood nor stone could keep Him out: and thus He showed that His body had the third quality. (4) His body had the fourth quality also—impassability, which means that it can no longer suffer. Before His death, and at it, Our Lord suffered dreadful torments, as you know; but after His resurrection nothing could injure or hurt Him. The spear could not hurt His side, nor the nails His hands, nor the thorns His head. Shortly after His resurrection Our Lord appeared to His Apostles while Thomas, one of them, was absent. (John 20:24). When Thomas returned, the other Apostles told him that they had seen the Lord risen from the dead; but he would not believe them, saying: "Unless I see the holes where the nails were in His hands and feet, and put my finger into His side, I will not believe." Now Our Lord, knowing all things, knew this also; so He came again when Thomas was present, and said to him: "Now, Thomas, put your hand into My side." Thomas cried out: "My Lord and my God!" He believed then, because he saw. Now if this body of Our Lord's had been an ordinary body, it would have caused Him pain to allow anyone to put his hand into the wound; but it was impassable. It seems very strange, does it not, that Thomas would not believe what the other Apostles told him? God permitted this. Why? Because, if they all believed easily, some enemies of Our Lord might say the Apostles were simple men that believed everything without any proof. Now they cannot truly say so, because here was one of the Apostles, Thomas, who would not believe without the very strongest kind of proof. Another person, one would think, would have been satisfied with seeing Our Lord's wounds; but Thomas would not trust even his eyes—he must also touch before he would believe: showing, therefore, that the Apostles were not deceived in anything Our Lord did in their presence, for they had always the most convincing proofs.
"Glorious." Our Lord rose in the same body He had before His death; but when He rose, it had new qualities—it was glorified. The qualities of a glorified body are four: brilliance, agility, subtlety, and impassibility. (1) It has brilliance; that is, it shines like a light; it emits light; the soul shines through the body. You've heard of the Transfiguration of Our Lord. One day He took three of His Apostles—Peter, James, and John—up a high mountain (Matt. 17); and while He was talking to them, suddenly His whole body began to shine like the sun. Then Moses and Elijah—two great and holy figures from the Old Testament—appeared and talked with Him. The Apostles were amazed and thrilled by the sight, wishing they could stay there forever. Our Lord's body at that moment demonstrated one of the qualities of a glorified body. The same three Apostles who saw Him transfigured and heard the voice of the Heavenly Father saying, "This is My beloved Son," were present in the garden during Our Lord's agony. He allowed them to see the Transfiguration so that when they witnessed Him suffering as a man, they would remember seeing Him on the mountain glorified as God. (2) Agility; that is, a glorified body can move quickly from one place to another, like lightning itself. After His resurrection, Our Lord was in Jerusalem, and almost immediately He appeared near the village of Emmaus to two disciples who were on their way there. (Luke 24). They had left Jerusalem after the Crucifixion, likely out of fear, and were walking together discussing what had happened during Our Lord's Passion. Suddenly, Our Lord appeared and walked and talked with them, but they didn't recognize Him. They invited Him to stay the night at their home because it was getting dark. He didn't stay with them, and during supper, they recognized Him, and then He vanished from their sight. An ordinary person would have to get up and walk away; but He vanished, demonstrating the second quality of His glorified body—agility. (3) Subtlety; that is, this body can go wherever it wants and cannot be hindered by physical barriers. It can pass through closed doors or gates, and walls cannot confine it. It moves through everything, like light does through glass without breaking it. Once, after Our Lord's resurrection, the Apostles were gathered in a room, afraid of being killed, and the doors were tightly shut. Suddenly, Our Lord stood among them and said, "Peace be with you." (John 20:19). They didn't open the door for Him; neither wood nor stone could keep Him out: and thus He showed that His body had the third quality. (4) His body also had the fourth quality—impassibility, which means it can no longer suffer. Before His death, and during it, Our Lord endured terrible pains, as you know; but after His resurrection, nothing could harm or hurt Him. The spear could not pierce His side, nor the nails His hands, nor the thorns His head. Shortly after His resurrection, Our Lord appeared to His Apostles while Thomas, one of them, was absent. (John 20:24). When Thomas returned, the other Apostles told him they had seen the Lord risen from the dead; but he refused to believe them, saying, "Unless I see the marks from the nails in His hands and feet, and put my finger into His side, I will not believe." Now Our Lord, knowing all things, was aware of this; so He came again while Thomas was there and said to him, "Now, Thomas, put your hand into My side." Thomas exclaimed, "My Lord and my God!" He believed then, because he saw. If this body of Our Lord's had been a regular body, it would have caused Him pain to let anyone touch the wound; but it was impassable. It's quite odd, isn't it, that Thomas wouldn't believe what the other Apostles told him? God allowed this. Why? Because if they all believed easily, some enemies of Our Lord might claim that the Apostles were simple folk who believed everything without any proof. Now they cannot genuinely say that because one of the Apostles, Thomas, refused to believe without the strongest proof. You would think another person would have been satisfied with merely seeing Our Lord's wounds; but Thomas wouldn't trust even his own eyes—he needed to touch them before he would believe: which shows that the Apostles were not deceived by anything Our Lord did in their presence, for they always had the most convincing evidence.
After the Resurrection, at the last day, the bodies of all those who are to be in Heaven will have the qualities I have mentioned; that is, they will be glorified bodies.
After the Resurrection, on the last day, the bodies of everyone who is meant to be in Heaven will have the qualities I've mentioned; that is, they will be glorified bodies.
Speaking of Our Lord's wounds, I might tell you what the stigmata means, if you should ever hear or read of it. There have been some persons in the world—saints, of course—who have had upon their hands, feet, and side wounds just like those Our Lord had, and these wounds caused them great pain. For example, St. Francis of Assisi (see Butler's Lives of the Saints, Oct. 4th). Up to 1883—that is, only a few years ago—there lived in Belgium a young girl named Louise Lateau who had the stigmata. We have the most positive proof of it, as you may see in the accounts of her life now published. Her wounds caused her great pain and bled every Friday for many years. She was a delicate seamstress, and lived with her mother and sisters in almost continual poverty. She had always been remarkable for her true piety, patience in suffering, and charity to the sick. I mention this young girl because she lived in our own time, and is the latest person we know of who had the stigmata, or wounds of Our Lord. So if you ever hear of the stigmata of St. Francis or others, you will know that it means wounds like those of Our Lord impressed on their bodies in a miraculous manner.
Speaking of Our Lord's wounds, I could explain what the stigmata means if you ever come across it. There have been people in the world—saints, of course—who had wounds on their hands, feet, and side just like those of Our Lord, and these wounds caused them significant pain. For instance, St. Francis of Assisi (see Butler's Lives of the Saints, Oct. 4th). Up until 1883—just a few years ago—there was a young girl in Belgium named Louise Lateau who had the stigmata. We have strong evidence of this, as you can see in the published accounts of her life. Her wounds caused her great pain and bled every Friday for many years. She was a delicate seamstress and lived with her mother and sisters in almost constant poverty. She had always been known for her genuine piety, patience in suffering, and care for the sick. I mention this young girl because she lived in our time and is the most recent person we know of who had the stigmata, or wounds of Our Lord. So if you ever hear about the stigmata of St. Francis or others, you'll understand that it refers to wounds like those of Our Lord miraculously marked on their bodies.
"Immortal"—that is never to die again, as it will be with us also after the Resurrection.
"Immortal"—that means never dying again, as it will be with us even after the Resurrection.
"The third day." It was not three full days, but the parts of three days. Suppose someone should ask you on Friday evening how long from now to Sunday; you would answer: Sunday will be the third day from today. You would count thus: Friday one, Saturday two, and Sunday itself three. So it was with Our Lord. He died on Friday at about three in the afternoon, and remained in the sepulchre till Sunday morning.
"The third day." It wasn't three complete days, but parts of three days. If someone asked you on Friday evening how long it is until Sunday, you would say: Sunday will be the third day from today. You would count like this: Friday is one, Saturday is two, and Sunday itself is three. It was the same with Our Lord. He died on Friday around three in the afternoon and stayed in the tomb until Sunday morning.
*90 Q. How long did Christ stay on earth after His resurrection? A. Christ stayed on earth forty days after His resurrection, to show that He was truly risen from the dead, and to instruct His Apostles.
*90 Q. How long did Christ stay on earth after His resurrection? A. Christ stayed on earth for forty days after His resurrection to show that He had truly risen from the dead and to teach His Apostles.*
After Our Lord's resurrection He remained on earth forty days: but you must not think He was visible all that time. No. He did not appear to everybody, but only to certain persons, and not all the time to them either. He appeared to His Apostles and others in all about nine times; at least, we know for certain that He appeared nine times, though He may have appeared oftener. He showed that "He was truly risen," for He ate with His Apostles and conversed with them. (Luke 24:42). It was after the resurrection that He breathed on them and gave them the power to forgive sins. (John 20).
After our Lord's resurrection, He stayed on earth for forty days; however, you shouldn't think He was visible the entire time. No, He didn't show Himself to everyone, just to certain individuals, and not all the time to them either. He appeared to His Apostles and some others about nine times; at least, we know for sure that He appeared nine times, although He might have appeared more often. He proved that "He was truly risen" by eating with His Apostles and talking with them. (Luke 24:42). It was after the resurrection that He breathed on them and gave them the power to forgive sins. (John 20).
91 Q. After Christ had remained forty days on earth, whither did He go? A. After forty days Christ ascended into Heaven, and the day on which He ascended into Heaven is called Ascension Day.
91 Q. After Christ spent forty days on earth, where did He go? A. After forty days, Christ ascended to Heaven, and the day He ascended is known as Ascension Day.
One day He was on a mountain with His Apostles and disciples; and as He was talking to them He began to rise up slowly and quietly, just as you have sometimes seen a balloon soar up into the air without noise. Higher and higher He ascended; and as they gazed up at Him, the clouds opened to receive Him, then closed under Him: and that was the last of Our Lord's mission as man upon earth. The Ascension took place forty days after the resurrection. (Acts 1).
One day He was on a mountain with His Apostles and disciples; and as He was talking to them, He began to rise up slowly and quietly, just like you've sometimes seen a balloon float up into the sky without a sound. Higher and higher He ascended; and as they looked up at Him, the clouds opened to welcome Him, then closed beneath Him: and that was the end of Our Lord's mission as a man on earth. The Ascension happened forty days after the resurrection. (Acts 1).
*92 Q. Where is Christ in Heaven? A. In Heaven Christ sits at the right hand of God the Father Almighty.
*92 Q. Where is Christ in Heaven? A. In Heaven, Christ is sitting at the right hand of God the Father Almighty.
*93 Q. What do you mean by saying that Christ sits at the right hand of God? A. When I say that Christ sits at the right hand of God, I mean that Christ as God is equal to His Father in all things, and that as man He is in the highest place in Heaven next to God.
*93 Q. What do you mean when you say that Christ sits at the right hand of God? A. When I say that Christ sits at the right hand of God, I mean that Christ, being God, is equal to His Father in every way, and that as a human, He holds the highest position in Heaven next to God.
Lesson 9
ON THE HOLY GHOST AND HIS DESCENT UPON THE APOSTLES
Lesson 9
ABOUT THE HOLY SPIRIT AND HIS DESCENT ONTO THE APOSTLES
94 Q. Who is the Holy Ghost? A. The Holy Ghost is the Third Person of the Blessed Trinity.
94 Q. Who is the Holy Spirit? A. The Holy Spirit is the Third Person of the Blessed Trinity.
*95 Q. From whom does the Holy Ghost proceed? A. The Holy Ghost proceeds from the Father and the Son.
*95 Q. From whom does the Holy Spirit come? A. The Holy Spirit comes from the Father and the Son.
*96 Q. Is the Holy Ghost equal to the Father and the Son? A. The Holy Ghost is equal to the Father and the Son, being the same Lord and God as they are.
*96 Q. Is the Holy Spirit equal to the Father and the Son? A. The Holy Spirit is equal to the Father and the Son, being the same Lord and God as they are.
97 Q. On what day did the Holy Ghost come down upon the Apostles?
A. The Holy Ghost came down upon the Apostles ten days after the
Ascension of Our Lord; and the day on which He came down upon the
Apostles is called Whit-Sunday or Pentecost.
97 Q. On what day did the Holy Spirit come down upon the Apostles?
A. The Holy Spirit came down upon the Apostles ten days after the
Ascension of Our Lord; and the day on which He came down upon the
Apostles is called Whit-Sunday or Pentecost.
We have seen already that the Apostles fled and were very much afraid when Our Lord was taken prisoner. Even Peter, the chief of the Apostles, who said he would die rather than leave Our Lord, shamefully denied Him; and St. John, the beloved disciple, stood near the Cross, but offered no resistance to Our Lord's enemies. After the Crucifixion of Our Lord, the Apostles, afraid of being put to death, shut themselves up in a room. Ten days after Our Lord's Ascension they were praying as usual in their room, when suddenly they heard the sound as it were of a great wind, and then they saw tongues the shape of our own, but all on fire, coming, and one tongue resting on the head of each Apostle present. (Acts 2).
We have already seen that the Apostles ran away and were very scared when Our Lord was arrested. Even Peter, the leader of the Apostles, who claimed he would die instead of abandoning Our Lord, sadly denied Him; and St. John, the beloved disciple, stood by the Cross but did not resist Our Lord's enemies. After the Crucifixion, the Apostles, fearing for their lives, locked themselves in a room. Ten days after Our Lord's Ascension, they were praying as usual in their room when suddenly they heard what sounded like a strong wind, and then they saw tongues shaped like our own, but all on fire, coming down, with one resting on the head of each Apostle present. (Acts 2).
This was the Holy Ghost coming to them. The Holy Ghost, being a pure spirit without a body, can take any form He pleases. He sometimes came in the form of a dove; so when you see a dove painted in a church near the altar, it is there to represent the Holy Ghost. You could not paint a spirit, so angels and God Himself are generally represented in pictures as they at some time appeared to men.
This was the Holy Spirit coming to them. The Holy Spirit, being a pure spirit without a body, can take any form He wants. He sometimes appeared as a dove; so when you see a dove painted in a church near the altar, it’s there to represent the Holy Spirit. You can’t paint a spirit, so angels and God Himself are usually depicted in pictures as they appeared to people at some point.
"Whit-Sunday," or White-Sunday; probably so called because in the early ages of the Church converts were baptized on the day before, and after their Baptism wore white robes or garments as a mark of the soul's purity after Baptism.
"Whit-Sunday," or White-Sunday; likely named because in the early days of the Church, converts were baptized the day before, and after their Baptism, they wore white robes or garments to signify the purity of their souls following Baptism.
"Pentecost" means the fiftieth day, because the feast comes fifty days after the resurrection of Our Lord. After His resurrection He remained forty days upon earth, and ten days after He ascended into Heaven the Holy Ghost came, thus making the fifty days.
"Pentecost" means the fiftieth day because the celebration occurs fifty days after the resurrection of Our Lord. After His resurrection, He stayed on earth for forty days, and then ten days after He ascended into Heaven, the Holy Spirit came, making up the fifty days.
After the Holy Ghost came down upon the Apostles they were no longer timid men. They went forth boldly into the streets and preached Christ crucified, telling the people how the Son of God—the true Messias promised—had been put to death. Many who heard them believed and were baptized. The first time St. Peter preached to the people three thousand were converted (Acts 2:41); so that when all the Apostles preached the number of Christians increased rapidly, and the Christian religion was soon carried to distant parts of the world.
After the Holy Spirit came down on the Apostles, they were no longer shy men. They confidently went into the streets and preached about Christ's crucifixion, telling people how the Son of God—the true Messiah promised—had been killed. Many who listened believed and were baptized. The first time St. Peter spoke to the crowd, three thousand people were converted (Acts 2:41); so when all the Apostles preached, the number of Christians grew quickly, and Christianity soon spread to far-off parts of the world.
At the time Our Lord was put to death the Jews were celebrating a great feast in Jerusalem. The Jews were not like us in this respect. We have many churches, and in all of them sacrifice, that is, the Holy Mass, is offered. The Jews had only one temple where sacrifice could be offered, and that was in Jerusalem. They had synagogues or meeting houses throughout the land in which they assembled to pray and hear the Holy Scriptures read; but they could not offer sacrifice in them. Three times a year they went to Jerusalem to celebrate their great feasts. One of these feasts was called the Pasch, or Passover, and it was during the celebration of that feast that Our Lord was put to death; so that there were many persons from all parts of the nation present at the sad execution. I must now tell you why they celebrated the Pasch. We generally celebrate a feast to commemorate—to remind us of—some great event; and the Jews celebrated this feast to remind them of their deliverance from the slavery of the Egyptians, in which their ancestors had been suffering for about two hundred years. At the end of that time God sent Moses to deliver them. You should know, then, who Moses was and what he did to deliver his people, and you should know also something of the history of his people—the Israelites—and how they came to be in Egypt.
At the time Our Lord was executed, the Jews were celebrating a major festival in Jerusalem. The Jews were different from us in this way. We have many churches, and in all of them, the Holy Mass is offered as a sacrifice. The Jews had only one temple where sacrifices could be made, and that was in Jerusalem. They had synagogues or meeting houses throughout the land where they gathered to pray and listen to the Holy Scriptures, but they couldn't make sacrifices there. Three times a year, they traveled to Jerusalem to celebrate their major festivals. One of these was called the Pasch, or Passover, and it was during this celebration that Our Lord was executed; so many people from all over the nation were present at this tragic event. Now, I need to explain why they celebrated the Pasch. We usually celebrate a feast to commemorate or remind us of some significant event; the Jews celebrated this feast to remember their liberation from slavery in Egypt, where their ancestors had suffered for about two hundred years. After that time, God sent Moses to free them. So, it's important for you to understand who Moses was and what he did to save his people, as well as a bit of the history of his people—the Israelites—and how they ended up in Egypt.
At the time I am now going to speak of the old patriarch Jacob, Abraham's grandson, had eleven sons—for Benjamin, the twelfth son, was born afterwards—and the youngest was called Joseph. Joseph was the favorite of his father, and his brothers were jealous of him. The brothers were shepherds, and used to take their flocks to feed at a great distance from home, and did not return for a long time. One day the father sent Joseph to his brothers to see if all were well. They hated Joseph because his father loved him best; and when they saw him coming they agreed never to let him return to his father. (Gen. 37). They intended to kill him. While they were debating about how they should put him to death—he was then only sixteen years old—some merchants passed on their way to Egypt; so, instead of killing him, they sold him as a slave to the merchants. Then they took Joseph's coat and dipped it in the blood of a kid, and sent it to their poor old father, saying they had found it, and making him believe that some wild beast on the way had eaten Joseph. When the merchants arrived in Egypt, Potiphar, one of the king's officers, bought Joseph, and brought him as a slave to his own house. While there, Joseph was falsely accused of a great crime, and cast into prison. While Joseph was in prison the king had a dream. (Gen. 41). He saw in the dream seven fat cows coming up out of a river, followed by seven lean cows; and the lean cows ate up the fat cows. He saw also seven fat ears of corn and seven lean ears of corn; and the seven lean ears ate up the seven fat ears. The king was very much troubled, and called together all his wise men to tell him what the dream meant, but they could not. Then the king heard of Joseph, and sent for him. Now Joseph was a very good young man, and God showed him the meaning; so he told the king that the seven fat ears of corn and the seven fat cows meant seven years of great abundance in Egypt, and that the seven lean ears and the seven lean cows meant seven years of famine that would follow, and all the abundance of the previous seven years would be consumed. So he advised the king to build great barns during the years of plenty, and gather up all the corn everywhere to save it for the years of famine. The king was delighted at Joseph's wisdom, and made him after himself the most powerful in the kingdom, giving him charge of everything, so that Joseph himself might do what he had advised. Now it happened years after this that there was a famine in the country where Joseph's father lived, and he sent all his sons down into Egypt to buy corn. (Gen. 42). They did not know their brother Joseph, but he knew them; and after forgiving them for what they had done to him, he sent them home with an abundance of corn. Afterwards Joseph's father and brothers left their own country and came to live near Joseph in Egypt. The king gave them good land (Gen. 47), and they lived there in peace and happiness. Learn from this beautiful history of Joseph how God protects those that love and serve Him no matter where they are or in what danger they may be placed; and how He even turns the evil deeds of their enemies into blessings for them.
At the time I'm about to talk about, the old patriarch Jacob, who was Abraham's grandson, had eleven sons—since Benjamin, the twelfth son, was born later—and the youngest was named Joseph. Joseph was his father's favorite, and his brothers were jealous of him. The brothers were shepherds and usually took their flocks far from home, staying away for a long time. One day, their father sent Joseph to check on them and see if everything was okay. They hated Joseph because he was their father's favorite; when they saw him coming, they conspired to make sure he would never return to their father. (Gen. 37). They planned to kill him. While they were discussing how to execute him—he was only sixteen at the time—some merchants passed by on their way to Egypt, so instead of killing him, they sold him as a slave to the merchants. Then, they took Joseph's coat, dipped it in the blood of a goat, and sent it to their poor old father, claiming they found it and making him believe that a wild animal had killed Joseph. When the merchants arrived in Egypt, Potiphar, one of the king's officers, bought Joseph and took him as a slave to his house. While there, Joseph was falsely accused of a serious crime and thrown into prison. While Joseph was in prison, the king had a dream. (Gen. 41). He dreamed of seven fat cows coming up out of a river, followed by seven lean cows; the lean cows ate the fat ones. He also saw seven fat ears of corn and seven lean ears of corn, and the lean ears consumed the fat ones. The king was very troubled and called all his wise men to interpret the dream, but they couldn't. Then the king heard about Joseph and summoned him. Joseph was a very good young man, and God revealed the meaning of the dream to him. He told the king that the seven fat ears of corn and the seven fat cows represented seven years of plenty in Egypt, and that the seven lean ears and seven lean cows symbolized seven years of famine that would follow, consuming all the abundance from the previous seven years. He advised the king to construct large storage facilities during the years of plenty and gather all the grain to save for the years of famine. The king was thrilled with Joseph's advice and made him the second most powerful person in the kingdom, placing him in charge of everything so he could carry out his plan. Years later, a famine struck the land where Joseph's father lived, and he sent all his sons to Egypt to buy grain. (Gen. 42). They didn't recognize their brother Joseph, but he recognized them; after forgiving them for what they had done, he sent them back home with an abundance of grain. Eventually, Joseph's father and brothers left their homeland and came to live near him in Egypt. The king granted them good land (Gen. 47), and they lived there in peace and happiness. Learn from this inspiring story of Joseph how God protects those who love and serve Him, regardless of where they are or what dangers they face; and how He can even turn the wrongdoing of their enemies into blessings for them.
After the death of Joseph and his brothers, their descendants became very numerous, and the new king of the Egyptians began to persecute them. (Ex. 2). He imposed upon them the hardest works, and treated them most cruelly. He ordered that all their male infants should, as soon as born, be thrown into the River Nile. Now about that time Moses was born. (Ex. 2). His mother did not obey the king's order, but hid him for about three months. When she could conceal him no longer she made a little cradle of rushes, and covering it over with pitch or tar to keep out the water, placed him in it, and then laid it in the tall grass by the edge of the river, sending his little sister to watch what would become of him. Just then the king's daughter came down to bathe, and seeing the little child, ordered one of her servants to bring him to her. At that moment Moses' little sister, pretending not to know him, ran up and asked the king's daughter if she wished to procure a nurse for him. The king's daughter replied in the affirmative and permitted her to bring one; so Moses' own mother was brought and engaged to be his nurse: but he was not known as her son, but as the adopted son of the king's daughter. When Moses grew up he was an officer in the king's army; but because he took the part of his persecuted countrymen he offended the king, and had to fly from the palace. He then went into another country and became a shepherd.
After Joseph and his brothers died, their descendants multiplied greatly, and the new Egyptian king started to oppress them. (Ex. 2). He forced them to do hard labor and treated them cruelly. He ordered that all their baby boys should be thrown into the River Nile as soon as they were born. Around that time, Moses was born. (Ex. 2). His mother defied the king's command and hid him for about three months. When she could no longer keep him hidden, she made a small cradle out of reeds, sealing it with pitch or tar to keep out the water, placed him in it, and set it among the tall grass by the riverbank, sending his little sister to watch over him. Just then, the king's daughter came down to bathe, and seeing the baby, she asked one of her servants to bring him to her. At that moment, Moses' little sister, pretending not to know him, ran up and offered to find a nurse for him. The king's daughter agreed and allowed her to do so; thus, Moses' own mother was brought in as his nurse. However, he was not known as her son but as the adopted son of the king's daughter. When Moses grew up, he became an officer in the king's army; but after siding with his oppressed countrymen, he angered the king and had to flee from the palace. He then went to another country and became a shepherd.
During all this time the persecuted Israelites were praying to the true God to be delivered from the slavery of the Egyptians, who were idolaters. One day Moses saw a bush burning; and as he came near to look at it, he heard a voice telling him not to come too near, and bidding him take off his shoes, for he was on holy ground. (Ex. 3). It was God who thus appeared and spoke to him, and He ordered him to take off his shoes as a mark of respect and reverence. When we want to show our respect for any person or place, we take off our hats; but the people of that country, instead of their hats, took off their shoes. It was the custom of the country and did not seem strange to them.
During all this time, the oppressed Israelites were praying to the true God to be freed from the slavery of the Egyptians, who were idol-worshippers. One day, Moses saw a bush that was on fire; as he approached to take a closer look, he heard a voice telling him not to come any closer and to take off his shoes because he was on holy ground. (Ex. 3). It was God who appeared and spoke to him, instructing him to remove his shoes as a sign of respect and reverence. When we want to show respect for someone or somewhere, we take off our hats; but in that culture, people took off their shoes instead of their hats. It was simply the custom of the region and didn't seem unusual to them.
Then God told Moses that He was going to send him to deliver His people from the Egyptians and lead them back to their own country; and He sent Aaron, the brother of Moses, with him. Then Moses said to God, the king of Egypt will not let the people go, and what can I do? God gave Moses two signs or miracles to show the king, so that he could know that Moses was really sent by Him. He gave him power to change a rod into a serpent, and back again into a rod; power also to bring a disease instantly upon his hand, and to heal it instantly. (Ex. 4). Do these, said Almighty God, in the presence of the king. Then Moses and Aaron went to the king and did as God commanded them; and when the rod of Aaron became a serpent, the king's magicians—that is, men who do apparently wonderful things by sleight of hand or the power of the devil—cast their rods upon the ground, and they also became serpents—not that their rods were changed into serpents, but the devil, who was helping them, took away instantly their rods and put real serpents in their place—but Aaron's serpent swallowed them up. (Ex. 7). After these signs the king would not let the people go with Moses; for God permitted the king's heart to be hardened, so that all the Egyptians might see the great work God was going to do for His people.
Then God told Moses that He was going to send him to free His people from the Egyptians and lead them back to their own land; and He sent Moses' brother, Aaron, along with him. Moses then said to God, the king of Egypt won't let the people go, and what can I do? God gave Moses two signs or miracles to show the king, so he would know that Moses was truly sent by Him. He gave him the power to turn a rod into a snake, and back into a rod; and also the power to instantly create a disease on his hand and heal it just as quickly. (Ex. 4). Do these, said Almighty God, in front of the king. So Moses and Aaron went to the king and did as God commanded them; and when Aaron's rod turned into a snake, the king's magicians—men who performed seemingly amazing tricks through sleight of hand or dark powers—threw their rods on the ground, and they also became snakes—not that their rods actually turned into snakes, but the devil, who was assisting them, quickly replaced their rods with real snakes—though Aaron's snake swallowed them up. (Ex. 7). After witnessing these signs, the king still refused to let the people go with Moses; for God allowed the king's heart to be hardened, so that all the Egyptians could see the great work God was about to do for His people.
Then God sent the ten plagues upon the Egyptians, while the
Israelites—God's people—suffered nothing from these plagues.
Then God sent the ten plagues to the Egyptians, while the
Israelites—God's people—experienced none of these plagues.
The first plague was blood. All the water in the land was converted into blood. (Ex. 7). The king then sent for Moses and promised that if he would take away the plague he would allow all the people to depart. Moses prayed to God, and the plague was removed. But after it was taken away the king's heart was hardened again and he would not keep his promise. Just as people in sickness, distress, or danger sometimes promise God they will lead better lives if only He will help them, and when they are saved they do not keep their promises, so did Pharao; and therefore God sent another plague. The second plague was frogs. Great numbers of them came out of the rivers and lakes, and filled all the houses of the Egyptians, and crawled into their food, beds, etc. Again the king sent for Moses and did as before; and again Moses prayed, and all the frogs went back into the waters or died. (Ex. 8). But the king again hardened his heart and did not keep his promise. The third plague was sciniphs (Ex. 8)—very small flies, that filled the land. Imagine our country filled with mosquitoes so numerous that you could scarcely walk through them; it would be a dreadful plague. As it is, two or three might cause you considerable annoyance, and pain: what then if there were millions doubly venomous, because sent to punish you? So these little flies must have greatly punished the Egyptians. The fourth plague was flies that filled the land and covered everything, to the great disgust of the people. The fifth plague was murrain—a disease that broke out among the cattle. The sixth plague was a disease—boils—that broke out on men and beasts, so that scarcely anyone could move on account of the pains and suffering. The seventh plague was hail, that fell in large pieces and destroyed all their crops. The eighth plague was locusts. These are very destructive little animals. They look something like our grasshoppers, but are about two or three times their size. They fly and come in millions. They come to this country in great numbers—almost a plague—every fifteen or twenty-five years, and the farmers fear them very much. They eat up every green blade or leaf, and thus destroy all the crops and trees. When the locusts came upon Egypt, Moses, at the king's request, prayed, and God sent a strong wind that swept them into the sea, where they perished in the water. The ninth plague was a horrible darkness for three days in all the land of Egypt. The tenth plague, the last, was the most terrible of all—the killing of the firstborn in all the land of Egypt. (Ex. 12). God instructed Moses to tell the Israelites in the land that on a certain night they were to take a lamb in each family, kill it, and sprinkle its blood on the doorposts of their houses. They were then to cook the lamb and eat it standing, with their garments ready as for a journey. (Ex. 12). The lamb was called the paschal lamb, and was, after that, to be eaten every year, at about what is with us Easter-time, in commemoration of this event. That night God sent an angel through all the land, and he killed the firstborn of man and beast in all the houses of the Egyptians. That is, he killed the eldest son in the house; and if the father was the firstborn in his father's family, he was killed also; and the same for the beasts. This was a terrible punishment. In the house of every Egyptian there were some dead but not one in the houses of the Israelites; for when the angel saw the blood of the lamb on the doorposts, he passed over and did not enter into their houses, so that this event, called Passover or Pasch, was kept always as a great feast by God's people. This paschal lamb was a figure of our blessed Lord, for as its blood saved the Israelites from death, so Our Lord's blood saved and still saves us from eternal death in Hell.
The first plague was blood. All the water in the land turned into blood. (Ex. 7). The king then called for Moses and promised that if he would remove the plague, he would let all the people go. Moses prayed to God, and the plague was lifted. But once it was gone, the king's heart hardened again, and he didn’t keep his promise. Just like people who, when they're sick, distressed, or in danger, promise God they’ll lead better lives if He helps them, and then don’t keep their promises once they’re saved, so did Pharaoh; and so God sent another plague. The second plague was frogs. Huge numbers came out of the rivers and lakes, filling all the Egyptians' houses and getting into their food, beds, etc. Again, the king called for Moses and did as before; Moses prayed, and all the frogs returned to the waters or died. (Ex. 8). But the king once more hardened his heart and didn’t keep his promise. The third plague was gnats (Ex. 8)—tiny flies that covered the land. Imagine our country filled with mosquitoes so numerous that walking through them would be nearly impossible; it would be a horrible plague. As it is, just two or three might cause you considerable annoyance and pain: imagine millions of them, sent as punishment! These tiny flies must have greatly tormented the Egyptians. The fourth plague was flies that infested the land and covered everything, much to the people's disgust. The fifth plague was murrain—a disease that struck the cattle. The sixth plague was boils that broke out on people and animals, causing so much pain that hardly anyone could move. The seventh plague was hail, which fell as large pieces and destroyed all their crops. The eighth plague was locusts. These are very destructive creatures. They look somewhat like grasshoppers but are about two to three times their size. They fly in millions and come to this country in large numbers—almost a plague—every fifteen or twenty-five years, and the farmers dread them. They consume every green blade or leaf, thus ruining all the crops and trees. When the locusts invaded Egypt, Moses, at the king's request, prayed, and God sent a strong wind that blew them into the sea, where they died in the water. The ninth plague was a terrible darkness that lasted three days across all of Egypt. The tenth plague, the last, was the most dreadful of all—the death of the firstborn in all the land of Egypt. (Ex. 12). God instructed Moses to tell the Israelites that on a certain night, each family should take a lamb, kill it, and spread its blood on the doorposts of their homes. They were then to cook the lamb and eat it standing, with their clothes ready for a journey. (Ex. 12). The lamb was called the paschal lamb and was to be eaten every year, around what we celebrate as Easter, in remembrance of this event. That night, God sent an angel throughout the land, and he killed the firstborn of both man and beast in all the Egyptian houses. This meant he killed the eldest son in each family; and if the father was the firstborn in his family, he was also killed; the same went for the animals. This was a terrible punishment. In every Egyptian house, there were some dead, but none in the houses of the Israelites; for when the angel saw the blood of the lamb on the doorposts, he passed over and didn’t enter their homes, which is why this event, called Passover or Pasch, was always celebrated as a significant feast by God's people. This paschal lamb was a foreshadowing of our blessed Lord, for just as its blood saved the Israelites from death, so Our Lord's blood saves us from eternal death in Hell.
After that dreadful night Pharao allowed the people to depart with Moses; but when they had gone as far as the Red Sea, he was sorry he let them go, and set out with a great army to bring them back. There the people stood, with the sea before them and Pharao and his army coming behind them; but God provided for them a means of escape. At God's command, Moses stretched his rod over the sea, and the waters divided and stood like great walls on either side and all the people passed through the opening in the waters, on the dry bed of the sea. (Ex. 14).
After that terrible night, Pharaoh allowed the people to leave with Moses; but when they reached the Red Sea, he regretted his decision and set out with a large army to bring them back. The people found themselves with the sea in front of them and Pharaoh and his army coming up behind; but God provided a way out for them. At God's command, Moses raised his staff over the sea, and the waters split, standing like huge walls on either side while all the people walked through the gap in the waters on the dry seabed. (Ex. 14).
Pharao attempted to follow them, but when he and his army were on the dry bed of the sea, between the two walls of water, God allowed the waters to close over them, and they were all drowned. Then the Israelites began the great journey through the desert, in which they travelled for forty years. During all that time God fed them with manna. He Himself, as a guide, went with them in a cloud, that shaded them from the heat of the sun during the day and was a light for them at night. But you will ask: Was the desert so large that it took forty years to cross it? No, but these people, notwithstanding all God had done for them, sinned against Him in the desert; so He permitted them to wander about through it till a new generation of people grew up, who were to be led into the promised land by Josue, the successor of Moses. From this we may learn a lesson for ourselves: God will always punish those who deserve it, even though He loves them and may often have done great things to save them; but He will wait for His own time to punish.
Pharaoh tried to follow them, but when he and his army were on the dry sea bed, surrounded by walls of water, God allowed the waters to come crashing down on them, and they all drowned. Then the Israelites began their long journey through the desert, which lasted for forty years. During all that time, God provided them with manna. He guided them in a cloud that shielded them from the sun's heat during the day and illuminated their path at night. But you might wonder: Was the desert so vast that it took forty years to cross? No, but despite all that God had done for them, these people sinned against Him in the desert; so He allowed them to wander until a new generation grew up, who would be led into the promised land by Joshua, Moses' successor. From this, we can learn a lesson: God will always punish those who deserve it, even if He loves them and has done great things to save them; but He will wait for the right moment to do so.
The Israelites then, as I have said, went from every part of the land up to the Temple in Jerusalem to celebrate the Pasch each year. It was during one of these celebrations that Our Lord was put to death, and during another feast that St. Peter preached to the people after Our Lord's death. He spoke only in one language, and yet all his hearers understood, for each heard his own language spoken. (Acts 2:6). This was called the gift of tongues, and was given to the Apostles when the Holy Ghost came upon them. For example, if each of you came from a different country and understood the language only of the country from which you came, and I gave the instructions only in English, then if everyone thought I was speaking his language—German, French, Spanish, Italian, etc.—and understood me, I would have what is called the gift of tongues, and it would be a great miracle, as it was when bestowed upon the Apostles.
The Israelites then, as I mentioned, traveled from all over the land to the Temple in Jerusalem to celebrate Passover each year. It was during one of these celebrations that Our Lord was crucified, and during another feast that St. Peter preached to the people after Our Lord's death. He spoke in just one language, yet everyone who listened understood him because each person heard their own language being spoken. (Acts 2:6). This was known as the gift of tongues, which was given to the Apostles when the Holy Spirit came upon them. For example, if each of you came from a different country and only understood the language from your home country, and I gave instructions only in English, yet everyone believed I was speaking their language—German, French, Spanish, Italian, etc.—and understood me, I would have what is called the gift of tongues, and it would be a great miracle, just like it was when it was given to the Apostles.
In the first ages of the Church God performed more miracles than He does now, because they are not now so necessary. These miracles were performed only to make the Church better known, and to prove that she was the true Church, with her power and authority from God. That can now be known and seen in Christian countries without miracles. These special gifts, like the gift of tongues, were given also to some of the early Christians by the Holy Ghost, when they received Confirmation; but they were not a part of or necessary for Confirmation, but only to show the power of the true religion. Those who heard St. Peter preach, when they went back to their own countries told what they had seen and heard, and thus their countrymen were prepared to receive the Gospel when the Apostles came to preach it.
In the early days of the Church, God performed more miracles than He does today because they are not as necessary now. These miracles were done to make the Church better known and to prove that it was the true Church, backed by God’s power and authority. Nowadays, that can be recognized and seen in Christian countries without the need for miracles. Special gifts, like speaking in tongues, were also given to some of the early Christians by the Holy Spirit when they received Confirmation; however, these gifts were not essential to Confirmation, but served to demonstrate the power of true religion. Those who heard St. Peter preach went back to their own countries and shared what they had seen and heard, which helped prepare their fellow countrymen to accept the Gospel when the Apostles came to preach it.
*98 Q. How did the Holy Ghost come down upon the Apostles? A. The Holy Ghost came down upon the Apostles in the form of tongues of fire.
*98 Q. How did the Holy Spirit come down on the Apostles? A. The Holy Spirit came down on the Apostles in the form of tongues of fire.
99 Q. Who sent the Holy Ghost upon the Apostles? A. Our Lord Jesus Christ sent the Holy Ghost upon the Apostles.
99 Q. Who sent the Holy Spirit upon the Apostles? A. Our Lord Jesus Christ sent the Holy Spirit upon the Apostles.
100 Q. Why did Christ send the Holy Ghost? A. Christ sent the Holy Ghost to sanctify His Church, to enlighten and strengthen the Apostles, and to enable them to preach the Gospel.
100 Q. Why did Christ send the Holy Spirit? A. Christ sent the Holy Spirit to make His Church holy, to inspire and empower the Apostles, and to help them spread the Gospel.
"Sanctify," to make more holy by the grace which He would give to the members of the Church. "To enlighten." The Apostles did not understand very well everything Our Lord taught while He was with them; but after the Holy Ghost came upon them they understood perfectly, and remembered many things which Our Lord said to them, and understood the true meaning of all. The prophets foretold that when the Messias, Christ, would come, He would bring all the world under His power. The prophets meant in a spiritual sense; but most of the people understood that He was to be a great general, with powerful armies, who would subdue all the nations of the earth, and bring them under the authority of the Jews. We know they thought that the great kingdom He was to establish upon earth would be a temporal kingdom, from many of their sayings and actions. One day the mother of two of Our Lord's Apostles came to ask Him if, when He had established His kingdom upon the earth, He would give her sons honorable positions in it, and place them high in authority. (Matt. 20:20). Our Lord told her she did not understand what she was asking. This shows that even some of the Apostles—much less the people—did not understand the full nature of Our Lord's mission upon earth, nor of His kingdom, the Church. Often too, when He preached to the people, the Apostles asked Him on His return what His sermon meant (Luke 8:9). But after the Holy Ghost came, they were enlightened, and understood all without difficulty. "Strengthen." I told you already that before the Holy Ghost came they were timid and afraid of being arrested, but that afterwards they went out boldly, and taught all they had learned from Our Lord. They were often taken prisoners and scourged, but it mattered not—they were firm in their faith, and could suffer anything for Christ after they had been enlightened and strengthened by the Holy Ghost. Finally, they were all, with the exception of St. John, put to death for their holy faith. St. Peter and St. Paul were crucified at Rome about the year 65, that is, about thirty-two years after the death of Our Lord. St. James was beheaded by order of King Herod. St. John lived the longest, and was the only one of the Apostles who was not put to death, though he was cast into a large vessel of boiling oil, but was miraculously saved.
"Sanctify," to make more holy by the grace He would give to the members of the Church. "To enlighten." The Apostles didn't fully grasp everything Our Lord taught while He was with them; but after the Holy Spirit came upon them, they understood everything perfectly, remembered many things that Our Lord said, and grasped the true meaning of it all. The prophets predicted that when the Messiah, Christ, would come, He would bring the whole world under His control. The prophets meant this in a spiritual sense, but most people understood that He was supposed to be a great general with powerful armies who would conquer all nations and bring them under Jewish authority. It's clear they believed the great kingdom He was going to establish on earth would be a temporal one, based on many of their sayings and actions. One day, the mother of two of Our Lord's Apostles came to ask Him if, when He had established His kingdom on earth, He would give her sons prestigious positions and places of authority. (Matt. 20:20). Our Lord told her that she didn’t understand what she was asking. This shows that even some of the Apostles—let alone the people—didn’t grasp the full nature of Our Lord's mission on earth, nor of His kingdom, the Church. Often, when He preached to the people, the Apostles would ask Him later what His sermon meant (Luke 8:9). But after the Holy Spirit came, they were enlightened and understood everything without trouble. "Strengthen." I mentioned before that before the Holy Spirit came, they were timid and afraid of being arrested, but afterward they went out boldly and taught all they had learned from Our Lord. They were often captured and beaten, but it didn’t matter—they were resolute in their faith and could endure anything for Christ after being enlightened and strengthened by the Holy Spirit. In the end, they were all put to death for their holy faith, except for St. John. St. Peter and St. Paul were crucified in Rome around the year 65, which was about thirty-two years after Our Lord's death. St. James was beheaded by order of King Herod. St. John lived the longest and was the only Apostle not killed; he was cast into a large pot of boiling oil but miraculously survived.
Certainly by dying for their faith the Apostles showed that they were not impostors or hypocrites. They must really have believed what they taught, otherwise they would not have laid down their lives for it. They were certain of what they taught, as we saw when speaking of St. Thomas.
Certainly, by dying for their faith, the Apostles demonstrated that they were not fakes or hypocrites. They must have genuinely believed in what they taught; otherwise, they wouldn’t have sacrificed their lives for it. They were confident in what they taught, as we saw when discussing St. Thomas.
*101 Q. Will the Holy Ghost abide with the Church forever? A. The Holy Ghost will abide with the Church forever, and guide it in the way of holiness and truth.
*101 Q. Will the Holy Spirit be with the Church forever? A. The Holy Spirit will be with the Church forever, guiding it in the way of holiness and truth.
"Abide" means to stay with us.
"Abide" means to stay with us.
Lesson 10
ON THE EFFECTS OF THE REDEMPTION
Lesson 10
ON THE EFFECTS OF THE REDEMPTION
102 Q. Which are the chief effects of the redemption? A. The chief effects of the redemption are two: the satisfaction of God's justice by Christ's sufferings and death, and the gaining of grace for men.
102 Q. What are the main effects of redemption? A. The main effects of redemption are two: the fulfillment of God's justice through Christ's sufferings and death, and the acquisition of grace for humanity.
An effect is that which is caused by something else. If you place a danger signal on a broken railroad track the effect will be preventing the wreck of the train, and the cause will be your placing the signal. Many effects may flow from one cause. In our example, see all the good effects that may follow your placing the signal—the cars are not broken, the passengers are not killed, the rails are not torn out of their places, etc. Thus the redemption had two effects, namely, to satisfy God for the offense offered Him by the sins of men, and to merit grace to be used for our benefit.
An effect is something that is caused by something else. If you put a warning signal on a broken railroad track, the effect will be that the train avoids crashing, and the cause will be your placement of the signal. One cause can lead to many effects. In this example, think about all the positive outcomes that could result from you putting up the signal—the train cars stay intact, the passengers are safe, the tracks remain undamaged, etc. So, redemption had two effects: first, it satisfied God for the offense caused by human sins, and second, it earned grace for our benefit.
103 Q. What do you mean by grace? A. By grace I mean a supernatural gift of God bestowed on us, through the merits of Jesus Christ, for our salvation.
103 Q. What do you mean by grace? A. By grace, I mean a supernatural gift from God given to us through the merits of Jesus Christ for our salvation.
"Supernatural," that is, above nature. "A gift"; something, therefore, that God does not owe us. He owes us nothing, strictly speaking. Health, talents, and such things are natural gifts, and belong to our nature as men; but grace is something above our nature, given to our soul. God gives it to us on account of the love He has for His Son, Our Lord, who merited it for us by dying for us. "Merits." A merit is some excellence or goodness which entitles one to honor or reward. Grace is a help we get to do something that will be pleasing to God. When there is anything in our daily works that we cannot do alone, we naturally look for help; for example, to lift some heavy weight is only a natural act, not a supernatural act, and the help we need for it is only natural help. But if we are going to do something above and beyond our nature, and cannot do it alone, we must not look for natural, but for supernatural help; that is, the help must always be like the work to be done. Therefore all spiritual works need spiritual help, and spiritual help is grace.
"Supernatural," meaning above nature. "A gift"; something that God doesn't owe us. Strictly speaking, He owes us nothing. Health, skills, and similar things are natural gifts that are part of our nature as humans; but grace is something above our nature, given to our soul. God gives it to us because of the love He has for His Son, Our Lord, who earned it for us by dying for us. "Merits." A merit is an excellence or goodness that qualifies someone for honor or reward. Grace is a help we receive to do something that will please God. When we encounter something in our daily tasks that we can't do on our own, we naturally seek help; for instance, lifting a heavy object is just a natural act, not a supernatural one, and the help we need for that is also natural. But if we are going to do something beyond our natural abilities and can't do it alone, we must look for supernatural help; that is, the assistance must match the task at hand. Therefore, all spiritual works require spiritual help, and that spiritual help is grace.
104 Q. How many kinds of grace are there? A. There are two kinds of grace: sanctifying grace and actual grace.
104 Q. How many types of grace are there? A. There are two types of grace: sanctifying grace and actual grace.
105 Q. What is sanctifying grace? A. Sanctifying grace is that grace which makes the soul holy and pleasing to God.
105 Q. What is sanctifying grace? A. Sanctifying grace is the grace that makes the soul holy and pleasing to God.
"Sanctifying," that is, making us holy by cleansing, purifying our souls. Sin renders the soul ugly and displeasing to God, and grace purifies it. Suppose I have something bright and beautiful given to me, and take no care of it, but let it lie around in dusty places until it becomes tarnished and soiled, loses all its beauty, and appears black and ugly. To restore its beauty I must clean and polish it. Thus the soul blackened by sin must be cleaned by God's grace. If the soul is in mortal sin—altogether blackened—then sanctifying grace brings back its brightness and makes it pleasing to God; but if the soul is already bright, though stained or darkened a little by venial sin, then grace makes it still brighter.
"Sanctifying," which means making us holy by cleansing and purifying our souls. Sin makes the soul ugly and unappealing to God, but grace cleans it up. Imagine I have something bright and beautiful that was given to me, but I don't take care of it; I let it sit in dusty places until it gets tarnished and dirty, losing all its beauty and looking black and ugly. To bring back its beauty, I need to clean and polish it. Similarly, the soul, darkened by sin, needs to be cleaned by God's grace. If the soul is in mortal sin—completely darkened—then sanctifying grace restores its brightness and makes it pleasing to God; but if the soul is already bright, though a bit stained or darkened by venial sin, then grace makes it even brighter.
*106 Q. What do you call those graces or gifts of God by which we believe in Him, hope in Him, and love Him? A. Those graces or gifts of God by which we believe in Him, and hope in Him, and love Him, are called the divine virtues of faith, hope, and charity.
*106 Q. What do you call the gifts from God that allow us to believe in Him, hope in Him, and love Him? A. The gifts from God that enable us to believe in Him, hope in Him, and love Him are known as the divine virtues of faith, hope, and charity.
"Virtues." Virtue is the habit of doing good. The opposite to virtue is vice, which is the habit of doing evil. We acquire a habit bad or good when we do the same thing very frequently. We then do it easily and almost without thinking; as a man, for instance, who has the habit of cursing curses almost without knowing it, though that does not excuse him, but makes his case worse, by showing that he must have cursed very often to acquire the habit. If, however, he is striving to overcome the bad habit, and should unintentionally curse now and then, it would not be a sin, since he did not wish to curse, and was trying to overcome the vice. One act does not make a virtue or a vice. A person who gives alms only once cannot be said to have the virtue of charity. A man who curses only once a year cannot be said to have the vice of cursing. Faith, hope, and charity are infused by God into our souls, and are therefore called infused virtues, to distinguish them from the virtues we acquire.
"Virtues." Virtue is the habit of doing good. The opposite of virtue is vice, which is the habit of doing evil. We develop a habit, whether good or bad, by doing the same thing repeatedly. Eventually, we do it easily and almost automatically; for example, a person who often curses ends up cursing without even realizing it. This doesn’t excuse him; in fact, it makes his situation worse because it shows he must have cursed frequently to develop that habit. However, if he is trying to break the bad habit and accidentally curses occasionally, it wouldn’t be a sin since he didn’t intend to curse and is working to overcome the vice. One act does not define a virtue or a vice. Someone who gives to charity just once can't be said to have the virtue of charity. Likewise, a person who curses only once a year can't be said to have the vice of cursing. Faith, hope, and charity are given to us by God and are called infused virtues, which differentiates them from the virtues we develop ourselves.
107 Q. What is faith?
A. Faith is a divine virtue by which we firmly believe the truths which
God has revealed.
107 Q. What is faith?
A. Faith is a divine quality that allows us to firmly believe in the truths that God has revealed.
"A divine virtue" is one that is heavenly or holy. Faith is the habit of always believing all that God has revealed and the Church teaches. "Firmly," that is, without the slightest doubt. "Revealed," that is, made known to us. Revelation is the collection of all the truths that God has made known to us. But why do we believe? Because we clearly see and know the truth of what is revealed? No, but because God reveals it; we believe it though we cannot see it or even understand it. If we see it plainly, then we believe it rather because we see it than because God makes it known to us. Suppose a friend should come and tell you the church is on fire. If he never told you lies, and had no reason for telling you any now, you would believe him—not because you know of the fire, but because he tells you; but afterwards, when you see the church or read of the fire in the papers, you have proof of what he told you, but you believed it just as firmly when he told you as you do afterwards. In the same way God tells us His great truths and we believe them; because we know that since God is infinitely true He cannot deceive us or be deceived. But if afterwards by studying and thinking we find proof that God told us the truth, we do not believe with any greater faith, for we always believed without doubting, and we study chiefly that we may have arguments to prove the truth of God's revelations to others who do not believe. Suppose some person was present when your friend came and said the church is burning, and that that person would not believe your friend. What would you do? Why, convince him that what your friend said was true by showing him the account of the fire in the papers. Thus learning does not change our faith, which, as I have said, is not acquired by study, but is infused into our souls by God. The little boy who hears what God taught, and believes it firmly because God taught it, has as good a faith as his teacher who has studied all the reasons why he should believe.
"A divine virtue" is one that is heavenly or holy. Faith is the habit of always believing everything that God has revealed and the Church teaches. "Firmly," meaning without the slightest doubt. "Revealed," meaning made known to us. Revelation is the collection of all the truths that God has shared with us. But why do we believe? Is it because we clearly see and know the truth of what is revealed? No, it's because God reveals it; we believe it even though we can't see it or fully understand it. If we see it clearly, then we believe it more because of what we see than because God has made it known to us. Imagine a friend comes and tells you that the church is on fire. If he has never lied to you and has no reason to lie now, you would believe him—not because you know about the fire, but because he told you; later, when you see the church or read about the fire in the news, you have proof of what he told you, but you believed it just as firmly when he first told you. Similarly, God reveals His great truths, and we believe them because we know that since God is infinitely truthful, He cannot deceive us or be deceived. But if we later find proof through studying and thinking that God told us the truth, our belief doesn't become stronger, because we always believed without doubt. We primarily study so we can have arguments to prove the truth of God’s revelations to others who don’t believe. Suppose someone was there when your friend said the church is burning, and that person refused to believe your friend. What would you do? You would convince him that what your friend said was true by showing him the news article about the fire. Thus, learning does not change our faith, which, as I've said, isn't acquired through study but is infused into our souls by God. The little boy who hears what God taught and believes it firmly because God taught it has just as strong a faith as his teacher who has studied all the reasons why he should believe.
108 Q. What is hope? A. Hope is a divine virtue by which we firmly trust that God will give us eternal life and the means to obtain it.
108 Q. What is hope? A. Hope is a godly quality that allows us to confidently believe that God will grant us eternal life and the means to achieve it.
"Eternal"—that is, everlastings life—life without end. "Means"—that is, His grace, because without God's grace we cannot do any supernatural thing.
"Eternal"—that is, everlasting life—life without end. "Means"—that is, His grace, because without God's grace we cannot do anything supernatural.
109 Q. What is charity?
A. Charity is a divine virtue by which we love God above all things for
His own sake, and our neighbor as ourselves for the love of God.
109 Q. What is charity?
A. Charity is a holy virtue where we love God above everything else for
His own sake, and we love our neighbors as ourselves for the love of God.
The virtue of charity makes us "love God," because He is so good and beautiful, wise and powerful in Himself; therefore for His own sake and without any other consideration. "Above all things," in such a way that we would rather lose anything than offend Him. But someone may say, he thinks he loves his parents more than God. Well, let us see. To repeat an example already given, suppose his parents told him to steal, and he knew stealing to be a sin; if he would not steal, that would show, would it not, that he loved God more than his parents, for he would rather offend his parents than God. That is the kind of love we must have for God; not mere feeling, but the firm belief that God is the best of all, and when we have to choose between offending God and losing something, be it goods or friends, we would rather lose anything than offend God.
The value of charity makes us "love God," because He is so good, beautiful, wise, and powerful in Himself; thus, we do it for His own sake and without any other reason. "Above all things," meaning we would rather give up anything than upset Him. But someone might argue that they love their parents more than God. Let's consider this. To use an example mentioned before, if his parents asked him to steal and he knew stealing was a sin; if he refused to steal, that would show, wouldn’t it, that he loved God more than his parents, since he would choose not to upset God over disappointing them. That’s the kind of love we need for God; it’s not just an emotion, but a strong belief that God is the greatest of all, and when we have to choose between upsetting God and losing something, whether it's possessions or friends, we would prefer to lose anything rather than upset God.
"Neighbor." Not merely the person living near us, but all men of every kind and nation—even our enemies. The people who lived at the time of Our Lord in His country used to dispute about just what persons were to be considered their neighbors; so one day they asked Our Lord, and He answered them by telling them the following. Said He: (Luke 10:30) A man was once going down from Jerusalem, and on the way robbers beat him, robbed him, and left him on the wayside dying. First one man came by, looked at the wounded man, and passed on; then another came and did the same; finally a third man came, who was of a different religion and nationality from the wounded man. But he did not consider these things. He dressed the poor man's wounds, placed him upon his horse and brought him to an inn or hotel, and paid the innkeeper to take care of him. "Now," said Our Lord, "which of these three was neighbor to the wounded man?" And they answered rightly, "The man that helped him." Our Lord, by this example, wished to teach them and us that everybody is our neighbor who is in distress of any kind and needs our help. Neighbor, therefore, means every human being, no matter where he lives or what his color, learning, manners, etc., for every human being in the world is a child of God and has been redeemed by Our Lord. Therefore every child of God is my neighbor, and even more—he is my brother; for God is his father and mine also, and if he is good enough for God to love, he should be good enough for me.
"Neighbor." Not just the person living next to us, but everyone, from all backgrounds and nations—even our enemies. Back in the time of Our Lord in His country, people argued about who should be considered their neighbors; so one day they asked Him, and He responded with a story. He said: (Luke 10:30) A man was traveling from Jerusalem when robbers attacked him, beat him, stole from him, and left him dying by the side of the road. First, one man walked by, looked at the injured man, and kept going; then another man came along and did the same. Finally, a third man, who belonged to a different religion and nation than the wounded man, approached. But he didn’t let those differences stop him. He bandaged the poor man's wounds, put him on his donkey, took him to an inn, and paid the innkeeper to take care of him. "Now," said Our Lord, "which of these three was the neighbor to the wounded man?" They answered correctly, "The man who helped him." Through this story, Our Lord wanted to teach them and us that anyone in distress who needs our help is our neighbor. Therefore, "neighbor" means every human being, regardless of where they live or their race, education, or manners, because every person in the world is a child of God and has been redeemed by Our Lord. Thus, every child of God is my neighbor, and even more—he is my brother; for God is his father and mine as well, and if he is worthy of God's love, he should certainly be worthy of mine.
"As ourselves." Not with as much love, but with the same kind of love; that is, we are to follow the rule laid down by Our Lord: "Do unto others as you would have others do unto you." Never do to anyone what you would not like to have done to yourself; and always do for another just what you would wish another to do for you, if you were in the same position. Our neighbor is our equal and gifted with all the gifts that we ourselves have. When we come into the world we are all equal. We have a body and a soul, with the power to develop them. Money, learning, wealth, fame, and all else that makes up the difference between men in the world are acquired in the world; and when men die, they go out of the world without any of these things, just as they came into it. The real difference between them in the next world will depend upon the things they have done, good or bad, while here. We should love our neighbor also on another account: namely, that he is one day to be in Heaven with us; and if he is to be with us for all eternity, why should we hate him now? On the other hand, if our neighbor is to be in Hell on account of his bad life, why should we hate him? We should rather pity him, for he will have enough to suffer without our hatred.
"As ourselves." Not with as much love, but with the same kind of love; that is, we are to follow the rule set by Our Lord: "Do unto others as you would have others do unto you." Never do to anyone what you wouldn’t want done to yourself; and always do for another what you would wish someone to do for you if you were in the same situation. Our neighbor is our equal and has all the abilities that we ourselves possess. When we come into the world, we are all equal. We have a body and a soul, with the ability to develop them. Money, knowledge, wealth, fame, and everything else that creates differences among people in the world are gained here; and when people die, they leave this world without any of those things, just as they entered it. The real difference between them in the next world will depend on the actions they took, good or bad, while here. We should love our neighbor also for another reason: namely, that he is one day going to be in Heaven with us; and if he is to be with us for all eternity, why should we hate him now? On the other hand, if our neighbor is destined for Hell because of his bad choices, why should we hate him? We should instead feel pity for him, as he will have enough to suffer without our hatred.
110 Q. What is actual grace? A. Actual grace is that help of God which enlightens our mind and moves our will to shun evil and do good.
110 Q. What is actual grace? A. Actual grace is the assistance from God that clarifies our understanding and encourages our will to avoid wrongdoing and pursue goodness.
"Actual." Sanctifying grace continues with us, but when grace is given just so that we may do a good act or avoid a bad one, it is called actual grace. Suppose, for example, I see a poor man and am able to aid him. When my conscience tells me to give him assistance, I am just then receiving an actual grace, which moves me and helps me to do that good act; and just as soon as I give the help, the actual grace ceases, because no longer needed. It was given for that one good act, and now that the act is done, the actual grace has produced its effect. Again, a boy is going to Mass on Sunday and meets other boys who try to persuade him to remain away from Mass and go to some other place. When he hears his conscience telling him to go to Mass by all means, he is receiving just then an actual grace to avoid the mortal sin of missing Mass, and the grace lasts just as long as the temptation. Sacramental grace is sanctifying grace—given in the Sacraments—which contains for us a right to actual graces when we need them. These actual graces are given to help us to fulfill the end for which each of the Sacraments was instituted. They are different for each Sacrament, and are given just when we need them; that is, just when we are tempted against the object or end for which the Sacrament was instituted.
"Actual." Sanctifying grace stays with us, but when grace is given just to help us do a good deed or avoid a bad one, it’s called actual grace. For instance, if I see a homeless person and can help him, my conscience telling me to assist him means I am receiving actual grace at that moment, guiding and enabling me to perform that good deed; as soon as I provide the help, the actual grace stops because it’s no longer needed. It was meant for that one good act, and now that it’s done, the actual grace has served its purpose. Similarly, if a boy is heading to Mass on Sunday and encounters other boys trying to convince him to skip it and go somewhere else, when he hears his conscience urging him to go to Mass, he’s receiving actual grace to avoid the serious sin of missing Mass, and this grace lasts only as long as the temptation. Sacramental grace is sanctifying grace—given in the Sacraments—which grants us a right to actual graces when we need them. These actual graces help us achieve the purpose for which each Sacrament was established. They differ for each Sacrament and are provided exactly when we need them; that is, right when we’re tempted against the goal or purpose for which the Sacrament was instituted.
*111 Q. Is grace necessary for salvation? A. Grace is necessary for salvation, because without grace we can do nothing to merit Heaven.
*111 Q. Is grace necessary for salvation? A. Grace is necessary for salvation because, without grace, we can’t do anything to earn a place in Heaven.
*112 Q. Can we resist the grace of God? A. We can and unfortunately often do resist the grace of God.
*112 Q. Can we resist the grace of God? A. Yes, we can and, unfortunately, we often do resist the grace of God.
Grace is a gift, and no one is obliged to take a gift; but if God offers a gift and we refuse to take it, we offend and insult Him. To insult God is to sin. Therefore to refuse to accept, or to make bad use of the grace God gives us, is to sin.
Grace is a gift, and no one has to accept a gift; but if God offers a gift and we reject it, we offend and insult Him. To insult God is to sin. So, to refuse to accept, or to misuse the grace God provides us, is to sin.
*113 Q. What is the grace of perseverance? A. The grace of perseverance is a particular gift of God which enables us to continue in the state of grace till death.
*113 Q. What is the grace of perseverance? A. The grace of perseverance is a special gift from God that allows us to remain in a state of grace until we die.
"Perseverance" here does not mean perseverance in our undertakings, but perseverance in grace—never in mortal sin, always a friend of God. Now, if God keeps us from all sin till the day of our death and takes us while we are His friends, then He gives us what we call the gift of final perseverance. We cannot, strictly speaking, merit this great grace, but only pray for it; so anyone who commits mortal sin may be taken just in that state and be lost for all eternity.
"Perseverance" here doesn’t refer to sticking with our tasks, but rather to staying in grace—never in serious sin, always being a friend of God. Now, if God keeps us free from all sin until the day we die and takes us while we are His friends, then He grants us what we call the gift of final perseverance. We can’t, strictly speaking, earn this great grace, but we can only pray for it; so anyone who commits serious sin may be taken in that state and be lost for all eternity.
Lesson 11
ON THE CHURCH
Lesson 11
ABOUT THE CHURCH
Before speaking of the Church I wish to give you a short account of the true religion before the coming of Our Lord. When Adam was created in a state of grace, God communicated with him freely; he knew God even better than we do now. But after their sin our parents fell from the friendship of God. Cain—one of Adam's sons—murdered his brother Abel, and for this he and his posterity were cursed by God, and all his descendants became very wicked. (Gen. 4:11). The other children of Adam remained faithful to God as long as they kept away from the children of Cain; but just as soon as they associated and intermarried with them, they also became wicked. This should teach us to avoid evil company, for there is always more likelihood that the good will become bad than that the bad will be converted by the good. You know the old saying, that if you take a basket of good apples and place a bad one among them, in a short time they will be spoiled.
Before discussing the Church, I want to give you a brief overview of true religion before the arrival of Our Lord. When Adam was created in a state of grace, God communicated with him freely; he understood God even better than we do now. However, after their sin, our ancestors lost their friendship with God. Cain—one of Adam's sons—killed his brother Abel, and for this, both he and his descendants were cursed by God, causing them to become very wicked. (Gen. 4:11). Adam's other children stayed faithful to God as long as they kept their distance from Cain's children; but as soon as they mixed and intermarried with them, they also turned wicked. This serves as a lesson to be cautious of bad company, as it’s more likely for good people to become bad than for bad people to change for the better. You know the saying, if you take a basket of good apples and put a bad one in, they’ll spoil quickly.
After the deluge Noe and his family settled once more upon the land, and for a time their descendants remained faithful to God; but later they became wicked and undertook to build a great tower (Gen. 11), which they thought would reach up to Heaven. They believed, perhaps, that if ever there should be another deluge upon the earth, they could take refuge in the tower. But God was displeased with their conduct and prevented them from completing the tower by confusing their tongues or language so that they could not understand one another. Then those who spoke the same language went to live in the same part of the country, and thus the human race was scattered over the earth, and the different nations had different languages.
After the flood, Noah and his family settled on the land again, and for a while, their descendants stayed faithful to God. But eventually, they turned wicked and decided to build a massive tower (Gen. 11), which they thought would reach heaven. They might have believed that if there were ever another flood, they could find safety in the tower. However, God was unhappy with their actions and stopped them from finishing the tower by confusing their languages so they couldn’t understand each other. Then those who spoke the same language moved to live in the same area, leading to the scattering of humanity across the earth, with different nations developing different languages.
After a time they were all losing the knowledge of the true God and beginning to worship idols. God did not wish that the whole human race should forget Him, so He selected Abraham to be the father and head of one chosen people who should always worship the true God. He sent Abraham from his own country into another, and promised him great things, and renewed to him the promises of the Redeemer first made to Adam and Eve. After the death of Abraham, God raised up, from time to time, prophets to tell the people His holy will, to warn them of their sins and the punishment they would receive, and to remind them of the promised Messias. Prophets are men that God inspires to tell the future. They tell what will happen often hundreds of years after their own death. They do not guess at these things, but tell them with certainty. At times, statesmen can foresee that there will be a war in a country at a certain time; but they are not prophets, because they only guess at such things, or know them by natural signs; and very often things thus foretold do not occur. True prophecy is the foretelling of something which could not be known by any means but inspiration from God.
After a while, they all started forgetting the true God and began worshipping idols. God didn't want all of humanity to forget Him, so He chose Abraham to be the father and leader of a chosen people who would always worship the true God. He sent Abraham from his homeland to another place and promised him great things, renewing the promises of the Redeemer that were first made to Adam and Eve. After Abraham died, God raised up prophets from time to time to communicate His holy will to the people, warning them about their sins and the punishments they would face, and reminding them of the promised Messiah. Prophets are individuals who are inspired by God to predict the future. They proclaim what will happen, often hundreds of years after their deaths. They don’t just make guesses about these things; they speak with certainty. Sometimes, politicians can predict that a war will occur in a certain country at a specific time, but they are not prophets because their insights are based on educated guesses or natural signs, and often, the events they predict don’t happen. True prophecy is the prediction of something that could not be known through any means other than divine inspiration.
Neither are persons who call themselves fortune-tellers prophets, but only sinful people, who for money tell lies or guess at the future. It is a great sin to go to them or listen to them, as we shall see later in another question.
Neither are people who call themselves fortune-tellers prophets, but only sinful individuals who lie for money or guess the future. It is a serious sin to visit them or listen to them, as we will see later in another question.
At the time promised, God sent His Son—Our Lord—to redeem the world and save all men. He came to save all men, and yet He remained upon earth only thirty-three years. We can easily understand that by His death He could save all those who lived before He did; but how were they to be saved who should live after Him, down to the end of the world? How was His grace to be given to them? How were they to know of Him, or of what He taught? All this was to be accomplished by His Church.
At the promised time, God sent His Son—Our Lord—to redeem the world and save everyone. He came to save all people, yet He was only on earth for thirty-three years. It's easy to understand that through His death, He could save everyone who lived before Him; but how would those who lived after Him, up to the end of the world, be saved? How would they receive His grace? How would they learn about Him or what He taught? All of this was meant to be achieved through His Church.
114 Q. Which are the means instituted by Our Lord to enable men at all times to share in the fruits of the Redemption? A. The means instituted by Our Lord to enable men at all times to share in the fruits of the Redemption are the Church and the Sacraments.
114 Q. What are the ways that Our Lord established to allow people to share in the benefits of Redemption at all times? A. The ways that Our Lord established to allow people to share in the benefits of Redemption at all times are the Church and the Sacraments.
Our Lord instituted the Church to carry on the work He Himself was doing upon the earth—teaching the ignorant, visiting the sick, helping the poor, forgiving sins, etc. He commanded all men to hear the Church teaching, just as they would hear Himself. But suppose some persons should establish a false Church and claim that it was the true Church of Our Lord, how could people know the true Church from false churches? When a man invents anything to be sold, what does he do that people may know the true article—say a pen? Why, he puts his trademark upon it. Now the trademark is a certain sign which shows that the article bearing it is the genuine article; and if others use the trademark on imitation articles, they are liable to be punished by law. Now Our Lord did the same. He gave His Church four marks or characteristics to distinguish it from all false churches. He said, "My Church will be one; it will be holy; it will be catholic; it will be apostolic; and if any church has not these four marks, you may be sure it is not My Church." Some false church may seem to have one or two, but never all the marks; so when you find even one of the marks wanting, you will know it is not the true Church established by Christ. Therefore, all the religions that claim to be the true religion cannot be so. If one man says a thing is white and another says it is black, or if one says a thing is true and another says it is false, they cannot both be right. Only one can be right, and if we wish to know the truth we have to find out which one it is. So when one religion says a thing is true and another religion says the same thing is false, one of them must be wrong, and it is our duty to find out the one that is right. Therefore, of all the religions claiming to be the true religion of Our Lord, only one can be telling the truth, and that one is the religion or Church that can show the four given marks. The Roman Catholic Church is the only one that can show these marks, and is, therefore, the only true Church, as we shall see in the next lesson.
Our Lord established the Church to continue the work He was doing on Earth—teaching the uninformed, caring for the sick, helping the needy, forgiving sins, and more. He instructed everyone to listen to the Church's teachings just as they would listen to Him. But what if some people created a false Church and claimed it was the true Church of Our Lord? How could people tell the genuine Church from the counterfeit ones? When someone invents something to sell—let's say a pen—they put a trademark on it to let people know it's the real deal. The trademark serves as a clear sign that the product is authentic; if others misuse the trademark on fake items, they can face legal consequences. Similarly, Our Lord provided His Church with four marks or characteristics to set it apart from all false churches. He said, "My Church will be one; it will be holy; it will be catholic; it will be apostolic; and if any church lacks these four marks, you can be sure it is not My Church." A fake church might seem to have one or two marks, but never all of them, so when you notice even one missing, you can conclude it is not the true Church established by Christ. Therefore, not all religions claiming to be the true faith can actually be so. If one person claims something is white and another says it's black, or if one declares something to be true while another says it's false, both cannot be correct. Only one can be right, and if we want to uncover the truth, we must determine which that is. So when one religion asserts something is true and another states it's false, one of them must be mistaken, and it's our responsibility to identify the one that is correct. Hence, among all the religions that assert they are the true faith of Our Lord, only one can tell the truth, which is the religion or Church that can demonstrate the four marks. The Roman Catholic Church is the only one that can show these marks and is, therefore, the only true Church, as we will explore in the next lesson.
"Fruits of His redemption"—that is, to receive the grace merited by Our
Lord when He redeemed us by His death.
"Fruits of His redemption"—meaning to receive the grace earned by Our
Lord when He saved us through His death.
115 Q. What is the Church?
A. The Church is the congregation of all those who profess the faith of
Christ, partake of the same Sacraments, and are governed by their lawful
pastors under one visible head.
115 Q. What is the Church?
A. The Church is the community of everyone who believes in the faith of
Christ, shares the same Sacraments, and is led by their rightful
pastors under one visible leader.
"Congregation." Not the building, therefore; because if Mass was offered up in an open field, with the people kneeling about, it would still be the church of that place. The buildings that we use for churches might have been used for anything else—a public hall, theater, or school, for example; but when these buildings we call churches are blessed or consecrated, they become holy. They are holy also because the Gospel is preached in them, the Sacraments are administered in them, and the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass is offered in them. But they are holy especially because Our Lord dwells in them in the tabernacle, where He lives and sees and hears just as truly as He did when He was man upon earth.
"Congregation." Not the building, though; because if Mass were held in an open field, with people kneeling around, it would still be the church of that location. The buildings we use for churches could have been used for anything else—a community hall, theater, or school, for instance; but when these buildings called churches are blessed or consecrated, they become sacred. They are sacred also because the Gospel is preached in them, the Sacraments are administered within them, and the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass is offered there. However, they are particularly sacred because Our Lord resides in them in the tabernacle, where He lives, sees, and hears just as truly as He did when He was a man on earth.
In the early ages the Christians had no churches—they met secretly in private houses. Later, when the cruel pagan emperors began to persecute and put to death the Christians, they made large tunnels under ground and in these places they heard Mass and received the Sacraments. These underground churches were called the catacombs, and some of them may still be seen at Rome. In these catacombs, too, the Christians buried their dead, especially the bodies of the holy martyrs. On their tombs—generally of stone—Mass was celebrated.
In the early days, Christians didn’t have churches—they gathered secretly in private homes. Later, when the brutal pagan emperors started persecuting and killing Christians, they dug large tunnels underground where they held Mass and received the Sacraments. These underground churches were called the catacombs, and some of them can still be seen in Rome. In these catacombs, Christians also buried their dead, especially the bodies of holy martyrs. Mass was celebrated on their tombs, which were usually made of stone.
In every altar the table, or flat part on which the priest celebrates Mass, should be of stone; but if the altar is made of wood, then at least the part just in front of the tabernacle must be of stone and large enough to hold say two chalices—that is, about ten or twelve inches square. In this stone are placed some relics of the holy martyrs. A piece is cut out of the stone and the relic placed in the opening. Then the bishop puts the little piece of stone back into its place over the relic, seals the opening, blesses the stone, and gives it to the Church. This is called the altar stone. You cannot see it because it is covered with the altar cloth; but unless it is in the altar the priest cannot say Mass. This stone reminds us of the stone tombs of the saints upon which Mass was celebrated.
In every altar, the table or flat surface where the priest performs Mass should be made of stone. However, if the altar is built from wood, then at least the section right in front of the tabernacle must be made of stone and large enough to hold two chalices, which is about ten or twelve inches square. Some relics of the holy martyrs are placed in this stone. A piece is carved out of the stone, and the relic is placed in that opening. Then the bishop puts the small piece of stone back in place over the relic, seals the opening, blesses the stone, and gives it to the Church. This is known as the altar stone. You can't see it because it's covered with the altar cloth, but without it in the altar, the priest can't celebrate Mass. This stone serves as a reminder of the stone tombs of the saints where Mass was once celebrated.
The Church—that is, the Christians—was persecuted for about three hundred years after the death of Our Lord. These persecutions took place at ten different times and under ten different Roman emperors. Orders were given to put to death all the Christians wherever they could be found. Some were cast into prison, some exiled, some taken to the Roman Coliseum—an immense building constructed for public amusements—where they were put to death in the most terrible manner in the presence of the emperor and people assembled to witness these fearful scenes. Some were stripped of their clothing and left standing alone while savage beasts, wild with hunger, were let loose upon them. Sometimes by a miracle of God the animals would not harm them, and then the Christians were either put to death by the sword, mangled by some terrible machine, or burned. In these dreadful sufferings the Christians remained faithful and firm, though they could have saved their lives by denying Our Lord or offering sacrifice to idols. The few who through fear did deny their faith are now forgotten and unknown; while those who remained steadfast are honored as saints in Heaven and upon earth; the Church sings their praises and tells every year of their holy lives and triumph over all their enemies.
The Church—that is, the Christians—was persecuted for about three hundred years after the death of Our Lord. These persecutions occurred ten different times under ten different Roman emperors. Orders were issued to kill all the Christians wherever they could be found. Some were imprisoned, some exiled, and some taken to the Roman Coliseum—an enormous venue built for public entertainment—where they were executed in the most horrific ways in front of the emperor and a crowd gathered to witness these terrifying events. Some were stripped of their clothes and left standing alone while ferocious beasts, starving with hunger, were unleashed on them. Sometimes, by a miracle of God, the animals wouldn’t harm them, and then the Christians were either killed by the sword, torn apart by an awful machine, or burned alive. In these terrible trials, the Christians remained faithful and resolute, even though they could have saved their lives by denying Our Lord or sacrificing to idols. The few who denied their faith out of fear are now forgotten and remain unknown; while those who stayed true are honored as saints both in Heaven and on earth; the Church celebrates their achievements and recounts their holy lives and victories over all their foes each year.
Even some pagans who came to see the Christians put to death were so touched by their patience, fortitude, courage, and constancy, that they also declared themselves anxious to become Christians, and were put to death, thus becoming martyrs baptized in their own blood. How many lessons we may learn from all this: (1) How very respectful we should be in the Church, which is holy for all the reasons I have given. (2) What a shame it is for us not to hear Mass when we can do so easily. Our churches are never very far from us, and generally well lighted, ventilated, furnished with seats and every convenience, and in these respects unlike the dark, damp, underground churches of the early Christians. Moreover, we may attend our churches freely and without the least danger to our lives; while the Christians of the early ages were constantly in dread and danger of being seized and put to death. Even at the present day, in many countries where holy missionaries are trying to teach the true religion, their converts sometimes have to go great distances to hear Mass, and even then it is not celebrated in comfortable churches, but probably on the slope of a rugged mountain or in some lonely valley or wood where they may not be seen, for they fear if they are captured—as often happens—both they and their priest will be put to death. You can read in the account of foreign missions that almost every year some priests and many people are martyred for their faith. Is it not disgraceful, then, to see some Catholics giving up their holy faith and the practice of their religion so easily—sometimes for a little money, property, or gain; or even for a bad habit, or for irreligious companions and friends? What answer will they make on the day of judgment when they stand side by side with those who died for the faith?
Even some pagans who came to witness the Christians being executed were so moved by their patience, strength, bravery, and steadfastness that they expressed a desire to become Christians themselves, and were killed, thus becoming martyrs baptized in their own blood. There are so many lessons we can learn from this: (1) How respectful we should be in the Church, which is sacred for all the reasons I've mentioned. (2) It’s a shame that we don’t attend Mass when it’s so easy for us. Our churches are usually not far away, and they are generally well lit, ventilated, equipped with seats, and all the conveniences, unlike the dark, damp underground churches of the early Christians. Plus, we can freely attend our churches without any real danger to our lives, while early Christians constantly lived in fear of being captured and killed. Even today, in many countries where holy missionaries are attempting to teach the true religion, their converts often have to travel great distances to attend Mass, and even then it’s likely not in comfortable churches, but instead on the side of a rugged mountain or in some secluded valley or forest where they can't be seen, fearing that if they are caught—as often happens—they and their priest will be executed. You can read in the reports of foreign missions that almost every year some priests and many people are martyred for their faith. Isn't it disgraceful to see some Catholics easily abandoning their holy faith and the practice of their religion—sometimes for a bit of money, property, or gain; or even for a bad habit or irreligious friends? What will they say on Judgment Day when they stand alongside those who died for their faith?
"All those who profess the faith," etc. The Pope, bishops, priests, and people all taken together are the Church, and each congregation or parish is only a part of the Church.
"All those who profess the faith," etc. The Pope, bishops, priests, and people all together make up the Church, and each congregation or parish is just a part of the Church.
"Partake"—that is, receive. "Lawful pastors"—that is, each priest in his own parish, each bishop in his own diocese, and the Pope throughout the world. "Visible head"—that is, one who can be seen, for invisible means cannot be seen.
"Partake"—that means to receive. "Lawful pastors"—referring to each priest in his own parish, each bishop in his own diocese, and the Pope around the world. "Visible head"—meaning someone who can be seen, because invisible things can't be seen.
116 Q. Who is the invisible head of the Church? A. Jesus Christ is the invisible head of the Church.
116 Q. Who is the unseen leader of the Church? A. Jesus Christ is the unseen leader of the Church.
"Invisible head." If, for example, a merchant of one country wishes to establish a branch of his business in another, he remains in the new country long enough to establish the branch business, and then appointing someone to take his place, returns to his own country. He is still the head of the new establishment, but its invisible head for the people of that country, while its visible head is the agent or representative he has placed in charge to carry on the business in his name and interest. When Our Lord wished to establish His Church He came from Heaven; and when about to return to Heaven appointed St. Peter to take His place upon earth and rule the Church as directed. You see, therefore, that Our Lord, though not on earth, is still the real head and owner of the Church, and whatever His agent or vicar—that is, our Holy Father, the Pope—does in the Church, he does it with the authority of Our Lord Himself.
"Invisible head." For instance, if a merchant from one country wants to set up a branch of his business in another, he stays in the new country long enough to establish the branch, and then appoints someone to take over his role and returns home. He remains the head of the new establishment, but to the people in that country, he is an invisible head, while the visible head is the agent or representative he has put in charge to run the business in his name and interest. When Our Lord wanted to establish His Church, He came from Heaven; and when He was about to return to Heaven, He appointed St. Peter to take His place on earth and lead the Church as instructed. Thus, even though Our Lord is not on earth, He is still the real head and owner of the Church, and everything His agent or vicar—that is, our Holy Father, the Pope—does in the Church, he does with the authority of Our Lord Himself.
117 Q. Who is the visible head of the Church? A. Our Holy Father the Pope, the Bishop of Rome, is the vicar of Christ on earth and the visible head of the Church.
117 Q. Who is the visible head of the Church? A. Our Holy Father the Pope, the Bishop of Rome, is the representative of Christ on earth and the visible leader of the Church.
The "Bishop of Rome" is always Pope. If the Bishop of New York, or of Baltimore, or of Boston, became Pope, he would become the Bishop of Rome and cease to be the Bishop of New York, Baltimore, or Boston, because St. Peter, the first Pope, was Bishop of Rome; and therefore only the bishops of Rome are his lawful successors—the true Popes—the true visible heads of the Church. The bishops of the other dioceses of the world are the lawful successors of the other Apostles who taught and established churches throughout the world. The bishops of the world are subject to the Pope, just as the other Apostles were subject to St. Peter, who was appointed their chief, by Our Lord Himself.
The "Bishop of Rome" is always the Pope. If the Bishop of New York, Baltimore, or Boston were to become Pope, he would assume the role of Bishop of Rome and stop being the Bishop of New York, Baltimore, or Boston, because St. Peter, the first Pope, was the Bishop of Rome; therefore, only the bishops of Rome are his legitimate successors—the true Popes—the real visible leaders of the Church. The bishops of other dioceses around the world are the rightful successors of the other Apostles who spread the teachings and established churches everywhere. The bishops worldwide are under the authority of the Pope, just as the other Apostles were under St. Peter, who was appointed their leader by Our Lord Himself.
"Vicar"—that is, one who holds another's place and acts in his name.
"Vicar"—meaning someone who represents another person and acts on their behalf.
*118 Q. Why is the Pope, the Bishop of Rome, the visible head of the Church? A. The Pope, the Bishop of Rome, is the visible head of the Church because he is the successor of St. Peter, whom Christ made the chief of the Apostles and the visible head of the Church.
*118 Q. Why is the Pope, the Bishop of Rome, the visible head of the Church? A. The Pope, the Bishop of Rome, is the visible head of the Church because he is the successor of St. Peter, whom Christ appointed as the leader of the Apostles and the visible head of the Church.
"Of Rome." That is why we are called Roman Catholics; to show that we are united to the real successor of St. Peter, and are therefore members of the true apostolic Church.
"Of Rome." That’s why we’re called Roman Catholics; to indicate that we are connected to the actual successor of St. Peter, and are thus members of the true apostolic Church.
*119 Q. Who are the successors of the other Apostles? A. The successors of the other Apostles are the bishops of the holy Catholic Church.
*119 Q. Who are the successors of the other Apostles? A. The successors of the other Apostles are the bishops of the holy Catholic Church.
We know the Apostles were bishops, because they could make laws for the
Church, consecrate other bishops, ordain priests, and give
Confirmation—powers that belong only to bishops, and are still
exercised by them.
We know the Apostles were bishops because they had the authority to make laws for the
Church, consecrate other bishops, ordain priests, and perform
Confirmation—powers that are exclusive to bishops and are still
exercised by them.
*120 Q. Why did Christ found the Church? A. Christ founded the Church to teach, govern, sanctify, and save all men.
*120 Q. Why did Christ establish the Church? A. Christ established the Church to teach, guide, sanctify, and save everyone.
"Teach" religion. "Govern" in things that regard salvation. "Sanctify," make good. "Save" all who wish to be saved.
"Teach" religion. "Govern" regarding salvation matters. "Sanctify," make good. "Save" anyone who wants to be saved.
*121 Q. Are all bound to belong to the Church? A. All are bound to belong to the Church, and he who knows the Church to be the true Church and remains out of it, cannot be saved.
*121 Q. Is everyone required to be part of the Church? A. Everyone is required to be part of the Church, and anyone who knows that the Church is the true Church and still stays away from it cannot be saved.
Anyone who knows the Catholic religion to be the true religion and will not embrace it cannot enter into Heaven. If one not a Catholic doubts whether the church to which he belongs is the true Church, he must settle his doubt, seek the true Church, and enter it; for if he continues to live in doubt, he becomes like the one who knows the true Church and is deterred by worldly considerations from entering it.
Anyone who understands that the Catholic religion is the true faith and chooses not to accept it cannot enter Heaven. If someone who isn't Catholic has doubts about whether their church is the true Church, they need to resolve those doubts, look for the true Church, and join it; because if they keep living in doubt, they become like someone who knows the true Church but is held back by worldly concerns from joining it.
In like manner one who, doubting, fears to examine the religion he professes lest he should discover its falsity and be convinced of the truth of the Catholic faith, cannot be saved.
In the same way, someone who is afraid to question the religion they practice, fearing they might find out it's false and be convinced of the truth of the Catholic faith, cannot be saved.
Suppose, however, that there is a non-Catholic who firmly believes that the church to which he belongs is the true Church, and who has never—even in the past—had the slightest doubt of that fact—what will become of him?
Suppose, though, that there's a non-Catholic who strongly believes that the church they belong to is the true Church and who has never—even in the past—had the slightest doubt about that. What will happen to them?
If he was validly baptized and never committed a mortal sin, he will be saved; because, believing himself a member of the true Church, he was doing all he could to serve God according to his knowledge and the dictates of his conscience. But if ever he committed a mortal sin, his salvation would be very much more difficult. A mortal sin once committed remains on the soul till it is forgiven. Now, how could his mortal sin be forgiven? Not in the Sacrament of Penance, for the Protestant does not go to confession; and if he does, his minister—not being a true priest—has no power to forgive sins. Does he know that without confession it requires an act of perfect contrition to blot out mortal sin, and can he easily make such an act? What we call contrition is often only imperfect contrition—that is, sorrow for our sins because we fear their punishment in Hell or dread the loss of Heaven. If a Catholic—with all the instruction he has received about how to make an act of perfect contrition and all the practice he has had in making such acts—might find it difficult to make an act of perfect contrition after having committed a mortal sin, how much difficulty will not a Protestant have in making an act of perfect contrition, who does not know about this requirement and who has not been taught to make continued acts of perfect contrition all his life. It is to be feared either he would not know of this necessary means of regaining God's friendship, or he would be unable to elicit the necessary act of perfect contrition, and thus the mortal sin would remain upon his soul and he would die an enemy of God.
If he was genuinely baptized and never committed a serious sin, he will be saved because, believing he’s a member of the true Church, he was doing everything he could to serve God according to what he knows and what his conscience tells him. But if he ever committed a serious sin, his salvation would be much harder. A serious sin, once committed, stays with the soul until it is forgiven. Now, how could his serious sin be forgiven? Not in the Sacrament of Penance, because Protestants don’t go to confession; and if they do, their minister—who isn’t a real priest—has no power to forgive sins. Does he know that without confession, he needs an act of perfect contrition to erase serious sin, and can he easily make such an act? What we call contrition is often just imperfect contrition—that is, feeling sorry for our sins because we fear their punishment in Hell or worry about losing Heaven. If a Catholic—with all the training he has received on how to make an act of perfect contrition and all the practice he’s had doing it—might struggle to make an act of perfect contrition after committing a serious sin, how much harder will it be for a Protestant, who doesn’t know about this requirement and hasn’t been taught to continuously make acts of perfect contrition throughout his life? It’s likely he either wouldn’t know about this necessary way to regain God’s friendship, or he wouldn’t be able to carry out the required act of perfect contrition, and thus the serious sin would stay on his soul, and he would die as an enemy of God.
If, then, we found a Protestant who never committed a mortal sin after Baptism, and who never had the slightest doubt about the truth of his religion, that person would be saved; because, being baptized, he is a member of the Church, and being free from mortal sin he is a friend of God and could not in justice be condemned to Hell. Such a person would attend Mass and receive the Sacraments if he knew the Catholic Church to be the only true Church.
If we found a Protestant who never committed a serious sin after Baptism and who never doubted the truth of his faith, that person would be saved. Since he is baptized, he is a member of the Church, and being free from serious sin means he is a friend of God and couldn’t justly be condemned to Hell. Such a person would attend Mass and receive the Sacraments if he recognized the Catholic Church as the only true Church.
I am giving you an example, however, that is rarely found, except in the case of infants or very small children baptized in Protestant sects. All infants rightly baptized by anyone are really children of the Church, no matter what religion their parents may profess. Indeed, all persons who are baptized are children of the Church; but those among them who deny its teaching, reject its Sacraments, and refuse to submit to its lawful pastors, are rebellious children known as heretics.
I’m giving you an example, but it’s something you rarely see, except in the case of infants or very young children baptized in Protestant denominations. All infants who are properly baptized by anyone are truly children of the Church, regardless of what religion their parents follow. In fact, everyone who is baptized is a child of the Church; however, those who deny its teachings, reject its Sacraments, and refuse to follow its legitimate leaders are considered rebellious children, known as heretics.
I said I gave you an example that can scarcely be found, namely, of a person not a Catholic, who really never doubted the truth of his religion, and who, moreover, never committed during his whole life a mortal sin. There are so few such persons that we can practically say for all those who are not visibly members of the Catholic Church, believing its doctrines, receiving its Sacraments, and being governed by its visible head, our Holy Father, the Pope, salvation is an extremely difficult matter.
I mentioned that I provided a rare example: a person who isn't Catholic, yet has never doubted the truth of their faith and has also never committed a mortal sin in their entire life. There are so few individuals like this that we can almost conclude that for everyone who isn’t a visible member of the Catholic Church—believing its teachings, receiving its Sacraments, and being guided by its earthly leader, our Holy Father, the Pope—salvation is incredibly challenging.
I do not speak here of pagans who have never heard of Our Lord or His holy religion, but of those outside the Church who claim to be good Christians without being members of the Catholic Church.
I’m not talking about pagans who have never heard of Our Lord or His holy religion, but about those outside the Church who say they are good Christians without actually being part of the Catholic Church.
Lesson 12
ON THE ATTRIBUTES AND MARKS OF THE CHURCH
Lesson 12
ABOUT THE ATTRIBUTES AND MARKS OF THE CHURCH
An attribute is any characteristic or quality that a person or thing may be said to have. All good qualities are good attributes, and all bad qualities are bad attributes. All perfections or imperfections are attributes. If I can say of you that you are good, then goodness is one of your attributes. If I can say you are beautiful, then beauty is one of your attributes. We have seen already that the Church has four marks; but besides these it has three attributes, which flow from its marks. It is easier to see the marks of the Church than its attributes. It is easier to see, for instance, that the Church is one than that it is indefectible.
An attribute is any characteristic or quality that a person or thing can possess. All positive qualities are good attributes, while all negative qualities are bad attributes. All perfections or imperfections are attributes. If I can say that you are good, then goodness is one of your attributes. If I can say you are beautiful, then beauty is one of your attributes. We have already noted that the Church has four marks; in addition to these, it has three attributes that arise from its marks. It's generally easier to recognize the marks of the Church than its attributes. For example, it's easier to see that the Church is one than to see that it is indefectible.
*122 Q. Which are the attributes of the Church? A. The attributes of the Church are three: authority, infallibility, and indefectibility.
*122 Q. What are the attributes of the Church? A. The attributes of the Church are three: authority, infallibility, and indefectibility.
*123 Q. What do you mean by the authority of the Church? A. By the authority of the Church I mean the right and power which the Pope and the bishops, as the successors of the Apostles, have to teach and govern the faithful.
*123 Q. What do you mean by the authority of the Church? A. By the authority of the Church, I mean the right and power that the Pope and the bishops, as the successors of the Apostles, have to teach and lead the faithful.
Authority is the power which one person has over another, so as to be able to exact obedience. A teacher has authority over his scholars, because they must obey him; but the teacher need not obey the scholars, because they have no authority over him. God alone has authority of Himself and from Himself All others who have authority receive it from God, either directly or through someone else. The Pope has authority from God Himself, and the priests get theirs through their bishops. Therefore, to resist or disobey lawful authority is to resist and disobey God Himself. If one of you were placed in charge of the class in my absence, he would have lawful authority, and the rest of you should obey him—not on account of himself, but on account of the authority he has. Thus the President of the United States, the governor, the mayor, etc., are only ordinary citizens before their election; but after they have been elected and placed in office they exercise lawful authority over us, and we are bound as good citizens and as good Catholics to respect and obey them.
Authority is the power that one person has over another to demand obedience. A teacher has authority over their students because they must listen to them; however, the teacher does not need to listen to the students since they hold no authority over them. Only God has authority on His own and from Himself. Everyone else who has authority receives it from God, either directly or through someone else. The Pope has authority directly from God, and priests get their authority through their bishops. Therefore, resisting or defying lawful authority means resisting and defying God Himself. If one of you were put in charge of the class while I’m away, that person would have lawful authority, and the rest of you should obey them—not because of who they are, but because of the authority they possess. Similarly, the President of the United States, the governor, the mayor, etc., are just regular citizens before they are elected; but once they are elected and take office, they wield lawful authority over us, and we are obligated as good citizens and good Catholics to respect and obey them.
*124 Q. What do you mean by the infallibility of the Church? A. By the infallibility of the Church I mean that the Church cannot err when it teaches a doctrine of faith or morals.
*124 Q. What do you mean by the infallibility of the Church? A. By the infallibility of the Church, I mean that the Church cannot make mistakes when it teaches a doctrine of faith or morals.
"Infallibility." When we say Church is infallible, we mean that it cannot make a mistake or err in what it teaches; that the Pope, the head of the Church, is infallible when he teaches ex cathedra—that is, as the successor of St. Peter, the vicar of Christ. Cathedra signifies a seat, ex stands for "out of"; therefore, ex cathedra means out of the chair or office of St. Peter, because chair is sometimes used for office. Thus we say the presidential chair is opposed to this or that, when we intend to say the president, or the one in that office, is opposed to it. The cathedral is the church in which the bishop usually officiates, so called on account of the bishop's cathedra, or throne, being in it.
"Infallibility." When we say the Church is infallible, we mean that it can't make mistakes or errors in its teachings; that the Pope, who is the head of the Church, is infallible when he teaches ex cathedra—that is, as the successor of St. Peter and the representative of Christ. Cathedra means a seat, and ex means "out of"; so, ex cathedra refers to the authority or office of St. Peter, because "chair" is sometimes used to refer to an office. For example, we say the presidential chair is opposed to this or that, meaning the president, or the person in that role, is opposed to it. The cathedral is the church where the bishop typically officiates, named for the bishop's cathedra, or throne, being located there.
*125 Q. When does the Church teach infallibly? A. The Church teaches infallibly when it speaks through the Pope and bishops united in general council, or through the Pope alone when he proclaims to all the faithful a doctrine of faith or morals.
*125 Q. When does the Church teach infallibly? A. The Church teaches infallibly when it speaks through the Pope and bishops gathered in a general council, or through the Pope alone when he announces a doctrine of faith or morals to all the faithful.
But how will we know when the Pope speaks ex cathedra, when he is speaking daily to people from all parts of the world? To speak ex cathedra or infallibly, three things are required:
But how will we know when the Pope speaks ex cathedra, when he is speaking daily to people from all parts of the world? To speak ex cathedra or infallibly, three things are required:
(1) He must speak as the head of the whole Church, not as a private person; and in certain forms of words by which we know he is speaking ex cathedra.
(1) He must speak as the leader of the entire Church, not as an individual; and in specific phrases that indicate he is speaking ex cathedra.
(2) What he says must hold good for the whole Church—that is, for all the faithful, and not merely for this or that particular person or country.
(2) What he says must apply to the entire Church—that is, to all the faithful, and not just to this or that individual or country.
(3) He must speak on matters of faith or morals—that is, when the Holy Father tells all the faithful that they are to believe a certain thing as a part of their faith; or when he tells them that certain things are sins, they must believe him and avoid what he declares to be sin. He could not make a mistake in such things. He could not say that Our Lord taught us to believe and do such and such, if Our Lord did not so teach, because Our Lord promised to be with His Church for all time, and to send the Holy Ghost, who would teach it all truth and abide with it forever. If then the Church could make mistakes in teaching faith and morals, the Holy Ghost could not be with it, and Our Lord did not tell the truth—to say which would be blasphemy. But remember, the Pope is not infallible unless he is teaching faith or morals; that is, what we believe or do in order to save our souls. If the Holy Father wrote a book on astronomy, mathematics, grammar, or even theology, he could make mistakes as other men do, because the Holy Ghost has not promised to guide him in such things. Nevertheless, whatever the Pope teaches on anything you may be pretty sure is right. The Pope is nearly always a very learned man of many years' experience. He has with him at Rome learned men from every part of the world, so that we may say he has the experience of the whole world. Other rulers cannot and need not know as much as the Holy Father, because they have not to govern the world, but only their own country. Moreover, there is no government in the whole world as old as the Church, no nation that can show as many rulers without change; so we may say the Pope has also the experience of all the Popes who preceded him, from St. Peter down to our present Holy Father, Pius XI—two hundred and sixty-one popes. Therefore, considering all this, we should have the very greatest respect for the opinions and advice of the Holy Father on any subject. We should not set up our limited knowledge and experience against his, even if we think that we know better than he does about certain political events taking place in our country, for we are not sure that we do. The Holy Father knows the past history of nations; he knows the nature of mankind; he knows that what takes place in one nation may, and sometimes does, take place in another under the same circumstances. Thus the Holy Father has greater foresight than we have, and we should be thankful when he warns us against certain dangers in politics or other things. He does not teach politics; but as everything we do is either good or bad, every statesman or politician must consider whether what he is about to do be right or wrong, just or unjust. It is the business and duty of the Holy Father to declare against the evil or unjust actions of either individuals or nations, and for that reason he seems at times to interfere in politics when he is really teaching morals. At times, too, governments try to deprive the Church or the Holy Father of their rights; and when he defends himself against such injustice and protests against it, his enemies cry out that he is interfering with the government.
(3) The Pope must address issues of faith or morals—meaning, when the Holy Father tells all believers that they should believe something as part of their faith; or when he informs them that certain actions are sins, they are required to trust him and stay away from what he identifies as sinful. He cannot make errors in these matters. He cannot claim that Our Lord taught us to believe or do certain things if Our Lord did not actually teach that, because Our Lord promised to be with His Church forever and to send the Holy Spirit, who would guide it in all truth and remain with it eternally. If the Church could make mistakes in teaching faith and morals, then the Holy Spirit would not be with it, and Our Lord would not have told the truth—claiming otherwise would be blasphemy. However, it's important to note that the Pope is not infallible unless he is teaching about faith or morals; that is, about what we believe or do to save our souls. If the Holy Father wrote a book on astronomy, mathematics, grammar, or even theology, he could make mistakes just like anyone else, because the Holy Spirit has not promised to guide him in those areas. Nonetheless, whatever the Pope teaches on any subject is likely to be correct. The Pope is usually a very knowledgeable person with many years of experience. He has learned individuals from all around the world with him in Rome, so we can say he has the insights of the entire world. Other leaders don’t need to know as much as the Holy Father, because they only need to govern their own countries, not the entire world. Additionally, there is no government in the world as ancient as the Church, nor any nation that can show as many rulers without change; therefore, we can also say that the Pope has the experience of all the Popes before him, from St. Peter to our current Holy Father, Pius XI—totaling two hundred and sixty-one popes. Keeping all this in mind, we should have the utmost respect for the opinions and advice of the Holy Father on any topic. We should not let our limited knowledge and experience outweigh his, even if we believe we understand certain political events better, because we can’t be sure that we do. The Holy Father understands the historical context of nations; he understands human nature; he knows that what occurs in one country may often happen in another under similar circumstances. Thus, the Holy Father possesses greater foresight than we do, and we should be grateful when he warns us about certain political dangers or other issues. He doesn't teach politics; however, since all our actions are either good or bad, every politician must evaluate whether their actions are right or wrong, just or unjust. It's the Pope's role and responsibility to condemn evil or unjust behaviors, whether from individuals or nations, and because of this, he sometimes appears to meddle in politics when he is actually addressing moral issues. At times, governments also try to strip the Church or the Holy Father of their rights; and when he defends himself against such injustice and protests, his opponents claim that he is interfering with government.
You understand now what the infallibility of the Pope implies, and that it does not mean, as the enemies of the Church say, that the Pope cannot sin, cannot be mistaken in anything. The Pope can sin just the same as anyone else; he could be a very bad man if he wanted to be so, and take the punishment God would inflict for his sins. Could he not be very angry, entirely neglect prayer, or pray with willful distraction; could he not be proud, covetous, etc.? And these are sins. Therefore he could sin; and hence he has to go to confession and seek forgiveness just as we do. Therefore remember this: whether the Pope be a bad man or a good man in his private life, he must always tell the truth when he speaks ex cathedra, because the Holy Ghost is guiding him and will not permit him to err or teach falsehood in faith or morals.
You now understand what the infallibility of the Pope means, and that it doesn't imply, as the Church's opponents claim, that the Pope cannot sin or be wrong about anything. The Pope can sin just like anyone else; he could choose to be a very bad person and face the consequences from God for his sins. Couldn't he get really angry, completely ignore prayer, or pray with distraction on purpose? Couldn't he also be prideful, greedy, etc.? And these are sins. So, he could sin; therefore, he must go to confession and seek forgiveness just like we do. Remember this: regardless of whether the Pope is a bad person or a good person in his private life, he must always speak the truth when he addresses matters ex cathedra, because the Holy Spirit guides him and won't let him make mistakes or teach lies about faith or morals.
We have examples in the Bible (Numbers 22, 23) where God sometimes makes even bad men foretell the truth. Once He gave an ass the power to speak, that it might protest against the wrongdoing of its wicked and cruel rider.
We have examples in the Bible (Numbers 22, 23) where God sometimes makes even bad people tell the truth. Once, He enabled a donkey to speak so it could protest against the wrongdoing of its wicked and cruel rider.
We have seen how governments interfere with the rights of the Holy Father, and thus he has need of his temporal power that he may be altogether independent of any government. Now let me explain to you what is meant by the Temporal Power of the Pope. Well, then, the Holy Father should have some city or states, not belonging to any government, in which he would be the chief and only ruler. Up to the year 1870 the Holy Father did have such states: they were called the Papal States, and the power he had over them—just like that of any other ruler—was called the temporal power. Now how did he get those states and how did he lose them? He got them in the most just manner, and held possession of them for about a thousand years.
We have seen how governments interfere with the rights of the Pope, and so he needs his temporal power to be completely independent of any government. Now let me explain what the Temporal Power of the Pope means. Essentially, the Pope should have certain cities or states that are not part of any government, where he would be the chief and only ruler. Until 1870, the Pope had such states, known as the Papal States, and the authority he held over them—just like any other ruler—was called temporal power. So how did he acquire those states, and how did he lose them? He obtained them in a completely just way and held on to them for about a thousand years.
Hundreds of years ago the people of Rome and the surrounding countries elected the Pope their sole ruler. He was already their spiritual ruler, and they made him also their temporal ruler. Then the Pope protected and governed them as other rulers do. Later, kings and princes added other lands, and thus by degrees the possessions of the Pope became quite extended.
Hundreds of years ago, the people of Rome and the nearby countries chose the Pope as their only ruler. He was already their spiritual leader, and they made him their political leader as well. The Pope then protected and governed them like other rulers do. Over time, kings and princes acquired more territories, and gradually, the Pope's holdings grew significantly.
How did he lose these possessions? The Italian government took them from him in the most unjust manner. Besides the lands, they deprived the Church of other property donated to it by its faithful children. No ruler in the world had a more just claim or better right to his possessions than the Holy Father, and a government robbed him of them as a thief might take forcibly from you whatever had been justly given to you, when he found you were unable to defend yourself against him.
How did he lose these possessions? The Italian government took them from him in the most unfair way. In addition to the land, they stripped the Church of other property that had been donated by its devoted followers. No leader in the world had a more valid claim or better right to his possessions than the Holy Father, and a government stole them from him just like a thief might forcibly take what rightfully belongs to you when he realizes you can't defend yourself against him.
But has the Holy Father need of his temporal power? Yes, the Holy Father has need of some temporal power. He must be free and independent in governing the Church. He must be free to say what he wishes to all Catholics throughout the world, and free to hear whatever they have to say to him. But if the Pope is under another ruler he cannot be free. That ruler may cast him into prison, and not allow him to communicate with the bishops of the world. At least, he can say nothing about the injustice of the ruler who is over him. Therefore the Pope must have some possessions of his own, that he may not be afraid of the injustice of any ruler, and may speak out the truth boldly to the whole world, denouncing bad rulers and praising good ones as they deserve.
But does the Pope need some level of political power? Yes, the Pope does need some political power. He must be free and independent in leading the Church. He needs the freedom to communicate whatever he wants to all Catholics around the world, and to listen to whatever they want to tell him. However, if the Pope is under the authority of another leader, he cannot be truly free. That leader could imprison him and prevent him from communicating with bishops worldwide. At the very least, he wouldn’t be able to speak out against the injustices of the leader above him. Therefore, the Pope must own some property of his own, so that he doesn’t have to fear the injustices of any ruler and can speak the truth boldly to the entire world, condemning bad leaders and praising good ones as they deserve.
Mind, I do not say what possessions the Holy Father should have but simply that he should have some, in which he would be altogether independent. In justice he should have all that was taken from him. We have a good example here in the United States to illustrate the need of the independence of the Pope. You know every State in the United States is a little government in itself, with its own governor, legislature, laws, etc. Now over all these little governments or States we have the government of the United States, with the President at its head. In the beginning the members of the United States Government assembled to transact the business of the nation sometimes in one State and sometimes in another—sometimes in New York and sometimes in Pennsylvania, etc. But they soon found that in order to be independent of every State and just to all, they must have some territory or possessions of their own not under the power of any State. So some of the States granted them Washington and the country about it for ten miles square—now called the District of Columbia—which the United States government could freely perform its duties. In a similar manner the Holy Father is over all the governments of the world in matters of religion—in matters of justice and right; and just as the United States government has to decide between the rights of one State and the rights of another, so the Holy Father has sometimes to decide between the rights of one government and the rights of another, and must, in order to be just with all, be free and independent of all.
Mind you, I'm not suggesting what the Pope should own, but rather that he should have some possessions that allow him to be completely independent. In fairness, he should get back everything that was taken from him. We have a good example here in the United States that illustrates the need for the Pope's independence. Each state in the U.S. operates like a mini-government, with its own governor, legislature, laws, etc. Then we have the federal government, led by the President, which oversees all these smaller governments or states. Initially, the members of the U.S. Government would meet to handle national business in different states—sometimes in New York, sometimes in Pennsylvania, and so on. They quickly realized that to remain independent of any state and to treat all fairly, they needed some land or possessions not controlled by any state. So a few states gave them Washington and the surrounding area, known as the District of Columbia, allowing the federal government to carry out its duties freely. Similarly, the Pope oversees all the governments in the world regarding religious matters—issues of justice and right. Just as the U.S. government has to balance the rights of one state against another, the Pope sometimes has to weigh the rights of one government against another, and to be just to everyone, he must be free and independent of all.
Again, the temporal power of the Pope is very useful to the Church; for with the money and goods received from his possessions the Holy Father can educate priests and teachers, print books, etc., for the foreign missions. He can also support churches, school, and institutions in poor countries, and especially where the missionaries are laboring for the conversion of the native heathens.
Once again, the Pope's temporal power is extremely beneficial to the Church; because of the money and resources from his holdings, the Holy Father can train priests and educators, publish books, and more for overseas missions. He can also fund churches, schools, and institutions in underprivileged countries, especially where missionaries are working to convert local non-believers.
When the Holy Father had his own possessions he could do much that he cannot now do for the conversion of pagan nations. At present he must depend entirely upon the charitable offerings of the faithful for all good works, even for his own support. The offering we make once a year for the support of the Holy Father is called "Peter's pence," because it began by everyone sending yearly a penny to the Pope, the successor of St. Peter.
When the Pope had his own resources, he could do a lot more for converting pagan nations than he can now. Nowadays, he has to rely completely on the donations from believers for all his charitable work, including his own support. The contribution we make once a year to help the Pope is called "Peter's Pence," because it started with people sending a penny to the Pope, the successor of St. Peter.
*126 Q. What do you mean by the indefectibility of the Church? A. By the indefectibility of the Church I mean that the Church, as Christ founded it, will last till the end of time.
*126 Q. What do you mean by the indefectibility of the Church? A. By the indefectibility of the Church, I mean that the Church, as Christ established it, will endure until the end of time.
Therefore indefectibility means that the Church can never change any of the doctrines that Our Lord taught, nor ever cease to exist. When we say it is infallible, we mean that it cannot teach error while it lasts; but when we say it is indefectible, we mean that it will last forever and be infallible forever, and also that it will always remain the same as Our Lord founded it. There are two things that you must clearly understand and not confound, namely, the two kinds of laws in the Church—those which Our Lord gave it and those which it made itself. The laws that Our Lord gave it can never change. For example, the Church could not abolish one of the Sacraments, leaving only six; neither could it add a new one, making eight. But when, for example, the Church declares that on a certain day we cannot eat flesh meat, it makes the law itself, and can change it when it wishes. Our Lord left His Church free to make certain laws, just as they would be needed. It has always exercised this power, and made laws to suit the circumstances of the place or times. Even now it does away with some of its old laws that are no longer useful, and makes new ones that are more necessary. But the doctrines, the truths of faith or morals, the things we must believe and do to save our souls, it never changes and never can change: it may regulate some things in the application of the divine laws, but the laws themselves can never change in substance.
Therefore, indefectibility means that the Church can never change any of the teachings that Our Lord taught, nor will it ever cease to exist. When we say it is infallible, we mean that it cannot teach error while it exists; but when we say it is indefectible, we mean that it will last forever and be infallible forever, and also that it will always remain the same as Our Lord founded it. There are two things you need to clearly understand and not confuse: the two kinds of laws in the Church—those that Our Lord gave it and those that it established itself. The laws that Our Lord gave can never change. For instance, the Church could not abolish one of the Sacraments, leaving only six; nor could it add a new one, creating eight. However, when the Church declares that on a certain day we cannot eat meat, it creates that rule itself and can change it when it wishes. Our Lord left His Church with the freedom to make certain laws as needed. It has always used this power and created laws to fit the circumstances of the time and place. Even now, it removes some of its old laws that are no longer useful and creates new ones that are more necessary. But the doctrines, the truths of faith or morals—those things we must believe and do to save our souls—never change and never can change: it may adjust some aspects in applying the divine laws, but the laws themselves can never change in substance.
*127 Q. In whom are these attributes found in their fullness? A. These attributes are found in their fullness in the Pope, the visible head of the Church, whose infallible authority to teach bishops, priests, and people in matters of faith or morals will last to the end of the world.
*127 Q. In whom are these attributes found in their fullness? A. These attributes are found in their fullness in the Pope, the visible head of the Church, whose infallible authority to teach bishops, priests, and people in matters of faith or morals will last to the end of the world.
128 Q. Has the Church any marks by which it may be known? A. The Church has four marks by which it may be known: it is one; it is holy; it is catholic; it is apostolic.
128 Q. Are there any signs to identify the Church? A. The Church has four signs that identify it: it is one; it is holy; it is universal; it is apostolic.
*129 Q. How is the Church one? A. The Church is one because all its members agree in one faith, are all in one communion, and are all under one head.
*129 Q. How is the Church one? A. The Church is one because all its members believe in one faith, are in one communion, and are all under one leader.
The Catholic Church is "one," first in government and second in doctrine. In government every pastor has a certain parish or territory in which all the people belong to his congregation—they form his flock. He has to take care only of these, to teach them, give them the Sacraments, etc. He has not to be responsible for those outside his parish. Then over the pastor we have the bishop, who looks after a certain number of pastors; then comes the archbishop over a certain number of bishops; next comes the primate, who is head of all the archbishops in the country; and over all the primates of the world we have the Holy Father. Thus, when the Holy Father speaks to the bishops, the bishops speak to the priests, and the priests to the people. The Church is therefore one in government, like a great army spread over the world. We can go up step by step from the lowest member of the Church to the highest—the Holy Father; and from him to Our Lord Himself, who is the invisible head of all. This regular body of priests, bishops, archbishops, etc., so arranged, one superior to the other, is called the hierarchy of the Church.
The Catholic Church is "one," primarily in leadership and secondly in beliefs. In leadership, every pastor oversees a specific parish or area where all the people are part of his congregation—they make up his flock. He is responsible solely for these individuals, teaching them, administering the Sacraments, and so on. He isn’t accountable for those outside his parish. Above the pastor is the bishop, who supervises several pastors; then there’s the archbishop who oversees a group of bishops; following that is the primate, who is the leader of all the archbishops in the country; and finally, over all the primates worldwide is the Holy Father. So, when the Holy Father communicates with the bishops, the bishops relay that to the priests, and the priests share it with the people. The Church is thus unified in leadership, like a large army spread across the globe. We can progress step by step from the lowest member of the Church to the highest—the Holy Father; and from him to Our Lord Himself, who is the invisible head of all. This structured group of priests, bishops, archbishops, and so on, arranged with one above the other, is known as the hierarchy of the Church.
The Church is one also in doctrine—that is, every one of the three hundred million of Catholics in the world believes exactly the same truths. If any Catholic denies only one article of faith, though he believes all the rest, he ceases to be a Catholic, and is cut off from the Church. If, for example, you would not believe Matrimony or Holy Orders a Sacrament, or that Our Lord is present in the Holy Eucharist, you would not be a Catholic, though you believed all the other teachings of the Church.
The Church is united in its beliefs—that is, all three hundred million Catholics worldwide believe the exact same truths. If a Catholic denies even one article of faith, even if they accept all the others, they stop being a Catholic and are separated from the Church. For instance, if you don't believe that Matrimony or Holy Orders are Sacraments, or that Our Lord is present in the Holy Eucharist, you would no longer be considered a Catholic, even if you agreed with all the other teachings of the Church.
Therefore the Church is one both in government and teaching or doctrine. Now, has any other Church claiming to be Christ's Church that mark? No. The Protestant religions are not one either in government or belief. The Protestants of England have no authority over the Protestants of America, and those of America have nothing to say over those of Germany or France. So every country is independent, and they have no chief head. Neither are they one in belief. In the same country there are many kinds of Protestants—Episcopalians, Presbyterians, Methodists, etc., who do not believe the same thing. Even those who attend the same church and profess the same religion do not all believe the same. Everyone, they say, has a right to interpret the Holy Scriptures according to his own views, so they take many different meanings out of the very same words. There must be some chief person to tell the true meaning of the Holy Scriptures when there is a dispute about it; but they have no such chief, and the result is they are never done disputing.
Therefore, the Church is unified in both governance and teaching or doctrine. Now, has any other Church that claims to be Christ's Church achieved that unity? No. Protestant denominations are not unified in either governance or belief. The Protestants in England have no authority over those in America, and those in America don't have any say over Protestants in Germany or France. So, each country operates independently, without a central leader. They are also divided in belief. Within the same country, there are various types of Protestants—Episcopalians, Presbyterians, Methodists, etc.—who do not share the same beliefs. Even those who go to the same church and profess the same religion often have different interpretations. People claim they have the right to interpret the Holy Scriptures based on their own perspectives, leading to many different meanings derived from the same text. There needs to be a central figure to clarify the true meaning of the Holy Scriptures when disputes arise, but they lack such a figure, resulting in endless disagreements.
The United States has a constitution and laws. Now, suppose every citizen was allowed to construe the laws to suit himself, without any regard for the rights of others, what a fine state of affairs we should soon have. But the wise makers of the constitution and laws of the United States did not leave us in such danger. They appointed judges to interpret or explain the laws and give the correct meaning when disputes arise. Then in Washington there is a chief judge for the whole United States; and when he says the words of the law mean this or that, every citizen must abide by his decision, and there is no appeal from it. Just in the same way Our Lord made laws for all men, and while He was upon earth He explained them Himself. He never left all men free to take their own meaning out of them. He appointed judges—the bishops; and a chief judge for the whole world—the Pope. The Holy Ghost guides him, as we have seen above, so that he cannot make mistakes in the meaning of Christ's laws; and when he says, this is what the words of Our Lord in His law signify, no one who is a true Christian can refuse to believe, or can appeal from his decision.
The United States has a constitution and laws. Now, imagine if every citizen could interpret the laws however they wanted, without considering the rights of others—what a mess that would create. Thankfully, the wise creators of the U.S. constitution and laws didn't leave us in such a situation. They appointed judges to interpret or clarify the laws and provide the correct meanings when disputes come up. In Washington, there is a chief judge for the entire United States; when he states what the law means, every citizen must follow his decision, and there’s no appeal. Similarly, Our Lord established laws for everyone, and while He was on earth, He explained them Himself. He didn’t allow everyone the freedom to interpret them as they wished. He appointed judges—the bishops—and a chief judge for the whole world—the Pope. The Holy Spirit guides him, as we discussed earlier, ensuring he doesn’t make mistakes in understanding Christ's laws; when he says what the words of Our Lord in His laws mean, no true Christian can deny or appeal his decision.
*130 Q. How is the Church holy? A. The Church is holy because its founder, Jesus Christ, is holy; because it teaches a holy doctrine, invites all to a holy life, and because of the eminent holiness of so many thousands of its children.
*130 Q. How is the Church holy? A. The Church is holy because its founder, Jesus Christ, is holy; because it teaches a holy doctrine, invites everyone to live a holy life, and because of the exceptional holiness of so many thousands of its followers.
Protestant religions have not holy doctrines if we examine them closely. They teach, for example, that faith without good works will save us, and thus take away the motives for doing good; that marriage is not binding for life—the husband and wife may for some causes separate, or get a divorce, and marry again. This would leave the children without the care of their proper parents, sometimes without a home, and nearly always without religious instruction. The same persons might separate again and marry another time, and thus there would be nothing but confusion and immorality in society. Again, some of their doctrines teach that we cannot help sinning; so everyone could excuse himself for his sins by saying he could not help them, which you can easily see would lead to the worst of consequences. Lastly, their doctrines have never made one saint—acknowledged as such from miracles performed. Protestants are so called because, when their ancestors rebelled against the Church about three hundred years ago, the Church made certain laws and they protested against them, separated from the Church, and formed a new religion of their own.
Protestant religions lack definitive doctrines if we look at them closely. They claim, for example, that faith without good actions can save us, which removes any motivation to do good deeds; that marriage isn't permanent—the husband and wife can separate for various reasons or divorce and remarry. This can leave children without proper parental care, sometimes without a stable home, and often without any religious guidance. The same individuals might separate again and remarry, leading to chaos and immorality in society. Additionally, some of their beliefs suggest that we can't help but sin, allowing everyone to excuse their wrongdoings by claiming they had no control, which obviously could have dire consequences. Lastly, their teachings have never produced a single saint recognized for miracles. Protestants got their name because, about three hundred years ago, their ancestors rebelled against the Church, which resulted in the Church establishing specific laws that they protested against, leading to their separation and the formation of a new religion.
*131 Q. How is the Church catholic or universal? A. The Church is catholic or universal because it subsists in all ages, teaches all nations, and maintains all truth.
*131 Q. How is the Church catholic or universal? A. The Church is catholic or universal because it exists in all times, teaches all nations, and upholds all truth.
"Subsists" means to have existence.
"Subsists" means to exist.
"Catholic." The word catholic signifies universal. The Church is universal in three ways, viz.: in time, in place, and in doctrine. It is universal in time; for from the day Our Lord commissioned His Apostles to preach to the whole world down to the present, it has existed, taught, and labored in every age. It is universal in place; that is, it is not confined to one part of the world, but teaches throughout the entire world. It is universal in doctrine, for it teaches the same doctrines and administers the same Sacraments everywhere; and its doctrines are suited to all classes of men—to the ignorant as well as the learned, to the poor as well as the rich. It teaches by the voice of its priests and bishops, and all, civilized or uncivilized, to whom its voice reaches, can learn its doctrines, receive its Sacraments, and practice its devotions.
"Catholic." The word catholic means universal. The Church is universal in three ways: in time, in place, and in doctrine. It is universal in time; from the moment Our Lord sent His Apostles to preach to the whole world until now, it has existed, taught, and worked in every age. It is universal in place; it’s not limited to one part of the world but teaches across the entire globe. It is universal in doctrine, as it teaches the same beliefs and administers the same Sacraments everywhere; its teachings are relevant to all people—both the ignorant and the knowledgeable, the poor and the rich. It communicates through its priests and bishops, and anyone—whether civilized or not—who hears its message can learn its doctrines, receive its Sacraments, and practice its devotions.
It has converted all the pagan nations that have ever been converted, and the title catholic belongs to the Roman Catholic Church alone. All Protestant churches that claim this title do so unjustly. They are not universal in time, and cannot be called the Church of all ages, because they were established only three hundred or four hundred or less years ago. They are not catholic in place, because they are mostly confined to particular countries. They are not universal in doctrine, because what they teach in one country they reject in another; and even in the same country, what they teach at one time they reject at another. Wherever it is possible for civilized people to go, there you will find a priest saying Mass in just the same way you see him saying it here. It is a great consolation for one in a strange country to enter a church and hear Mass, perceiving no difference in the vestments, ceremonies, or language of the priest. A little altar boy from the United States could serve Mass in any part of the world. See, therefore, the great advantage the Church has in using the Latin language instead of the vernacular or ordinary language of the people. If the Church used the usual language of the people, the Mass would seem different in every country; while natives would understand the words of the priest, strangers would not.
It has converted all the pagan nations that have ever been converted, and the title "catholic" belongs to the Roman Catholic Church alone. All Protestant churches that claim this title do so unfairly. They are not universal in time, and can't be called the Church of all ages because they were established only three hundred or four hundred years ago, or even less. They are not catholic in place, as they are mostly limited to specific countries. They are not universal in doctrine, because what they teach in one country, they reject in another; and even within the same country, what they teach at one time, they reject at another. Wherever civilized people go, you will find a priest saying Mass in the same way you see him saying it here. It's a great comfort for someone in a foreign country to enter a church and hear Mass, noticing no difference in the vestments, ceremonies, or the language of the priest. A little altar boy from the United States could serve Mass anywhere in the world. Look at the significant advantage the Church has in using the Latin language instead of the everyday language of the people. If the Church used the common language of the people, the Mass would seem different in every country; while locals would understand what the priest says, strangers would not.
The Latin language is now what we call a dead language; that is, it is not the common language of any country; and because it is a dead language does not change: another reason why the Church uses it, that nothing may change in its divine service. The prayers used in the Church are exactly the same today as they were when they were written many centuries ago. The living languages—that is, those in use, such as English, French, German, etc., are always changing a little—new words are being added, and the meaning of old ones changed. The Church uses the same language all over the world to show that it is not the Church of any particular country, but the true Church of all men everywhere.
The Latin language is what we now refer to as a dead language; it isn’t the primary language of any country. Because it’s a dead language, it doesn’t change, which is another reason the Church uses it—so that nothing alters in its divine service. The prayers used in the Church are exactly the same today as they were when they were written many centuries ago. Living languages—like English, French, German, and others—are always evolving a bit; new words are constantly being added, and the meanings of old ones change. The Church uses the same language worldwide to emphasize that it isn’t the Church of any specific country, but the true Church for all people everywhere.
Again, using only one language, the Church can hold its great councils, call together all the bishops of the world, that they may condemn errors or make wise laws. When the Holy Father addresses them in Latin they can all understand and answer him. If, therefore, the Church did not use the same language everywhere how could this be done, unless everyone present understood all the languages of the world—which is a thing nearly impossible. But someone might say, if the Mass was said in English we could follow it better. You can follow just as well in Latin, for in nearly all prayerbooks you have besides the Latin said by the priest the meaning of it in English on the same page, or you have the English alone.
Again, using just one language, the Church can hold its major councils, gathering all the bishops from around the world to address errors or create wise laws. When the Holy Father speaks to them in Latin, everyone can understand and respond. If the Church didn’t use the same language everywhere, how could this happen, unless everyone understood all the languages of the world—which is nearly impossible. Some might argue that if the Mass were in English, we could follow it better. However, you can follow just as well in Latin, since in almost all prayer books you will find the Latin spoken by the priest along with its meaning in English on the same page, or you’ll see the English by itself.
*132 Q. How is the Church apostolic? A. The Church is apostolic because it was founded by Christ on His Apostles and is governed by their lawful successors, and because it has never ceased, and never will cease, to teach their doctrine.
*132 Q. How is the Church apostolic? A. The Church is apostolic because it was founded by Christ on His Apostles and is led by their legitimate successors. It has always taught their doctrine and will continue to do so.
"Apostolic," which means that the Church was founded at the time of the Apostles, and has been the same ever since. Since the time of St. Peter, the first Pope, there have been 261 Popes. You can go back from our present Holy Father, Pius XI, to Benedict XV, who was before him, to Pius X, who was before him, to Leo XIII, before him, and so on one by one till you come to St. Peter himself, who lived at the time of Our Lord. Thus the Church is apostolic in its origin or beginning.
"Apostolic" means that the Church started with the Apostles and has remained the same since then. Since St. Peter, the first Pope, there have been 261 Popes. You can trace the line from our current Holy Father, Pius XI, back to Benedict XV, who was before him, then to Pius X, who followed him, to Leo XIII, and continue like this until you reach St. Peter himself, who lived during the time of Our Lord. Therefore, the Church is apostolic in its origins.
It is also apostolic in its teaching; for all the doctrines it teaches now were taught by the Apostles. The Church does not make new doctrines, but it teaches its truths more clearly and distinctly when someone denies them. For example it would not be necessary for you to prove yourself good and honest till somebody said you were bad and dishonest. You prove your honesty when it is denied, but both you and your friends believed it always, though you did not declare it till it was denied. In just the same way the Church always believed that Our Lord is the Son of God; that there are seven Sacraments; that the Pope is infallible, etc. These truths and all the others were believed by the Apostles, and the Church proclaimed them in a special manner when they were denied. Then it called together in council all its bishops, and they, with the Holy Father, proclaimed these truths—not as new doctrines, but as truths always believed by the Church, and now defined because denied.
It is also apostolic in its teaching; all the doctrines it teaches now were taught by the Apostles. The Church doesn’t create new doctrines, but clarifies its truths more distinctly whenever someone denies them. For instance, you wouldn’t need to prove you are good and honest until someone called you bad and dishonest. You demonstrate your honesty when it is questioned, but you and your friends always believed it, even if you didn’t state it until it was challenged. Similarly, the Church has always believed that Our Lord is the Son of God; that there are seven Sacraments; that the Pope is infallible, etc. These truths, along with all the others, were believed by the Apostles, and the Church proclaimed them in a particular way when they were denied. Then, it gathered all its bishops in council, and they, along with the Holy Father, affirmed these truths—not as new doctrines, but as truths that have always been believed by the Church and are now defined because they were denied.
Protestants have not for their churches the mark apostolic. How could their churches be founded by the Apostles, when the Apostles were dead more than fourteen hundred years before there were any Protestant churches? What is more, they have changed the teachings of the Apostles; and so they have not the mark apostolic either in their origin or teaching.
Protestants do not have the apostolic mark for their churches. How could their churches have been founded by the Apostles when the Apostles had been dead for over fourteen hundred years before any Protestant churches existed? Furthermore, they have altered the teachings of the Apostles, so they lack the apostolic mark in both their origin and their teachings.
But they say the Catholic Church fell into error and made mistakes, and that God wished reformers to correct these errors. How could the Church fall into error when Our Lord promised to remain always with it, and to send the Holy Ghost to guide and teach it forever? And, secondly, if God sent the Protestants to correct the mistakes of the Catholic Church, what proof do they give us that they have such power from God? When, as we have seen, God sends anyone to do a special work, He always gives him power to prove his mission. When He sent Moses, He gave him signs—the plagues of Egypt. When He sent His prophets, they called down fire and rain from Heaven. (3 Kings 18). But Protestants have shown us no signs and performed no miracles; therefore we cannot believe their assertion that God sent them to correct the Catholic Church. Neither can we believe that Our Lord broke His promise to stay with the Church. We shall see the whole truth of the matter if we go back to the establishment of the Protestant religion and consider the life of Luther and the others who founded it.
But they say the Catholic Church made mistakes and went off track, and that God wanted reformers to fix these errors. How could the Church err when Our Lord promised to always be with it and to send the Holy Spirit to guide and teach it forever? And, second, if God sent the Protestants to correct the Catholic Church’s mistakes, what proof do they offer that they have such authority from God? Whenever God sends someone to do a special task, He always gives them power to validate their mission. When He sent Moses, He provided signs—the plagues of Egypt. When He sent His prophets, they called down fire and rain from Heaven. (3 Kings 18). But Protestants haven’t shown us any signs or performed any miracles; therefore, we can’t accept their claim that God sent them to correct the Catholic Church. We also can't believe that Our Lord broke His promise to remain with the Church. We will understand the whole truth if we go back to the founding of the Protestant religion and examine the lives of Luther and others who started it.
Luther, then a young man, while out one day saw his friend killed at his side by a stroke of lightning. Much affected by that sad event, Luther became a priest in the order of the Augustinians. He was a learned man and a great preacher, but very proud. The Holy Father was completing St. Peter's Church in Rome, and about that time granted an indulgence to those giving alms for the purpose, just as pastors now offer Masses for those who contribute means to build a new church, or hospital, asylum, etc.
Luther, then a young man, was out one day when he saw a friend killed right next to him by a lightning strike. Deeply affected by that tragic incident, Luther decided to become a priest in the Augustinian order. He was well-educated and an excellent preacher, but also quite proud. At that time, the Pope was finishing St. Peter's Church in Rome and granted an indulgence to those who donated money for the project, similar to how pastors today offer Masses for those who contribute to building a new church, hospital, asylum, etc.
The Holy Father sent Dominican priests to preach about this indulgence and collect this money. Then Luther, when he found that he, a great preacher, was not appointed, was probably jealous. He first began to preach against the abuses of indulgences: but pride made him go further, and soon he began to preach against the doctrine of indulgences, and thus became a heretic. Then he was condemned by the Pope, and cut off from the Church. Being proud, he would not submit, but began to form a new religion, now called Protestant. But how did he get the people to follow him? Oh, very easily. Then, as now, there were plenty of bad and indifferent Catholics. At that time the Church was rich and had much property and lands; because when rich Catholics died they often left to the Church property for its own support and the support of its institutions. Even during their lifetime kings and princes sometimes gave the Church large donations of lands and money. The Church then was supported by these gifts and the income or rents of the lands, and did not need to look for collections from the people, as it has to do now. Here, then, is how Luther got many to follow him. He told greedy princes that if they came with him they could become rich by seizing the property of all the churches, and the greedy princes, glad of an excuse, went with him. Then he told the people—the bad Catholics—that fasting was too severe; going to confession too hard; hearing Mass every Sunday too difficult; and if they renounced their faith and embraced his new religion he would do away with all these things: so they also followed him. He himself broke his solemn vows made to God, and the people easily followed his example.
The Holy Father sent Dominican priests to spread the word about this indulgence and collect money. When Luther found out that he, a prominent preacher, wasn’t chosen, he probably felt jealous. He initially began to speak out against the abuses of indulgences, but his pride led him to go further, and he soon started preaching against the doctrine of indulgences, thus becoming a heretic. He was then condemned by the Pope and cut off from the Church. Being arrogant, he refused to submit and began to create a new religion, now known as Protestantism. But how did he manage to get people to follow him? Quite easily. Just like today, there were plenty of indifferent or bad Catholics around. At that time, the Church was wealthy and owned a lot of property and land because wealthy Catholics often left their possessions to the Church to support it and its institutions. Even during their lifetimes, kings and princes sometimes made large donations of land and money to the Church. The Church was supported by these gifts and the income from the lands, so it didn’t need to collect money from the people as it does now. This is how Luther attracted many followers. He told greedy princes that if they joined him, they could get rich by taking over church property, and the eager princes gladly took the chance. Then he told the people—those bad Catholics—that fasting was too harsh, going to confession was too difficult, and attending Mass every Sunday was too taxing. He promised that if they abandoned their faith and embraced his new religion, he would eliminate all of these practices: so they followed him too. He himself broke his solemn vows made to God, and the people easily followed his lead.
Those attending the Protestant churches in our times are generally rich and refined people, but you must not think that the first Protestants of three hundred years ago were just like them. No. Many of them were from the lowest and worst—I do not say poorest—classes in society; and when they got an excuse, they went about destroying churches and institutions, burning beautiful statues, paintings, music, books, and works of art that the Church had collected and preserved for centuries. This you may read in any of the histories of the Church and times. The Protestants of the present day praise all these works of art now; but if their ancestors had had their way every beautiful work of art would have been destroyed.
Those who attend Protestant churches today are usually wealthy and cultured individuals, but don’t think the first Protestants from three hundred years ago were like them. They were not. Many of them came from the lowest and most troubled—I won’t say poorest—classes of society; and whenever they had the chance, they went around destroying churches and institutions, burning beautiful statues, paintings, music, books, and artworks that the Church had gathered and protected for centuries. You can read this in any history of the Church and that time. Modern-day Protestants appreciate all these works of art now; but if their ancestors had their way, every beautiful piece of art would have been wiped out.
Some persons say they would not be members of the Catholic Church because so many poor people attend it. Then they do not want to belong to the Church of Our Lord, because His Church is the Church of both poor and rich. When St. John the Baptist sent his disciples to ask Our Lord if He were really the Messias, Our Lord did not say yes or no, but told them to relate to John what they had heard and seen (Matt. 11:5), namely, that He (Christ) cured the blind, the lame, and the deaf, and preached to the poor. Therefore Our Lord gave preaching to the poor as a proof that He is the true Redeemer; and since Our Lord Himself had the poor in His congregation, the Church everywhere must have the poor among its members, for it must do what Our Lord did. So if you see a church to which the poor people never go, in which they are not welcome, you have good reason to suspect it is not the Church of Our Lord—not the true Church. Again, poverty and riches belong only to this world and make a distinction only here. The one who is poorest in this world's goods may be richest in God's grace. Indeed, if most Protestants studied the early history of their religion they would not be proud, but ashamed of it. How little they would think of their ancestors who gave up God for some worldly gain, while the Catholic martyrs gave up everything, even their lives, rather than forsake God and the true religion.
Some people say they wouldn't want to be part of the Catholic Church because so many poor people go there. But that means they don't want to be part of the Church of Our Lord, since His Church includes both the poor and the rich. When St. John the Baptist sent his disciples to ask Jesus if He was really the Messiah, Jesus didn't directly say yes or no. Instead, He told them to tell John what they had heard and seen (Matt. 11:5)—that He (Christ) healed the blind, the lame, and the deaf, and preached to the poor. So, Jesus pointed to preaching to the poor as a sign that He is the true Redeemer. Since Jesus had the poor in His congregation, the Church everywhere must have the poor among its members, following His example. Therefore, if you see a church where poor people never go, and where they're not welcome, you have good reason to believe it’s not the Church of Our Lord—not the true Church. Additionally, poverty and wealth only matter in this world and create distinctions here. The person who is poorest in material things may be richest in God’s grace. In fact, if most Protestants looked at the early history of their faith, they wouldn't feel proud but rather ashamed. They might think less of their ancestors who abandoned God for worldly gain, while Catholic martyrs gave up everything, even their lives, rather than turn away from God and the true faith.
133 Q. In which church are these attributes and marks found? A. These attributes and marks are found in the Holy Roman Catholic Church alone.
133 Q. In which church are these qualities and symbols found? A. These qualities and symbols are found only in the Holy Roman Catholic Church.
We have seen that some religions may seem to have one or two of the marks; but the Catholic Church alone has them all, and is consequently the only true Church of Christ. The other religions are not one—that is, united over the world; they give no proof of holiness, never having had any great saints whom God acknowledged as such by performing miracles for them. They are not catholic, because they have not taught in all ages and nations. They are not apostolic, because established hundreds of years after the Apostles. They are not infallible, for they have now declared things to be false which they formerly declared to be true; they are not indefectible—they are not as Our Lord founded them, for He never founded them; and they are constantly making changes in their beliefs and practices.
We have noticed that some religions might seem to have one or two of the key characteristics; however, the Catholic Church is the only one that has them all, making it the only true Church of Christ. The other religions are not unified globally; they offer no evidence of holiness since they have never produced any significant saints acknowledged by God through miracles. They are not universal because they haven't taught throughout all ages and in all nations. They are not apostolic, as they were established hundreds of years after the Apostles. They are not infallible, since they have retracted things they once claimed were true; they are not unchangeable—they are not what Our Lord intended when He founded His Church, because He never established them; and they continually alter their beliefs and practices.
The marks of the Church are necessary also because the Church must be a visible Church, that all men may be able to see and know it; for Our Lord said, "He that will not hear the Church, let him be to thee as the heathen and the publican." (Matt. 18:17). Heathens were those who worshipped false gods. Publicans were men who gathered the taxes from the Jews for the Romans; they were generally very cruel to the people, and were much hated and despised by them. Therefore Our Lord meant: if anyone will not obey the Church, you should avoid him as you avoid the heathens and the publicans, whom you despise. Now no one can be blamed for not obeying a church that is invisible and unknown. Therefore the true Church must be a visible body and easily known to all who earnestly seek it as the Church of Christ. But if some shut their eyes and refuse to look at the light of truth, ignorance will not excuse them; they must be blamed and fall under the sentence of Our Lord.
The marks of the Church are important because it needs to be a visible entity, so everyone can see and recognize it; as Our Lord said, "If he refuses to listen to the Church, treat him like a pagan or a tax collector." (Matt. 18:17). Pagans worshipped false gods, and tax collectors were people who collected taxes from the Jews for the Romans; they were usually very harsh and were widely hated and despised. So, Our Lord meant that if someone won't obey the Church, you should avoid them like you would a pagan or a tax collector, whom you reject. People can't be blamed for not following a Church that is invisible and unknown. Therefore, the true Church must be a visible body that is easily recognized by anyone who genuinely seeks it as the Church of Christ. However, if some people close their eyes and refuse to acknowledge the truth, ignorance won't be an excuse; they will be held accountable and fall under Our Lord's judgment.
*134 Q. From whom does the Church derive its undying life and infallible
authority?
A. The Church derives its undying life and infallible authority from the
Holy Ghost, the spirit of truth, who abides with it forever.
*134 Q. From whom does the Church get its eternal life and unquestionable
authority?
A. The Church gets its eternal life and unquestionable authority from the
Holy Spirit, the spirit of truth, who remains with it forever.
*135 Q. By whom is the Church made and kept One, Holy, and Catholic? A. The Church is made and kept One, Holy, and Catholic by the Holy Ghost, the spirit of love and holiness, who unites and sanctifies its members throughout the world.
*135 Q. Who makes and keeps the Church One, Holy, and Catholic? A. The Church is made and kept One, Holy, and Catholic by the Holy Spirit, the spirit of love and holiness, who unites and sanctifies its members all over the world.
Lesson 13
ON THE SACRAMENTS IN GENERAL
Lesson 13
ABOUT THE SACRAMENTS IN GENERAL
This lesson does not speak of any Sacrament in particular, but upon all the Sacraments taken together. It explains what we find in all the Sacraments.
This lesson doesn't focus on any specific Sacrament, but rather on all the Sacraments as a whole. It explains what is present in all the Sacraments.
136 Q. What is a Sacrament? A. A Sacrament is an outward sign instituted by Christ to give grace.
136 Q. What is a Sacrament? A. A Sacrament is a visible sign established by Christ to provide grace.
Three things are necessary to make a Sacrament. There must be: (1) "An outward," that is, a visible, "sign"; (2) this sign must have been instituted or given by Our Lord; (3) it must give grace. Now, a sign is that which tells us that something else exists. Smoke indicates the presence of fire.
Three things are needed to make a Sacrament. There must be: (1) "An outward," meaning a visible, "sign"; (2) this sign must have been established or given by Our Lord; (3) it must provide grace. A sign is something that shows us that something else is present. Smoke indicates the presence of fire.
A red light on a railroad tells that there is danger at the spot. Therefore, the outward signs in the Sacraments tell us that there is in the Sacraments something we do not see and which they signify and impart. For example, the outward sign in Baptism is the pouring of the water on the head of the person to be baptized, and the saying of the words. Water is generally used for cleaning purposes. Water, therefore, is used in Baptism as an outward sign to show that as the water cleans the body, so the grace given in Baptism cleans the soul. It is not a mere sign, for at the very moment that the priest pours the water and says the words of Baptism, by the pouring of the water and saying of the words with the proper intention the soul is cleansed from Original Sin; that is, the inward grace is given by the application of the outward sign. Again, in Confirmation the outward sign is the anointing with oil, the Bishop's prayer, and the placing of his hands upon us. Now what inward grace is given in Confirmation? A grace which strengthens us in our faith. Oil, therefore, is used for the outward sign in this Sacrament, because oil gives strength and light.
A red light on a railroad indicates that there's danger ahead. Similarly, the visible signs in the Sacraments show us that there's something unseen in the Sacraments that they symbolize and convey. For instance, in Baptism, the visible sign is the pouring of water over the head of the person being baptized, along with the spoken words. Water is commonly used for cleaning. Thus, water in Baptism serves as a visible sign to demonstrate that just as water cleanses the body, the grace received in Baptism cleanses the soul. It's not just a symbol; at the moment the priest pours the water and says the words of Baptism, the soul is cleansed from Original Sin through this action with the right intention, meaning the inner grace is conferred through the outer sign. Likewise, in Confirmation, the visible sign consists of the anointing with oil, the Bishop's prayer, and the laying on of his hands. So, what inner grace is given in Confirmation? It's a grace that strengthens our faith. Therefore, oil is used as the visible sign in this Sacrament because it represents strength and light.
In olden times the gladiators—men who fought with swords as prize-fighters do now with their hands—used oil upon their bodies to make them strong. Oil was used also to heal wounds. Thus in Confirmation the application of this outward sign of strength gives the inward grace of light and strength. Moreover, oil easily spreads itself over anything and remains on it. A drop of water falling on paper dries up quickly; but a drop of oil soaks in and spreads over it. So oil is used to show also that the grace of Confirmation spreads out over our whole lives, and strengthens us in our faith at all times.
In ancient times, gladiators—men who fought with swords like today’s prizefighters do with their hands—used oil on their bodies to gain strength. Oil was also used to heal wounds. In Confirmation, the application of this external sign of strength imparts the internal grace of light and strength. Furthermore, oil spreads easily and clings to surfaces. A drop of water on paper dries quickly, but a drop of oil soaks in and spreads out. Thus, oil is used to symbolize that the grace of Confirmation extends throughout our entire lives and strengthens our faith at all times.
Again, in Penance we have the outward sign when the priest raises his hand and pronounces over us the words of absolution.
Again, in Penance, we have the visible sign when the priest raises his hand and says the words of absolution over us.
If we did not have these outward signs how could anyone know just at what time the graces are given? We can know now, for at the very moment the outward sign is applied the grace is given; because it is the application of the sign that by divine institution gives the grace, and thus the two must take place together.
If we didn't have these external signs, how would anyone know when the graces are given? We can know now, because the grace is given at the exact moment the external sign is applied; it is the application of the sign that, by divine design, provides the grace, and so the two have to happen together.
"Institution by Christ" is absolutely necessary because He gives all grace, and He alone can determine the manner in which He wishes it distributed. The Church can distribute His grace, but only in the way He wishes. Hence it cannot make new Sacraments or abolish old ones.
"Institution by Christ" is essential because He provides all grace, and only He can decide how He wants it shared. The Church can share His grace, but only in the way He intends. Therefore, it cannot create new Sacraments or eliminate existing ones.
137 Q. How many Sacraments are there? A. There are seven Sacraments: Baptism, Confirmation, Holy Eucharist, Penance, Extreme Unction, Holy Orders, and Matrimony.
137 Q. How many Sacraments are there? A. There are seven Sacraments: Baptism, Confirmation, Holy Eucharist, Penance, Anointing of the Sick, Holy Orders, and Marriage.
The life of our soul is in many ways similar to the life of our body. Our bodies must first be born, then strengthened, then fed. When sick, we must be cured: and when about to die, we must be taken care of. Then there must be someone to rule others, and there must be persons to be governed. In like manner, we are spiritually born into a new life by Baptism, we are strengthened by Confirmation, fed with the Holy Eucharist, and cured of the maladies of our souls by Penance. By Extreme Unction we are helped at the hour of death; by Holy Orders our spiritual rulers are appointed by God; and by Matrimony families, with a father at the head and children to be ruled, are established. Thus we have our spiritual life similar in many things to our physical or bodily life.
The life of our soul is, in many ways, like the life of our body. Our bodies need to be born, then strengthened, and then fed. When we're sick, we need to be healed, and when we're about to die, we need care. There needs to be someone to lead others, and there must be people to be led. Similarly, we are spiritually reborn into a new life through Baptism, strengthened by Confirmation, nourished with the Holy Eucharist, and healed from the issues of our souls through Penance. In our final hours, we receive help through Extreme Unction; Holy Orders appoints our spiritual leaders as chosen by God; and Matrimony establishes families, with a father in charge and children to be nurtured. So, our spiritual life mirrors many aspects of our physical or bodily life.
138 Q. Whence have the Sacraments the power of giving grace? A. The Sacraments have the power of giving grace from the merits of Jesus Christ.
138 Q. Where do the Sacraments get their ability to give grace? A. The Sacraments gain the ability to give grace from the merits of Jesus Christ.
Our Lord died to merit grace for us, and appointed the Sacraments as the chief means by which it was to be given.
Our Lord died to earn grace for us and established the Sacraments as the main way it was to be provided.
*139 Q. What grace do the Sacraments give? A. Some of the Sacraments give sanctifying grace, and others increase it in our souls.
*139 Q. What grace do the Sacraments provide? A. Some of the Sacraments give sanctifying grace, while others enhance it in our souls.
Baptism and Penance give this sanctifying grace when there is not any of it in the soul. But the other Sacraments are received while we are in a state of grace, and they therefore increase the quantity of it in our souls.
Baptism and Penance provide this sanctifying grace when it is absent from the soul. However, the other Sacraments are received while we are in a state of grace, and as a result, they increase the amount of grace in our souls.
*140 Q. Which are the Sacraments that give sanctifying grace? A. The Sacraments that give sanctifying grace are Baptism and Penance; and they are called Sacraments of the dead.
*140 Q. What are the Sacraments that provide sanctifying grace? A. The Sacraments that provide sanctifying grace are Baptism and Penance; they are referred to as Sacraments of the dead.
"Of the dead." Not of a dead person; for when a person is dead he cannot receive any of the Sacraments. It is only while we live upon earth that we are on trial, and can do good or evil, and merit grace. At death we receive simply our reward or punishment for what we have done while living. Therefore, Sacraments of the dead mean Sacraments given to a dead soul, that is, to a soul in mortal sin. When grace—its life—is all out of the soul it can do nothing to merit Heaven; and we say it is dead, because the dead can do nothing for themselves. If a person receives—as many do—the Sacrament of Penance while his soul is not in a state of mortal sin, what then? Then the soul—already living—receives an increase of sanctifying grace, that is, greater spiritual life and strength.
"Of the dead." Not of a deceased person; because when someone is dead, they can't receive any of the Sacraments. It's only while we're alive on earth that we are tested and can do good or evil, earning grace. At the time of death, we simply receive our reward or punishment based on what we did while alive. Therefore, Sacraments of the dead refer to Sacraments given to a dead soul, meaning a soul in mortal sin. When grace—its life—is completely absent from the soul, it can't do anything to earn Heaven; and we say it is dead because the dead can’t do anything for themselves. If a person receives—as many do—the Sacrament of Penance while their soul is not in a state of mortal sin, what then? Then the soul—already alive—receives an increase of sanctifying grace, meaning greater spiritual life and strength.
*141 Q. Why are Baptism and Penance called Sacraments of the dead? A. Baptism and Penance are called Sacraments of the dead because they take away sin, which is the death of the soul, and give grace, which is its life.
*141 Q. Why are Baptism and Penance called Sacraments of the dead? A. Baptism and Penance are called Sacraments of the dead because they remove sin, which is the death of the soul, and provide grace, which is its life.
*142 Q. Which are the Sacraments that increase sanctifying grace in the
soul?
A. The Sacraments that increase sanctifying grace in the soul are:
Confirmation, Holy Eucharist, Extreme Unction, Holy Orders, and
Matrimony; and they are called Sacraments of the living.
*142 Q. Which Sacraments enhance sanctifying grace in the
soul?
A. The Sacraments that enhance sanctifying grace in the soul are:
Confirmation, Holy Eucharist, Anointing of the Sick, Holy Orders, and
Marriage; and they are referred to as Sacraments of the living.
*143 Q. Why are Confirmation, Holy Eucharist, Extreme Unction, Holy Orders, and Matrimony called Sacraments of the living? A. Confirmation, Holy Eucharist, Extreme Unction, Holy Orders, and Matrimony are called the Sacraments of the living because those who receive them worthily are already living the life of grace.
*143 Q. Why are Confirmation, Holy Eucharist, Anointing of the Sick, Holy Orders, and Marriage called Sacraments of the living? A. Confirmation, Holy Eucharist, Anointing of the Sick, Holy Orders, and Marriage are called the Sacraments of the living because those who receive them worthily are already living a life of grace.
*144 Q. What sin does he commit who receives the Sacraments of the living in mortal sin? A. He who receives the Sacraments of the living in mortal sin commits a sacrilege, which is a great sin, because it is an abuse of a sacred thing.
*144 Q. What sin does a person commit when they receive the Sacraments while in mortal sin? A. A person who receives the Sacraments while in mortal sin commits a sacrilege, which is a serious sin, because it is an abuse of something sacred.
"Sacrilege." There are other ways besides the unworthy reception of the Sacraments in which a person may commit sacrilege. You could commit it by treating any sacred thing with great disrespect. For example, by making common use of the sacred vessels used at the altar; by stealing from the church; by turning the church into a market, etc. You could commit it also by willfully killing or wounding persons consecrated to God, such as nuns, priests, bishops, etc. Therefore sacrilege can be committed by willfully abusing or treating with great irreverence any sacred person, sacred place, or sacred thing.
"Sacrilege." There are other ways, besides the disrespectful reception of the Sacraments, in which a person can commit sacrilege. You could commit it by showing great disrespect to anything sacred. For instance, by using the sacred vessels from the altar for ordinary purposes; by stealing from the church; by turning the church into a marketplace, etc. You could also commit it by purposefully killing or injuring people dedicated to God, like nuns, priests, bishops, and so on. Therefore, sacrilege can be committed by deliberately abusing or treating with extreme irreverence any sacred person, sacred place, or sacred thing.
*145 Q. Besides sanctifying grace, do the Sacraments give any other grace? A. Besides sanctifying grace, the Sacraments give another grace, called sacramental.
*145 Q. In addition to sanctifying grace, do the Sacraments provide any other grace? A. Yes, in addition to sanctifying grace, the Sacraments confer another grace, known as sacramental.
*146 Q. What is sacramental grace? A. Sacramental grace is a special help which God gives to attain the end for which He instituted each Sacrament.
*146 Q. What is sacramental grace? A. Sacramental grace is a unique support that God provides to achieve the purpose for which He established each Sacrament.
For example, what was the end for which Penance was instituted? To forgive sins and keep us out of sin. Therefore the sacramental grace given in Penance is a grace that will enable us to overcome temptation and avoid the sins we have been in the habit of committing. When a person is ill the doctor's medicine generally produces two effects: one is to cure the disease and the other to strengthen the person so that he may not fall back into the old condition. Well, it is just the same in the Sacraments; the grace given produces two effects: one is to sanctify us and the other to prevent us from falling into the same sins. Again, Confirmation was instituted that we might become more perfect Christians, stronger in our faith. Therefore the sacramental grace of Confirmation will strengthen us to profess our faith when circumstances require it; or when we are tempted to doubt any revealed truth, it will help us to overcome the temptation. So in all the Sacraments we receive the sacramental grace or special help given to attain the end for which the Sacraments were separately instituted.
For example, what was the purpose of the Sacrament of Penance? To forgive sins and keep us from sinning. The grace we receive in Penance helps us resist temptation and avoid the sins we typically commit. When someone is sick, a doctor's medicine usually does two things: it heals the illness and strengthens the person so they won't slip back into their previous condition. It's the same with the Sacraments; the grace we receive has two effects: it sanctifies us and helps prevent us from falling into the same sins. Similarly, Confirmation was established so that we can become more committed Christians, stronger in our faith. The grace from Confirmation fortifies us to stand up for our faith when needed; or when we face doubts about any revealed truth, it helps us push through the temptation. Thus, in all the Sacraments, we receive sacramental grace or special assistance aimed at achieving the purpose for which each Sacrament was created.
147 Q. Do the Sacraments always give grace? A. The Sacraments always give grace, if we receive them with the right dispositions.
147 Q. Do the Sacraments always provide grace? A. The Sacraments always provide grace, as long as we receive them with the right mindset.
"Right dispositions"; that is, if we do all that God and the Church require us to do when we receive them. For instance, in Penance the right disposition is to confess all our mortal sins as we know them, to be sorry for them, and have the determination never to commit them again. The right disposition for the Holy Eucharist is to be in a state of grace, and—except in special cases of sickness—fasting for one hour.
"Right dispositions"; that is, if we do everything that God and the Church ask of us when we receive them. For example, in Penance, the right disposition is to confess all our serious sins as we know them, to feel regret for them, and to have the intention of never committing them again. The right disposition for the Holy Eucharist is to be in a state of grace, and—except in special cases of illness—fasting for one hour.
148 Q. Can we receive the Sacraments more than once? A. We can receive the Sacraments more than once, except Baptism, Confirmation, and Holy Orders.
148 Q. Can we receive the Sacraments more than once? A. We can receive the Sacraments more than once, except for Baptism, Confirmation, and Holy Orders.
Baptism is so important that if we do not receive it we cannot receive any other of the Sacraments. Now, to administer Baptism validly, that is, properly, everything must be done exactly as Our Lord intended and the Church teaches. The proper kind of water and all the exact words must be used. Also, the water must touch the body, that is, the head if possible. Now persons not knowing well how to baptize might neglect some of these things, and thus the person would not be baptized. The Church wishes to be certain that all its children are baptized; so when there is any doubt about the first Baptism, it baptizes again conditionally, that is, the priest says in giving the Baptism over again: If you are not baptized already, I baptize you now. Therefore if the person was rightly baptized the first time, the second ceremony has no effect, because the priest does not intend to give Baptism a second time. But if the first Baptism was not rightly given, then the second takes effect. In either case Baptism is given only once; for if the first was valid, the second is not given; and if the first was invalid, the second is given.
Baptism is so important that without it, we can't receive any other Sacraments. To properly administer Baptism, everything must be done exactly as Jesus intended and the Church teaches. The right kind of water and the exact words must be used. Additionally, the water must touch the body, specifically the head if possible. People who aren’t sure how to baptize might overlook some of these details, which could mean the person isn’t baptized. The Church wants to ensure that all its members are baptized, so when there’s any doubt about the first Baptism, it baptizes again conditionally. This means the priest says during the second Baptism: "If you are not already baptized, I baptize you now." If the person was validly baptized the first time, the second ceremony has no effect because the priest doesn't intend to baptize again. However, if the first Baptism was not done correctly, then the second one is valid. In either case, Baptism is only given once; if the first was valid, the second isn't given, and if the first was invalid, the second is given.
Converts to the Church are generally baptized conditionally, because there is doubt about the validity of the Baptism they received.
Converts to the Church are usually baptized conditionally because there is uncertainty about the validity of the Baptism they received.
The Sacraments may be given conditionally when we doubt if they were or can be validly given.
The Sacraments can be administered conditionally when we question whether they were or can be given validly.
*149 Q. Why can we not receive Baptism, Confirmation, and Holy Orders more than once? A. We cannot receive Baptism, Confirmation, and Holy Orders more than once, because they imprint a character in the soul.
*149 Q. Why can’t we receive Baptism, Confirmation, and Holy Orders more than once? A. We can’t receive Baptism, Confirmation, and Holy Orders more than once because they leave a permanent mark on the soul.
"A character." It is a spiritual character, and remains forever, so that whether the person is in Heaven or Hell this mark will be seen. It will show that those having it were Christians, who received Baptism, Confirmation, or Holy Orders. If they are in Heaven, these characters will shine out to their honor, and will show how well they used the grace God gave them. If they are in Hell, these characters will be to their disgrace, and show how many gifts and graces God bestowed upon them, and how shamefully they abused all.
"A character." It is a spiritual mark that lasts forever, so that whether someone is in Heaven or Hell, this mark will be evident. It will indicate that those who bear it were Christians who received Baptism, Confirmation, or Holy Orders. If they are in Heaven, these marks will shine in their honor and demonstrate how well they used the grace God gave them. If they are in Hell, these marks will serve as a source of shame, showing how many gifts and graces God granted them and how they misused everything.
*150 Q. What is the character which these Sacraments imprint in the soul? A. The character which these Sacraments imprint in the soul is a spiritual mark which remains forever.
*150 Q. What type of mark do these Sacraments leave in the soul? A. The mark that these Sacraments leave in the soul is a spiritual impression that lasts forever.
*151 Q. Does this character remain in the soul even after death? A. This character remains in the soul even after death: for the honor and glory of those who are saved; for the shame and punishment of those who are lost.
*151 Q. Does this character stay in the soul even after death? A. This character stays in the soul even after death: for the honor and glory of those who are saved; for the shame and punishment of those who are lost.
Lesson 14
ON BAPTISM
Lesson 14
ON BAPTISM
152 Q. What is Baptism?
A. Baptism is a Sacrament which cleanses us from Original Sin, makes us
Christians, children of God, and heirs of Heaven.
152 Q. What is Baptism?
A. Baptism is a sacrament that cleanses us from Original Sin, makes us
Christians, children of God, and heirs to Heaven.
"Christians," that is, members of the Church of Christ. "Children of God," that is, adopted children. All men are children of God by their creation, but Christians are children of God, not merely by creation, but also by grace and union with Our Lord. "Heirs of Heaven." An heir is one who inherits property, money, or goods at the death of another. These things are left by a will or given by the laws of the State, when the person dies without making a will. A will is a written statement in which a person declares what he wishes to have done, at his death, with whatever he possesses—the charitable objects or the persons to whom he wishes to leave his goods. This will is called also the last testament. It is signed by witnesses, and after the death of the testator is committed to the care of a person—called the executor—whose business it is to see that all stated in the will or testament is carried out. There is an officer in the State to take these things in hand and settle them according to law, when the amount left is large, and there is a dispute about it. You can understand better now why we call the Bible the Old and the New Testament. When Our Lord died we were left an inheritance and spiritual property. The inheritance was Heaven, which we had lost through the sin of Adam and regained by the death of Our Lord. The spiritual property was God's grace, which He merited for us. The Old Testament contains the promise of what Our Lord would leave us at His death, and the New Testament shows that He kept His promise and did leave what He said. The Old Testament was written before He died, and the New Testament after His death. The witnesses of these testaments were the patriarchs, prophets, Apostles, and evangelists, who heard God making the promises through the inspiration of the Holy Ghost. The Church is the executor of Christ's will, and it is its business to see that all men receive what Christ left them, namely, God's grace and Heaven. It must also see that they are not cheated out of it by their enemies—the devil, the world, and the flesh.
"Christians," meaning members of the Church of Christ. "Children of God," meaning adopted children. Everyone is a child of God by their creation, but Christians are children of God not just by creation but also by grace and their connection to Our Lord. "Heirs of Heaven." An heir is someone who inherits property, money, or goods when another person dies. These inheritances can come from a will or by state laws if someone dies without a will. A will is a written document where someone states what they want to happen to their possessions after they die—whether that's for charitable causes or specific people they want to leave their belongings to. This will is also known as the last testament. It's signed by witnesses, and after the person who made the will (the testator) dies, it is handled by an individual called the executor, who ensures that everything stated in the will or testament is carried out. In the state, there's an official who oversees this process and resolves any disputes, especially when there's a significant inheritance involved. This ongoing process helps explain why we refer to the Bible as the Old and the New Testament. When Our Lord died, He left us an inheritance and spiritual assets. The inheritance was Heaven, which we lost due to Adam's sin and regained through Our Lord's death. The spiritual asset was God's grace, which He earned for us. The Old Testament includes the promise of what Our Lord would leave us at His death, and the New Testament demonstrates that He fulfilled that promise. The Old Testament was written before His death, while the New Testament was written afterward. The witnesses of these testaments were the patriarchs, prophets, Apostles, and evangelists who heard God's promises through the inspiration of the Holy Spirit. The Church acts as the executor of Christ's will, ensuring that everyone receives what Christ left for them—namely, God's grace and Heaven. It must also ensure that they aren't deprived of these gifts by their adversaries—the devil, the world, and their own desires.
153 Q. Are actual sins ever remitted by Baptism? A. Actual sins and all the punishment due to them are remitted by Baptism, if the person baptized be guilty of any.
153 Q. Are actual sins ever forgiven through Baptism? A. Actual sins and all the penalties associated with them are forgiven through Baptism, if the person being baptized is guilty of any.
We know that Baptism remits Original Sin. But suppose a person is not baptized till he is twenty-five or thirty years old; he has surely committed some sins since he was seven years of age—the time at which he received the use of reason. Now the question asks, Are all his sins, those he committed himself as well as the Original Sin, forgiven by Baptism? The answer is, Yes. All his sins are forgiven, so that he has not to confess them. But he must be heartily sorry for them and have the firm determination of never committing them again, just as in confession. Moreover, that he may not have to confess these sins, we must be absolutely certain that he was never baptized before. Besides remitting the sins themselves, Baptism remits all the temporal punishment due to them.
We know that Baptism forgives Original Sin. But let's say a person isn’t baptized until they’re twenty-five or thirty years old; they’ve definitely committed some sins since they turned seven—the age when they started using reason. The question is: Are all their sins, including the Original Sin, forgiven by Baptism? The answer is yes. All their sins are forgiven, so they don’t have to confess them. However, they need to truly regret those sins and be fully committed to never doing them again, just like in confession. Additionally, to avoid needing to confess these sins, we must be completely sure that they were never baptized before. In addition to forgiving the sins themselves, Baptism also removes all the temporary punishment associated with them.
In the Sacrament of Penance the sinner is saved from the eternal punishment—that is, Hell—and from part of the temporal punishment. But although the sins have been forgiven, the sinner must make satisfaction to God for the insult offered by his sins.
In the Sacrament of Penance, the sinner is saved from eternal punishment—that is, Hell—and from some of the temporary punishment. However, even though the sins have been forgiven, the sinner must still make amends to God for the offense caused by their sins.
Therefore, he must suffer punishment in this world or in Purgatory. We call this punishment temporal, because it will not last forever. You can make this satisfaction to God while on earth, and thus avoid much of the temporal punishment by prayers, fasting, gaining indulgences, alms, and good works; and even by bearing your sufferings, trials, and afflictions patiently, and offering them up to God in satisfaction for your sins.
Therefore, he must face punishment in this world or in Purgatory. We call this punishment temporary because it won’t last forever. You can make amends to God while you’re on earth and thus avoid much of the temporary punishment through prayers, fasting, gaining indulgences, charity, and good deeds; and even by patiently enduring your suffering, challenges, and hardships, while offering them up to God as atonement for your sins.
In Baptism both the eternal and temporal debt are washed away; so that if a person just baptized died immediately, he would go directly to Heaven, not to Purgatory: because persons go to Purgatory to pay off the temporal debt. Neither could that person gain an indulgence, because indulgences are only to help us to pay the temporal debt. Neither could that person receive the Sacrament of Penance, because Penance remits only sin committed after Baptism, and that person had no sins to remit, because he died just after receiving Baptism. See, then, the goodness of Our Lord in instituting Baptism, to forgive everything and leave us as free from guilt as our first parents were when God created them.
In Baptism, both our eternal and temporary debts are wiped clean; so if someone who has just been baptized dies right away, they would go straight to Heaven and not to Purgatory, since people go to Purgatory to settle their temporary debts. That person also couldn't earn an indulgence because indulgences are meant to help us pay off those temporary debts. Additionally, that person wouldn't be able to receive the Sacrament of Penance, since Penance only forgives sins committed after Baptism, and they had no sins to forgive because they died just after being baptized. Thus, we see the kindness of Our Lord in establishing Baptism, to forgive everything and leave us as free from guilt as our first parents were when God created them.
154 Q. Is Baptism necessary to salvation? A. Baptism is necessary to salvation, because without it we cannot enter into the kingdom of Heaven.
154 Q. Is Baptism necessary for salvation? A. Baptism is necessary for salvation because without it, we cannot enter the kingdom of Heaven.
Those who through no fault of theirs die without Baptism, though they have never committed sin, cannot enter Heaven—neither will they go to Hell. After the Last Judgment there will be no Purgatory. Where, then, will they go? God in His goodness will provide a place of rest for them, where they will not suffer and will be in a state of natural peace; but they will never see God or Heaven. God might have created us for a purely natural and material end, so that we would live forever upon the earth and be naturally happy with the good things God would give us. But then we would never have known of Heaven or God as we do now. Such happiness on earth would be nothing compared to the delights of Heaven and the presence of God; so that, now, since God has given us, through His holy revelations, a knowledge of Himself and Heaven, we would be miserable if left always upon the earth. Those, then, who die without Baptism do not know what they have lost, and are naturally happy; but we who know all they have lost for want of Baptism know how very unfortunate they are.
Those who die without Baptism through no fault of their own, even if they’ve never sinned, cannot enter Heaven—but they also won’t go to Hell. After the Last Judgment, there will be no Purgatory. So, where will they go? In His goodness, God will create a place of rest for them, where they won't suffer and will experience a state of natural peace; however, they will never see God or Heaven. God could have made us for a purely natural and material purpose, allowing us to live forever on earth and be naturally happy with the good things He provides. But then we wouldn’t have known about Heaven or God as we do now. Such happiness on earth wouldn’t compare to the joys of Heaven and the presence of God; for now, since God has revealed Himself and Heaven to us, we would feel miserable if we were always left on earth. Those who die without Baptism don’t realize what they’ve lost and remain naturally happy; but we, who understand all they’ve missed by not being baptized, know how very unfortunate they are.
Think, then, what a terrible crime it is to willfully allow anyone to die without Baptism, or to deprive a little child of life before it can be baptized! Suppose all the members of a family but one little infant have been baptized; when the Day of Judgment comes, while all the other members of a family—father, mother, and children—may go into Heaven, that little one will have to remain out; that little brother or sister will be separated from its family forever, and never, never see God or Heaven. How heartless and cruel, then, must a person be who would deprive that little infant of happiness for all eternity—just that its mother or someone else might have a little less trouble or suffering here upon earth.
Think about how awful it is to knowingly let anyone die without Baptism, or to take the life of a little child before they can be baptized! Imagine a family where everyone but one baby has been baptized; when the Day of Judgment arrives, all the other family members—father, mother, and siblings—might enter Heaven, but that baby will be left out. That little brother or sister will be separated from their family forever, never seeing God or Heaven. How heartless and cruel must someone be to deny that baby eternal happiness—just so that their mother or someone else can have a bit less trouble or suffering in this life.
155 Q. Who can administer Baptism? A. The priest is the ordinary minister of Baptism; but in case of necessity anyone who has the use of reason may baptize.
155 Q. Who can administer Baptism? A. The priest is the usual minister of Baptism; however, in emergencies, anyone who is able to think clearly can baptize.
"Ordinary"—that is, the one who has a right to baptize and generally does; others can baptize only in case of necessity.
"Ordinary"—meaning the person who has the right to baptize and usually does; others can only baptize in cases of necessity.
"Priest" and all above him—bishops, and the Pope; for they have all the power the priest has, and more besides. "Minister" is the name given here to one who performs any of the sacred rites or ceremonies of the Church. "Necessity." When the ordinary minister cannot be had and when Baptism must be given; for if it is not absolutely necessary to give the Baptism, then you must wait for the ordinary minister.
"Priest" and everyone above him—bishops and the Pope; because they hold all the authority that the priest has, plus even more. "Minister" refers to anyone who carries out any of the sacred rites or ceremonies of the Church. "Necessity." This applies when the regular minister is unavailable and Baptism needs to be performed; because if it's not absolutely essential to administer the Baptism, then you should wait for the regular minister.
"Anyone." Even persons not Catholics or not Christians may, in case of necessity, baptize a person wishing to receive Baptism, if they know how to baptize and seriously wish to do what the Church of Christ does when it baptizes. You cannot baptize a person against his will. Neither can you baptize an infant whose parents are unwilling to have the child baptized, or when the child will not be brought up in the Catholic religion. But if the child is dying, it can and should be baptized, even without the consent of the parents.
"Anyone." Even people who aren't Catholics or Christians can baptize someone who wants to receive Baptism in case of necessity, as long as they know how to perform the baptism and genuinely intend to do what the Church of Christ does during the baptism. You cannot baptize someone against their will. You also can't baptize an infant if the parents don't want their child baptized, or if the child won't be raised in the Catholic faith. However, if the child is dying, they can and should be baptized, even without the parents' consent.
"Use of reason." Because the person must intend to do what Our Lord ordered to be done in giving Baptism; and a little child could not understand, and could not therefore baptize.
"Use of reason." Because the person needs to intend to do what Our Lord commanded regarding Baptism; and a small child cannot understand, and therefore cannot be baptized.
156 Q. How is Baptism given? A. Whoever baptizes should pour water on the head of the person to be baptized, and say, while pouring the water: I baptize thee in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
156 Q. How is Baptism performed? A. The person performing the baptism should pour water on the head of the individual being baptized and say, while pouring the water: I baptize you in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit.
When the priest baptizes in the church, he uses consecrated water—that is, water blessed for that purpose on Holy Saturday, and mixed with holy oil. When he or any other, in case of necessity, baptizes in a private house, he may use plain, clean water, and he baptizes without the other ceremonies used in the church. Remember, in Baptism you can use ordinary clean water, warm or cold. When the priest or anyone baptizes by simply pouring the water and pronouncing the words of Baptism, we call it private Baptism. The Baptism given in church with all the ceremonies is called solemn Baptism. Any person baptized privately should be brought to the church afterwards to have the rest of the ceremonies performed.
When the priest baptizes in the church, he uses blessed water—that is, water consecrated for that purpose on Holy Saturday and mixed with holy oil. If he or someone else needs to baptize in a private home, they can use regular, clean water and skip the other rituals done in the church. Just remember, during Baptism, you can use any clean water, whether it's warm or cold. When the priest or anyone else baptizes by simply pouring water and saying the Baptism words, we refer to it as private Baptism. The Baptism performed in church with all the rituals is called solemn Baptism. Anyone baptized privately should be brought to the church afterward to complete the remaining ceremonies.
It will increase your respect for the Sacrament to know what ceremonies are used in solemn Baptism, and what they signify. The following things must be prepared: the holy oils, a little salt, a little pitcher or something similar to pour the water from, a vessel to receive the water when poured, some cotton, two stoles, one white and one purple, towels, a white cloth, candle, and candlestick.
It will enhance your appreciation for the Sacrament to understand the ceremonies associated with formal Baptism and their meanings. The following items need to be prepared: holy oils, a small amount of salt, a small pitcher or something similar to pour the water from, a container to catch the water when poured, some cotton, two stoles—one white and one purple—towels, a white cloth, a candle, and a candlestick.
All being ready, the person holding the infant takes it on the right arm, face up, and the priest, having learned the name it is to be given, begins by asking the one to be baptized, "What do you ask of the Church of God?" And the godparents answer for the child, "Faith." If the person receiving Baptism is capable of answering for himself, he must do so. Then the priest exhorts the child to keep the Commandments and love God; then he breathes three times upon it and bids the evil spirit depart. He next prays for the child and puts a little salt into its mouth, as a sign of the wisdom that Faith gives, and again prays for the child. Then he places the end of his stole over it as a sign that it is led into the Church; for Baptism is given in a place called the baptistery, railed off from the church and near the door, because formerly the ceremony up to this point was performed outside the church, and at this part of the ceremony the person was led in to be baptized. Then before Baptism the person says the Creed and the Our Father; for when a grown person is to be baptized he must first be instructed in all the truths of religion, and he must say the Creed to show that he believes them. Again the priest prays and places a little spittle on the ears and nose of the child, using at the same time the words used by Our Lord when He spit upon the ground, and rubbing the spittle and clay upon the eyes of the blind man, healed him. (John 9:6). The priest next asks the child if it renounces the devil and all his works and pomps—that is, vanities and empty shows; and having received the answer anoints it with holy oil on the breast and back. Then he again asks for a profession of faith, and finally baptizes it. After Baptism he anoints its head with holy chrism, places a white cloth upon it to signify the purity it received in Baptism, and as a sign that it must keep its soul free from sin. Then he places in its hand a lighted candle, to signify the light of faith it has received in Baptism. We are baptized at the door of the church to show that without Baptism we are out of the Church. We are often signed with the Sign of the Cross to remind us that our salvation is due to the Cross and Passion of Our Lord. The priest's stole is placed over us to show that the Church takes us under its protection and shields us from the power of the devil. We are anointed as a sign that we are freed from our sins and strengthened to fight for Christ. The white cloth or garment is placed upon us to remind us of the glory of the Resurrection; the light is placed in our hand to show that we should burn with Christian charity.
All set, the person holding the baby takes it in their right arm, facing up, and the priest, after learning the name to be given, starts by asking the one being baptized, "What do you ask of the Church of God?" The godparents respond for the child, "Faith." If the person being baptized is old enough to answer for themselves, they should do so. Then the priest encourages the child to follow the Commandments and love God. He breathes on the child three times and commands the evil spirit to leave. Next, he prays for the child and puts a little salt in their mouth, symbolizing the wisdom that Faith brings, and prays again. He then places the end of his stole over the child as a sign that they are being welcomed into the Church; Baptism takes place in a designated area called the baptistery, which is separated from the church and near the entrance, because in the past, the ceremony was conducted outside the church and this part signaled the person’s entry for Baptism. Before Baptism, the person recites the Creed and the Our Father; when an adult is to be baptized, they must first learn the essential truths of the faith and say the Creed to show their belief in them. The priest then prays again and places a little saliva on the child’s ears and nose, using the same words as Our Lord when He spat on the ground and healed the blind man by rubbing the spittle and clay on his eyes (John 9:6). The priest then asks the child if they renounce the devil and all his empty temptations and, upon receiving the answer, anoints them with holy oil on the chest and back. He again requests a profession of faith and finally baptizes them. After Baptism, he anoints their head with holy chrism, places a white cloth over them to signify the purity received in Baptism, and as a reminder to keep their soul free from sin. He then hands them a lit candle to symbolize the light of faith they have received in Baptism. We are baptized at the church door to indicate that without Baptism, we are outside the Church. We are frequently marked with the Sign of the Cross to remind us that our salvation comes from the Cross and Passion of Our Lord. The priest’s stole is placed on us to show that the Church protects us and shields us from the devil's power. We are anointed as a sign of being cleansed from our sins and strengthened to fight for Christ. The white cloth or garment is placed on us to remind us of the glory of the Resurrection; the light is given to us to signify that we should shine with Christian love.
*157 Q. How many kinds of Baptism are there? A. There are three kinds of Baptism: Baptism of water, of desire, and of blood.
*157 Q. How many types of Baptism are there? A. There are three types of Baptism: Baptism by water, by desire, and by blood.
*158 Q. What is Baptism of water? A. Baptism of water is that which is given by pouring water on the head of the person to be baptized, and saying at the same time, I baptize thee in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
*158 Q. What is Baptism of water? A. Baptism of water is performed by pouring water on the head of the person being baptized while saying, "I baptize you in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit."
*159 Q. What is Baptism of desire? A. Baptism of desire is an ardent wish to receive Baptism, and to do all that God has ordained for our salvation.
*159 Q. What is Baptism of desire? A. Baptism of desire is a strong wish to receive Baptism and to do everything that God has set for our salvation.
"Ardent wish" by one who has no opportunity of being baptized—for no one can baptize himself. He must be sorry for his sins and have the desire of receiving the Baptism of water as soon as he can; just as a person in mortal sin and without a priest to absolve him may, when in danger of death, save his soul from Hell by an act of perfect contrition and the firm resolution of going to confession as soon as possible. Baptism of desire would be useful and necessary if there was no water at hand or no person to baptize; or if the one wishing to be baptized and those about him did not know exactly how Baptism was to be given—which might easily happen in pagan lands. One thing you must especially remember in giving Baptism in case of necessity: namely, that it would not do for one person to pour the water and another to say the words. The same person must do both, or the Baptism will not be valid. If you are called to baptize in case of necessity, be very careful to observe the following points, otherwise the Baptism will not be valid: use clean water and nothing but water—no other liquid would do. Say every one of the exact words: "I baptize thee in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost." It would not do to say, "I baptize thee in the name of God"; or, "I baptize thee in the name of the Blessed Trinity"; nor would it do to say simply, "In the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost," without saying, "I baptize thee." Say the words at the same time you pour the water, and be sure the water touches the skin. It would not do to pour the water simply on the hair. You must not sprinkle the water, but pour it upon the head.
"Ardent wish" by someone who has no chance to be baptized—for no one can baptize themselves. They must feel sorry for their sins and desire to receive the baptism of water as soon as possible; just like a person in serious sin, without a priest to forgive them, can, when facing death, save their soul from Hell by truly repenting and having a strong intention to go to confession as soon as they can. The baptism of desire would be important and necessary if there was no water available or no one to baptize; or if the person wanting to be baptized and those around them didn’t know exactly how baptism should be performed—which could easily happen in non-Christian areas. One key thing to remember when giving baptism in an emergency: it’s essential that the same person pours the water and says the words. If they don’t, the baptism won’t be valid. If you are called to baptize in an emergency, be very careful to keep in mind the following points, or else the baptism won’t be valid: use clean water and only water—no other liquid will work. Say every one of the exact words: "I baptize you in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost." It wouldn’t be correct to say, "I baptize you in the name of God"; or, "I baptize you in the name of the Blessed Trinity"; nor would it work to just say, "In the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost," without including, "I baptize you." Say the words as you pour the water, and make sure the water touches the skin. Simply pouring water on the hair would not be sufficient. You must pour the water on the head, not sprinkle it.
When you have followed the above instructions carefully and are sure you have baptized properly, never under any circumstance repeat the Baptism on the same person. It is a sin to try to baptize more than once when you know Baptism can be given only once. The sight of the person dying and the fact that you are called for the first time may cause you to be somewhat excited; but be calm, remember the importance of the Sacrament, and you will administer it as directed. Parents should not baptize their own children in case of necessity, if there is any other person present who can validly do it. Remember those who administer Baptism contract a spiritual relationship with the person they baptize (not with his parents). If they wished, years afterwards, to marry the person they baptized, they must make this relationship known to the priest.
When you have carefully followed the instructions above and are sure you’ve baptized correctly, never, under any circumstances, repeat the Baptism on the same person. It's a sin to attempt to baptize someone more than once when you know that Baptism can only be given once. Seeing someone die and being called to help for the first time may make you a bit anxious; but stay calm, remember the importance of the Sacrament, and you will perform it as instructed. Parents shouldn't baptize their own children in emergencies if there is anyone else present who can validly do it. Keep in mind that those who administer Baptism form a spiritual bond with the person they baptize (not with the parents). If, years later, they wish to marry the person they baptized, they must inform the priest about this relationship.
Sponsors are not necessary in private Baptism. A person may be sponsor for a child in Baptism without being present at the Baptism, provided someone else holds the child in his name and answers the questions he himself would answer if he were present. Such a sponsor is said to stand for the child by proxy, and he, and not the one who holds the child, is then the real godparent when, at the request of the parents or priest he has consented to be sponsor.
Sponsors are not required for private Baptism. A person can be a sponsor for a child during Baptism even if they're not there, as long as someone else holds the child on their behalf and responds to the questions they would have answered if they were present. This type of sponsor is considered to stand in for the child by proxy, and they, rather than the person holding the child, are the actual godparent, as long as they have agreed to be the sponsor at the request of the parents or priest.
*160 Q. What is Baptism of blood? A. Baptism of blood is the shedding of one's blood for the faith of Christ.
*160 Q. What is Baptism of blood? A. Baptism of blood is giving up one's life for the faith of Christ.
Baptism of blood, called martyrdom, is received by those who were not baptized with water, but were put to death for their Catholic faith. This takes place even nowadays in pagan countries where the missionaries are trying to convert the poor natives. These pagans have to be instructed before they are baptized. They do everything required of them, let us suppose, and are waiting for the day of Baptism. Those who are being thus instructed are called Catechumens. Someday, while they are attending their instructions, the enemies of religion rush down upon them and put them to death. They do not resist, but willingly suffer death for the sake of the true religion. They are martyrs then and are baptized in their own blood; although, as we said above, blood would not do for an ordinary Baptism even when we could not get water; so that if a person drew blood from his own body and asked to be baptized with it, the Baptism would not be valid. Neither would they be martyrs if put to death not for religion or virtue but for some other reason—say political.
Baptism of blood, known as martyrdom, is received by those who haven't been baptized with water but are killed for their Catholic faith. This still happens today in pagan countries where missionaries are attempting to convert the local populations. These pagans need to be taught before they can be baptized. Let’s assume they fulfill all the requirements and are waiting for the day of Baptism. Those who are being taught are called Catechumens. One day, while they are attending their lessons, enemies of the faith suddenly attack them and kill them. They don’t fight back but willingly accept death for the sake of the true religion. They become martyrs and are baptized in their own blood; however, as mentioned earlier, blood cannot substitute for a regular Baptism even in the absence of water. If someone were to draw blood from their own body and ask to be baptized with it, that Baptism would not be valid. They also wouldn't be considered martyrs if they were killed for reasons other than faith or virtue, such as political motives.
*161 Q. Is Baptism of desire or blood sufficient to produce the effects of Baptism of water? A. Baptism of desire or of blood is sufficient to produce the effects of the Baptism of water, if it is impossible to receive the Baptism of water.
*161 Q. Is Baptism of desire or blood enough to have the same effects as Baptism of water? A. Baptism of desire or blood is enough to have the same effects as Baptism of water, if it’s impossible to receive the Baptism of water.
*162 Q. What do we promise in Baptism? A. In Baptism we promise to renounce the devil with all his works and pomps.
*162 Q. What do we promise in Baptism? A. In Baptism, we promise to reject the devil along with all his actions and pride.
*163 Q. Why is the name of a saint given in Baptism? A. The name of a saint is given in Baptism in order that the person baptized may imitate his virtues and have him for a protector.
*163 Q. Why is a saint's name given at Baptism? A. A saint's name is given at Baptism so that the person being baptized can imitate their virtues and have them as a protector.
The saint whose name we bear is called our patron saint. This saint has a special love for us and a special care over us. People take the names of great men because they admire their good qualities or their great deeds. So we take saints' names because we admire their Christian virtues and great Christian deeds. We should, therefore, read the life of our patron saint and try to imitate his virtues, and the day on which the Church celebrates the feast of our patron saint should be a great day for us also. The Church generally celebrates the saint's feast on the day on which he died, that is, as we believe, the day on which he entered into Heaven.
The saint whose name we carry is known as our patron saint. This saint has a special love for us and watches over us with care. People choose names of great individuals because they admire their good traits or significant accomplishments. Similarly, we take the names of saints because we look up to their Christian values and notable acts of faith. Therefore, we should read about the life of our patron saint and strive to follow his virtues, and the day the Church celebrates our patron saint's feast should be a significant day for us too. The Church typically observes the saint's feast on the anniversary of his death, which we believe is the day he entered Heaven.
*164 Q. Why are godfathers and godmothers given in Baptism? A. Godfathers and godmothers are given in Baptism in order that they may promise in the name of the child what the child itself would promise if it had the use of reason.
*164 Q. Why are godparents given in Baptism? A. Godparents are given in Baptism so that they can promise on behalf of the child what the child would promise if it were old enough to understand.
*165 Q. What is the obligation of a godfather and a godmother? A. The obligation of a godfather and a godmother is to instruct the child in its religious duties if the parents neglect to do so or die.
*165 Q. What is the role of a godfather and a godmother? A. The role of a godfather and a godmother is to teach the child about their religious responsibilities if the parents fail to do so or pass away.
This is a very important obligation, and we should be faithful in the fulfillment of it before God. Godfathers and godmothers are also called sponsors. The following persons cannot be sponsors: (1) All persons not Catholics, because they cannot teach the child the Catholic religion if they do not know it themselves. (2) All persons who are publicly leading bad lives; for how can they give good examples and teach their godchild to be good when they themselves are public sinners? (3) All persons who are ignorant of their religion should not take upon themselves the duties of godparents. Therefore parents should select as sponsors for their children only good, practical Catholics—not Catholics merely in name, but those who live up to their faith, and who will be an example for their children. To repeat what has already been said, godparents contract a spiritual relationship with their godchild, and in the event of marriage, they must make known this relationship to the priest. The godfather and the godmother do not contract a relationship between themselves, or with the child's parents, but only with the child so that neither the godfather nor the godmother could later marry their godchild without first obtaining proper dispensation; that is, permission from the Church granted by the bishop or Pope. With regard to names, parents should never be induced by any motive to give their child some foolish or fancy name taken from books, places, or things. Above all, they should never select the name of any enemy of the Church or unbeliever, but the name of one of God's saints who will be a model for the child. Whatever name is taken, if it be not a saint's name, the name of some saint should be given as a middle name. If this has been omitted in Baptism, it should be supplied in Confirmation, at which time a new name can be added. Again, if a saint's name has been taken in Baptism it should not be shortened or changed so as to mean nothing; as, for example, Mazie, Miz, etc., for Mary. When your correct name is mentioned your saint is honored, and I might say invoked, because it should remind you of him. For that reason you should not have meaningless or foolish pet names, known only to your family or your friends.
This is a very important responsibility, and we should be committed to fulfilling it before God. Godfathers and godmothers are also known as sponsors. The following individuals cannot be sponsors: (1) Any non-Catholics, because they cannot teach the child the Catholic faith if they don't know it themselves. (2) Anyone who publicly leads a bad life; how can they set a good example and teach their godchild to be good when they are publicly sinful? (3) Anyone who is ignorant of their faith should not take on the duties of being a godparent. Therefore, parents should choose sponsors for their children who are good, practicing Catholics—not just Catholics in name, but those who truly live out their faith and will serve as a good example for their children. To reiterate what has been said, godparents form a spiritual bond with their godchild, and if there is a marriage, they must inform the priest of this relationship. The godfather and godmother do not form a relationship with each other or with the child's parents, but only with the child, which means neither the godfather nor the godmother can later marry their godchild without first getting the proper dispensation; that is, permission from the Church granted by the bishop or Pope. Regarding names, parents should never be pressured to give their child a silly or extravagant name from books, places, or things. Above all, they should not choose the name of any enemy of the Church or nonbeliever, but instead select the name of one of God's saints who will serve as a role model for the child. Whatever name is chosen, if it is not a saint's name, a saint's name should be given as a middle name. If this has been missed during Baptism, it should be added during Confirmation, when a new name can also be introduced. Again, if a saint's name has been used in Baptism, it should not be shortened or altered to become meaningless; for example, Mazie or Miz instead of Mary. When your correct name is used, your saint is honored and, I might say, invoked, because it should remind you of them. For this reason, you should avoid having meaningless or silly nicknames known only to your family or friends.
Lesson 15
ON CONFIRMATION
Lesson 15
ABOUT CONFIRMATION
166 Q. What is Confirmation? A. Confirmation is a Sacrament through which we receive the Holy Ghost to make us strong and perfect Christians and soldiers of Jesus Christ.
166 Q. What is Confirmation? A. Confirmation is a Sacrament through which we receive the Holy Spirit to make us strong and complete Christians and followers of Jesus Christ.
In Baptism we are made Christians, but we are not very strong in our faith till the Holy Ghost comes in Confirmation. You remember how timid the Apostles were before the coming of the Holy Ghost, and how firm and determined in their faith they were afterwards; and how fearlessly they preached even to those who crucified Our Lord. "Soldiers," because we must fight for our salvation against our three enemies, the devil, the world, and the flesh. Our Lord is our great leader in this warfare, and we must follow Him and fight as He directs. A soldier that fights as he pleases and not as his general commands, will surely be beaten.
In Baptism, we become Christians, but our faith doesn't become strong until the Holy Spirit comes in Confirmation. Remember how timid the Apostles were before the Holy Spirit arrived, and how confident and steadfast they became afterward; how boldly they preached even to those who crucified Our Lord. "Soldiers," because we need to fight for our salvation against our three enemies: the devil, the world, and the flesh. Our Lord is our great leader in this battle, and we must follow Him and fight as He guides us. A soldier who fights however he wants, rather than following his general's orders, will definitely be defeated.
167 Q. Who can administer Confirmation? A. The bishop is the ordinary minister of Confirmation.
167 Q. Who can administer Confirmation? A. The bishop is the usual minister of Confirmation.
"Ordinary," because in some very distant countries where on account of the small number of Christians they have as yet no bishops, the Pope allows some priest to give Confirmation; but then he must use the holy oil consecrated by a bishop, and cannot consecrate oil himself.
"Ordinary," because in some very faraway countries where there are so few Christians that they don’t have bishops yet, the Pope lets a priest give Confirmation; but they must use the holy oil that a bishop has consecrated and cannot consecrate oil themselves.
168 Q. How does the bishop give Confirmation? A. The bishop extends his hands over those who are to be confirmed, prays that they may receive the Holy Ghost, and anoints the forehead of each with holy chrism in the form of a cross.
168 Q. How does the bishop give Confirmation? A. The bishop reaches out his hands over those being confirmed, prays for them to receive the Holy Spirit, and anoints each person's forehead with holy chrism in the shape of a cross.
*169 Q. What is holy chrism? A. Holy chrism is a mixture of olive oil and balm, consecrated by the bishop.
*169 Q. What is holy chrism? A. Holy chrism is a blend of olive oil and balm that has been blessed by the bishop.
The oil signifies the strength we receive, and the balm that we should be free from the corruption of sin, and give forth the sweetness of virtue.
The oil represents the strength we gain, and the balm that should free us from the corruption of sin, allowing us to express the sweetness of virtue.
170 Q. What does the bishop say in anointing the person he confirms? A. In anointing the person he confirms the bishop says: I sign thee with the Sign of the Cross, and I confirm thee with the chrism of salvation, in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
170 Q. What does the bishop say when he anoints the person he confirms? A. When anointing the person he confirms, the bishop says: I sign you with the Sign of the Cross, and I confirm you with the chrism of salvation, in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit.
*171 Q. What is meant by anointing the forehead with chrism in the form of a cross? A. By anointing the forehead with chrism in the form of a cross is meant, that the Christian who is confirmed must openly profess and practice his faith, never be ashamed of it, and rather die than deny it.
*171 Q. What does it mean to anoint the forehead with chrism in the shape of a cross? A. Anointing the forehead with chrism in the form of a cross means that the Christian who is confirmed must openly declare and live out their faith, never be embarrassed by it, and would rather die than reject it.
"Openly profess"—that is, acknowledge that he is a Catholic when it is necessary to do so. He need not proclaim it in the streets. "Practice" it without regard for what other people think, say, or do. "Ashamed" of a religion so glorious as the Catholic religion? Would we not be proud to belong to a society of which kings and princes were members? Well, a few centuries ago nearly all the kings, princes, and great men of the earth were Catholics. All the saints were Catholics. All the Popes were Catholics. At present over three hundred million people in the world are Catholics. This Church was founded when Christ Our Lord was on earth, and is nearly two thousand years old. All the other churches are only a few hundred years old. We ought, therefore, to be proud of our religion, for which and in which so many noble persons died. We should feel proud that we are Catholics; while Protestants should feel ashamed in our presence, for they have deserted the true standard of Christ, and followed some other leader who set up a religion of his own in opposition to the true Church of Our Lord. They will not have the cross or crucifix, the standard of Christ, in their churches or houses or about their persons, and yet they claim to be Christians redeemed by the Cross. We are called upon to defend or profess our religion when we have to do what the Church and God require us to do: for example, hear Mass on Sundays and holy days; abstain from the use of fleshmeat on Ash Wednesday and the Fridays of Lent, fast on fast-days, and the like, when we are among persons not Catholics.
"Openly acknowledge"—that is, admit that he is a Catholic when it's necessary. He doesn’t have to shout it from the rooftops. "Practice" it regardless of what others think, say, or do. "Ashamed" of a faith as glorious as Catholicism? Wouldn’t we be proud to belong to a community that included kings and princes? Just a few centuries ago, nearly all the kings, princes, and influential people in the world were Catholics. All the saints were Catholics. All the Popes were Catholics. Today, over three hundred million people around the world are Catholics. This Church was established when Christ Our Lord was on earth and is nearly two thousand years old. All the other churches are only a few hundred years old. We should, therefore, take pride in our faith, for which so many noble individuals gave their lives. We should feel proud to be Catholics, while Protestants should feel embarrassed in our presence, as they have abandoned the true standard of Christ and followed another leader who created a religion in opposition to the true Church of Our Lord. They refuse to have the cross or crucifix, the symbol of Christ, in their churches, homes, or on their persons, yet they claim to be Christians redeemed by the Cross. We are called to defend or profess our faith when we need to fulfill the requirements of the Church and God: for example, attending Mass on Sundays and holy days; abstaining from meat on Ash Wednesday and the Fridays of Lent, fasting on designated fast-days, and so forth, when we are around non-Catholics.
*172 Q. Why does the bishop give the person he confirms a slight blow on the cheek? A. The bishop gives the person he confirms a slight blow on the cheek to put him in mind that he must be ready to suffer anything, even death, for the sake of Christ.
*172 Q. Why does the bishop give the person he confirms a light tap on the cheek? A. The bishop gives the person he confirms a light tap on the cheek to remind them that they must be prepared to endure anything, even death, for the sake of Christ.
173 Q. To receive Confirmation worthily is it necessary to be in the state of grace? A. To receive Confirmation worthily it is necessary to be in the state of grace.
173 Q. Is it necessary to be in a state of grace to receive Confirmation worthily? A. Yes, to receive Confirmation worthily, it is necessary to be in a state of grace.
*174 Q. What special preparation should be made to receive Confirmation? A. Persons of an age to learn should know the chief mysteries of faith and the duties of a Christian, and be instructed in the nature and effects of this Sacrament.
*174 Q. What special preparation should be made to receive Confirmation? A. People who are old enough to understand should know the main beliefs of the faith and the responsibilities of a Christian, and be taught about the nature and effects of this Sacrament.
How can one be a good soldier who does not know the rules and regulations of the army nor understand the commands of his general? How can one be a good Christian who does not understand the laws of the Church and the teachings of Christ? The "nature"—that is, understand the Sacrament itself. "Effects"—that is, what it does in our souls.
How can someone be a good soldier if they don’t know the army’s rules and regulations or understand their general’s commands? How can someone be a good Christian if they don’t grasp the Church's laws and the teachings of Christ? The "nature" refers to understanding the Sacrament itself. "Effects" refer to what it does in our souls.
175 Q. Is it a sin to neglect Confirmation? A. It is a sin to neglect Confirmation, especially in these evil days when faith and morals are exposed to so many and such violent temptations.
175 Q. Is it a sin to neglect Confirmation? A. Yes, it is a sin to neglect Confirmation, especially in these troubling times when faith and morals face so many intense temptations.
"Temptations"—from the sayings and writings of the enemies of religion. To neglect it when we have an opportunity of receiving it without any very great difficulty would be a sin. When persons have been unfortunate enough to grow up without Confirmation, they should come at any time in their lives to receive it, and not be ashamed to do so on account of their age or condition in life.
"Temptations"—from the sayings and writings of the opponents of religion. Ignoring it when we have a chance to receive it without much difficulty would be wrong. If someone has been unfortunate enough to grow up without Confirmation, they should feel free to seek it out at any point in their lives and not be embarrassed about their age or life situation.
Lesson 16
ON THE GIFTS AND FRUITS OF THE HOLY GHOST
Lesson 16
ON THE GIFTS AND FRUITS OF THE HOLY SPIRIT
*176 Q. What are the effects of Confirmation? A. The effects of Confirmation are an increase of sanctifying grace, the strengthening of our faith, and the gifts of the Holy Ghost.
*176 Q. What are the effects of Confirmation? A. The effects of Confirmation include an increase in sanctifying grace, a strengthening of our faith, and the gifts of the Holy Spirit.
"Increase," because we must be in a state of grace, that is, having already sanctifying grace in our souls when we receive Confirmation. "Strengthening," so that we have no doubt about the doctrines we believe.
"Increase," because we need to be in a state of grace, meaning we should already have sanctifying grace in our souls when we receive Confirmation. "Strengthening," so that we have no doubt about the doctrines we believe.
*177 Q. What are the gifts of the Holy Ghost? A. The gifts of the Holy Ghost are wisdom, understanding, counsel, fortitude, knowledge, piety, and fear of the Lord.
*177 Q. What are the gifts of the Holy Spirit? A. The gifts of the Holy Spirit are wisdom, understanding, counsel, courage, knowledge, piety, and fear of the Lord.
*178 Q. Why do we receive the gift of fear of the Lord? A. We receive the gift of fear of the Lord to fill us with a dread of sin.
*178 Q. Why do we receive the gift of fear of the Lord? A. We receive the gift of fear of the Lord to instill in us a dread of sin.
On account of the goodness of God and the punishment He can inflict.
Due to God's goodness and the consequences He can impose.
*179 Q. Why do we receive the gift of piety? A. We receive the gift of piety to make us love God as a Father, and obey Him because we love Him.
*179 Q. Why do we receive the gift of piety? A. We receive the gift of piety to help us love God as our Father and obey Him out of love.
*180 Q. Why do we receive the gift of knowledge? A. We receive the gift of knowledge to enable us to discover the will of God in all things.
*180 Q. Why do we receive the gift of knowledge? A. We receive the gift of knowledge to help us understand God's will in everything.
*181 Q. Why do we receive the gift of fortitude? A. We receive the gift of fortitude to strengthen us to do the will of God in all things.
*181 Q. Why do we receive the gift of fortitude? A. We receive the gift of fortitude to empower us to do God's will in all things.
Some know the will of God—what they should do—but they have not the courage to follow the dictates of their conscience. For example, a person goes with bad company: the gift of knowledge will teach him that he should give it up; but the gift of fortitude will enable him to do what his conscience shows him to be right.
Some people understand what God wants them to do, but they lack the courage to follow their conscience. For instance, someone might hang out with the wrong crowd: knowing better will tell him to stop, but having the strength will actually allow him to do what he knows is right.
*182 Q. Why do we receive the gift of counsel? A. We receive the gift of counsel to warn us of the deceits of the devil, and of the dangers to salvation.
*182 Q. Why do we receive the gift of counsel? A. We receive the gift of counsel to alert us to the tricks of the devil and the risks to our salvation.
The devil is much wiser than we are, and has much more experience, being among the people of the world ever since the time of Adam—about 6,000 years. He could therefore easily deceive and overcome us if God Himself by the gift of counsel did not enable us to discover his tricks and expose his plots. When at times we are tempted, our conscience warns us, and if we follow the warning we shall escape the sin. Counsel tells us when persons or places are dangerous for our salvation.
The devil is a lot smarter than we are and has way more experience, having been around people in the world since Adam—about 6,000 years. So, he could easily trick and overpower us if God didn’t help us see through his schemes and reveal his plans. When we face temptation, our conscience warns us, and if we listen to that warning, we can avoid sin. Counsel lets us know when certain people or places might be a threat to our salvation.
*183 Q. Why do we receive the gift of understanding? A. We receive the gift of understanding to enable us to know more clearly the mysteries of faith.
*183 Q. Why do we receive the gift of understanding? A. We receive the gift of understanding to help us grasp the mysteries of faith more clearly.
"Mysteries," truths we could never know by reason, but only by the teaching of God; and the gift of understanding enables us to know better what His teaching means. The Apostles heard and knew what Our Lord taught, but they did not fully understand the whole meaning till the Holy Ghost had come.
"Mysteries," truths we can’t fully grasp through reason alone, but only through God's teaching; and the gift of understanding helps us better comprehend what His teaching means. The Apostles heard and understood what Our Lord taught, but they didn't fully grasp the entire meaning until the Holy Spirit arrived.
*184 Q. Why do we receive the gift of wisdom? A. We receive the gift of wisdom to give us a relish for the things of God and to direct our whole life and all our actions to His honor and glory.
*184 Q. Why do we receive the gift of wisdom? A. We receive the gift of wisdom to develop a love for the things of God and to guide our entire lives and actions towards His honor and glory.
"Relish," a liking for, a desire for.
"Relish," a fondness for, a craving for.
*185 Q. Which are the beatitudes? A. The beatitudes are:
*185 Q. What are the beatitudes? A. The beatitudes are:
(1) Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom of Heaven. (2) Blessed are the meek, for they shall possess the land. (3) Blessed are they that mourn, for they shall be comforted. (4) Blessed are they that hunger and thirst after justice, for they shall be filled. (5) Blessed are the merciful, for they shall obtain mercy. (6) Blessed are the clean of heart, for they shall see God. (7) Blessed are the peacemakers, for they shall be called the children of God. (8) Blessed are they that suffer persecution for justice' sake, for theirs is the kingdom of Heaven.
(1) Happy are those who are humble, for they will inherit the kingdom of Heaven. (2) Happy are the gentle, for they will enjoy the earth. (3) Happy are those who grieve, for they will be comforted. (4) Happy are those who seek justice, for they will be satisfied. (5) Happy are the compassionate, for they will receive compassion. (6) Happy are the pure in heart, for they will see God. (7) Happy are the peacemakers, for they will be called children of God. (8) Happy are those who are persecuted for the sake of justice, for theirs is the kingdom of Heaven.
The beatitudes are part of a sermon Our Lord once preached to the people on the Mount. (Matt. 5). When Our Lord wished to preach, the Jews would not always allow Him to enter their synagogues or meeting houses; so He preached to the people in the open air. Sometimes He stood in a boat by the seashore; sometimes on a little hill, with the people standing or sitting near Him. Did you ever think how you would have acted if you lived at that time and were present when Our Lord preached? How anxious you would have been to get near to Him? How you would have pushed your way through the crowd and listened to every word? Why, then, do you sometimes pay so little attention in church or at instructions when the words of Our Lord are repeated to you? Our Lord instituted a Church which, as we know, is sometimes called the kingdom of Heaven. In this sermon He laid down the condition for being good subjects of His kingdom; that is, He gives the virtues we should practice to be good children of the Church. He tells us what rewards we shall have for practicing these virtues and leading a holy life: namely, God's grace and blessing in this world and everlasting glory in Heaven.
The beatitudes are part of a sermon that Jesus once preached to the people on the Mount. (Matt. 5). When Jesus wanted to preach, the Jews wouldn’t always let Him enter their synagogues or meeting houses, so He spoke to the people outdoors. Sometimes He stood in a boat by the seashore; other times on a small hill, with people standing or sitting around Him. Have you ever thought about how you would have acted if you lived back then and were present when Jesus preached? How eager you would have been to get close to Him? How you would have pushed your way through the crowd to hear every word? So why do you sometimes pay so little attention in church or during lessons when the words of Jesus are spoken to you? Jesus established a Church which, as we know, is sometimes called the kingdom of Heaven. In this sermon, He outlined the conditions for being good members of His kingdom; He shares the virtues we should practice to be good children of the Church. He tells us what rewards we will receive for practicing these virtues and living a holy life: namely, God’s grace and blessing in this world and everlasting glory in Heaven.
(1) "Poor in spirit." One is poor in spirit if he does not set his heart upon riches and the goods of this world in such a way that he would be willing to offend God in order to possess them, or rather than part with them. Thus one who has no money but who would do anything to get it, would be poor, but not poor in spirit, and therefore not among those Our Lord calls blessed. If we are really poor and wish to be poor in spirit also, we must be contented with our lot—with what God gives us—and never complain against Him. No matter how poor, miserable, or afflicted we may be, we could still be worse, since we can find others in a worse condition than we are. We do not endure every species of misery, but only this or that particular kind; and if the rest were added, how much worse our condition would be! The very greatest misery is to be in a state of sin. If we are poor and in sin, our condition is indeed pitiable, for we have no consolation; but if we are virtuous in poverty, bearing our trials in patience and resignation for the love of God, we have the rich treasures of His grace and every assurance of future happiness. On the other hand, if one is very rich and gives freely and plentifully to the poor and works of charity, and is willing to part with riches rather than offend God, such a one is poor in spirit and can be called blessed. It is a great mistake to risk our souls for things we must leave to others at our death. Sometimes those who leave the greatest inheritance are soonest forgotten and despised, because the money or property bequeathed gives rise to numerous lawsuits, quarrels and jealousies among the relatives, and thus becomes a very curse to that family, whose members hate one another on its account. Or it may happen that the heirs thoughtlessly enjoy and foolishly squander the wealth the man, now dead, has labored so hard to accumulate, while he, perhaps, is suffering in Hell for sins committed in securing it. Again, how many children have been ruined through the wealth left them by their parents! Instead of using it for good purposes they have made it a means of sin; often lose their faith and souls on account of it; and in their ingratitude never offer a prayer or give an alms for the soul of the parent, who in his anxiety to leave all to them left nothing in charity to the Church or the poor. Surely it is the greatest folly to set our hearts upon that which can be of no value to us after death. When a person dies men ask: What wealth has he left behind? But God and the angels ask, What merits has he sent before him?
(1) "Poor in spirit." A person is poor in spirit if they don’t focus on wealth and material possessions to the point where they would upset God to gain or keep them. So, someone who has no money but would do anything to get it might be poor in a financial sense, but not poor in spirit, and therefore not among those Our Lord calls blessed. If we truly want to be poor in spirit as well, we need to be content with what we have—what God has given us—and not complain about it. No matter how poor, miserable, or troubled we are, we could always be worse since there are others in greater distress. We don’t suffer every kind of misery, just this or that specific one; and if we faced all of them, our situation would be far worse! The worst misery is to be in a state of sin. If we are poor and in sin, our situation is indeed tragic, as we have no comfort; but if we are virtuous in our poverty, enduring our hardships patiently and with acceptance for the love of God, we possess the rich treasures of His grace and the sure promise of future happiness. Conversely, if someone is very rich but generously shares with the poor and charitable causes, and is willing to part with their wealth instead of offending God, that person is poor in spirit and can be considered blessed. It’s a huge mistake to risk our souls for things that we will leave behind for others when we die. Sometimes the people who leave the biggest inheritances are the ones who are soon forgotten and despised, because the money or property they left leads to countless lawsuits, disputes, and jealousy among relatives, turning into a curse for that family, causing them to hate one another over it. Or the heirs might carelessly spend and waste the wealth that their now-deceased loved one worked so hard to build up, while that person could be suffering in Hell for the sins committed to acquire it. Moreover, how many children have faced ruin because of the wealth left to them by their parents! Instead of using it for good, they’ve turned it into a tool for sin; often losing their faith and souls over it; and in their ingratitude, they never say a prayer or give anything to help the soul of their parent, who, in their desire to provide for them, neglected to give anything in charity to the Church or the poor. Truly, it's the greatest foolishness to fixate on what holds no value for us after death. When someone dies, people ask: What wealth did they leave behind? But God and the angels ask, What merits did they send ahead of them?
(2) "Possess the land"—that is, the promised or holy land, which was a figure of the Church. Therefore it means the meek shall be true members of Our Lord's Church here on earth and hereafter in Heaven, and be beloved by all.
(2) "Own the land"—that is, the promised or holy land, which represents the Church. So it means that the gentle shall be genuine members of Our Lord's Church both on earth and later in Heaven, and will be cherished by everyone.
(3) "That mourn." Suffering is good for us if we bear it patiently. It makes us more like Our Blessed Lord, who was called the Man of Sorrows.
(3) "That mourn." Going through difficult times can be beneficial if we endure them with patience. It makes us more like Our Blessed Lord, who was known as the Man of Sorrows.
(4) "Justice"—that is, all kinds of virtue. "Filled"—that is, with goodness and grace. In other words, if we ask and really wish to become virtuous, we shall become so. St. Joseph is called in Holy Scripture "a just man," to show that he practiced every virtue.
(4) "Justice"—meaning all types of virtue. "Filled"—meaning with goodness and grace. In other words, if we ask and truly want to be virtuous, we will become virtuous. St. Joseph is referred to in the Bible as "a just man" to demonstrate that he practiced every virtue.
(5) If we are "merciful" to others, God will be merciful to us.
(5) If we are "kind" to others, God will be kind to us.
(6) "Clean of heart"—that is, pure in thoughts, words, deeds, and looks.
(6) "Clean of heart"—meaning pure in thoughts, words, actions, and looks.
(7) "Peacemakers." If persons who try to make peace and settle disputes are called the children of God, those who, on the contrary, try to stir up dissensions should be called the children of the devil. Never tell the evil you may hear of another, especially to the one of whom it was spoken; and never carry stories from one to another: it is contemptible, and sinful as well. If you have nothing good to say of the character of another, be silent, unless your duty compels you to speak. Never be a child of the devil by exciting jealousy, hatred, or revenge in anyone; but on the contrary, make peace wherever you can, and be one of the children of God.
(7) "Peacemakers." If people who work to create peace and resolve conflicts are called the children of God, then those who, on the other hand, try to stir up arguments should be considered the children of the devil. Never share negative things you hear about someone, especially with the person it concerns; and don’t pass along gossip from one person to another: it’s disgraceful and wrong. If you have nothing positive to say about someone’s character, stay quiet, unless you really need to speak up. Don’t be a child of the devil by encouraging jealousy, hatred, or revenge in others; instead, promote peace wherever you can, and be one of the children of God.
(8) "Suffer persecution." Therefore, when you are badly treated on account of your piety or religion, remember you are like the martyrs of your holy faith, suffering for virtue and truth, and that you will receive your reward.
(8) "Endure persecution." So, when you're mistreated because of your faith or beliefs, remember that you're like the martyrs of your sacred faith, suffering for what is right and true, and that you will be rewarded.
*186 Q. Which are the twelve fruits of the Holy Ghost? A. The twelve fruits of the Holy Ghost are charity, joy, peace, patience, benignity, goodness, long-suffering, mildness, faith, modesty, continency, and chastity.
*186 Q. What are the twelve fruits of the Holy Spirit? A. The twelve fruits of the Holy Spirit are love, joy, peace, patience, kindness, goodness, faithfulness, gentleness, self-control, modesty, continence, and chastity.
"Fruits," the things that grow from the gifts of the Holy Ghost. "Charity," love of God and our neighbor, "Peace" with God and man and ourselves. With God, because we are His friends. With man, because we deal justly with all and are kind to all. With ourselves, because we have a good conscience, that does not accuse us of sin. "Benignity," disposition to do good and show kindness. "Long-suffering"—same as patience. "Modesty, continency, and chastity" refer to purity in thoughts, words, looks, and actions.
"Fruits," the things that grow from the gifts of the Holy Spirit. "Charity," love for God and our neighbors, "Peace" with God, others, and ourselves. With God, because we are His friends. With others, because we treat everyone fairly and kindly. With ourselves, because we have a clear conscience that doesn't blame us for sin. "Benignity," the desire to do good and show kindness. "Long-suffering"—the same as patience. "Modesty, continency, and chastity" refer to purity in thoughts, words, looks, and actions.
Lesson 17
ON THE SACRAMENT OF PENANCE
Lesson 17
ON THE SACRAMENT OF PENANCE
When Our Blessed Lord redeemed us, He applied the benefits of the Redemption in the Sacrament of Baptism. By this Baptism He freed us from sin and the slavery of the devil; He restored us to God's grace; He reopened for us Heaven; made us once more children of God: in a word, He placed us in the condition in which we were before our fall through the sin of our first parents. This was certainly a great kindness bestowed upon us, and one would think we would never forget it, and never more lose God's friendship by any fault of ours; especially when we had seen the great miseries brought upon the world by sin, and had learned something of Hell where we would have been, and of Heaven which we would have lost, if Our Lord had not redeemed us. Our Blessed Lord saw, however, that we would forget His benefits, and again, even after Baptism, go freely into the slavery of the devil. How, then, could we be saved? We could not be baptized again, because Baptism can be given only once. Our good Lord in His kindness instituted another Sacrament, by which we could once more be freed from sin if we had the misfortune to fall into it after Baptism—it is the Sacrament of Penance. It is called the plank in a shipwreck. When sailors are shipwrecked and thrown helplessly into the ocean, their only hope is some floating plank that may bear them to the shore. So when we fall after Baptism we are thrown into the great ocean of sin, where we must perish if we do not rest upon the Sacrament of Penance, which will bring us once more in safety to the friendship of God. How very thankful the poor shipwrecked sailors would be to anyone who would offer them a plank while they are in danger! Do you think they would refuse to use it? In like manner how thankful we should be for the Sacrament of Penance, and how anxious we should be to use it when we arc in danger of losing our souls!
When our Blessed Lord redeemed us, He brought the benefits of that Redemption into the Sacrament of Baptism. Through Baptism, He freed us from sin and the grip of the devil; He restored us to God's grace; He opened Heaven for us again and made us children of God once more. In short, He put us back in the same state we were in before we fell due to the sin of our first parents. This was certainly a generous gift, and one would think we would never forget it or lose God's friendship through our own mistakes, especially after witnessing the great suffering caused by sin and learning about Hell, where we would have ended up, and Heaven, which we would have missed if Our Lord had not redeemed us. However, our Blessed Lord knew that we would forget His gifts and would again, even after Baptism, willingly return to the devil's control. So, how could we be saved? We can't be baptized again since Baptism only happens once. In His kindness, our good Lord established another Sacrament that allows us to be freed from sin if we unfortunately fall into it after Baptism—it is the Sacrament of Penance. It's like a plank in a shipwreck. When sailors are shipwrecked and thrown helplessly into the ocean, their only hope is a floating plank that might bring them to safety. Similarly, when we fall after Baptism, we find ourselves in the vast ocean of sin, where we would perish without the Sacrament of Penance, which brings us back safely to God's friendship. Imagine how grateful shipwrecked sailors would be to someone offering them a plank while they're in danger! Do you think they would refuse to use it? In the same way, we should be very thankful for the Sacrament of Penance and eager to use it when we are in danger of losing our souls!
The Sacrament of Penance shows the very great kindness of Our Lord. He might have said: I saved them once, and I will not trouble Myself more about them; if they want to sin again, let them perish. But no, He forgives us and saves us as often as we sincerely call on Him for help, being truly sorry for our sins. He left this power also to His Apostles, saying to them: As often as any poor sinner shall come to you and show that he is truly sorry for his sins, and has the determination not to commit them again, and confesses them to you, I give you the power to pardon his sins in the Sacrament of Penance. The forgiveness of your sins is the chief though not the only blessing you receive in the reception of this Sacrament, through which you derive so many and great advantages from the exhortation, instruction, or advice of your confessor.
The Sacrament of Penance reflects the incredible kindness of Our Lord. He could have easily said, "I saved them once, and I'm not going to bother with them again; if they choose to sin again, that's their problem." But instead, He forgives us and saves us every time we sincerely ask for His help and truly regret our sins. He also gave this authority to His Apostles, telling them: "Whenever a sinner comes to you, shows real remorse for their sins, decides not to commit them again, and confesses, I give you the power to forgive their sins in the Sacrament of Penance." The forgiveness of your sins is the main, though not the only, blessing you receive from this Sacrament, through which you gain numerous benefits from the guidance, instruction, or advice of your confessor.
Is it not a great benefit to have a friend to whom you can go with the trials of your mind and soul, your troubles, temptations, sins, and secrets? You have that friend—the priest in the confessional. He is willing to help you, for he consecrated his life to God to help men to save their souls. He is able to help you, for he understands your difficulties, sins, and temptations, and the means of overcoming them. He has made these things the study of his life, and derives still greater knowledge of them from hearing the sad complaints of so many relating their secret sorrows or afflictions, and begging his advice.
Isn't it a huge benefit to have a friend you can turn to with your worries and struggles, your troubles, temptations, sins, and secrets? You have that friend—the priest in the confessional. He wants to help you because he dedicated his life to God to assist people in saving their souls. He can help you because he understands your challenges, sins, and temptations, and knows how to overcome them. He has made these issues his life's work and gains even deeper insight from listening to countless people share their hidden sorrows and struggles, seeking his guidance.
Then you are sure that whatever you tell him in the confessional will never be made known to others, even if the priest has to die to conceal it. You might tell your secrets to a friend, and if you afterwards offended him he would probably reveal all you told him. The priest asks no reward for the service he gives you in the confessional, but loves to help you, because he has pledged himself to God to do so, and would sin if he did not. Some enemies of our holy religion have tried to make people believe that Catholics have to pay the priest in confession for forgiving their sins; but every Catholic, even the youngest child who has been to confession, knows this to be untrue, and a base calumny against our holy religion; even those who assert it do not believe it themselves. The good done in the confessional will never be known in this world. How many persons have been saved from sin, suicide, death, and other evils by the advice and encouragement received in confession! How many persons who have fallen into the lowest depths of sin have by the Sacrament of Penance been raised up and made to lead good, respectable lives—a blessing to themselves, their families, and society!
Then you can be sure that anything you share with him in the confessional will never be revealed to anyone else, even if the priest has to die to keep it secret. You might share secrets with a friend, but if you later upset him, he would probably share everything you told him. The priest doesn't ask for anything in return for the service he provides in the confessional; he genuinely wants to help you because he has committed himself to God to do so, and it would be wrong not to. Some opponents of our faith have tried to convince people that Catholics must pay the priest for absolution of their sins; however, every Catholic, even the youngest child who has gone to confession, knows that this is false and a nasty lie against our faith; even those who claim it don’t really believe it themselves. The good that happens in the confessional will never be known in this world. How many people have been saved from sin, suicide, death, and other problems thanks to the guidance and support they received in confession! How many individuals who have sunk to the lowest point of sin have been lifted up by the Sacrament of Penance and gone on to live good, respectable lives—a blessing to themselves, their families, and society!
187 Q. What is the Sacrament of Penance? A. Penance is a Sacrament in which the sins committed after Baptism are forgiven.
187 Q. What is the Sacrament of Penance? A. Penance is a Sacrament where the sins committed after Baptism are forgiven.
One who has never been baptized could not go to confession and receive absolution, nor indeed any of the Sacraments.
One who has never been baptized cannot go to confession and receive forgiveness, nor can they participate in any of the Sacraments.
*188 Q. How does the Sacrament of Penance remit sin, and restore the soul to the friendship of God? A. The Sacrament of Penance remits sin and restores the friendship of God to the soul by means of the absolution of the priest.
*188 Q. How does the Sacrament of Penance remove sin and restore the soul’s friendship with God? A. The Sacrament of Penance removes sin and restores the soul’s friendship with God through the priest's absolution.
"Absolution" means the words the priest says at the time he forgives the sins. Absolve means to loose or free. When ministers or ambassadors are sent by our government to represent the United States in England, France, Germany, or other countries, whatever they do there officially is done by the United States. If they make an agreement with the governments to which they are sent, the United States sanctions it, and the very moment they sign the agreement it is signed and sanctioned by the authority of our government whose representatives they are, and their official action becomes the action of the United States itself. But when their term of office expires, though they remain in the foreign countries, they have no longer any power to sign agreements in the name and with the authority of the United States.
"Absolution" refers to the words the priest uses when he forgives sins. To absolve means to release or set free. When ministers or ambassadors are sent by our government to represent the United States in England, France, Germany, or other countries, everything they do there officially is done on behalf of the United States. If they reach an agreement with the governments they are sent to, the United States approves it, and the moment they sign the agreement, it is signed and approved by the authority of our government that they represent, making their official actions the actions of the United States itself. However, when their term ends, even if they still stay in the foreign countries, they no longer have the authority to sign agreements in the name and with the authority of the United States.
You see, therefore, that it is the power that is given them, and not their own, that they exercise. In like manner Our Lord commissioned His priests and gave them the power to forgive sins, and whatever they do in the Sacrament of Penance He Himself does. At the very moment the priest pronounces the words of absolution on earth his sentence is ratified in Heaven and the sins of the penitent are blotted out.
You see, it’s the power that’s given to them, not their own, that they use. Similarly, our Lord appointed His priests and gave them the authority to forgive sins; whatever they do in the Sacrament of Penance, He Himself does. At the exact moment the priest speaks the words of absolution on earth, his decision is confirmed in Heaven, and the sins of the person confessing are erased.
It may increase your veneration for the Sacrament to know the precise manner in which absolution is given. After the confession and giving of the penance, the priest first prays for the sinner, saying: "May Almighty God have mercy on you, and, your sins being forgiven, bring you to life everlasting. Amen." Then, raising his right hand over the penitent, he says: "May the Almighty and merciful Lord grant you pardon, absolution, and remission of your sins. Amen." Then he continues: "May Our Lord Jesus Christ absolve you, and I, by His authority, absolve you from every bond of excommunication and interdict, as far as I have power and you stand in need. Then I absolve you from your sins, in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Amen." At these last words he makes the Sign of the Cross over the penitent. In conclusion he directs to God a prayer in behalf of the penitent in the following words: "May the Passion of Our Lord Jesus Christ, the merits of the Blessed Virgin Mary and of all the saints, and whatsoever good you may have done or evil you may have suffered, be to you unto the remission of your sins, the increase of grace, and the recompense of everlasting life. Amen." Then the priest says, "God bless you," "Go in peace," or some other expression showing his delight at your reconciliation with God.
It might deepen your respect for the Sacrament to understand exactly how absolution is given. After the confession and assigning of penance, the priest first prays for the sinner, saying: "May Almighty God have mercy on you, and may your sins be forgiven, bringing you to everlasting life. Amen." Then, raising his right hand over the penitent, he says: "May the Almighty and merciful Lord grant you pardon, absolution, and forgiveness of your sins. Amen." He continues: "May Our Lord Jesus Christ absolve you, and I, by His authority, absolve you from every bond of excommunication and interdict, as far as I have power and as you stand in need. I now absolve you from your sins, in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit. Amen." At these final words, he makes the Sign of the Cross over the penitent. Finally, he offers a prayer to God on behalf of the penitent, saying: "May the Passion of Our Lord Jesus Christ, the merits of the Blessed Virgin Mary and all the saints, and whatever good you may have done or evil you may have suffered, bring you the forgiveness of your sins, the increase of grace, and the reward of eternal life. Amen." Then the priest says, "God bless you," "Go in peace," or some other expression showing his happiness at your reconciliation with God.
*189 Q. How do you know that the priest has the power of absolving from the sins committed after Baptism? A. I know that the priest has the power of absolving from sins committed after Baptism, because Jesus Christ granted that power to the priests of His Church when He said: "Receive ye the Holy Ghost. Whose sins you shall forgive, they are forgiven them; whose sins you shall retain, they are retained."
*189 Q. How do you know that the priest has the power to forgive sins committed after Baptism? A. I know that the priest has the power to forgive sins committed after Baptism because Jesus Christ gave that authority to the priests of His Church when He said: "Receive the Holy Spirit. If you forgive anyone's sins, they are forgiven; if you do not forgive them, they are not forgiven."
Every Christian knows Our Lord Himself had power to forgive sins:—(1) because He was God, and (2) because He often did forgive them while on earth, and proved that He did by performing some miracle; as, for example (Mark 2; John 5), when He cured the poor men who had been sick and suffering for many years, He said to them, "Thy sins are forgiven thee; arise, take up thy bed, and walk," and the men did so. Since Our Lord had the power Himself, He could give it to His Apostles if He wished, and He did give it to them and their successors. For if He did not, how could we and all others who, after Baptism, have fallen into sin be cleansed from it? This Sacrament of Penance was for all time, and so He left the power with His Church, which is to last as long as there is a living human being upon the earth. Our Lord promised to His Apostles before His death this power to forgive sins (Matt. 18:18), and He gave it to them after His resurrection (John 20:23), when He appeared to them and breathed on them, and said: "Whose sins you shall forgive, they are forgiven them; and whose sins you shall retain, they are retained."
Every Christian knows that Our Lord had the power to forgive sins:—(1) because He was God, and (2) because He frequently forgave sins while He was on earth, demonstrating His power by performing miracles; for example (Mark 2; John 5), when He healed the sick men who had suffered for many years, He said to them, "Your sins are forgiven; get up, take your mat, and walk," and they did. Since Our Lord had this power Himself, He could also give it to His Apostles if He wanted to, and He did give it to them and their successors. If He hadn’t, how could we and everyone else who has sinned after Baptism be cleansed? This Sacrament of Penance was established for all time, so He entrusted this power to His Church, which will exist as long as there are living human beings on earth. Before His death, Our Lord promised His Apostles the power to forgive sins (Matt. 18:18), and He bestowed this power upon them after His resurrection (John 20:23) when He appeared to them, breathed on them, and said: "Whose sins you forgive are forgiven; and whose sins you retain are retained."
*190 Q. How do the priests of the Church exercise the power of forgiving sins? A. The priests of the Church exercise the power of forgiving sins by hearing the confession of sins, and granting pardon for them as ministers of God and in His name.
*190 Q. How do the priests of the Church exercise the power of forgiving sins? A. The priests of the Church exercise the power of forgiving sins by listening to confessions and granting forgiveness as representatives of God and in His name.
The power to forgive sins implies the obligation of going to confession; because, as most sins are secret, how could the Apostles know what sins to forgive and what sins to retain—that is, not to forgive—unless they were told by the sinner what sins he had committed? They could not see into his heart as God can, and know his sins; and so if the sinner wished his sins forgiven, he had to confess them to the Apostles or their successors. Therefore, since we have the Sacrament of Penance, we must also have confession.
The ability to forgive sins requires the need for confession; since most sins are hidden, how could the Apostles know which ones to forgive and which ones to keep—meaning not to forgive—unless the sinner revealed the sins they committed? They couldn’t look into his heart like God can and know his sins; so if the sinner wanted forgiveness, he had to confess his sins to the Apostles or their successors. Therefore, since we have the Sacrament of Penance, we also need confession.
191 Q. What must we do to receive the Sacrament of Penance worthily? A. To receive the Sacrament of Penance worthily we must do five things:
191 Q. What do we need to do to receive the Sacrament of Penance in a worthy manner? A. To receive the Sacrament of Penance worthily, we need to do five things:
(1) We must examine our conscience. (2) We must have sorrow for our sins. (3) We must make a firm resolution never more to offend God. (4) We must confess our sins to the priest. (5) We must accept the penance which the priest gives us.
(1) We need to reflect on our actions. (2) We should feel genuine remorse for our wrongdoings. (3) We have to make a strong commitment to never offend God again. (4) We need to confess our sins to the priest. (5) We should accept the penance that the priest assigns us.
When we are about to go to confession the first thing we should do is to pray to the Holy Ghost to give us light to know and remember all our sins; to fully understand how displeasing they are to God, and to have a great sorrow for them, which includes the resolution of never committing them again. The next thing we should do is:
When we’re about to go to confession, the first thing we should do is pray to the Holy Spirit to give us clarity to know and remember all our sins; to truly grasp how displeasing they are to God, and to feel deep regret for them, along with the commitment to never commit them again. The next thing we should do is:
(1) "Examine our conscience"; and first of all we find out how long a time it is since our last confession, and whether we made a good confession then and received Holy Communion and performed our penance. The best method of examining is to take the Commandments and go over each one in our mind, seeing if we have broken it, and in what way; for example: First. "I am the Lord thy God; thou shalt not have strange gods before Me." Have I honored God? Have I said my prayers morning and night; have I said them with attention and devotion? Have I thanked God for all His blessings? Have I been more anxious to please others than to please God, or offended Him for the sake of others? Second "Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vain." Have I cursed? Have I taken God's name in vain or spoken without reverence of holy things? Third. "Remember thou keep holy the Sabbath day." Have I neglected to hear Mass through my own fault on Sundays and holy days of obligation? Have I kept others from Mass? Have I been late, and at what part of the Mass did I come in? Have I been willfully distracted at Mass or have I distracted others? Have I done servile work without necessity? Fourth. "Honor thy father and thy mother." Have I been disobedient to parents or others who have authority over me—to spiritual or temporal superiors, teachers, etc.? Have I slighted or been ashamed of parents because they were poor or uneducated? Have I neglected to give them what help I could when they were in need of it? Have I spoken of them with disrespect or called them names that were not proper? Fifth. "Thou shalt not kill." Have I done anything that might lead to killing? Have I been angry or have I tried to take revenge? Have I borne hatred or tried to injure others? Have I given scandal? Sixth. "Thou shalt not commit adultery." Have I indulged in any bad thoughts, looked at any bad pictures or objects, listened to any bad conversation, told or listened to bad or immodest jokes or stories, or, in general, spoken of bad things? Have I done any bad actions or desired to do any while alone or with others? Seventh. "Thou shalt not steal." Have I stolen anything myself or helped or advised others to steal? Have I received anything or part of anything that I knew to be stolen? Do I owe money and not pay it when I can? Have I bought anything with the intention of never paying for it or at least knowing I never could pay for it? Have I made restitution when told to do so by my confessor; or have I put it off from time to time? Have I failed to give back what belonged to another? Have I found anything and not tried to discover its owner, or have I kept it in my possession after I knew to whom it belonged? Have I cheated in business or at games? Eighth. "Thou shalt not bear false witness against thy neighbor." Have I told lies or injured anyone by my talk? Have I told the faults of others without any necessity? It is not allowed to tell the faults of others—even when you tell the truth about them—unless some good comes of the telling. Ninth. "Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor's wife." This can come into our examination on the Sixth Commandment. Tenth. "Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor's goods." This can come into our examination on the Seventh Commandment.
(1) "Examine our conscience"; and first, we should find out how long it has been since our last confession, and whether that confession was sincere, if we received Holy Communion, and if we completed our penance. The best way to examine ourselves is to go through the Commandments one by one in our minds, checking if we've broken any and how. For example: First. "I am the Lord your God; you shall have no other gods before Me." Have I honored God? Have I said my prayers in the morning and at night, and have I done so with focus and devotion? Have I thanked God for all His blessings? Have I been more concerned about pleasing others than pleasing God, or offended Him for the sake of others? Second "You shall not take the name of the Lord your God in vain." Have I cursed? Have I disrespected God's name or spoken irreverently about holy things? Third. "Remember to keep the Sabbath day holy." Have I skipped Mass on Sundays and holy days of obligation due to my own fault? Have I prevented others from attending Mass? Have I been late, and at what part of the Mass did I arrive? Have I deliberately distracted myself at Mass or distracted others? Have I done unnecessary work on the Sabbath? Fourth. "Honor your father and your mother." Have I been disobedient to my parents or others in authority over me—whether spiritual or temporal superiors, teachers, etc.? Have I looked down on my parents or been embarrassed by them because they are poor or uneducated? Have I failed to help them when they were in need? Have I spoken about them disrespectfully or used inappropriate names? Fifth. "You shall not kill." Have I done anything that could lead to killing? Have I been angry or sought revenge? Have I harbored hatred or tried to harm others? Have I caused scandal? Sixth. "You shall not commit adultery." Have I entertained bad thoughts, looked at inappropriate images or objects, listened to inappropriate conversations, told or listened to rude jokes or stories, or generally talked about bad things? Have I committed wrongful actions or wanted to do so while alone or with others? Seventh. "You shall not steal." Have I stolen anything myself or helped or encouraged others to steal? Have I received anything I knew was stolen? Do I owe money and not repay it when I can? Have I bought anything with the intention of not paying for it, or knowing I could never pay for it? Have I made restitution when my confessor told me to, or have I kept putting it off? Have I failed to return what belonged to someone else? Have I found something and not tried to find its owner, or kept it after I knew who it belonged to? Have I cheated in business or games? Eighth. "You shall not bear false witness against your neighbor." Have I lied or harmed anyone with my words? Have I pointed out others' faults needlessly? It is not allowed to speak about the faults of others—even when the truth is told—unless telling it serves some good. Ninth. "You shall not covet your neighbor's wife." This relates to our examination under the Sixth Commandment. Tenth. "You shall not covet your neighbor's goods." This relates to our examination under the Seventh Commandment.
After examining yourself on the Commandments of God, examine yourself on the Commandments of the Church.
After reflecting on the Commandments of God, take a look at the Commandments of the Church.
First. "To hear Mass on Sundays and holy days of obligation." This has been considered in the examination on the Third Commandment. Second "To fast and abstain on the days appointed." Have I knowingly eaten meat on Ash Wednesday or the Fridays of Lent, or not done some chosen penance on the other Fridays of the year, or not fasted on Ash Wednesday or Good Friday, unless I had good reason not to do so on account of poor health or other reason? Third. "To confess at least once a year." Is it over a year, and how much over it, since I have been to confession? Fourth. "To receive Holy Eucharist during the Easter time." Did I go to Holy Communion between the first Sunday of Lent and Trinity Sunday? If not, I have committed a mortal sin. Fifth. "To contribute to the support of our pastors." Have I helped the church and reasonably paid my share of its expenses—given to charity and the like, or have I made others pay for the light, heat, and other things that cost money in the church, and shared in their benefits without giving according to my means? Have I kept what was given me for the church or other charity, or stolen from the church and not stated that circumstance when I confessed that I stole? Sixth. "Not to marry persons who are not Catholics, or who are related to us within the third degree of kindred, or privately without witnesses, nor to solemnize marriage at forbidden times." Have I anything to tell on this Commandment?
First. "To attend Mass on Sundays and holy days of obligation." This has been addressed in the discussion on the Third Commandment. Second, "To fast and abstain on the designated days." Have I knowingly eaten meat on Ash Wednesday or the Fridays during Lent, or not practiced some chosen act of penance on other Fridays throughout the year, or not fasted on Ash Wednesday or Good Friday, unless I had a valid reason not to—like poor health or another justification? Third. "To confess at least once a year." Has it been over a year, and if so, how long has it been since I last went to confession? Fourth. "To receive Holy Eucharist during the Easter season." Did I receive Holy Communion between the first Sunday of Lent and Trinity Sunday? If not, that’s a serious sin. Fifth. "To contribute to the support of our pastors." Have I supported the church and paid my fair share of its expenses—donated to charity and similar causes, or have I let others cover the costs of light, heat, and other expenses at the church while benefiting from them without contributing according to my means? Have I kept what was intended for the church or other charitable purposes, or taken from the church and not mentioned that when I confessed? Sixth. "Not to marry people who are not Catholics, or who are related to us within the third degree of kinship, or privately without witnesses, nor to conduct marriages at forbidden times." Do I have anything to disclose regarding this Commandment?
After examining yourself on the Commandments of God and of His Church, examine yourself on the capital sins, especially on "Pride." Have I been impudent and stubborn, vain about my dress, and the like? Have I despised others simply on account of poverty or something they could not help? "Gluttony." Have I ever taken intoxicating drink to excess or broken a promise not to take it? Have I knowingly caused others to be intoxicated? "Sloth." Have I wasted my time willfully and neglected to do my duty at school or elsewhere? After examining yourself on the Commandments and capital sins, examine yourself on the duties of your state of life. If you are at school, how have you studied? You should study not alone to please your parents or teachers, but for the sake of learning. If you are at work, have you been faithful to your employer, and done your work well and honestly?
After reflecting on the Commandments of God and His Church, think about the seven deadly sins, especially "Pride." Have I been arrogant and stubborn, obsessed with my appearance, and the like? Have I looked down on others just because they are poor or in difficult situations? "Gluttony." Have I ever drunk excessively or broken a promise to avoid it? Have I intentionally made others drunk? "Sloth." Have I deliberately wasted my time and neglected my responsibilities at school or elsewhere? After considering the Commandments and the seven deadly sins, think about your responsibilities in your current life stage. If you're in school, how have you approached your studies? You should study not just to please your parents or teachers, but for the purpose of gaining knowledge. If you're at work, have you been loyal to your employer and done your job well and honestly?
The above method is generally recommended as the best in the examination of conscience. But you need not follow these exact questions; you can ask yourself any questions you please: the above questions are given only as examples of what you might ask, and to show you how to question yourself. It is useless to take any list of sins in a prayerbook and examine yourself by it, confessing the sins just as they are given. If you do take such a list and find in it some questions or sins that you do not understand, do not trouble yourself about them. In asking yourself the questions, if you find you have sinned against a Commandment, stop and consider how many times. There are few persons who sin against all the Commandments. Some sin against one and some against another. Find out the worst sin you have and the one you have most frequently committed, and be sure of telling it.
The method mentioned above is generally considered the best way to examine your conscience. However, you don’t have to stick to these exact questions; you can ask yourself anything you want. The questions provided are merely examples to guide you in self-reflection. There’s no point in taking a list of sins from a prayer book and using it to examine yourself by just confessing the sins as they appear. If you come across questions or sins on that list that you don't understand, don't stress about them. While you're asking yourself these questions, if you realize you've sinned against a Commandment, pause and think about how many times you’ve done so. Very few people sin against all the Commandments. Some may sin against one, while others may target another. Identify your worst sin and the one you've committed most often, and make sure to mention it.
(2) "Have sorrow for our sins." After examining your conscience and finding out the sins you have committed, the next thing is to be sorry for them. The sorrow is the most essential part in the whole Sacrament of Penance. In this Sacrament there are, as you know, three parts: contrition, confession, and satisfaction—and contrition is the most important part. When, therefore, we are preparing for confession, we should spend just as much time, and even more, in exciting ourselves to sorrow for our sins as in the examination of our conscience. Some persons forget this and spend all their time examining their conscience. We should pray for sorrow if we think we have none. Remember the act of contrition made at confession is not the sorrow, but only an outward sign by which we make known to the priest that we have the sorrow in our hearts, and therefore we must have the sorrow before making the confession—or at least, before receiving the absolution. Now what kind of sorrow must we have? Someone might say, I am not truly sorry because I cannot cry. If some of my friends died, I would be more sorry for that than for my sins. Do not make any such mistakes. The true and necessary kind of sorrow for sin is to know that by sin you have offended God, and now feel that it was very wrong, and that you have from this moment the firm determination never to offend Him more. If God adds to this a feeling that brings tears to your eyes, it is good, but not necessary.
(2) "Feel remorse for our sins." After reflecting on your conscience and identifying the sins you've committed, the next step is to genuinely regret them. This sorrow is the most crucial aspect of the Sacrament of Penance. As you know, this Sacrament consists of three parts: contrition, confession, and satisfaction—and contrition is the most vital part. So, when preparing for confession, we should spend just as much time, if not more, fostering our sorrow for our sins as we do examining our conscience. Some people overlook this and spend all their time just reflecting on their sins. We should pray for sorrow if we feel we lack it. Keep in mind that the act of contrition made during confession is not the sorrow itself, but merely an outward expression to show the priest that we feel sorrow in our hearts. Therefore, we must have this sorrow before making our confession—or at least before receiving absolution. Now, what kind of sorrow do we need to have? Someone might say, "I'm not really sorry because I can't cry. If some of my friends died, I'd be more upset about that than my sins." Don’t make that mistake. The true and necessary kind of sorrow for sin is recognizing that through sin, you have offended God, feeling that it was very wrong, and having a sincere determination from this moment to never offend Him again. If God also gives you feelings that bring tears to your eyes, that’s great, but it’s not required.
(3) Remember real sorrow for sin supposes and contains "a firm resolution" never to sin again. How can you say to God, "O my God, I am heartily sorry," etc., if you are waiting only for the next opportunity to sin? How can we be sorry for the past if we are going to do the same in the future? Do you think the thief would be sorry for his past thefts if he had his mind made up to steal again as soon as he had the chance? Ah, but you will say, nearly all persons sin again after confession. I know that; but when they were making their confession they thought they never would, and really meant never to sin again; but when temptation came, they forgot the good resolution, did not use God's help, and fell into sin again. I mean, therefore, that at the time you make the act of contrition you must really mean what you say and promise never to sin, and take every means you can to keep that promise. If you do fall afterwards, renew your promise as quickly as possible and make a greater effort than before. Be on your guard against those things that make you break your promise, and then your act of contrition will be a good one. A person may be afraid that he will fall again, but being afraid does not make his contrition worthless as long as he wishes, hopes, and intends never to sin again. We should always be afraid of falling into sin, and we will fall into it if we depend upon ourselves alone, and not on the help which God gives us in His grace.
(3) True sorrow for sin means having a "firm resolution" never to sin again. How can you say to God, "O my God, I am truly sorry," if you’re just waiting for the next chance to sin? How can we regret the past if we plan to do the same in the future? Would a thief really feel sorry for their past thefts if they were determined to steal again as soon as possible? You might argue that almost everyone sins again after confession. I get that; but when they were confessing, they truly believed they would never sin again and meant it. However, when temptation came, they forgot their good intentions, didn't rely on God's help, and fell back into sin. So, at the moment you express your sorrow, you need to genuinely mean what you say and commit to never sinning again, doing everything you can to keep that promise. If you do stumble later, renew your promise as soon as you can and make an even greater effort than before. Be vigilant against the things that lead you to break your promise, and then your act of contrition will be sincere. Someone might worry they will fall again, but that fear doesn’t make their contrition meaningless as long as they wish, hope, and intend never to sin again. We should always be cautious about falling into sin, and if we rely only on ourselves without seeking God's help through His grace, we will indeed fall.
(4) "Confess our sins." Having made the necessary preparation, you will next go into the confessional; and while you are waiting for the priest to hear you, you should say the Confiteor. When the priest turns to you, bless yourself and say: "Bless me, father, for I have sinned. It is a month or a week (or whatever time it may be) since my last confession, and I have since committed these sins." Then tell your sins as you found them in examining yourself. In confession you must tell only such things as are sins. You must not tell all the details and a long story with every sin. For example, if a boy should confess that he went to see a friend, and after that met another friend, and when he came home he was asked what had kept him, and he told a lie. Now, the going to see the friend and the meeting of the other friend, and all the rest, was not a sin: the sin was telling the lie, and that was all that should have been confessed. Therefore, tell only the sins. Then tell only your own sins, and be very careful not to mention anyone's name—even your own—in confession. Be brief, and do not say, I broke the First Commandment or the Second by doing so and so; tell the sin simply as it is, and the priest himself will know what Commandment you violated. Again, when you have committed a sin several times a day do not multiply that by the number of days since your last confession and say to the priest, I have told lies, for example, four hundred and forty-two times. Such things only confuse you and make you forget your sins. Simply say, I am in the habit of telling lies, about so many, three or four—or whatever number it may be—times a day. Never say "sometimes" or "often" when you are telling the number of your sins. Sometimes might mean ten or it might mean twenty times. How then can the priest know the number by that expression? Give the number as nearly as you can, and if you do not know the whole number give the number of times a day, etc. Never say "maybe" I did so and so; because maybe you did not, and the priest cannot judge. Tell what you consider your worst sin first, then if there be any sin you are ashamed to tell or do not know how to tell, say to the priest: "Father, I have a sin I am ashamed to tell, or a sin I do not know how to tell"; and then the priest will ask you some questions and help you to tell it. But never think of going away from the confessional with some sin that you did not tell. The devil sometimes tempts people to do this, because he does not like to see them in a state of grace and friends of God. When you are committing the sin, he makes you believe it is not a great sin, and that you can tell it in confession; but after you have committed it he makes you believe that it is a most terrible sin, and that if you tell it, the priest will scold you severely. So it is concealed and the person leaves the confessional with a new sin upon his soul—that of sacrilege. When Judas was tempted to betray Our Lord, he thought thirty pieces of silver a great deal of money; and then, after he had committed the sin, he cared nothing for the money, but went and threw it away, and thought his sin so dreadful that he hanged himself, dying in despair.
(4) "Confess our sins." After you’ve prepared yourself, go into the confessional. While you wait for the priest, say the Confiteor. When the priest is ready to hear you, bless yourself and say: "Bless me, Father, for I have sinned. It has been a month or a week (or however long it’s been) since my last confession, and I have committed these sins." Then share your sins based on your self-reflection. In confession, only discuss things that are sins. Avoid giving long stories with every sin. For instance, if a boy confesses that he went to see a friend, then met another friend, and when he got home was asked what took him so long and he lied, the sin is lying—not visiting friends. So, just confess the lie. Always stick to your own sins and don’t mention anyone else’s name—even your own. Be concise and avoid saying, "I broke the First Commandment or the Second by doing so and so;" just state the sin directly, and the priest will understand which Commandment you broke. Also, if you’ve sinned multiple times in a day, don’t multiply that by the number of days since your last confession and say something like, "I’ve told lies four hundred and forty-two times." That just confuses you and obscures your sins. Instead, say, "I tend to tell lies about three or four times a day." Don’t use "sometimes" or "often" when mentioning your sins' frequency; it’s too vague. Just do your best to give an accurate count, and if you’re unsure, provide your daily average. Never say, "Maybe I did so and so;" because you might not have, and the priest needs clear information to help you. Start with what you think is your worst sin, and if there’s something you’re embarrassed to share or don’t know how to express, tell the priest: "Father, I have a sin I’m ashamed to mention, or one I don’t know how to explain." The priest will ask questions to help you. But never leave the confessional with a sin you didn’t mention. The devil sometimes tempts people to do this because he hates seeing them in a state of grace and being friends of God. While you’re sinning, he convinces you it’s not a big deal, and you can confess it later; but after you’ve sinned, he makes you feel it’s a terrible sin, convincing you the priest will scold you harshly if you share it. So that sin stays hidden, and you leave the confessional burdened with a new sin: sacrilege. When Judas was tempted to betray Our Lord, he thought thirty pieces of silver was a lot of money; but after he sinned, he disregarded the money, threw it away, and found his sin so horrifying he hanged himself, dying in despair.
It is not necessary to tell the priest the exact words you said in cursing or in bad conversation, unless he asks you; but simply say, Father, I cursed so many times. Do not speak too loud in the confessional, but loud enough for the priest to hear you. If you are deaf, do not go into the confessional while others are near, but wait till all have been heard and then go in last, or ask the priest to hear you someplace else.
It’s not required to tell the priest the specific words you used when cursing or in inappropriate conversations, unless he asks for details; just say, “Father, I cursed so many times.” Don’t speak too loudly in the confessional, but loud enough for the priest to hear you. If you are deaf, don’t enter the confessional while others are present; wait until everyone else has gone, and then go in last, or ask the priest to hear your confession somewhere else.
(5) Listen attentively to hear what "penance" the priest gives you, and say the act of contrition while he pronounces the words of absolution; and above all, never leave the confessional till the priest closes the little door or tells you to go. If the priest does not say at what particular time you are to say your penance, say it as soon as you can.
(5) Pay close attention to the "penance" the priest gives you, and say the act of contrition while he speaks the words of absolution; most importantly, don’t leave the confessional until the priest closes the little door or tells you to go. If the priest doesn’t specify when you should do your penance, do it as soon as you can.
When you have, told all your sins, you will say: "For these and all the sins of my whole life, especially any I have forgotten, I am heartily sorry, and ask pardon and penance." Listen to the priest's advice, and answer simply any question he may ask you. If you should forget a mortal sin in confession and remember it the same day or evening, or while you are still in the church, it will not be necessary to wait and go to confession again. It is forgiven already, because it was included in your forgotten sins; but you must tell it the next time you go to confession, saying before your regular confession: In my last confession I forgot this sin. Of course if you tried to forget your sins your confession would be invalid. It is only when you examine your conscience with all reasonable care, and then after all forget some sins, that such forgotten sins are forgiven.
When you’ve shared all your sins, you’ll say: “For these and all the sins of my life, especially the ones I’ve forgotten, I’m truly sorry and ask for forgiveness and penance.” Listen to the priest’s guidance and answer any questions he might have simply. If you happen to forget a serious sin during confession and remember it that same day, or while you’re still in the church, you won’t need to wait to confess again. It’s already forgiven because it was part of your forgotten sins; however, you should mention it the next time you go to confession by saying before your regular confession: “In my last confession, I forgot this sin.” Of course, if you intentionally tried to forget your sins, your confession wouldn’t be valid. It’s only when you honestly examine your conscience and then forget some sins that those forgotten sins are forgiven.
Never talk or quarrel for places while waiting for confession, and never cheat another out of his turn in going to confession. It is unjust, it makes the person angry, and lessens his good disposition for confession. It creates confusion, and annoys the priest who hears the noise. If you are in a hurry, ask the others to allow you to go first; and if they will not be contented and wait, and if you cannot wait, go some other time, unless you are in the state of mortal sin. In this case you should go to confession that day, no matter what the inconvenience. Spend your time while waiting in praying for pardon and sorrow. Never keep the priest waiting for you in the confessional; pass in as soon as he is prepared to hear you.
Never argue or fight over spots while waiting for confession, and don’t steal someone else's turn to go. It’s unfair, it makes people angry, and it ruins their mindset for confession. It creates chaos and annoys the priest who has to deal with the noise. If you’re in a rush, politely ask others if you can go first; and if they won’t agree to wait, and you can’t wait, then come back another time, unless you’re in a state of mortal sin. In that case, you should go to confession that day, no matter how inconvenient it is. Use the time you spend waiting to pray for forgiveness and feel remorse. Never keep the priest waiting in the confessional; enter as soon as he’s ready to hear you.
192 Q. What is the examination of conscience? A. The examination of conscience is an earnest effort to recall to mind all the sins we have committed since our last worthy confession.
192 Q. What is the examination of conscience? A. The examination of conscience is a serious attempt to remember all the sins we have committed since our last proper confession.
"Worthy confession," because if we made bad confessions we must tell how often we made them, and whether we received Holy Communion after them or not, and also all the sins we told in the bad confessions, and all others committed since the good confession. If, for example, a boy made a good confession in January, and in confession in February concealed a mortal sin and went to confession after that every month to December, he would have to go back to his last good confession, and repeat all the sins committed since January, and also say that he had gone to confession once a month and made bad confessions all these times.
"Worthy confession," because if we made poor confessions, we need to explain how often that happened, whether we received Holy Communion afterward, and list all the sins we mentioned in those poor confessions, as well as any other sins committed since the last good confession. For instance, if a boy made a good confession in January and then concealed a serious sin in his February confession, going to confession every month until December, he would have to reflect back on his last good confession and recite all the sins he committed since January, while also acknowledging that he had gone to confession each month and made poor confessions each time.
*193 Q. How can we make a good examination of conscience? A. We can make a good examination of conscience by calling to memory the Commandments of God, the precepts of the Church, the seven capital sins, and the particular duties of our state in life, to find out the sins we have committed.
*193 Q. How can we do a good check of our conscience? A. We can do a good check of our conscience by remembering God's Commandments, the Church's teachings, the seven deadly sins, and the specific responsibilities of our position in life, to identify the sins we've committed.
*194 Q. What should we do before beginning the examination of conscience? A. Before beginning the examination of conscience we should pray to God to give us light to know our sins and grace to detest them.
*194 Q. What should we do before starting the examination of conscience? A. Before starting the examination of conscience, we should pray to God for guidance to recognize our sins and for the grace to hate them.
Lesson 18
ON CONTRITION
Lesson 18
ON REMORSE
195 Q. What is contrition or sorrow for sin? A. Contrition or sorrow for sin is a hatred of sin and a true grief of the soul for having offended God, with a firm purpose of sinning no more.
195 Q. What is contrition or sorrow for sin? A. Contrition or sorrow for sin is a deep dislike of sin and genuine sadness in the soul for having offended God, accompanied by a strong commitment to avoid sin in the future.
"Offended"—that is, done something to displease Him.
"Offended"—that is, done something to upset Him.
*196 Q. What kind of sorrow should we have for our sins? A. The sorrow we should have for our sins should be interior, supernatural, universal, and sovereign.
*196 Q. What kind of sorrow should we feel for our sins? A. The sorrow we should feel for our sins should be internal, beyond the natural, universal, and absolute.
*197 Q. What do you mean by saying that our sorrow should be interior? A. When I say that our sorrow should be interior, I mean that it should come from the heart, and not merely from the lips.
*197 Q. What do you mean when you say our sorrow should be internal? A. When I say our sorrow should be internal, I mean that it should come from the heart, not just from words.
"Interior"—that is, we must really have the sorrow in our hearts. A boy, for example, might cry in the confessional and pretend to the priest to be very sorry, and the priest might be deceived and absolve him; but God, who sees into our hearts, would know that he was not really sorry, but only pretending, that his sorrow was not interior, but exterior; and God therefore would withhold His forgiveness and would not blot out the sins, and the boy would have a new sin of sacrilege upon his soul; because it is a sacrilege to allow the priest to give you absolution if you know you have not the right disposition, and you are not trying to do all that is required for a good confession. So you understand you might deceive the priest and receive absolution, but God would not allow the absolution to take effect, and the sins would remain; for if the priest knew your dispositions as God did, or as you know them, he would not give you absolution till your dispositions changed.
"Interior"—that means we really need to have genuine sorrow in our hearts. A boy, for instance, might cry in the confessional and act very sorry to the priest, who could be misled and give him absolution; but God, who knows our hearts, would understand that he wasn’t truly sorry, but just pretending, that his sorrow was superficial, not genuine. Therefore, God would withhold His forgiveness and wouldn’t erase the sins, leaving the boy with a new sin of sacrilege; because it’s sacrilege to let the priest grant you absolution if you know you don’t have the right mindset and aren’t doing everything needed for a proper confession. So you see, you might fool the priest and get absolution, but God wouldn’t let that absolution take effect, and the sins would remain; because if the priest knew your true feelings as God does, or as you do, he wouldn’t give you absolution until your mindset changed.
*198 Q. What do you mean by saying that our sorrow should be supernatural? A. When I say that our sorrow should be supernatural, I mean that it should be prompted by the grace of God, and excited by motives which spring from faith, and not by merely natural motives.
*198 Q. What do you mean when you say that our sorrow should be supernatural? A. When I say that our sorrow should be supernatural, I mean that it should be inspired by God’s grace and driven by reasons that come from faith, rather than just by natural reasons.
"Supernatural"—that is, we must be sorry for the sin on account of some reason that God has made known to us. For example, either because our sin is displeasing to God, or because we have lost Heaven by it, or because we fear to be punished for it in Hell or Purgatory. But if we are sorry for our sin only on account of some natural motive, then our sorrow is not of the right kind. If a man was sorry for stealing only because he was caught and had to go to prison for it, his sorrow would only be natural. Or if a boy was sorry for telling lies only because he got a whipping for it, his sorrow would only be natural. Or if a man was sorry for being intoxicated because he lost his situation and injured his health, he would not have the necessary kind of sorrow. These persons must be sorry for stealing, lying, or being intoxicated because all these are sins against God—things forbidden by Him and worthy of His punishment. If we are sorry for having offended God on account of His own goodness, our contrition is said to be perfect. If we are sorry for the sins because by them we are in great danger of being punished by God, or because we have lost Heaven by them, and without any regard for God's own goodness, then our contrition is said to be imperfect. Imperfect contrition is called attrition.
"Supernatural" means we should feel sorry for our sins for reasons that God has revealed to us. For instance, we might feel regret because our sin displeases God, because it has caused us to lose Heaven, or because we are afraid of being punished in Hell or Purgatory. However, if we regret our sin only for some natural reason, then our sorrow isn't genuine. For example, if someone regrets stealing only because they got caught and have to go to jail, their remorse is just natural. Similarly, if a boy regrets lying only because he was punished for it, his sorrow is also just natural. If a man regrets being drunk only because he lost his job and harmed his health, he lacks the appropriate kind of remorse. These individuals must feel sorry for stealing, lying, or drinking excessively because all of these actions are sins against God—things He has forbidden and that deserve His punishment. If we regret offending God because of His goodness, our contrition is considered perfect. If we feel sorry for our sins because we fear punishment from God or because we've lost Heaven through them, without regard for God's goodness, then our contrition is considered imperfect. Imperfect contrition is known as attrition.
*199 Q. What do you mean by saying that our sorrow should be universal? A. When I say that our sorrow should be universal, I mean that we should be sorry for our mortal sins without exception.
*199 Q. What do you mean by saying that our sorrow should be universal? A. When I say that our sorrow should be universal, I mean that we should feel remorse for our mortal sins without exception.
"Universal." If a person committed ten mortal sins, and was sorry for nine, but not for the tenth, then none of the sins would be forgiven. If you committed a thousand mortal sins, and were sorry for all but one, none would be forgiven. Why? Because you can never have God's grace and mortal sin in the soul at the same time. Now this mortal sin will be on your soul till you are sorry for it, and while it is on your soul God's grace will not come to you. Again, you cannot be half sorry for having offended God; either you must be entirely sorry, or not sorry at all. Therefore you cannot be sorry for only part of your mortal sins.
"Universal." If someone committed ten serious sins and felt sorry for nine of them but not for the tenth, none of the sins would be forgiven. If you committed a thousand serious sins and were sorry for all but one, none would be forgiven. Why? Because you can never have God's grace and serious sin in your soul at the same time. This serious sin will remain on your soul until you truly repent for it, and while it's there, God's grace will not reach you. Again, you can't be partially sorry for having offended God; you must be completely remorseful or not sorry at all. Therefore, you can't be sorry for just some of your serious sins.
*200 Q. What do you mean when you say that our sorrow should be sovereign? A. When I say that our sorrow should be sovereign I mean that we should grieve more for having offended God than for any other evil that can befall us.
*200 Q. What do you mean when you say that our sorrow should be paramount? A. When I say that our sorrow should be paramount, I mean that we should grieve more for having offended God than for any other misfortune that can happen to us.
201 Q. Why should we be sorry for our sins? A. We should be sorry for our sins, because sin is the greatest of evils and an offense against God our Creator, Preserver, and Redeemer, and because it shuts us out of Heaven and condemns us to the eternal pains of Hell.
201 Q. Why should we feel remorse for our sins? A. We should feel remorse for our sins because sin is the worst evil and an offense against God, our Creator, Preserver, and Redeemer, and because it excludes us from Heaven and condemns us to the eternal suffering of Hell.
We consider an evil great in proportion to the length of time we have to bear it. To be blind is certainly a misfortune; but it is a greater misfortune to be blind for our whole life than for one day. Sin, therefore, is the greatest of all evils; because the misfortune it brings upon us lasts not merely for a great many years, but for all eternity. Even slight sufferings would be terrible if they lasted forever, but the sufferings for mortal sin are worse than we can describe or imagine, and they are forever. The greatest evils in this world will not last forever, and are small when compared with sin. Sin makes us ungrateful to God, who gives us our existence.
We view an evil as worse based on how long we have to endure it. Being blind is certainly a misfortune; however, being blind for our entire life is a greater tragedy than just for a day. Sin, therefore, is the worst of all evils because the consequences it brings last not just for many years, but for all eternity. Even minor sufferings would be unbearable if they lasted forever, but the pain from mortal sin is beyond what we can describe or even imagine, and it lasts forever. The worst hardships in this world won’t last forever and are minor compared to sin. Sin makes us ungrateful to God, who gives us life.
"Our Preserver," because if God ceased to watch over us and provide for us, even for a short time, we would cease to exist.
"Our Preserver," because if God stopped watching over us and providing for us, even for a little while, we would stop existing.
"Our Redeemer," who suffered so much for us.
"Our Redeemer," who endured so much for us.
*202 Q. How many kinds of contrition are there? A. There are two kinds of contrition: perfect contrition and imperfect contrition.
*202 Q. How many types of contrition are there? A. There are two types of contrition: perfect contrition and imperfect contrition.
*203 Q. What is perfect contrition? A. Perfect contrition is that which fills us with sorrow and hatred for sin because it offends God, who is infinitely good in Himself and worthy of all love.
*203 Q. What is perfect contrition? A. Perfect contrition is feeling deep sorrow and hatred for sin because it offends God, who is infinitely good and deserving of all love.
It can be a very hard thing to have perfect contrition, but we should always try to have it, so that our contrition may be as perfect as possible. This perfect contrition is the kind of contrition we must have if our mortal sins are to be forgiven if we are in danger of death and cannot go to confession. Imperfect contrition with the priest's absolution will blot out our mortal sins.
It can be really difficult to feel true remorse, but we should always strive for it, so our feelings of remorse can be as genuine as possible. This true remorse is what we need to have if we want our serious sins to be forgiven when we're facing death and can't go to confession. Imperfect remorse, along with the priest's forgiveness, will erase our serious sins.
*204 Q. What is imperfect contrition? A. Imperfect contrition is that by which we hate what offends God because by it we lose Heaven and deserve Hell; or because sin is so hateful in itself.
*204 Q. What is imperfect contrition? A. Imperfect contrition is when we dislike what offends God because it causes us to lose Heaven and deserve Hell; or because sin is simply so repulsive on its own.
*205 Q. Is imperfect contrition sufficient for a worthy confession? A. Imperfect contrition is sufficient for a worthy confession, but we should endeavor to have perfect contrition.
*205 Q. Is imperfect contrition enough for a valid confession? A. Imperfect contrition is enough for a valid confession, but we should strive for perfect contrition.
206 Q. What do you mean by a firm purpose of sinning no more? A. By a firm purpose of sinning no more I mean a fixed resolve not only to avoid all mortal sin, but also its near occasions.
206 Q. What do you mean by a strong intention to stop sinning? A. By a strong intention to stop sinning, I mean a definite commitment to not only avoid all serious sins but also the situations that lead to them.
"Fixed." Not for a certain time, but for all the future.
"Fixed." Not just for a specific period, but for all of the future.
207 Q. What do you mean by the near occasions of sin? A. By the near occasions of sin I mean all the persons, places and things that may easily lead us into sin.
207 Q. What do you mean by the near occasions of sin? A. By the near occasions of sin, I mean all the people, places, and things that can easily lead us to sin.
"Occasions." There are many kinds of occasions of sin. First, we have voluntary and necessary occasions, or those we can avoid and those we cannot avoid. For example: if a companion uses immodest conversation we can avoid that occasion, because we can keep away from him; but if the one who sins is a member of our own family, always living with us, we cannot so easily avoid that occasion. Second, near and remote occasions. An occasion is said to be "near" when we usually fall into sin by it. For instance, if a man gets intoxicated almost every time he visits a certain place, then that place is a "near occasion" of sin for him; but if he gets intoxicated only once out of every fifty times or so that he goes there, then it is said to be a "remote occasion." Now, it is not enough to avoid the sins: we must also avoid the occasions. If we have a firm purpose of amendment, if we desire to do better, we must be resolved to avoid everything that will lead us to sin. It is not enough to say, I will go to that place or with that person, but I will never again commit the same sins. No matter what you think now, if you go into the occasion, you will fall again; because Our Lord, who cannot speak falsely, says: "He who loves the danger will perish in it." Now the occasion of sin is always "the danger"; and if you go into it, Our Lord's words will come true, and you will fall miserably. Take away the cause, take away the occasion, and then the sin will cease of itself. Let us suppose the plaster in your house fell down, and you found that it fell because there was a leak in the water-pipe above, and the water coming through wet the plaster and made it fall. What is the first thing your father would do in that case? Why, get a plumber and stop up the leak in the pipe before putting up the plaster again. Would it not be foolish to engage a plasterer to repair the ceiling while the pipe was still leaking? Everyone would say that man must be out of his mind: the plaster will fall down as often as he puts it up, and it matters not either how well he puts it up. If he wants it to stay up, he must first mend the pipe—take away the cause of its falling. Now the occasion of sin is like the leak in the pipe—in the case of sin, it will very likely cause you to fall every time. Stop up the leak, take away the occasion, and then you will not fall into sin—at least not so frequently.
"Occasions." There are many types of occasions for sin. First, we have voluntary and necessary occasions, or those we can avoid and those we cannot. For example: if a friend engages in inappropriate conversation, we can avoid that occasion because we can distance ourselves from them; but if the person who sins is a member of our own family, always living with us, we can't avoid that situation as easily. Second, there are near and remote occasions. An occasion is considered "near" when we typically fall into sin because of it. For instance, if a man gets drunk almost every time he visits a certain place, then that place is a "near occasion" of sin for him; but if he gets drunk only once out of every fifty times he goes there, then it's seen as a "remote occasion." Now, it's not enough to just avoid the sins; we must also steer clear of the occasions. If we are serious about improving, if we truly want to do better, we need to be committed to avoiding everything that leads us to sin. It's not enough to say, I’ll go to that place or hang out with that person, but I’ll never commit the same sins again. No matter what you believe now, if you go into that situation, you will likely fall again; because Our Lord, who cannot lie, says: "He who loves danger will perish in it." The occasion for sin is always "the danger"; and if you enter into it, Our Lord's words will come true, and you will fall miserably. Remove the cause, remove the occasion, and then the sin will cease on its own. Imagine a situation where the plaster in your house fell down, and you discovered it fell because there was a leak in the water pipe above it, and the water leaking through soaked the plaster and caused it to fall. What would be the first thing your father would do in that case? He’d call a plumber to fix the leak in the pipe before repairing the plaster. Wouldn't it be foolish to hire a plasterer to fix the ceiling while the pipe is still leaking? Everyone would think that person must be out of their mind: the plaster will keep falling down no matter how well it’s put up. If he wants it to stay up, he must first fix the pipe—remove the cause of its failure. The occasion for sin is like the leak in the pipe—in the case of sin, it will most likely cause you to fall every time. Fix the leak, remove the occasion, and then you won't fall into sin—at least not as often.
"The persons" are generally bad companions, and though they may not be bad when alone, they are bad when with us, and thus we become also bad companions for them, and occasions of sin.
"The people" are generally bad companions, and even though they might not be bad on their own, they become bad when they're with us, and as a result, we also become bad companions for them and a reason for wrongdoing.
"The places." Liquor saloons, low theaters, dance halls, and all places where we may see or hear anything against faith or morals.
"The places." Bars, rundown theaters, dance clubs, and all spots where we might see or hear anything that goes against our beliefs or morals.
"Things." Bad books, pictures, and the like.
"Stuff." Bad books, images, and things like that.
Lesson 19
ON CONFESSION
Lesson 19
ON CONFESSION
208 Q. What is Confession? A. Confession is the telling of our sins to a duly authorized priest, for the purpose of obtaining forgiveness.
208 Q. What is Confession? A. Confession is when we share our sins with a qualified priest to receive forgiveness.
"Duly authorized"—one sent by the bishop of the diocese in which you are.
"Duly authorized"—someone sent by the bishop of the diocese where you are.
"Forgiveness." You might tell a priest all your sins while in ordinary conversation with him, but that would not be confession, because you would not be telling them to have them pardoned. If a person has lost the use of his speech, he can make his confession by writing his sins on a paper and giving it to the priest in the confessional. If the priest returns the paper the penitent must be careful to destroy it afterwards. Also, if you have a poor memory you may write down the sins you wish to confess, and read them from the paper in the confessional; then you also must be careful to destroy the paper after confession. If a person whose language the priest does not understand is dying, or is obliged to make his yearly confession, he must tell what he can by signs, show that he is sorry for his sins, and thus receive absolution. In a word, the priest would act with him as he would with one who had lost the use of his speech and power to write.
"Forgiveness." You might share all your sins in a casual conversation with a priest, but that wouldn't count as confession, because you wouldn't be doing it to seek forgiveness. If someone has lost their ability to speak, they can confess by writing their sins on a piece of paper and handing it to the priest in the confessional. If the priest returns the paper, the person confessing must make sure to destroy it afterward. Additionally, if you have a bad memory, you can write down the sins you want to confess and read them from the paper in the confessional; you also need to destroy the paper after your confession. If someone who is dying speaks a language the priest doesn't understand, or needs to make their annual confession, they should communicate what they can through gestures, show that they regret their sins, and thus receive forgiveness. In short, the priest would interact with them just as he would with someone who has lost their ability to speak or write.
209 Q. What sins are we bound to confess? A. We are bound to confess all our mortal sins, but it is well also to confess our venial sins.
209 Q. What sins do we have to confess? A. We need to confess all our serious sins, but it's also good to confess our less serious sins.
"Bound"—obliged in such a way that our confession would be bad if we did not tell them.
"Bound"—obligated in such a way that our confession would be wrong if we didn't share it with them.
"Well," because we should tell all the sins we can remember; but if we did not tell a venial sin after we had told a mortal sin, our confession would not be bad. Or if we committed a little venial sin after confession, that should not keep us from Holy Communion; because the Holy Communion itself would blot out that and any other venial sin we might have upon our souls: so that you should never let anything keep you away, unless you are certain you have committed a mortal sin after the confession, or have broken your fast.
"Well," we should share all the sins we can remember; but if we don't mention a minor sin after we've confessed a serious one, our confession isn't invalid. Also, if we commit a small sin after confession, that shouldn't stop us from taking Holy Communion; because the Holy Communion itself will wash away that and any other minor sins we might have on our souls. So you should never let anything stop you from taking Communion, unless you are sure you've committed a serious sin after confession, or if you've broken your fast.
*210 Q. What are the chief qualities of a good confession? A. The chief qualities of a good confession are three: it must be humble, sincere, and entire.
*210 Q. What are the main qualities of a good confession? A. The main qualities of a good confession are three: it must be humble, sincere, and complete.
*211 Q. When is our confession humble? A. Our confession is humble when we accuse ourselves of our sins, with a deep sense of shame and sorrow for having offended God.
*211 Q. When is our confession humble? A. Our confession is humble when we acknowledge our sins, genuinely feeling shame and sorrow for having offended God.
*212 Q. When is our confession sincere? A. Our confession is sincere when we tell our sins honestly and truthfully, neither exaggerating nor excusing them.
*212 Q. When is our confession sincere? A. Our confession is sincere when we honestly and truthfully share our sins, without exaggerating or making excuses.
"Exaggerating." You must never tell in confession a sin you did not commit, any more than conceal one you did commit. You must tell just the sins committed, and no more or less; and if you are in doubt whether you have committed the sin, or whether the thing done was a sin, then you must tell your doubts to the priest: but do not say you committed such and such sins when you do not know whether you did or not, or only because you think it likely that you did.
"Exaggerating." You should never confess to a sin you didn't commit, just as you shouldn't hide one that you did commit. You need to only mention the sins you have actually committed, and nothing more or less; and if you're unsure whether you've committed a sin, or if what you did was a sin, then you should share your doubts with the priest. But don’t say you committed certain sins if you're not sure whether you did or just because you think it's possible that you did.
*213 Q. When is our confession entire? A. Our confession is entire when we tell the number and kinds of our sins and the circumstances which change their nature.
*213 Q. When is our confession complete? A. Our confession is complete when we mention the number and types of our sins and the circumstances that change their nature.
"Number"—the exact number, if you know it; as, for example, when we miss Mass we can generally tell exactly the number of times. But when we tell lies, for instance, we may not know the exact number: then we say how often in the day, or that it is a habit with us, etc.
"Number"—the exact number, if you know it; like when we miss Mass, we can usually count the exact number of times. But when we tell lies, we might not know the precise number: then we say how often it happens in a day, or that it's a habit for us, etc.
"Kinds"—whether they are cursing, or stealing, or lying, etc.
"Kinds"—whether they involve cursing, stealing, lying, etc.
"Circumstances which change their nature." In the case of stealing, for example, you need not tell whether it was from a grocery, a bakery, or dry-goods store you stole, for that circumstance does not change the nature of the sin: you have simply to tell the amount you took. But if you stole from a church you would have to tell that, because that is a circumstance that gives the sin of stealing a new character, and makes it sacrilegious stealing. Or if you stole from a poor beggar all he possessed in the world, so that you left him starving, that would be a circumstance making your sin worse, and so you would have to tell it. Therefore you have to tell any circumstance that really makes your sin much worse or less than it seems; all other circumstances you need not tell: they will only confuse you, and make you forget your sins and waste the priest's time.
"Situations that change their nature." For instance, when it comes to stealing, it doesn’t matter if it was from a grocery store, a bakery, or a clothing store; that detail doesn’t change the nature of the sin. You only need to state the amount you took. However, if you stole from a church, you need to mention that, because it transforms the sin of stealing into something more serious, making it sacrilegious. Similarly, if you stole everything a poor beggar had, leaving him starving, that circumstance would make your sin even worse, and you would need to include it. So, you should mention any situation that significantly worsens or lessens your sin; all other details can be left out: they will just confuse you, make you overlook your sins, and take up the priest's time.
214 Q. What should we do if we cannot remember the number of our sins? A. If we cannot remember the number of our sins, we should tell the number as nearly as possible, and say how often we have sinned in a day, a week, or a month and how long the habit or practice has lasted.
214 Q. What should we do if we can’t remember how many sins we’ve committed? A. If we can’t remember the number of our sins, we should estimate as closely as we can and mention how often we’ve sinned in a day, a week, or a month, and how long the behavior has been going on.
*215 Q. Is our confession worthy if, without our fault, we forget to confess a mortal sin? A. If without our fault we forget to confess a mortal sin, our confession is worthy, and the sin is forgiven; but it must be told in confession if it again comes to our mind.
*215 Q. Is our confession valid if we forget to confess a serious sin through no fault of our own? A. If we forget to confess a serious sin through no fault of our own, our confession is valid and the sin is forgiven; however, we should mention it in confession if it comes to mind again.
216 Q. Is it a grievous offense willfully to conceal a mortal sin in confession? A. It is a grievous offense willfully to conceal a mortal sin in confession, because we thereby tell a lie to the Holy Ghost, and make our confession worthless.
216 Q. Is it a serious offense to deliberately hide a mortal sin during confession? A. Yes, it is a serious offense to deliberately hide a mortal sin in confession because we are essentially lying to the Holy Spirit and making our confession meaningless.
"A lie to the Holy Ghost." God sees every sin we commit, and in His presence we present ourselves to the priest in the confessional, and declare that we are confessing all. If, then, we willfully conceal a sin that we are bound to confess, God is a witness to our sacrilegious lie. If I see you in some place to which you were forbidden to go, and you, knowing that I saw you, positively deny that you were there, your guilt would be doubly great, for, besides the sin of disobedience committed by going to the forbidden place, you also resist the known truth, and endeavor to prove that I, when I declare I saw you, am telling what is untrue. In a similar manner, concealing a sin in confession is equivalent to denying before God that we are guilty of it. Besides, it is a great folly to conceal a sin, because it must be confessed sooner or later, and the longer we conceal it the deeper will be our sense of shame for the sacrileges committed. Again, why should one be ashamed to confess to the priest what he has not been ashamed to do before God, unless he has greater respect for the priest than he has for the Almighty God—an absurdity we cannot believe. Moreover, the shame you experience in telling your sins is a kind of penance for them. Do you not suppose Our Lord knew, when He instituted the Sacrament of Penance, that people would be ashamed to confess? Certainly He did; and that act of humility is pleasing to God, and is a kind of punishment for your sins, and probably takes away some of the punishment you would have to suffer for them. Often, too, the thought of having to confess will keep you from committing the sin. There is another thought that should encourage us to gladly make a full confession of all our sins, and it is this: it is easier to tell them to the priest alone than to have them exposed, unforgiven, before the whole world on the Day of Judgment. Do not imagine that your confessor will think less of you on account of your sins. The confessor does not think of your sins after he leaves the confessional. How could he remember all the confessions he hears—often hundreds in a single month? And what is more—he does not even wish to recall the sinful things heard in the confessional, because he wishes to keep his own mind pure, and his soul free from every stain. The priest is always better pleased to hear the confession of a great sinner or of one who has been a long time from the Sacraments, than of one who goes frequently or who has little to tell. He is not glad, of course, that the sinner has committed great sins, but he is glad that since he has had the misfortune to sin so much, he has now the grace and courage to seek forgiveness. Our Lord once said (Luke 15:7) while preaching, that the angels and saints in Heaven rejoice more at seeing one sinner doing penance than they do over ninety-nine good persons who did not need to do penance. The greater the danger to which a person has been exposed, the more thankful he and his friends are for escape or recovery from it. If your brother fell into the ocean and was rescued just as he was going down for the last time, you would feel more grateful than if he was rescued from some little pond into which he had slipped, and in which there was scarcely any danger of his being drowned. So, also, the nearer we are to losing our, souls and going to Hell, the more delighted the angels and saints are when we are saved. One who has escaped great danger will more carefully avoid similar accidents in the future: in like manner, the sinner, after having escaped the danger of eternal death by the pardon of his sins, should never again risk his salvation.
"A lie to the Holy Spirit." God sees every sin we commit, and in His presence, we come before the priest in confession, claiming that we are confessing everything. If we intentionally hide a sin that we are supposed to confess, God witnesses our sacrilegious lie. If I see you in a place you're not allowed to be, and you, knowing I saw you, outright deny it, your guilt is even worse because, along with the disobedience of being in that forbidden place, you also deny the truth and try to convince me that I am lying. Similarly, hiding a sin in confession is like denying to God that we are guilty of it. Furthermore, it’s foolish to conceal a sin because it will have to be confessed eventually, and the longer we hold it back, the greater our shame will be for the wrongs committed. Moreover, why would one be ashamed to confess to the priest what they were not ashamed to do in front of God, unless they hold the priest in higher regard than the Almighty—an idea that's hard to believe. Additionally, the shame felt while confessing serves as a form of penance for those sins. Don’t you think our Lord understood that when He established the Sacrament of Penance, people would feel embarrassed to confess? Of course He did; that act of humility pleases God and serves as a type of punishment for your sins, possibly reducing the punishment you would otherwise face. The thought of having to confess can also deter you from committing the sin in the first place. There’s another thought that should encourage us to willingly confess all our sins: it’s easier to tell the priest than to have those sins revealed, unforgiven, before everyone on Judgment Day. Don’t assume your confessor will think less of you because of your sins. The confessor doesn’t dwell on your sins after leaving the confessional. How could he remember all the confessions he hears—often hundreds in a single month? Moreover, he wouldn't even want to remember the sins spoken in confession because he wants to keep his own mind pure and his soul free from every stain. The priest actually prefers to hear the confession of someone who has sinned greatly or hasn’t been to the Sacraments in a long time, rather than someone who confesses frequently or has little to share. He’s not pleased that the sinner has committed serious sins, but he is glad that, after falling so far, the sinner now has the grace and courage to seek forgiveness. Our Lord once said (Luke 15:7) while preaching that the angels and saints in Heaven rejoice more over one sinner doing penance than over ninety-nine good people who don’t need to repent. The greater the peril someone has faced, the more grateful they and their friends are for escaping it. If your brother fell into the ocean and was rescued just as he was about to drown, you would feel more gratitude than if he were saved from a small pond with hardly any risk of drowning. Likewise, the nearer we come to losing our souls and going to Hell, the more delighted the angels and saints are when we are saved. A person who has narrowly escaped great danger will be more cautious to avoid similar accidents in the future; in the same way, a sinner, having evaded the eternal death threat by receiving forgiveness, should never again risk their salvation.
217 Q. What must he do who has willfully concealed a mortal sin in confession? A. He who has willfully concealed a mortal sin in confession must not only confess it, but must also repeat all the sins he has committed since his last worthy confession.
217 Q. What should someone do if they have intentionally hidden a serious sin in confession? A. Someone who has intentionally hidden a serious sin in confession must not only confess it but also list all the sins they've committed since their last valid confession.
"Willfully." Remember, forgetting is not the same as concealing; but if you should willfully neglect to examine your conscience or make any effort to know your sins before going to confession, then forgetting would be equivalent to concealing. Without any preparation your confession could hardly be a good one. When you are in doubt whether an action is sinful or not, or whether you have confessed it before, you should not leave the confessional with the doubt upon your mind.
"Willfully." Remember, forgetting isn't the same as hiding something, but if you intentionally avoid examining your conscience or making an effort to understand your sins before going to confession, then forgetting becomes like hiding. Without any preparation, your confession is unlikely to be good. If you're unsure whether an action is sinful or if you've confessed it before, you shouldn't leave the confessional still feeling unsure.
It is a foolish practice, however, to be always disturbing your conscience by thinking of past sins, especially of those that occurred very early in your life. Sometimes it is dangerous; because if, while thinking of your past sins, you should take pleasure in them, you would commit a new sin similar to the past sins in which you take delight.
It’s a silly habit to constantly bother your conscience by dwelling on past sins, especially those from when you were younger. Sometimes it can be risky; if you find enjoyment in reminiscing about your past mistakes, you might end up committing a new sin similar to the ones you’re delighting in.
It is best, therefore, not to dwell in thought upon any particular past sin with the time, place, and circumstances of its commission; but simply to remember in general that you have in the past sinned against this or that Commandment or virtue.
It’s better not to spend time thinking about any specific past sin along with the time, place, and details of when it happened; just remember in general that you have sinned against this or that Commandment or virtue in the past.
The past is no longer under our control, while the future is, and becomes for us, therefore, the all-important portion of our lives. Not unfrequently it may be an artifice of the devil to keep us so occupied with past deeds that we may not attend to the dangers of the future. Do not, then, after your confession spend your time in thinking of the sins you confessed, but of how you will avoid them in the future. When a wound is healed up, nobody thinks of opening it again to see if it has healed properly; so when the wounds made in our souls by sin are healed up by the absolution, we should not open them again.
The past is no longer in our control, while the future is, making it the most important part of our lives. It can often be a trick of the devil to keep us so focused on past actions that we ignore the risks ahead. So, after your confession, don't spend your time dwelling on the sins you confessed; instead, think about how you will avoid them moving forward. When a wound is healed, nobody goes back to check if it has healed properly; similarly, when the wounds caused by sin in our souls are healed by absolution, we shouldn’t reopen them.
This is the rule with regard to our ordinary confessions; but we should sometimes make a general confession. What is a general confession? It is the confession of the sins of our whole life or of a portion—say one, two or five, etc., years—of our life. A general confession may be necessary, useful, or hurtful. It is necessary, as you know, when our past confessions were bad. It is useful, though not necessary, on special occasions in our lives; for example, in the time of a retreat or mission; in the time of preparation for First Communion, Confirmation, Matrimony, etc., or in preparing for death. It is very useful also for persons about to change their state of life; for such as are about to become priests or religious, etc. It is useful because it gives us a better knowledge of the state of our souls, as we see their condition not merely for a month or two, but for our whole lifetime. We are looking at them as God will look at them in the Last Judgment, considering all the good and evil we have ever done, and comparing the amount of the one with the amount of the other. We resolve to increase the good and diminish the evil in our future lives. We promise to do penance for the past and to avoid sin for the future; and thus we are benefited in general confession by this judgment of ourselves, as we may call it.
This is the guideline for our regular confessions; however, we should sometimes make a general confession. What’s a general confession? It’s the acknowledgment of the sins from our entire life or from a specific period—like one, two, or five years—of our life. A general confession can be necessary, helpful, or even counterproductive. It’s necessary, as you know, when our previous confessions were not good. It’s helpful, though not essential, during significant times in our lives; for instance, during a retreat or mission, when preparing for First Communion, Confirmation, Marriage, or even while preparing for death. It’s also quite beneficial for those about to change their life situation, like those becoming priests or joining religious orders. It’s useful because it provides a clearer understanding of our spiritual condition, as we reflect on it not just for a month or two, but over our entire lives. We examine it as God will in the Last Judgment, weighing all the good and bad we’ve ever done and comparing the two. We commit to increasing the good and decreasing the bad in our future lives. We vow to do penance for the past and to avoid sin moving forward, so we gain from this self-reflection during our general confession.
General confession is hurtful to scrupulous persons. Scrupulous persons are those who think almost everything they do is a sin. They are always dissatisfied with their confessions, and fear to approach the Sacraments. Their conscience is never at ease, and they are forever unhappy. It is very wrong for them to think and act in this manner, and they must use every means in their power to overcome their scruples.
General confession is harmful to people who are overly scrupulous. Scrupulous individuals believe that nearly everything they do is a sin. They are consistently unsatisfied with their confessions and hesitant to approach the Sacraments. Their conscience is never at peace, and they are constantly unhappy. It is very misguided for them to think and behave this way, and they need to do everything they can to overcome their scruples.
Our Lord in His goodness never intended to make us unhappy by instituting the Sacraments, but on the contrary to make us happy, and set our minds and consciences at ease in the reception of His grace. Scrupulous persons must do exactly whatever their confessor advises, no matter what they themselves may think. Such persons, as you can plainly see, should not make general confessions, because their consciences would be more disturbed than pacified by them.
Our Lord, in His goodness, never meant to make us unhappy by establishing the Sacraments. Instead, He wanted to bring us joy and ease our minds and consciences when receiving His grace. People who are overly scrupulous must follow exactly what their confessor advises, regardless of their own thoughts. As you can clearly see, these individuals should avoid making general confessions because it would only upset their consciences more instead of bringing them peace.
You prepare for general confession as you would for any other, except that you take a longer time for it, and do not pay so much attention to your more trifling sins.
You get ready for general confession like you would for any other, but you spend more time on it and don’t focus as much on your minor sins.
218 Q. Why does the priest give us a penance after confession? A. The priest gives us a penance after confession, that we may satisfy God for the temporal punishment due to our sins.
218 Q. Why does the priest give us a penance after confession? A. The priest gives us a penance after confession so that we can make up for the temporary consequences of our sins.
"Penance." The little penance the priest gives may not fully satisfy God, but shows by our accepting it that we are willing to do penance. What, for example, is a penance of five "Our Fathers" compared with the guilt of one mortal sin, for which we would have to suffer in Hell for all eternity? Then think of the penances performed by the Christians many centuries ago, in the early ages of the Church. There were four stages of penance. The churches were divided into four parts by railings and gates. The first railing across the church was at some distance from the altar, the second was a little below the middle of the church, and the third was near the door. Those who committed great sins had to stand clad in coarse garments near the entrance of the church, and beg the prayers of those who entered. After they had done this kind of penance for a certain time, they were allowed to come into the church as far as the second railing. They were allowed to hear the sermon, but were not permitted to be present at the Mass. After doing sufficient penance, they were allowed to remain for Mass, but could not receive Holy Communion. When they had performed all the penance imposed upon them, they were allowed to receive the Sacraments and enjoy all the rights and privileges of faithful children of the Church. These penances lasted for many days and sometimes for years, according to the gravity of the sins committed. The sins for which these severe penances were performed were generally sins that had been committed publicly, and hence the penance, amendment, and reparation had also to be public.
"Penance." The small penance given by the priest may not completely satisfy God, but our acceptance of it shows that we’re willing to do penance. For instance, how does five "Our Fathers" compare to the guilt of one mortal sin, for which we would have to suffer in Hell for eternity? Now consider the penances carried out by Christians many centuries ago in the early Church. There were four stages of penance. The churches were divided into four sections by railings and gates. The first railing was set back from the altar, the second was a bit below the middle of the church, and the third was close to the door. Those who had committed serious sins had to stand near the entrance of the church wearing rough clothing, begging for the prayers of those who entered. After enduring this kind of penance for a certain period, they were permitted to enter the church as far as the second railing. They could hear the sermon but were not allowed to attend the Mass. Once they had completed sufficient penance, they could stay for Mass but could not receive Holy Communion. After fulfilling all the penances assigned to them, they were allowed to receive the Sacraments and enjoy all the rights and privileges of faithful members of the Church. These penances could last for many days and sometimes for years, depending on the severity of the sins committed. The sins that warranted such harsh penances were usually public offenses, so the penance, amendment, and reparation also needed to be public.
"Temporal Punishment." Every sin has two punishments attached to it, one called the eternal and the other the temporal. Let me explain by an example. If I, turning highway robber, waylay a man, beat him and steal his watch, I do him, as you see, a double injury, and deserve a double punishment for the twofold crime of beating and robbing him. He might pardon me for the injuries caused by the beating, but that would not free me from the obligation of restoring to him his watch or its value, for the fact that he forgives me for the act of stealing does not give me the right to keep what justly belongs to him. Now, when we sin against God we in the first place insult Him, and secondly rob Him of what is deservedly His due; namely, the worship, respect, obedience, love, etc., that we owe Him as our Creator, Preserver, and Redeemer.
"Temporal Punishment." Every sin comes with two types of punishment: one is eternal, and the other is temporal. Let me illustrate this with an example. If I become a highway robber, ambush a man, beat him, and steal his watch, I’m committing a double offense, and I deserve a double punishment for both beating and robbing him. He might forgive me for the harm caused by the beating, but that doesn’t release me from the obligation to return his watch or its value, because just because he forgives me for stealing doesn’t mean I have the right to keep what rightfully belongs to him. When we sin against God, we first insult Him, and secondly, we rob Him of what He rightfully deserves from us; namely, the worship, respect, obedience, love, etc., that we owe Him as our Creator, Preserver, and Redeemer.
In the Sacrament of Penance God forgives the insult offered by sinning, but requires us to make restitution for that of which the sin has deprived Him. In every sin there is an act of turning away from God and an act of turning to some creature in His stead. If a soldier pledged to defend his country deserts his army in time of war, he is guilty of a dishonorable, contemptible act; but if, besides deserting his own army, he goes over to aid the enemy, he becomes guilty of another and still greater crime—he becomes a traitor for whom the laws of nations reserve their severest penalties. By sin we, who in Baptism and Confirmation have promised to serve God and war against His enemies, desert Him and go over to them; for Our Blessed Lord has said: He that is not with Me is against Me.
In the Sacrament of Penance, God forgives the offense caused by our sins, but expects us to make up for what the sin has taken away from Him. Every sin involves turning away from God and turning towards something else instead. If a soldier who has sworn to protect his country abandons his army during wartime, he commits a dishonorable and shameful act; but if, in addition to deserting his own army, he joins the enemy, he commits an even greater crime—he becomes a traitor who faces the harshest penalties according to international law. By sinning, we, who have promised in Baptism and Confirmation to serve God and fight against His enemies, abandon Him and side with them; for Our Blessed Lord has said: He that is not with Me is against Me.
We pay the temporal debt due to our sins, that is, make the restitution, by our penances upon earth, or by our suffering in Purgatory, or by both combined.
We settle our time owed for our sins, meaning we make amends, through our acts of penance here on earth, by enduring suffering in Purgatory, or by a mix of both.
The penances performed upon earth are very acceptable and pleasing to God; and hence we should be most anxious to do penance here that we may have less to suffer in Purgatory. St. Augustine, who had been a great sinner, often prayed that God might send him many tribulations while on earth, that he might have less to endure in Purgatory. Therefore, after performing the penance the priest gives you in the confessional, it is wise to impose upon yourself other light penances in keeping with your age and condition, but never undertake severe penances or make religious vows and promises without consulting your confessor. In every case be careful first of all to perform the penance imposed upon you in the reception of the Sacrament. The penance given in confession has a special value, which none of the penances selected by yourself could have.
The acts of penance we do on earth are very acceptable and pleasing to God; therefore, we should earnestly seek to do penance here so that we have less to endure in Purgatory. St. Augustine, who had been a significant sinner, frequently prayed for God to send him many hardships while he was alive, so he could face less suffering in Purgatory. So, after completing the penance assigned by the priest during confession, it's wise to give yourself other light penances that are appropriate for your age and situation, but never take on severe penances or make religious vows and promises without talking to your confessor first. In all cases, make sure to perform the penance required of you when you receive the Sacrament. The penance given in confession has a unique value that none of the penances you choose for yourself can match.
If you forget to say your penance, your confession is not on that account worthless; but as the penance is one of the parts of the Sacrament, namely, the satisfaction, you should say it as soon as possible, and in the manner your confessor directs. If you cannot perform the penance imposed by your confessor, you should inform him of that fact, and ask him to give you another in its stead.
If you forget to say your penance, your confession isn’t worthless; but since penance is part of the Sacrament, specifically the satisfaction, you should do it as soon as you can and in the way your confessor instructs. If you can’t complete the penance your confessor assigned, you should let him know and ask for a different one.
Indulgences also are a means of satisfying for this temporal punishment. Sometimes God inflicts the temporal punishment in this world by sending us misfortunes or sufferings, especially such as are brought on by the sins committed.
Indulgences are also a way to make up for this temporary punishment. Sometimes God imposes this temporary punishment in this life by sending us troubles or suffering, especially those that come from the sins we've committed.
*219 Q. Does not the Sacrament of Penance remit all punishment due to sin? A. The Sacrament of Penance remits the eternal punishment due to sin, but it does not always remit the temporal punishment which God requires as satisfaction for our sins.
*219 Q. Doesn't the Sacrament of Penance remove all punishment for sin? A. The Sacrament of Penance removes the eternal punishment for sin, but it doesn't always eliminate the temporary punishment that God requires as satisfaction for our sins.
Remember that Baptism differs from Penance in this respect, that although they both remit sin, Penance does not take away all the temporal punishment, while Baptism takes away all the punishment, both eternal and temporal; so that if we died immediately after Baptism we would go directly to Heaven, while if we died immediately after Penance we would generally go to Purgatory to make satisfaction for the temporal debt.
Remember that Baptism is different from Penance in that, while both forgive sin, Penance doesn’t remove all the temporal punishment, but Baptism removes all punishment, both eternal and temporal. This means that if we died right after Baptism, we would go straight to Heaven, while if we died right after Penance, we would typically go to Purgatory to make up for the temporary debt.
*220 Q. Why does God require a temporal punishment as a satisfaction for sin? A. God requires a temporal punishment as a satisfaction for sin to teach us the great evil of sin, and to prevent us from failing again.
*220 Q. Why does God require a temporary punishment as a way to make up for sin? A. God requires a temporary punishment as a way to make up for sin to show us how serious sin is and to help us avoid making the same mistakes again.
*221 Q. Which are the chief means by which we satisfy God for the temporal punishment due to sin? A. The chief means by which we satisfy God for the temporal punishment due to sin are: prayer, fasting, almsgiving, all spiritual and corporal works of mercy, and the patient suffering of the ills of life.
*221 Q. What are the main ways we make amends to God for the temporary punishment we deserve for sin? A. The main ways we make amends to God for the temporary punishment we deserve for sin are: prayer, fasting, giving to the poor, all spiritual and physical acts of kindness, and enduring the hardships of life with patience.
"Chief," but not the only means. "Fasting," especially the fasts imposed by the Church—in Lent for instance. Lent is the forty days before Easter Sunday during which we fast and pray to prepare ourselves for the resurrection of Our Lord, and also to remind us of His own fast of forty days before His Passion. "Almsgiving"—that is, money or goods given to the poor. "Spiritual" works of mercy are those good works we do for persons' souls. "Corporal" works of mercy are those we do for their bodies. "Ills of life"—sickness or poverty or misfortune, especially when we have not brought them upon ourselves by sin.
"Chief," but not the only way. "Fasting," especially the fasts set by the Church—in Lent for example. Lent is the forty days leading up to Easter Sunday during which we fast and pray to prepare ourselves for the resurrection of Our Lord, and also to remind us of His own forty-day fast before His Passion. "Almsgiving"—that means money or goods given to the poor. "Spiritual" works of mercy are the good deeds we do for people's souls. "Corporal" works of mercy are those we do for their bodies. "Ills of life"—sickness, poverty, or misfortune, especially when we haven't caused them ourselves by sin.
*222 Q. Which are the chief spiritual works of mercy? A. The chief spiritual works of mercy are seven: to admonish the sinner, to instruct the ignorant, to counsel the doubtful, to comfort the sorrowful, to bear wrongs patiently, to forgive all injuries, and to pray for the living and the dead.
*222 Q. What are the main spiritual works of mercy? A. The main spiritual works of mercy are seven: to warn the sinner, to teach the ignorant, to advise the uncertain, to comfort the grieving, to endure wrongs patiently, to forgive all offenses, and to pray for both the living and the dead.
"To admonish the sinner." If we love our neighbor we should help him in his distress, even when it is an inconvenience to us. We should help him also to correct his faults, we should point them out and warn him of them. We are obliged to do so in the following circumstances: First. When his fault is a mortal sin. Second. When we have some authority or influence over him. Third. When there is reason to believe that our warning will make him better instead of worse. If our advice only makes him worse, then we should not say anything to him about his fault, but keep out of his company ourselves. "Ignorant" especially in their religion. "Doubtful" about something in religion which you can explain and make clear to them. "Comfort," saying kind words of encouragement to them. "Wrongs," things not deserved; for example, persons talking ill about us, accusing us falsely, etc.; but if the false accusations, etc., are going to give scandal, then we must defend ourselves against them. If, for instance, lies were told about the father of a family, and it were likely all his children would believe them and lose their respect for his authority, then he must let them know the truth. But when we patiently suffer wrongs that injure only ourselves, and that are known only to God and ourselves, God sees our sufferings and rewards us. What matters it what people think we are if God knows all our doings and is pleased with them? "Living"—especially for the conversion of sinners, or for those who are on their deathbed. "The dead"—those suffering in Purgatory, especially if we have ever caused them to sin.
"To warn the sinner." If we love our neighbor, we should help them in their times of need, even if it's inconvenient for us. We should also help them correct their mistakes; we need to point them out and alert them to their faults. We're obligated to do this in the following situations: First, when their mistake is a serious sin. Second, when we have some authority or impact over them. Third, when we believe our warning will actually help them instead of make things worse. If our advice only makes things worse, then we should stay silent about their faults and keep our distance. "Ignorant," especially in their beliefs. "Doubtful" about something in their beliefs that we can explain and clarify for them. "Comfort," offering kind, encouraging words to them. "Wrongs," things they don't deserve; for example, people speaking badly about us, falsely accusing us, etc.; but if those false accusations are going to cause scandal, then we need to defend ourselves against them. If, for example, lies are told about a father, and it's likely all his children will believe those lies and lose respect for him, he must let them know the truth. But when we patiently endure wrongs that harm only us and are known only to God and ourselves, God sees our suffering and rewards us. What does it matter what people think we are if God knows everything we do and is pleased with it? "Living"—especially for the conversion of sinners or for those who are near death. "The dead"—those suffering in Purgatory, especially if we have ever caused them to sin.
*223 Q. Which are the chief corporal works of mercy? A. The chief corporal works of mercy are seven: to feed the hungry, to give drink to the thirsty, to clothe the naked, to ransom the captive, to harbor the harborless, to visit the sick, and to bury the dead.
*223 Q. What are the main corporal works of mercy? A. The main corporal works of mercy are seven: to feed the hungry, to give drink to the thirsty, to clothe the naked, to free the captive, to welcome the stranger, to visit the sick, and to bury the dead.
"Ransom the captive"—that is, chiefly those who while teaching or defending the true religion in pagan lands are taken prisoners by the enemies of our faith. You have perhaps heard of the Crusades or read about them in your history. Now let me briefly tell you what they were and why they were commenced. About the year 570, that is, about thirteen hundred years ago, when the Christian religion was spread over nearly the whole world, a man named Mahomet was born in Arabia. He pretended to be a great prophet sent from God, and gathered many followers about him. He told them his religion must be spread by the sword. He plundered cities and towns, and divided the spoils with his followers. He told them that all who died fighting for him would certainly go to Heaven. In a short time his followers became very numerous; for his religion was an easy and profitable one, allowing them to commit sin without fear of punishment, and giving them share of his plunder. Many others not influenced by these motives joined his religion for fear of being put to death. His followers were afterwards called by the general name of Saracens. They took possession of the Holy Land, of the City of Jerusalem, of the tomb of Our Lord, and of every spot rendered dear to Christians by Our Saviour's life and labors there. They persecuted the Christians who went to visit the Holy Land, and put many of them to death. When the news of these dreadful crimes reached Europe, the Christian kings and princes, at the request of the Pope, raised large armies and set out for the East to war against the Saracens and recover the Holy Land. Eight of these expeditions, or Crusades, as they are called, went out during two hundred years, that is, from 1095 to 1272. Those who took part in them are called Crusaders, from the word cross, because every soldier wore a red cross upon his shoulder.
"Ransom the captive"—meaning primarily those who, while teaching or defending the true faith in non-Christian lands, are captured by the enemies of our religion. You might have heard about the Crusades or read about them in your history classes. Let me quickly explain what they were and why they started. Around the year 570, about thirteen hundred years ago, when Christianity was spreading nearly worldwide, a man named Muhammad was born in Arabia. He claimed to be a great prophet sent by God and gathered many followers. He preached that his religion should be spread through violence. He looted cities and towns and shared the spoils with his followers. He promised them that anyone who died fighting for him would definitely go to Heaven. Soon, his followers grew numerous because his religion was easy and rewarding, allowing them to sin without fearing punishment while also sharing in his plunder. Many others, not motivated by greed, joined his faith out of fear of being killed. His followers were later known collectively as Saracens. They took control of the Holy Land, Jerusalem, the tomb of Our Lord, and every site cherished by Christians because of Our Savior's life and work there. They persecuted Christians visiting the Holy Land, killing many of them. When news of these terrible acts reached Europe, the Christian kings and princes, at the Pope's request, raised large armies and headed east to fight against the Saracens and reclaim the Holy Land. Eight of these expeditions, or Crusades, took place over two hundred years, from 1095 to 1272. The participants in these missions are called Crusaders, named after the word cross, since every soldier wore a red cross on their shoulder.
Some of these expeditions were successful, and some were not; but, on the whole, they prevented the Saracens from coming to Europe and taking possession of it. Many of the Christian soldiers and many of the pilgrims who visited the Holy Land were taken prisoners by the Saracens and held, threatened with death, till the Christians in Europe paid large sums of money as a ransom for their liberty. To free these captives was a great act of charity, and is one of the corporal works of mercy. Ransom means to pay money for another's freedom. Even now there are sometimes captives in pagan lands.
Some of these expeditions were successful, and some were not; but overall, they stopped the Saracens from invading Europe and taking control of it. Many of the Christian soldiers and pilgrims who traveled to the Holy Land were captured by the Saracens and held, threatened with death, until the Christians in Europe paid large amounts of money as a ransom for their freedom. Freeing these captives was a significant act of charity and is considered one of the corporal works of mercy. Ransom means to pay money for someone else's freedom. Even now, there are occasionally captives in non-Christian lands.
A pilgrim is one who goes on a journey to visit some holy place for the purpose of thus honoring God. He would not be a pilgrim if he went merely through curiosity. He must go with the holy intention of making his visit an act of worship. In our time pilgrimages to the Holy Land, to Rome, and other places are quite frequent. "To harbor"—that is, to give one who has no home a place of rest. A harbor is an inlet of the ocean where ships can rest and be out of danger; so we can also call the home or place of rest given to the homeless a harbor. "Sick," especially the sick poor and those who have no friends. "To bury" those who are strangers and have no friends. All Christians are bound to perform these works of mercy in one way or another. We have been relieved to some extent of doing the work ourselves by the establishment of institutions where these things are attended to by communities of holy men or women called religious. They take charge of asylums for the orphans, homes for the aged and poor, hospitals for the sick, etc., while many devote themselves to teaching in colleges, academies, and schools. But if these good religious do the work for us, we are obliged on our part to give them the means to carry it on. Therefore we should contribute according to our means to charitable institutions, and indeed to all institutions that promote the glory of God and the good of our religion. To explain more fully, religious are self-sacrificing men and women who, wishing to follow the evangelical counsels, dedicate their lives to the service of God. They live together in communities approved by the Church, under the rule and guidance of their superiors. Their day is divided between prayer, labor, and good works, more time being given to one or other of these according to the special end or aim of the community. The houses in which they live are called convents or monasteries, and the societies of which they are members are called religious orders, communities, or congregations. In some of these religious communities of men all the members are priests, in others some are priests and some are brothers, and in others still all are brothers. Priests belonging to the religious orders are called the regular clergy, to distinguish them from the secular clergy or priests who live and labor in the parishes to which they are assigned by their bishops. Sisters and nuns mean almost the same thing, but we generally call those nuns who live under a more severe rule and never leave the boundaries of their convent. In like manner friars, monks, and brothers lead almost the same kind of life, except that the monks practice greater penances and live under stricter rules. A hermit is a holy man who lives alone in some desert or lonely place, and spends his life in prayer and mortification. In the early ages of the Church there were many of these hermits, or Fathers of the desert, but now religious live together in communities.
A pilgrim is someone who travels to visit a holy place to honor God. They wouldn’t be considered a pilgrim if they went just out of curiosity. They need to have the sincere intention of making their visit an act of worship. Nowadays, pilgrimages to the Holy Land, Rome, and other places happen quite often. "To harbor" means to provide a resting place for someone who is homeless. A harbor is a safe area in the ocean where ships can rest and stay out of danger; similarly, we can refer to a home or resting place offered to the homeless as a harbor. "Sick" refers especially to the sick poor and those who are alone. "To bury" means caring for those who are strangers and have no friends. All Christians are called to perform these acts of mercy in some way. We have been somewhat relieved of these responsibilities by the establishment of organizations where communities of dedicated men and women, known as religious, take care of these tasks. They manage shelters for orphans, homes for the elderly and needy, hospitals for the sick, etc., while many dedicate themselves to teaching in colleges, academies, and schools. However, even if these devoted religious people do the work for us, we are obliged to support them by providing the means to continue their work. Therefore, we should contribute to charitable organizations based on our ability to do so, and indeed to all institutions that promote the glory of God and the well-being of our faith. To elaborate, religious individuals are selfless men and women who, wanting to follow the Gospel teachings, dedicate their lives to serving God. They live together in communities recognized by the Church, under the guidance of their leaders. Their daily routine is divided between prayer, work, and good deeds, with the focus shifting based on the specific goals of their community. The places where they live are called convents or monasteries, and the groups to which they belong are referred to as religious orders, communities, or congregations. In some of these religious groups, all members are priests; in others, there are both priests and brothers, and in still others, everyone is a brother. Priests who belong to religious orders are called the regular clergy, distinguishing them from the secular clergy, or priests who serve in the parishes assigned to them by their bishops. Sisters and nuns are often considered the same, but we typically refer to those as nuns who follow a stricter rule and never leave their convent. Similarly, friars, monks, and brothers live nearly the same type of life, except that monks observe more rigorous practices and live under tighter rules. A hermit is a holy person who lives alone in a deserted or secluded place, dedicating their life to prayer and self-discipline. In the early days of the Church, many hermits, or Fathers of the Desert, existed, but now religious individuals live together in communities.
The members of religious orders of men or women take three vows, namely, of poverty, chastity, and obedience. These orders were founded by holy persons for some special work approved of by the Church. Thus the Dominicans were founded by St. Dominic, and their special work was to preach the Gospel and convert heretics or persons who had fallen away from the Faith. The Jesuit Fathers were organized by St. Ignatius Loyola, and their work is chiefly teaching in colleges, and giving retreats and missions. So also have the Redemptorists, Franciscans, Passionists, etc., their special works, chiefly the giving of missions. In a word, every community, of either men or women, must perform the particular work for which it was instituted.
The members of religious orders for men and women take three vows: poverty, chastity, and obedience. These orders were established by holy individuals for specific tasks recognized by the Church. For example, the Dominicans were founded by St. Dominic to focus on preaching the Gospel and converting heretics or people who have strayed from the Faith. The Jesuit Fathers were organized by St. Ignatius Loyola, and their main work involves teaching in colleges and conducting retreats and missions. Similarly, the Redemptorists, Franciscans, Passionists, and others have their specific missions, primarily focused on delivering missions. In short, every community, whether for men or women, must carry out the particular work for which it was established.
But why, you will ask, are there different religious orders? In the first place, all persons are not fitted for the same kind of work: some can teach, others cannot; some can bear the fatigue of nursing the sick, and others cannot. Secondly, when Our Lord was on earth He performed every good work and practiced every virtue perfectly. He fasted, prayed, helped the needy, comforted the sorrowful, healed the sick, taught the ignorant, defended the oppressed, admonished sinners, etc. It would be impossible for any one community to imitate Our Lord in all His works, so each community takes one or more particular works of Our Lord, and tries to imitate Him as perfectly as possible in these at least. Some communities devote their time to prayer; others attend the sick; others teach, etc.; and thus when all unite their different works the combined result is a more perfect imitation of Our Lord's life upon earth.
But why, you might wonder, are there different religious orders? First of all, not everyone is suited for the same kind of work: some people can teach, while others cannot; some can handle the demands of caring for the sick, and others cannot. Secondly, when Jesus was on earth, He did every good work and practiced every virtue flawlessly. He fasted, prayed, helped those in need, comforted the grieving, healed the sick, taught the uninformed, defended the oppressed, warned sinners, and so on. It would be impossible for any single group to replicate everything Jesus did, so each group focuses on one or more specific works of His, trying to imitate Him as closely as possible in those areas. Some groups dedicate themselves to prayer; others care for the sick; others teach, and so on. When all these different groups combine their efforts, it creates a more complete reflection of Jesus' life on earth.
Lesson 20
ON THE MANNER OF MAKING A GOOD CONFESSION
Lesson 20
HOW TO MAKE A GOOD CONFESSION
*224 Q. What should we do on entering the confessional? A. On entering the confessional we should kneel, make the Sign of the Cross, and say to the priest: "Bless me, Father"; then add, "I confess to Almighty God, and to you, Father, that I have sinned."
*224 Q. What should we do when we enter the confessional? A. When we enter the confessional, we should kneel, make the Sign of the Cross, and say to the priest: "Bless me, Father"; then add, "I confess to Almighty God and to you, Father, that I have sinned."
*225 Q. Which are the first things we should tell the priest in confession? A. The first things we should tell the priest in confession are the, time of our last confession and whether we said the penance and went to Holy Communion.
*225 Q. What are the first things we should tell the priest in confession? A. The first things we should tell the priest in confession are the time of our last confession and whether we completed the penance and received Holy Communion.
*226 Q. After telling the time of our last confession and Communion, what should we do? A. After telling the time of our last confession and Communion we should confess all the mortal sins we have since committed, and all the venial sins we may wish to mention.
*226 Q. After mentioning when we last confessed and received Communion, what should we do? A. After mentioning when we last confessed and received Communion, we should confess all the serious sins we've since committed, as well as any minor sins we wish to mention.
"We may wish." We should tell every real sin we have never confessed. If we have no mortal sin to confess, it is well to tell some kind of mortal sin we have committed in our past life, though confessed before. We should do this because when we have only very small sins to confess there is always danger that we may not be truly sorry for them, and without sorrow there is no forgiveness. But when we add to our confession some mortal sin that we know we are sorry for, then our sorrow extends to all our sins, and makes us certain that our confession is a good one. If you should hear the sin of another person while you are waiting to make your own confession, you must keep that sin secret forever. If the person in the confessional is speaking too loud, you should move away so as not to hear; and if you cannot move, hold your hands on your ears so that you may not hear what is being said.
"We may wish." We should share every serious sin we've never confessed. If there aren't any serious sins to confess, it’s good to mention a serious sin from our past, even if we've already confessed it. We should do this because when we only have minor sins to confess, there’s a risk we might not truly feel sorry for them, and without genuine sorrow, there’s no forgiveness. However, when we include a serious sin we genuinely regret in our confession, our sorrow extends to all our sins and ensures that our confession is valid. If you overhear someone else’s sin while waiting to make your own confession, you must keep that sin confidential forever. If the person in the confessional is speaking too loudly, you should move away so you don’t hear; and if you can't move, cover your ears so you won’t hear what’s being said.
*227 Q. What must we do when the confessor asks us questions? A. When the confessor asks us questions, we must answer them truthfully and clearly.
*227 Q. What should we do when the confessor asks us questions? A. When the confessor asks us questions, we should answer them honestly and clearly.
*228 Q. What should we do after telling our sins? A. After telling our sins we should listen with attention to the advice which the confessor may think proper to give.
*228 Q. What should we do after confessing our sins? A. After confessing our sins, we should attentively listen to any advice the confessor may offer.
The priest in the confessional acts as judge, father, teacher, and physician. As judge he listens to your accusations against yourself, and passes sentence according to your guilt or innocence. As a father and teacher he loves you, and tries to protect you from your enemies by warning you against them, and teaching you the means to overcome them. But above all, he is a physician, who will treat your soul for its ills and restore it to spiritual health. He examines the sins you have committed, discovers their causes, and then prescribes the remedies to be used in overcoming them. When anything goes amiss with our bodily health we speedily have recourse to the physician, listen anxiously to what he has to say, and use the remedies prescribed. In the very same way we must follow the priest's advice if we wish our souls to be cured of their maladies. Just as a person who is unwell would not go one day to one physician and the next day to another, so a penitent should not change confessors without a good reason; and if you have any choice to make let it be made in the beginning, and let it rest on worthy motives. In a short time your confessor will understand the state of your soul, as the physician who frequently examines you does the state of your body. He will know all the temptations, trials, and difficulties with which you have to contend. He will see whether you are becoming better or worse; whether you are resisting your bad habits or falling more deeply into them; also, whether the remedies given are suited to you, and whether you are using them properly. All this your confessor will know, and it will save you the trouble of always repeating, and him the trouble of always asking. Thus the better your confessor knows you and all the circumstances of your life, the more will he be able to help you; for besides the forgiveness of your sins there are many other benefits derived from the Sacrament of Penance.
The priest in the confessional serves as a judge, father, teacher, and healer. As a judge, he listens to your self-accusations and decides based on your guilt or innocence. As a father and teacher, he cares for you and tries to shield you from harm by warning you about your enemies and teaching you how to overcome them. Most importantly, he is a healer who treats your soul for its issues and restores it to spiritual health. He looks at the sins you’ve committed, identifies their causes, and prescribes the right ways to address them. Just like when our physical health is off, we quickly see a doctor, listen carefully to their advice, and follow their treatment, we must also heed the priest’s guidance to heal our souls. Just as someone who is sick wouldn’t go to one doctor one day and another the next, a person seeking forgiveness shouldn’t switch confessors without a good reason; if you have a choice, make it early on and ensure it’s based on solid reasons. In time, your confessor will understand the condition of your soul, just as a doctor who sees you often understands your body. He will know all the temptations, challenges, and struggles you face. He will see whether you’re improving or getting worse, if you’re fighting against bad habits or falling deeper into them, and whether the remedies given are right for you and if you’re using them correctly. Your confessor will know all this, saving you the hassle of always repeating yourself and him the trouble of constantly asking. The better your confessor understands you and your life circumstances, the more help he can offer; because beyond forgiving your sins, there are many other benefits that come from the Sacrament of Penance.
But if at any time there should be danger of your making a bad confession to your own confessor—on account of some feeling of false shame—then go to any confessor you please; for it is a thousand times better to seek another confessor than run the risk of making a sacrilegious confession.
But if there's ever a chance that you might make a bad confession to your own confessor—because of some false sense of shame—then feel free to go to any confessor you want; it's a thousand times better to find another confessor than risk making a sacrilegious confession.
Never be so much attached to any one confessor that you would remain away from the Sacraments a long time rather than go to another in his absence.
Never get so attached to any one confessor that you'd stay away from the Sacraments for a long time instead of going to someone else when they're not available.
You should not consider the person in the confessional, but the power he exercises. You should be anxious concerning only this fact: Is there a priest there who was sent by Our Lord? Is there a minister of Christ there who has power to pardon my sins? If so, I will humbly go to him, no matter who he is or what his dispositions.
You shouldn’t focus on the person in the confessional, but rather on the authority he holds. The only thing you should worry about is this: Is there a priest there who was sent by Our Lord? Is there a minister of Christ who has the power to forgive my sins? If there is, I will humbly go to him, regardless of who he is or what his attitude may be.
*229 Q. How should we end our confession? A. We should end our confession by saying, "I also accuse myself of all the sins of my past life," telling, if we choose, one or several of our past sins.
*229 Q. How should we finish our confession? A. We should finish our confession by saying, "I also admit to all the sins of my past," and we can mention one or more of our past sins if we want to.
*230 Q. What should we do while the priest is giving us absolution? A. While the priest is giving us absolution, we should from our heart renew the Act of Contrition.
*230 Q. What should we do while the priest is giving us absolution? A. While the priest is giving us absolution, we should sincerely renew the Act of Contrition from our hearts.
All, especially children, should know this act well before going to confession.
All, especially kids, should understand this act well before going to confession.
Lesson 21
ON INDULGENCES
Lesson 21
ON INDULGENCES
231 Q. What is an indulgence? A. An indulgence is the remission in whole or in part of the temporal punishment due to sin.
231 Q. What is an indulgence? A. An indulgence is the cancellation, either fully or partially, of the temporary punishment owed for sin.
I have explained before what the temporal punishment is; namely, the debt which we owe to God after He has forgiven our sins, and which we must pay in order that satisfaction be made. It is, as I said, the value of the watch we must return after we have been pardoned for the act of stealing. I said this punishment must be blotted out by our penance. Now, the Church gives us an easy means of so doing, by granting us indulgences. She helps us by giving us a share in the merits of the Blessed Virgin and of the saints. All this we have explained when speaking in the Creed of the communion of saints.
I’ve previously described what temporal punishment is; it’s essentially the debt we owe to God after He forgives our sins, and we need to pay it to make satisfaction. It’s like the value of the watch we need to return after we’ve been forgiven for stealing it. I mentioned that this punishment needs to be erased through our penance. Now, the Church provides a simple way to do this by offering indulgences. She supports us by allowing us to share in the merits of the Blessed Virgin and the saints. We’ve discussed all this when we talked about the communion of saints in the Creed.
*232 Q. Is an indulgence a pardon of sin, or a license to commit sin? A. An indulgence is not a pardon of sin, nor a license to commit sin, and one who is in a state of mortal sin cannot gain an indulgence.
*232 Q. Is an indulgence a pardon for sin, or a permission to sin? A. An indulgence is neither a pardon for sin nor a permission to sin, and someone who is in a state of mortal sin cannot receive an indulgence.
If you are in a state of mortal sin you lose the merit of any good works you perform. God promises to reward us for good works, and if we are in the state of grace when we do the good works, God will keep His promise and give us the reward; but if we are in mortal sin, we have no right or claim to any reward for good works, because we are enemies of God. For this reason alone we should never remain even for a short time in mortal sin, since it is important for us to have all the merit we can. Even when we will not repent and return to Him, God rewards us for good works done by giving us some temporal blessings or benefits here upon earth. He never allows any good work to go unrewarded any more than He allows an evil deed to go unpunished. Although God is so good to us we nevertheless lose very much by being in a state of mortal sin; for God's grace is in some respects like the money in a bank: the more grace we receive and the better we use it, the more He will bestow upon us. When you deposit money in a savings bank, you get interest for it; and when you leave the interest also in the bank, it is added to your capital, and thus you get interest for the interest. So God not only gives us grace to do good, but also grace for doing the good, or, in other words, He gives us grace for using His grace.
If you are in a state of mortal sin, you lose the benefits of any good actions you take. God promises to reward us for good deeds, and if we are in a state of grace when we do them, God will keep His promise and give us the reward; but if we're in mortal sin, we have no claim to any reward for good works because we are enemies of God. For this reason alone, we should never stay in a state of mortal sin, even for a short time, since it’s important for us to have as much merit as possible. Even when we won’t repent and return to Him, God rewards us for good works by giving us some blessings or benefits in this life. He never lets a good deed go unrewarded any more than He lets an evil act go unpunished. Although God is very generous with us, we still lose a lot by being in a state of mortal sin; because God’s grace is somewhat like money in a bank: the more grace we receive and the better we use it, the more He will give us. When you deposit money in a savings account, you earn interest on it; and when you leave the interest in the account, it adds to your total, and you earn interest on that interest. Similarly, God not only gives us grace to do good but also grace for doing the good, or, in other words, He gives us grace for using His grace.
233 Q. How many kinds of indulgences are there? A. There are two kinds of indulgences—plenary and partial.
233 Q. How many types of indulgences are there? A. There are two types of indulgences—plenary and partial.
234 Q. What is a plenary indulgence? A. A plenary indulgence is the full remission of the temporal punishment due to sin.
234 Q. What is a plenary indulgence? A. A plenary indulgence is the complete removal of the temporary punishment owed for sin.
"Full remission"; so that if you gained a plenary indulgence and died immediately afterwards, you would go at once to Heaven. Persons go to Purgatory, as you know, to have the temporal punishment blotted out; but if you have no temporal punishment to make satisfaction for, there is no Purgatory for you. Gaining a plenary indulgence requires proper dispositions, as you may understand from its very great advantages. To gain it we must not only hate sin and be heartily sorry even for our venial sins, but we must not have a desire for even venial sin. We should always try to gain a plenary indulgence, for in so doing we always gain at least part of it, or a partial indulgence, greater or less according to our dispositions.
"Full remission"; so if you received a plenary indulgence and died immediately afterward, you would go straight to Heaven. As you know, people go to Purgatory to have their temporary punishments erased; but if you have no temporary punishment to atone for, there’s no Purgatory for you. Obtaining a plenary indulgence requires the right mindset, as you can see from its considerable benefits. To achieve it, we must not only hate sin and sincerely regret even our minor sins, but we must also not have any desire for even minor sins. We should always aim to gain a plenary indulgence, because in doing so, we always gain at least part of it, or a partial indulgence, which varies depending on our mindset.
235 Q. What is a partial indulgence? A. A partial indulgence is the remission of a part of the temporal punishment due to sin.
235 Q. What is a partial indulgence? A. A partial indulgence is the reduction of some of the temporary punishment that comes from sin.
*236 Q. How does the Church by means of indulgences remit the temporal punishment due to sins? A. The Church by means of indulgences remits the temporal punishment due to sin by applying to us the merits of Jesus Christ, and the superabundant satisfactions of the Blessed Virgin Mary and of the saints, which merits and satisfactions are its spiritual treasury.
*236 Q. How does the Church use indulgences to cancel the temporary punishment for sins? A. The Church uses indulgences to cancel the temporary punishment for sin by applying the merits of Jesus Christ, along with the surplus satisfactions of the Blessed Virgin Mary and the saints, which make up its spiritual treasury.
"Superabundant" means more than was necessary. (See explanation of communion of saints in the "Creed.")
"Superabundant" means more than was needed. (See explanation of communion of saints in the "Creed.")
237 Q. What must we do to gain an indulgence? A. To gain an indulgence we must be in a state of grace and perform the works enjoined.
237 Q. What do we need to do to receive an indulgence? A. To receive an indulgence, we must be in a state of grace and carry out the required actions.
"Works"—to visit certain churches or altars; to give alms; to say certain prayers, etc. For a plenary indulgence it is required in addition to go to confession and Holy Communion, and to pray for the intention of our Holy Father the Pope; for this last requirement it is sufficient to recite one Our Father and one Hail Mary. Now, what does praying for the intention of the Pope or bishop or anyone else mean? It does not mean that you are to pray for the Pope himself, but for whatever he is praying for or wishes you to pray for. For instance, on one day the Holy Father may be praying for the success of some missions that he is establishing in pagan lands; on another, he may be praying that the enemies of the Church may not succeed in their plans against it; on another, he may be praying for the conversion of some nation, and so on; whatever he is praying for or wishes you to pray for is called his intention.
"Works"—visiting certain churches or altars; giving to charity; saying specific prayers, etc. To receive a plenary indulgence, you also need to go to confession and receive Holy Communion, and pray for the intention of our Holy Father the Pope; for this last requirement, it's enough to recite one Our Father and one Hail Mary. So, what does it mean to pray for the intention of the Pope or bishop or anyone else? It doesn’t mean you are praying for the Pope himself, but for whatever he is praying for or wants you to pray for. For example, one day the Holy Father may be praying for the success of some missions he's starting in non-Christian countries; another day, he may be praying that the enemies of the Church don’t succeed in their plans against it; on another occasion, he may be praying for the conversion of a specific nation, and so forth; whatever he is praying for or desires you to pray for is considered his intention.
There are three basic ways of gaining a partial indulgence. A partial indulgence can be gained by: 1) raising one's heart to God amidst the duties and trials of life and making a pious invocation, even only mentally; 2) giving of oneself or one's goods to those in need; 3) voluntarily depriving oneself of something pleasing, in a spirit of penance.
There are three main ways to earn a partial indulgence. You can gain a partial indulgence by: 1) directing your heart to God during the challenges and responsibilities of life and making a sincere prayer, even if just in your mind; 2) helping others by sharing your time or resources with those in need; 3) willingly giving up something enjoyable as a form of penance.
A partial indulgence is also granted for reciting various well-known prayers, such as the acts of faith, hope, charity and contrition, and for performing certain acts of devotion, such as making a Spiritual Communion.
A partial indulgence is also granted for reciting various well-known prayers, such as the acts of faith, hope, charity, and contrition, and for performing certain acts of devotion, like making a Spiritual Communion.
To gain an indulgence you must also have the intention of gaining it. There are many prayers that we sometimes say to which indulgences are attached, and we do not know it. How can we gain them? By making a general intention every morning while saying our prayers to gain all the indulgences we can during the day, whether we know them or not. For example, there is a partial indulgence granted us every time we devoutly make the Sign of the Cross or devoutly use an article of devotion, such as a crucifix or scapular, properly blessed by any priest. Many may not know of these indulgences; but if they have the general intention mentioned above, they will gain the indulgence every time they perform the work. In the same way, by having this intention all those who are in the habit of going to confession every two weeks are able to gain a plenary indulgence when they fulfill the other prescribed conditions for gaining a plenary indulgence, even when they do not know that they are gaining the indulgence.
To receive an indulgence, you also need to intend to get one. There are many prayers we sometimes say that come with indulgences attached, and we might not even realize it. How do we earn them? By setting a general intention every morning while praying to gain all the indulgences possible throughout the day, whether we know about them or not. For instance, we receive a partial indulgence every time we sincerely make the Sign of the Cross or use a devotional item, like a crucifix or scapular, that’s been properly blessed by any priest. Many people may not be aware of these indulgences, but if they have the general intention mentioned earlier, they will earn the indulgence each time they perform the act. Similarly, those who regularly go to confession every two weeks can earn a plenary indulgence when they meet the other required conditions for receiving one, even if they’re unaware that they’re earning it.
Since partial indulgences were formerly designated by specific amounts of time, you sometimes see printed after a little prayer: An indulgence of forty days, or, an indulgence of one hundred days, or of a year, etc. What does that mean? Does it mean that a person who said that prayer would get out of Purgatory forty days sooner than he would have if he had not said it? No. I told you how the early Christians were obliged to do public penance for their sins; to stand at the door of the church and beg the prayers of those entering. Sometimes their penance lasted for forty days, sometimes for one hundred days, and sometimes for a longer period. By an indulgence of forty days the Church granted the remission of as much of the temporal punishment as the early Christians would have received for doing forty days' public penance. Just how much of the temporal punishment God blotted out for forty days' public penance we do not know; but whatever it was, God blotted out just the same for one who gained an indulgence of forty days by saying a little prayer to which the indulgence was attached. But why, you may wonder, did the early Christians do such penances? Because in those days their faith was stronger than ours, and they understood better than we do the malice of sin and the punishment it deserves. Later the Christians grew more careless about their religion and the service of God. The Church, therefore, wishing to save its children, made it easier for them to do penance. If it had continued to impose the public penances, many would not have performed them, and thus would have lost their souls.
Since partial indulgences were once designated by specific lengths of time, you often see printed after a short prayer: An indulgence of forty days, or an indulgence of one hundred days, or of a year, etc. What does that mean? Does it mean that a person who says that prayer will get out of Purgatory forty days sooner than if they hadn’t said it? No. I mentioned how the early Christians had to do public penance for their sins; they would stand at the church door and ask for the prayers of those entering. Sometimes their penance lasted for forty days, sometimes for one hundred days, and sometimes for even longer. By granting an indulgence of forty days, the Church offered the remission of as much temporal punishment as the early Christians would have received for doing forty days of public penance. We don’t know exactly how much temporal punishment God removed for forty days of public penance; however, whatever it was, God removed the same amount for someone who gained an indulgence of forty days by saying a short prayer associated with that indulgence. But why, you may wonder, did the early Christians do such penances? Because back then their faith was stronger than ours, and they understood the seriousness of sin and the punishment it deserves much better than we do. Eventually, Christians became more indifferent about their faith and service to God. Therefore, the Church, wanting to help its flock, made it easier for them to do penance. If it had continued to enforce public penances, many would not have completed them and would have risked losing their souls.
Lesson 22
ON THE HOLY EUCHARIST
Lesson 22
ABOUT THE HOLY EUCHARIST
238 Q. What is the Holy Eucharist? A. The Holy Eucharist is the Sacrament which contains the body and blood, soul and divinity of Our Lord Jesus Christ under the appearances of bread and wine.
238 Q. What is the Holy Eucharist? A. The Holy Eucharist is the Sacrament that includes the body and blood, soul and divinity of Our Lord Jesus Christ, presented under the forms of bread and wine.
When we say "contains," we mean the Sacrament which is the body and blood, etc. The Holy Eucharist is the same living body of Our Lord which He had upon earth; but it is in a new form, under the appearances of bread and wine. Therefore Our Lord in the tabernacle can see and hear us.
When we say "contains," we mean the Sacrament that is the body and blood, etc. The Holy Eucharist is the same living body of Our Lord that He had on earth; but it has a new form, appearing as bread and wine. Therefore, Our Lord in the tabernacle can see and hear us.
*239 Q. When did Christ institute the Holy Eucharist? A. Christ instituted the Holy Eucharist at the Last Supper, the night before He died.
*239 Q. When did Christ establish the Holy Eucharist? A. Christ established the Holy Eucharist at the Last Supper, the night before He was crucified.
"Last Supper," on Holy Thursday night. (See Explanation of the Passion,
Lesson 8, Question 78.)
"Last Supper," on Holy Thursday night. (See Explanation of the Passion,
Lesson 8, Question 78.)
*240 Q. Who were present when Our Lord instituted the Holy Eucharist? A. When Our Lord instituted the Holy Eucharist the twelve Apostles were present.
*240 Q. Who was there when Our Lord established the Holy Eucharist? A. When Our Lord established the Holy Eucharist, the twelve Apostles were there.
*241 Q. How did Our Lord institute the Holy Eucharist? A. Our Lord instituted the Holy Eucharist by taking bread, blessing, breaking, and giving to His Apostles, saying: "Take ye and eat. This is My body"; and then by taking the cup of wine, blessing and giving it, saying to them: "Drink ye all of this. This is My blood which shall be shed for the remission of sins. Do this for a commemoration of Me."
*241 Q. How did Our Lord institute the Holy Eucharist? A. Our Lord established the Holy Eucharist by taking bread, blessing it, breaking it, and giving it to His Apostles, saying: "Take and eat. This is My body"; and then by taking the cup of wine, blessing it, and giving it, saying to them: "Drink all of this. This is My blood which will be shed for the forgiveness of sins. Do this in remembrance of Me."
"Eucharist" means thanks. Hence this Sacrament is called Eucharist, because Our Lord gave thanks before changing the bread and wine into His body and blood, and because the offering of it to God is the most solemn act of thanksgiving. "Do this"—that is, the same thing I am doing, namely, changing bread and wine into My body and blood. "Commemoration"—that is, to remind you of Me, that you may continue to do the same till the end of time.
"Eucharist" means thanksgiving. That’s why this Sacrament is called Eucharist, because Our Lord gave thanks before transforming the bread and wine into His body and blood, and because offering it to God is the most serious act of gratitude. "Do this"—which means to do the same thing I’m doing, specifically, changing bread and wine into My body and blood. "Commemoration"—that is, to remind you of Me, so you can keep doing the same until the end of time.
*242 Q. What happened when Our Lord said, "This is My body, this is My blood"? A. When Our Lord said, "This is My body," the substance of the bread was changed into the substance of His body. When He said, "This is My blood," the substance of the wine was changed into the substance of His blood.
*242 Q. What happened when Our Lord said, "This is My body, this is My blood"? A. When Our Lord said, "This is My body," the essence of the bread was transformed into the essence of His body. When He said, "This is My blood," the essence of the wine was transformed into the essence of His blood.
"Substance" literally means that which stands underneath. Underneath what? Underneath the outward appearances or qualities—such as color, taste, figure, smell, etc.—that are perceptible to our senses. Therefore we never see the substance of anything. Of this seat, for instance, I see the color, size, and shape; I feel the hardness, etc.; but I do not see the substance, namely, the wood of which it is made. When the substance of anything is changed, the outward appearances change with it. But not so in the Holy Eucharist; for by a miracle the appearances of bread and wine remain the same after the substance has been changed as they were before. As the substance alone is changed in the Holy Eucharist, and as I cannot see the substance, I cannot see the change. I am absolutely certain, however, that the change takes place, because Our Lord said so; and I believe Him, because He could not deceive me. He is God, and God could not tell a lie, because He is infinite truth. This change is a great miracle, and that is the reason we cannot understand it, though we believe it. Once at a marriage in Cana of Galilee (John 2) Our Lord changed water into wine. The people were poor, and Our Lord, His Blessed Mother, and the Apostles were present at the wedding when the wine ran short; and our Blessed Lady, always so kind to everyone, wishing to spare these poor people from being shamed before their friends, asked Our Lord to perform the miracle, and at her request He did so, and changed many vessels of water into the best of wine. In that miracle Our Lord changed the substance of the water into the substance of the wine. Why, then, could He not change in the same way and by the same power the substance of bread and wine into the substance of His own body and blood? When He changed the water into wine, besides changing the substance, He changed everything else about it; so that it had no longer the appearance of water, but everyone could see that it was wine. But in changing the bread and wine into His body and blood He changes only the substance, and leaves everything else unchanged so that it still looks and tastes like bread and wine; even after the change has taken place and you could not tell by looking at it that it was changed. You know it only from your faith in the words of our divine Lord, when He tells you it is changed.
"Substance" literally means what lies beneath. Beneath what? Beneath the outward appearances or qualities—like color, taste, shape, smell, etc.—that we can perceive with our senses. So, we never actually see the substance of anything. For example, with this seat, I can see its color, size, and shape; I can feel its hardness, etc.; but I do not see the substance, which is the wood it’s made of. When the substance of something changes, its outward appearances change too. But that’s not the case with the Holy Eucharist; because through a miracle, the appearances of bread and wine stay the same after the substance has been changed. Since only the substance changes in the Holy Eucharist and I can’t see the substance, I can’t see the change. However, I’m completely certain that the change happens because Our Lord said so; and I believe Him because He couldn't deceive me. He is God, and God cannot lie, as He embodies infinite truth. This change is a significant miracle, which is why we can’t fully understand it, even though we believe it. Once, at a wedding in Cana of Galilee (John 2), Our Lord turned water into wine. The people were poor, and Our Lord, His Blessed Mother, and the Apostles were at the wedding when they ran out of wine. Our Blessed Lady, always kind to everyone, wanted to spare these poor people from embarrassment in front of their friends, so she asked Our Lord to perform the miracle. At her request, He did, changing many containers of water into the best wine. In that miracle, Our Lord changed the substance of the water into the substance of wine. So, why could He not change the substance of bread and wine into the substance of His own body and blood in the same way and by the same power? When He turned water into wine, not only did He change the substance, but everything else about it; it no longer looked like water, and everyone could tell it was wine. However, in changing bread and wine into His body and blood, He only changes the substance and leaves everything else the same so that it still looks and tastes like bread and wine; even after the change has happened, you couldn’t tell just by looking at it that it was changed. You know it’s changed only through your faith in the words of our divine Lord when He tells you it is.
Again, it is much easier to change one thing into another than to make it entirely out of nothing. Anyone who can create out of nothing can surely change one thing into another. Now Our Lord, being God, created the world out of nothing; and He could therefore easily change the substance of bread into the substance of flesh. I have said Our Lord's body in the Holy Eucharist is a living body, and every living body contains blood; and that is why we receive both the body and the blood of Our Lord under the appearance of the bread alone. The priest receives the body and blood of Our Lord under the appearance of both bread and wine, while the people receive it only under the appearance of bread. The early Christians used to receive it as the priest does—under the appearance of bread and under the appearance of wine; but the Church had to make a change on account of circumstances. First, all the people had to drink from the same chalice or cup, and some would not like that, and show disrespect for the Blessed Sacrament by refusing it. Then there was great danger of spilling the precious blood, passing it from one to another; and finally, some said that Christ's blood was not in His body under the appearance of bread. This was false; and to show that it was false, and for the other reasons, the Church after that gave Holy Communion to the people under the appearance of bread alone. The Church always believes and teaches the same truths. It always believed that the Holy Eucharist under the appearance of bread contained also Our Lord's blood; but it taught it more clearly when it was denied.
Again, it’s much easier to change one thing into another than to create something from nothing. Anyone who can make something from nothing can definitely change one thing into another. Now, since Our Lord is God, He created the world from nothing; therefore, He could easily change the substance of bread into the substance of flesh. I have said that Our Lord's body in the Holy Eucharist is a living body, and every living body contains blood; that’s why we receive both the body and the blood of Our Lord under the appearance of bread alone. The priest receives the body and blood of Our Lord under the appearances of both bread and wine, while the people only receive it under the appearance of bread. The early Christians used to receive it as the priest does—under the appearance of bread and under the appearance of wine; but the Church had to change this because of circumstances. First, everyone had to drink from the same chalice or cup, and some people didn’t like that and showed disrespect for the Blessed Sacrament by refusing it. Then there was a significant risk of spilling the precious blood when passing it from one person to another; and finally, some claimed that Christ's blood was not present in His body under the appearance of bread. This was false; and to demonstrate that it was false, along with the other reasons, the Church thereafter gave Holy Communion to the people under the appearance of bread alone. The Church always believes and teaches the same truths. It has always believed that the Holy Eucharist under the appearance of bread also contains Our Lord's blood; but it explained this more clearly when it was denied.
*243 Q. Is Jesus Christ whole and entire both under the form of bread and under the form of wine? A. Jesus Christ is whole and entire both under the form of bread and under the form of wine.
*243 Q. Is Jesus Christ fully present in both the bread and the wine? A. Jesus Christ is fully present in both the bread and the wine.
*244 Q. Did anything remain of the bread and wine after their substance had been changed into the substance of the body and blood of Our Lord? A. After the substance of the bread and wine had been changed into the substance of the body and blood of Our Lord there remained only the appearances of bread and wine.
*244 Q. Was there anything left of the bread and wine after they were transformed into the body and blood of Our Lord? A. After the bread and wine were changed into the body and blood of Our Lord, only the appearances of bread and wine remained.
245 Q. What do you mean by the appearances of bread and wine? A. By the appearances of bread and wine I mean the figure, the color, the taste, and whatever appears to the senses.
245 Q. What do you mean by the appearances of bread and wine? A. By the appearances of bread and wine, I mean the look, the color, the taste, and everything that can be sensed.
"Senses"—that is, eyes, ears, etc. Thus we have the sense of seeing, the sense of hearing, the sense of tasting, the sense of smelling, the sense of feeling.
"Senses"—that is, eyes, ears, and so on. So, we have the sense of sight, the sense of hearing, the sense of taste, the sense of smell, and the sense of touch.
The Holy Eucharist is the body of Our Lord just as long as the appearances of bread and wine remain, and when they go away Our Lord's body goes also. For example, if a church, tabernacle and all, was buried by a great earthquake, and after many years the people succeeded in getting at the tabernacle and opening it, and then found in the ciborium—that is, the vessel in which the Blessed Sacrament is kept in the tabernacle—only black dust, Our Lord would not be there, although He was there when the church was buried. He would not be there, because there was no longer the appearance of bread there: it had all been changed into ashes by time, and Our Lord left it when the change took place. But if the appearance of bread had remained unchanged, He would be there even after so many years.
The Holy Eucharist is the body of Our Lord as long as the appearances of bread and wine are present, and when they disappear, so does His body. For instance, if a church, tabernacle and all, was buried by a massive earthquake, and after many years the people managed to access the tabernacle and opened it, finding only black dust in the ciborium—that is, the vessel where the Blessed Sacrament is kept—Our Lord would not be there, even though He was present when the church was buried. He wouldn’t be there because the appearance of bread was gone; it had all turned to ashes over time, and He left when that change occurred. However, if the appearance of bread remained unchanged, He would still be there even after so many years.
When we receive Holy Communion, the appearance of bread remains for about fifteen or twenty minutes after we receive, and then it changes or disappears. Therefore during these fifteen or twenty minutes that the appearance remains Our Lord Himself is really with us; and for that reason we should remain about twenty minutes after Mass on the day we receive, making a thanksgiving, speaking to Our Lord, and listening to Him speaking to our conscience. What disrespect some people show Our Lord by rushing out of the church immediately after Mass and Holy Communion, sometimes beginning to talk or look around before making any thanksgiving! When you receive Holy Communion, after returning to your seat you need not immediately begin to read your prayerbook, but may bow your head and speak to Our Lord while He is present with you. After the appearances of bread vanish, Our Lord's bodily presence goes also, but He remains with us by His grace as long as we do not fall into mortal sin.
When we take Holy Communion, the appearance of bread lasts for about fifteen to twenty minutes afterward, and then it changes or disappears. Therefore, during these fifteen or twenty minutes, Our Lord is truly with us; for this reason, we should stay for about twenty minutes after Mass on the day we receive, giving thanks, talking to Our Lord, and listening to Him speak to our conscience. It's disrespectful how some people rush out of the church right after Mass and Holy Communion, sometimes starting to chat or look around before offering any thanks! When you receive Holy Communion, after returning to your seat, you don’t need to dive into your prayer book right away; you can bow your head and talk to Our Lord while He is present with you. After the appearance of the bread disappears, Our Lord's physical presence goes away too, but He remains with us through His grace as long as we don't fall into mortal sin.
*246 Q. What is this change of the bread and wine into the body and blood of Our Lord called? A. This change of the bread and wine into the body and blood of Our Lord is called Transubstantiation.
*246 Q. What is this change of the bread and wine into the body and blood of Our Lord called? A. This change of the bread and wine into the body and blood of Our Lord is called Transubstantiation.
"Transubstantiation"—that is, the changing of one substance into another substance; for example, the changing of the wood in a seat into stone.
"Transubstantiation"—which means changing one substance into another; for instance, turning the wood of a chair into stone.
*247 Q. How was the substance of the bread and wine changed into the substance of the body and blood of Christ? A. The substance of the bread and wine was changed into the substance of the body and blood of Christ by His almighty power.
*247 Q. How was the substance of the bread and wine changed into the substance of the body and blood of Christ? A. The substance of the bread and wine was changed into the substance of the body and blood of Christ by His all-powerful ability.
*248 Q. Does this change of bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ continue to be made in the Church? A. This change of bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ continues to be made in the Church by Jesus Christ through the ministry of His priests.
*248 Q. Does the transformation of bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ still happen in the Church? A. This transformation of bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ continues in the Church through Jesus Christ, using the ministry of His priests.
249 Q. When did Christ give His priests the power to change bread and wine into His body and blood? A. Christ gave His priests the power to change bread and wine into His body and blood when He said to His Apostles, "Do this in commemoration of Me."
249 Q. When did Christ give His priests the ability to transform bread and wine into His body and blood? A. Christ gave His priests the ability to transform bread and wine into His body and blood when He told His Apostles, "Do this in memory of Me."
250 Q. How do the priests exercise this power of changing bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ? A. The priests exercise this power of changing bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ through the words of consecration in the Mass, which are the words of Christ: "This is My body; this is My blood."
250 Q. How do the priests have the ability to change bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ? A. The priests have this ability through the words of consecration in the Mass, which are the words of Christ: "This is My body; this is My blood."
"Consecration." At what part of the Mass are the words of consecration pronounced? Just before the Elevation; that is, just before the priest holds up the Host and the chalice, while the altar boy rings the bell.
"Consecration." When during the Mass are the words of consecration said? Right before the Elevation; that is, just before the priest lifts up the Host and the chalice, while the altar boy rings the bell.
When the priest is going to say Mass he prepares everything necessary in the sacristy—the place or room near the altar where the sacred vessels and vestments are kept, and where the priest vests. He takes the chalice—that is, the long silver or gold goblet—out of its case; then he covers it with a long, narrow, white linen cloth called a purificator. Over this he places a small silver or gold plate called the paten, on which he places a host—that is, a thin piece of white bread prepared for Mass, perfectly round, and about the size of the bottom of a small drinking glass. He then covers this host with a white card, called a pall, after which he covers the chalice and all with a square cloth or veil that matches the vestments. Then he puts on his own vestments as follows: Over his shoulders the amice, a square, white cloth. Next the alb, a long white garment reaching down to his feet. He draws it about his waist with the cincture, or white cord. He places on his left arm the maniple, a short, narrow vestment. Around his neck he places the stole, a long, narrow vestment with a cross on each end. Over all he places the chasuble, or large vestment with the cross on the back. Lastly, he puts on his cap or biretta. Before going further I must say something about the color and signification of the vestments. There are five colors used, namely, white, red, green, violet, and black. White signifies innocence, and is used on the feasts of Our Lord, of the Blessed Virgin, and of some saints. Red signifies love, and is used on the feasts of the Holy Ghost and of the martyrs. Green signifies hope, and is used on Sundays from the Epiphany to Pentecost, unless some feast requiring another color falls on Sunday. Violet signifies penance, and is used in Advent and Lent. Black signifies sorrow, and is used on Good Friday and in Masses for the dead. As regards the vestments themselves: the amice signifies preparation to resist the attacks of the devil; the alb is the symbol of innocence; the cincture of charity; the maniple of penance; the stole of immortality; and the chasuble of love, by which we are enabled to bear the light burden Our Lord is pleased to lay upon us.
When the priest is about to say Mass, he prepares everything needed in the sacristy—the room next to the altar where the sacred vessels and vestments are stored, and where the priest gets dressed. He takes the chalice—a long silver or gold goblet—out of its case; then he covers it with a long, narrow white linen cloth called a purificator. On top of this, he places a small silver or gold plate called the paten, on which he puts a host—a thin piece of white bread made for Mass, perfectly round, and about the size of the bottom of a small drinking glass. He then covers this host with a white card called a pall, and after that, he covers the chalice and everything with a matching square cloth or veil. Next, he puts on his vestments in the following order: over his shoulders goes the amice, a square white cloth. Then the alb, a long white garment that reaches down to his feet. He ties it around his waist with the cincture, or white cord. On his left arm, he places the maniple, a short, narrow vestment. Around his neck, he puts the stole, a long, narrow vestment with a cross on each end. Lastly, he puts on the chasuble, the large vestment with a cross on the back. Before continuing, I should mention the colors and meanings of the vestments. There are five colors used: white, red, green, violet, and black. White signifies innocence and is used on the feasts of Our Lord, the Blessed Virgin, and some saints. Red signifies love and is used on the feasts of the Holy Spirit and the martyrs. Green signifies hope and is used on Sundays from the Epiphany to Pentecost, unless a feast requiring another color falls on a Sunday. Violet signifies penance and is used during Advent and Lent. Black signifies sorrow and is used on Good Friday and in Masses for the dead. Regarding the vestments themselves: the amice represents preparation to resist the attacks of the devil; the alb symbolizes innocence; the cincture represents charity; the maniple signifies penance; the stole represents immortality; and the chasuble symbolizes love, through which we are able to bear the light burden that Our Lord is pleased to lay upon us.
Vested as described, when the candles have been lighted on the altar, the priest takes the covered chalice in his hand and goes to the altar, where, after arranging everything, he begins Mass. After saying many prayers, he uncovers the chalice, and the acolyte or altar boy brings up wine and water, and the priest puts some into the chalice. Then he says a prayer, and offers to God the bread and wine to be consecrated. This is called the offertory of the Mass, and takes place after the boy presents the wine and water. Immediately after the Sanctus the priest begins what is called the Canon of the Mass, and soon after comes to the time of consecration, and has before him on the paten the white bread, or host, and in the chalice wine. Remember, it is only bread and wine as yet. After saying some prayers the priest bends down over the altar and pronounces the words of consecration, namely, "This is My body," over the bread; and "This is My blood," over the wine. Then there is no longer the bread the priest brought out and the wine the boy gave, upon the altar, but instead of both the body and blood of Our Lord. After the words of consecration, the priest genuflects or kneels before the altar to adore Our Lord, who just came there at the words of consecration; he next holds up the body of Our Lord—the Host—for the people also to see and adore it; he then replaces it on the altar and again genuflects. He does just the same with the chalice. This is called the Elevation. The altar boy then rings the bell to call the people's attention to it, for it is the most solemn part of the Mass. After more prayers the priest takes and consumes, that is, swallows, the sacred Host and drinks the precious blood from the chalice. Then the people come up to the altar to receive Holy Communion. But where does the priest get Holy Communion for them if he himself took all he consecrated? He opens the tabernacle, and there, in a large, beautiful vessel he has small Hosts. He consecrates a large number of these small hosts sometimes while he is consecrating the larger one for himself. When they are consecrated, he places them in the tabernacle, where they are kept with the sanctuary lamp burning before them, till at the different Masses they have all been given out to the people. Then he consecrates others at the next Mass, and does as before. The size of the Host does not make the slightest difference, as Our Lord is present whole and entire in the smallest particle of the Host. A little piece that you could scarcely see would be the body of Our Lord. However, the particle that is given to the people is about the size of a twenty-five-cent piece, so that they can swallow it before it melts. In receiving Holy Communion you must never let it entirely dissolve in your mouth, for if you do not swallow it you will not receive Holy Communion at all.
Vested as described, when the candles are lit on the altar, the priest takes the covered chalice in his hand and goes to the altar, where, after arranging everything, he starts the Mass. After saying several prayers, he uncovers the chalice, and the altar boy brings the wine and water, which the priest pours into the chalice. Then he offers a prayer, presenting the bread and wine to God for consecration. This is called the offertory of the Mass and happens after the boy presents the wine and water. Right after the Sanctus, the priest begins what is known as the Canon of the Mass, and shortly arrives at the time of consecration, with the white bread, or host, on the paten and wine in the chalice. Remember, it’s still just bread and wine at this moment. After reciting some prayers, the priest leans over the altar and pronounces the words of consecration, saying, "This is My body," over the bread, and "This is My blood," over the wine. At this point, what was once the bread and wine is now the body and blood of Our Lord. After the words of consecration, the priest genuflects or kneels before the altar to worship Our Lord, who has just become present at the words of consecration; he then holds up the body of Our Lord—the Host—for the congregation to see and adore; he places it back on the altar and genuflects again. He does the same with the chalice. This is called the Elevation. The altar boy rings the bell to draw the people's attention to this moment, as it is the most solemn part of the Mass. After more prayers, the priest consumes the sacred Host and drinks the precious blood from the chalice. Then the people come up to the altar to receive Holy Communion. But where does the priest get Holy Communion for them if he has already consumed everything he consecrated? He opens the tabernacle, where, in a large, beautiful vessel, he keeps small Hosts. He consecrates several of these smaller hosts sometimes while consecrating the larger one for himself. Once consecrated, he places them in the tabernacle, where they are kept with the sanctuary lamp burning before them, until they are distributed to the people during the different Masses. He will consecrate more at the next Mass, and the process continues as before. The size of the Host does not matter at all, as Our Lord is fully present in even the smallest particle of the Host. A tiny piece that you could barely see would still be the body of Our Lord. However, the piece given to people is roughly the size of a quarter, so that they can swallow it before it melts. When receiving Holy Communion, you must never let it completely dissolve in your mouth, because if you don’t swallow it, you won’t have truly received Holy Communion.
Here I might tell you what Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament is. The priest sometimes consecrates at the Mass two large hosts, one he consumes himself, as I have told you, and the other he places in the tabernacle in a little gold case. When it is time for Benediction, he places this little case—made of glass and gold, about the size of a watch—in the gold or silver monstrance which you see on the altar at Benediction. It is made to represent rays of light coming from the Blessed Sacrament. After the choir sings, the priest says the prayer and goes up and blesses the people with the Blessed Sacrament; that is, when he holds up the monstrance over the people Our Lord Himself blesses them. Should we not be very anxious, therefore, to go to Benediction? If the bishop came to the church, we would all be anxious to receive his blessing; and if our Holy Father the Pope came, everybody would rush to the church. But what are they compared to Our Lord Himself? And yet when He comes to give His blessing, many seem to care little about it. Because Our Lord in His goodness is pleased to give us His blessing often, we are indifferent about it. The holy teachers and fathers of the Church tell us that if we could see the sanctuary at Mass and Benediction as it really is, we would see it filled with angels all bowed down, adoring Our Lord. These good angels must be very much displeased at those who are so indifferent at Mass or Benediction as not to pay any attention; and above all, at those who stay away. The large silk cloak the priest wears at Benediction is called the cope, and the long scarf that is placed over his shoulders the humeral, or Benediction veil. At the words of consecration, you must know, the priest does not say "This is Christ's body," but "This is My body"; for at the altar the priest is there in the place of Our Lord Himself. It is Our Lord who offers up the sacrifice, and the priest is His instrument. That is why the priest wears vestments while saying Mass or performing his sacred duties, to remind him that he is, as it were, another person; that he is not acting in his own name or right, but in the name and place of our Blessed Lord.
Here I can explain what the Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament is. The priest sometimes consecrates two large hosts during Mass; one is consumed by him, as I mentioned, and the other is placed in the tabernacle inside a small gold case. When it’s time for Benediction, he puts this small case—made of glass and gold, about the size of a watch—into the gold or silver monstrance you see on the altar during Benediction. It’s designed to represent rays of light coming from the Blessed Sacrament. After the choir sings, the priest says a prayer and then goes up to bless the people with the Blessed Sacrament; in other words, when he holds the monstrance above the people, Our Lord Himself blesses them. Shouldn’t we be eager to attend Benediction? If the bishop came to the church, we would all be excited to receive his blessing; and if our Holy Father the Pope visited, everyone would rush to the church. But what are they compared to Our Lord Himself? Yet when He comes to give His blessing, many seem indifferent. Because Our Lord generously gives us His blessing often, we become indifferent to it. The holy teachers and fathers of the Church tell us that if we could see the sanctuary during Mass and Benediction as it truly is, we would find it filled with angels, all bowing down and adoring Our Lord. These good angels must be greatly displeased with those who show indifference during Mass or Benediction, especially those who choose to stay away. The large silk cloak the priest wears during Benediction is called the cope, and the long scarf over his shoulders is the humeral, or Benediction veil. At the words of consecration, you should know the priest doesn’t say, “This is Christ’s body,” but “This is My body”; for at the altar, the priest stands in for Our Lord Himself. It is Our Lord who offers the sacrifice, and the priest serves as His instrument. That’s why the priest wears vestments during Mass or when performing sacred duties, to remind him that he is, in a sense, another person; that he is not acting on his own behalf, but in the name and place of our Blessed Lord.
I have given you in a general way a description of the Mass: let me now mention its particular parts by their proper names, and tell you what they are. At the foot of the altar the priest says the Confiteor, a psalm, and other prayers as a preparation. Then he ascends the altar steps—praying as he goes—and says the Introit, which is some portion of the Holy Scripture suitable to the feast of the day. He next says the Kyrie Eleison, which means: Lord, have mercy on us. He then says the Gloria, or hymn of praise, though not in all Masses. After the Gloria he says the Collect, which is a collection of prayers in which the priest prays for the needs of the Church and of its children. This is followed by the Epistle, which is a part of the Holy Scripture. Then the Mass-book is removed to the other side of the altar, and the priest reads the Gospel—that is, some portion of the Gospel written by the evangelists. After the Gospel the priest, except in some Masses, says the Creed, which is a profession of his faith in the mysteries of our religion. After this the priest uncovers the chalice, and offers up the bread and wine which is to be consecrated. This is called the Offertory of the Mass. The offertory is followed by the Lavabo, or washing of the priest's hands: first, that the priest's hands may be purified to touch the Sacred Host; and, second, to signify the purity of soul he must have to offer the Holy Sacrifice. After saying some prayers in secret he says the Preface, which is a solemn hymn of praise and thanksgiving. The Preface ends with the Sanctus. The Sanctus is followed by the Canon of the Mass. Canon means a rule; so this part of the Mass is called the Canon, because it never changes. The Epistle, Gospel, prayers, etc., are different on the different feasts, but the Canon of the Mass is always the same. The Canon is the part of the Mass from the Sanctus down to the time the priest again covers the chalice. After the Canon the priest says the Post-Communion, or prayer after Communion; then he gives the blessing and goes to the other side of the altar, and ends Mass by saying the last Gospel.
I have given you a general description of the Mass, so let me now highlight its specific parts by their proper names and explain what they are. At the foot of the altar, the priest begins with the Confiteor, a psalm, and other prayers to prepare. Then he ascends the altar steps—praying as he goes—and says the Introit, which is a portion of the Holy Scripture appropriate for that day's feast. Next, he says the Kyrie Eleison, meaning: Lord, have mercy on us. He then recites the Gloria, or hymn of praise, although not in every Mass. After the Gloria, he offers the Collect, which is a gathering of prayers in which he asks for the needs of the Church and its members. This is followed by the Epistle, a section of the Holy Scripture. Then, the Mass book is moved to the other side of the altar, and the priest reads the Gospel—a part of the Gospel written by the evangelists. After the Gospel, except in some Masses, the priest recites the Creed, which is a declaration of his faith in the mysteries of our religion. Following this, the priest uncovers the chalice and presents the bread and wine to be consecrated. This is known as the Offertory of the Mass. The offertory is then followed by the Lavabo, or washing of the priest's hands: first, to purify his hands to touch the Sacred Host; and second, to signify the purity of soul he must have to offer the Holy Sacrifice. After some quiet prayers, he says the Preface, which is a solemn hymn of praise and thanksgiving. The Preface concludes with the Sanctus. The Sanctus is followed by the Canon of the Mass. Canon means a rule; this part of the Mass is called the Canon because it never changes. The Epistle, Gospel, prayers, etc., vary with the different feasts, but the Canon of the Mass always remains the same. The Canon begins with the Sanctus and continues until the priest covers the chalice again. After the Canon, the priest says the Post-Communion, or prayer after Communion; then he gives the blessing and moves to the other side of the altar, concluding the Mass by saying the last Gospel.
During the Mass the priest frequently makes the Sign of the Cross, genuflects or bends the knee before the altar, strikes his breast, etc. What do all these ceremonies mean? By the cross the priest is reminded of the death of Our Lord; he genuflects as an act of humility, and he strikes his breast to show his own unworthiness. You will understand all the ceremonies of the altar if you remember that Our Lord—the King of kings—is present on it, and the priest acts in His presence as the servants in a king's palace would act when approaching their king or in his presence, showing their respect by bowing, kneeling, etc. You will see this more clearly if you watch the movements of the priest at the altar while the Blessed Sacrament is exposed.
During the Mass, the priest often performs the Sign of the Cross, kneels before the altar, strikes his chest, and more. What do all these actions mean? The cross reminds the priest of Our Lord’s death; kneeling is a gesture of humility, and striking his chest signifies his own unworthiness. You’ll understand all the ceremonies at the altar if you remember that Our Lord—the King of kings—is present there, and the priest behaves like servants in a king's palace would when in the presence of their king, showing respect by bowing and kneeling, among other actions. You’ll notice this more clearly if you observe the priest's movements at the altar while the Blessed Sacrament is exposed.
Lesson 23
ON THE END FOR WHICH THE HOLY EUCHARIST WAS INSTITUTED
Lesson 23
ABOUT THE PURPOSE FOR WHICH THE HOLY EUCHARIST WAS ESTABLISHED
251 Q. Why did Christ institute the Holy Eucharist? A. Christ instituted the Holy Eucharist:
251 Q. Why did Christ create the Holy Eucharist? A. Christ created the Holy Eucharist:
(1) To unite us to Himself and to nourish our souls with His divine life. (2) To increase sanctifying grace and all the virtues in our souls. (3) To lessen our evil inclinations. (4) To be a pledge of everlasting life. (5) To fit our bodies for a glorious resurrection. (6) To continue the sacrifice of the Cross in His Church.
(1) To connect us to Himself and nourish our souls with His divine life. (2) To increase sanctifying grace and all the virtues in our souls. (3) To reduce our bad tendencies. (4) To guarantee everlasting life. (5) To prepare our bodies for a glorious resurrection. (6) To carry on the sacrifice of the Cross in His Church.
"To nourish." The Holy Eucharist does to our souls what natural food does to our bodies. It strengthens them and makes up for the losses we have sustained by sin, etc. "A pledge," because it does not seem probable that a person who all during life had been fed and nourished with the sacred body of Our Lord should after death be buried in Hell. "To fit our bodies," because Our Lord has promised that if we eat His flesh and drink His blood, that is, receive the Holy Eucharist, He will raise us up on the last day, or Day of Judgment. (John 6:55).
"To nourish." The Holy Eucharist does for our souls what natural food does for our bodies. It strengthens us and compensates for the losses we've suffered because of sin, etc. "A pledge," because it seems unlikely that someone who had been nourished with the sacred body of Our Lord throughout their life would end up in Hell after death. "To fit our bodies," because Our Lord has promised that if we eat His flesh and drink His blood, meaning if we receive the Holy Eucharist, He will raise us up on the last day, or Day of Judgment. (John 6:55).
*252 Q. How are we united to Jesus Christ in the Holy Eucharist? A. We are united to Jesus Christ in the Holy Eucharist by means of Holy Communion.
*252 Q. How are we connected to Jesus Christ in the Holy Eucharist? A. We are connected to Jesus Christ in the Holy Eucharist through Holy Communion.
253 Q. What is Holy Communion? A. Holy Communion is the receiving of the body and blood of Christ.
253 Q. What is Holy Communion? A. Holy Communion is receiving the body and blood of Christ.
Holy Communion is therefore the receiving of the Sacrament of Holy
Eucharist.
Holy Communion is, therefore, receiving the Sacrament of Holy
Eucharist.
254 Q. What is necessary to make a good Communion? A. To make a good Communion it is necessary to be in a state of sanctifying grace, to be fasting for one hour, and to have a right intention.
254 Q. What do you need to have a good Communion? A. To have a good Communion, you need to be in a state of sanctifying grace, fast for one hour, and have the right intention.
"Fasting"—that is, not having taken any food or drink for one hour before the time of Communion. (Water and true medicine do not break the fast and may be taken at any time.) What, then, are you to do, if, without thinking, you break your fast? Do not go to Communion at that Mass; you can remain in church and receive Communion at the following Mass. Never, never, on any account, go to Holy Communion when you have broken your fast. Never let fear or shame or anything else make you do such a thing. It is no shame to break your fast by mistake; but it is a great sin to knowingly go to Communion after breaking your fast.
"Fasting"—meaning that you haven't eaten or drunk anything for one hour before Communion. (Water and genuine medicine don't break the fast and can be taken anytime.) So, what should you do if you accidentally break your fast? Don't go to Communion at that Mass; you can stay in church and receive Communion at the next one. Never, ever, under any circumstances, go to Holy Communion if you've broken your fast. Don't let fear, shame, or anything else pressure you into doing that. It's not a big deal to break your fast by mistake, but it is a serious sin to knowingly receive Communion after doing so.
"A right intention"—holy and spiritual motive, such as, to obey Our Lord's command, to receive strength to resist temptation, or to be united with Our Lord.
"A right intention"—a holy and spiritual motive, like obeying Our Lord's command, gaining strength to resist temptation, or becoming united with Our Lord.
255 Q. Does he who receives Communion in mortal sin receive the body and blood of Christ? A. He who receives Communion in mortal sin receives the body and blood of Christ, but does not receive His grace, and he commits a great sacrilege.
255 Q. Does someone who receives Communion in a state of mortal sin receive the body and blood of Christ? A. Yes, someone who receives Communion in a state of mortal sin does receive the body and blood of Christ, but they do not receive His grace, and they commit a serious sacrilege.
"The body and blood," because the appearance of bread and wine is there after consecration, and he receives it. He who receives the Holy Eucharist in mortal sin receives Our Lord into a filthy soul. If a great and highly-esteemed friend was coming to visit your house, would you not take care to have everything clean and neat, and pleasing to him? And the greater the dignity of the person coming, the more careful you would be. But what are all the persons of dignity in the world—kings or popes—compared with Our Lord, who leaves the beauties of Heaven to come to visit our soul? and the purest we can make it is not pure enough for Him. But He is kind to us, and is satisfied with our poor preparation if He sees we are doing our very best. But oh, what a shame to receive Him into our soul without any preparation! and more horrible still, to fill it with vile sins, that we know are most disgusting to Him! No wonder, therefore, that receiving Holy Communion unworthily is so great a crime, and so deserving of God's punishment. Why should not the heavenly Father punish us for treating His beloved Son with such shameful disrespect and contempt?
"The body and blood," because the appearance of bread and wine is present after consecration, and he receives it. He who receives the Holy Eucharist in a state of mortal sin takes Our Lord into a filthy soul. If a great and highly regarded friend were coming to visit your home, wouldn’t you want everything to be clean, tidy, and pleasing to them? The higher the status of the person coming, the more careful you would be. But what are all the dignitaries in the world—kings or popes—compared to Our Lord, who leaves the glories of Heaven to visit our soul? And the purest we can make it is still not pure enough for Him. However, He is kind to us and is satisfied with our humble preparation if He sees we are doing our best. But oh, what a shame to receive Him into our soul without any preparation! Even worse, to fill it with vile sins that we know are utterly repulsive to Him! It’s no surprise, then, that receiving Holy Communion unworthily is such a serious sin and deserving of God’s punishment. Why shouldn’t the heavenly Father punish us for treating His beloved Son with such disgraceful disrespect and contempt?
*256 Q. Is it enough to be free from mortal sin, to receive plentifully the graces of Holy Communion? A. To receive plentifully the graces of Holy Communion it is not enough to be free from mortal sin, but we should be free from all affection to venial sin, and should make acts of lively faith, of firm hope and ardent love.
*256 Q. Is it enough to be free from serious sin in order to receive the full benefits of Holy Communion? A. To receive the full benefits of Holy Communion, it's not enough to be free from serious sin; we should also be free from any attachment to minor sins, and we should express a strong faith, solid hope, and passionate love.
*257 Q. What is the fast necessary for Holy Communion? A. The fast necessary for Holy Communion is the abstaining for one hour from everything which is taken as food or drink.
*257 Q. What is the fast required for Holy Communion? A. The fast required for Holy Communion is to avoid all food and drink for one hour before receiving it.
{T.N.: The reprint book, upon which this e-text is based, contains the statement, "published . . . with minor revisions to conform with the new regulations on fasting and indulgences, etc."}
{T.N.: The reprint book, upon which this e-text is based, contains the statement, "published . . . with minor revisions to align with the new rules on fasting and indulgences, etc."}
"Food or drink." If you swallowed a button, for example, it would not break your fast, because it is not food or drink.
"Food or drink." If you swallowed a button, for instance, it wouldn't break your fast because it’s not considered food or drink.
*258 Q. Is anyone ever allowed to receive Holy Communion when not fasting? A. Anyone in danger of death is allowed to receive Communion when not fasting.
*258 Q. Is anyone ever allowed to receive Holy Communion when not fasting? A. Anyone who is in danger of death is allowed to receive Communion without fasting.
"Not fasting." But then the Holy Communion is called by another name; it is called the Viaticum, and the priest uses a different prayer in giving it to the sick person. When a person dies, he goes, as it were, on a journey from this world to the next. Now, when persons are going on a journey they must have food to strengthen them. Our Lord wished, therefore, that all His children who had to go on this most important of all journeys—from this world to the next—should be first strengthened by this sacred food, His own body and blood. The Latin word for road or way is via, and Viaticum therefore means food for the way. Not only are persons in danger of death allowed to receive when not fasting, but they are obliged to receive; and the priest is obliged under pain of sin to bring Holy Communion to the dying at any hour of the day or night.
"Not fasting." However, Holy Communion is referred to by another name; it is called the Viaticum, and the priest uses a different prayer when giving it to the sick person. When someone dies, it’s like they’re embarking on a journey from this world to the next. When people are going on a journey, they need food to sustain them. Our Lord wanted all His children, who had to take this most important journey—from this world to the next—to be strengthened first by this sacred food, His own body and blood. The Latin word for road or way is via, so Viaticum means food for the journey. Not only are those in danger of death permitted to receive when not fasting, but they are also required to receive; and the priest must bring Holy Communion to the dying at any time of the day or night, under penalty of sin.
When I speak of a great journey from this world to the next, from earth to Heaven, you must not understand me to mean that it is a great many miles from earth to Heaven, or that it takes a long time to go to the next world. No. We cannot measure the distance, nor does it take time to get there. The instant we die, no matter where that happens, our soul is in the next world, and judged by God.
When I talk about a significant journey from this world to the next, from earth to Heaven, don't take it to mean that it's many miles between the two, or that it takes a long time to reach the next world. That's not it. We can’t measure the distance, and it doesn’t take time to get there. The moment we die, no matter where it happens, our soul is in the next world and is judged by God.
*259 Q. When are we bound to receive Holy Communion? A. We are bound to receive Holy Communion, under pain of mortal sin, during the Easter time and when in danger of death.
*259 Q. When are we required to receive Holy Communion? A. We are required to receive Holy Communion, or we risk committing a serious sin, during the Easter season and when facing death.
*260 Q. Is it well to receive Holy Communion often? A. It is well to receive Holy Communion often, as nothing is a greater aid to a holy life than often to receive the Author of all graces and the Source of all good.
*260 Q. Is it good to receive Holy Communion frequently? A. Yes, it's good to receive Holy Communion frequently, because nothing helps lead a holy life better than regularly receiving the Author of all graces and the Source of all goodness.
*261 Q. What should we do after Holy Communion? A. After Holy Communion we should spend some time in adoring Our Lord, in thanking Him for the graces we have received and in asking Him for the blessings we need.
*261 Q. What should we do after Holy Communion? A. After Holy Communion, we should take some time to worship Our Lord, to thank Him for the grace we've received, and to ask Him for the blessings we need.
Lesson 24
ON THE SACRIFICE OF THE MASS
Lesson 24
ON THE SACRIFICE OF THE MASS
262 Q. When and where are the bread and wine changed into the body and blood of Christ? A. The bread and wine are changed into the body and blood of Christ at the consecration in the Mass.
262 Q. When and where are the bread and wine transformed into the body and blood of Christ? A. The bread and wine are transformed into the body and blood of Christ at the consecration during the Mass.
263 Q. What is the Mass? A. The Mass is the unbloody sacrifice of the body and blood of Christ.
263 Q. What is the Mass? A. The Mass is the non-bloody sacrifice of the body and blood of Christ.
The Holy Sacrifice is called Mass probably from the words the priest says at the end when he turns to the people and says, "Ite Missa est"; that is, when he tells them the Holy Sacrifice is over.
The Holy Sacrifice is called Mass, likely derived from the words the priest says at the end when he turns to the people and says, "Ite Missa est"; in other words, when he informs them that the Holy Sacrifice has concluded.
*264 Q. What is a sacrifice? A. A sacrifice is the offering of an object by a priest to God alone, and the consuming of it to acknowledge that He is the Creator and Lord of all things.
*264 Q. What is a sacrifice? A. A sacrifice is the act of a priest offering something to God alone, and consuming it to recognize that He is the Creator and Lord of everything.
"Sacrifice." From the very earliest history of man we find people—for example, Abel, Noe, etc.—offering up sacrifice to God; that is, taking something and offering it to God, and then destroying it to show that they believed God to be the Master of life and death, and the Supreme Lord of all things. These offerings were sometimes plants or fruits, but most frequently animals.
"Sacrifice." Since the earliest days of humanity, we see individuals—like Abel, Noah, and others—giving sacrifices to God; that is, taking something and presenting it to God, then destroying it to demonstrate their belief that God is the Master of life and death, the Supreme Lord of everything. These offerings were sometimes plants or fruits, but more often animals.
When men lost the knowledge of the true God and began to worship idols of wood and stone, they began or continued to offer sacrifice to these false gods. Very often, too, they sacrificed human beings to please, as they imagined, these gods. They believed there was a god for everything—a god for the ocean, a god for thunder, a god for wind, for war, etc.; and when anything happened that frightened or injured the people, they believed that some of these gods were offended, and offered up sacrifice to pacify them. They had a temple in Rome called the Pantheon, or temple of all the gods, and here they kept the idols of all the gods they could think of or know. At Athens, they were afraid of neglecting any god whom they might thus give offense, and so they had an altar for the unknown god. When St. Paul came to preach, he saw this altar to the unknown god, and told them that was the God he came to preach about. (Acts 17). He preached to them the existence of the true God, and showed them that there is only one God and not many gods.
When people lost the knowledge of the true God and started worshipping idols made of wood and stone, they began or continued sacrificing to these false gods. Often, they even sacrificed human beings to please what they thought were these gods. They believed there was a god for everything—a god of the ocean, a god of thunder, a god of wind, a god of war, etc.; and when something happened that scared or harmed them, they thought some of these gods were angry, so they offered sacrifices to calm them down. In Rome, there was a temple called the Pantheon, or temple of all the gods, where they kept the idols of every god they could think of or know. In Athens, they worried about offending any god they might have neglected, so they even had an altar for the unknown god. When St. Paul came to preach, he noticed this altar to the unknown god and told them that was the God he came to talk about. (Acts 17). He preached to them about the existence of the true God and explained that there is only one God, not many.
They did not have these idols of wood and stone in their temples for the same reason that we have images in our churches, because they believed that the idols were really gods, and offered sacrifice to them, whereas we know that our images are the works of men. Near the city of Jerusalem there was a great idol named Molech, to which parents offered their infants in sacrifice. We know, too, from the history of this country that the Indians used to send a beautiful young girl in a white canoe over the falls of Niagara every year, as a sacrifice offered to the god of the falls. Even yet human sacrifices are offered up on savage islands. Sometimes certain animals were selected to be heathen gods. The people who worship idols, animals, or other things of that kind as gods are called pagans, idolaters, or heathens.
They didn't have wooden and stone idols in their temples for the same reason we have images in our churches—they believed those idols were actual gods and sacrificed to them, while we recognize that our images are made by people. Near Jerusalem, there was a huge idol named Molech, where parents sacrificed their infants. We also know from this country's history that the Native Americans used to send a beautiful young girl in a white canoe over Niagara Falls every year as a sacrifice to the god of the falls. Even today, human sacrifices are made on remote islands. Sometimes, certain animals were chosen to be worshiped as pagan gods. People who worship idols, animals, or similar things are called pagans, idolaters, or heathens.
The Israelites, who worshipped the true God and offered Him sacrifices because He made known to them by revelation that they should do so, had four kinds of sacrifice. They offered one for sin, another in thanksgiving for benefits received, another as an act of worship, and another to beg God's blessing. It is just for these four ends or objects we offer up the one Christian sacrifice of the holy Mass. In the beginning the head of the family offered sacrifice—as Noe did when he came out of the Ark—but after God gave His laws to Moses He appointed priests to offer up the sacrifices. Aaron, the brother of Moses, was the first priest appointed, and after him his descendants were priests. When Our Lord came and instituted a new sacrifice He established the priesthood of the New Law, and appointed His own priests, namely, the Apostles, with St. Peter as their chief, and after them their lawfully appointed successors, the bishops of the world, with the Pope as their chief. The sacrifices of the Old Law were figures of the sacrifice of the New Law, and were to cease at its institution; and when the ancient sacrifices ceased the ancient priesthood was at an end.
The Israelites, who worshiped the true God and made sacrifices because He revealed to them that they should, had four types of sacrifice. They offered one for sin, another in gratitude for benefits received, another as an act of worship, and another to ask for God's blessing. These four purposes are why we offer the one Christian sacrifice of the holy Mass. In the beginning, the head of the family made sacrifices—like Noah did when he came out of the Ark—but after God gave His laws to Moses, He appointed priests to perform the sacrifices. Aaron, Moses' brother, was the first priest appointed, and his descendants served as priests after him. When Our Lord came and established a new sacrifice, He created the priesthood of the New Law and appointed His own priests, namely, the Apostles, with St. Peter as their leader, and after them their lawfully appointed successors, the bishops of the world, with the Pope as their leader. The sacrifices of the Old Law were symbols of the sacrifice of the New Law and were meant to end at its establishment; when the ancient sacrifices ended, the ancient priesthood also came to a close.
265 Q. Is the Mass the same sacrifice as that of the Cross? A. The Mass is the same sacrifice as that of the Cross.
265 Q. Is the Mass the same sacrifice as that of the Cross? A. The Mass is the same sacrifice as that of the Cross.
But how is the Mass a sacrifice? It is a sacrifice because at the Mass the body and blood of Our Lord are offered to His heavenly Father at the consecration, and afterwards consumed by the priest. In offering up the body and blood of Our Lord the bread and wine are consecrated separately, and kept separate on the altar at Mass to signify their separation at Our Lord's death in the sacrifice of the Cross, when His sacred blood flowed from His body. The Holy Eucharist is also a Sacrament, because it has the three things necessary to constitute a Sacrament; namely, (1) The outward sign—that is, the appearance of bread and wine. (2) The inward grace; for it is Jesus Christ Himself, the Author and Dispenser of all graces. (3) It was instituted by Our Lord.
But how is the Mass a sacrifice? It is a sacrifice because during the Mass, the body and blood of Our Lord are offered to His heavenly Father at the consecration and later consumed by the priest. In offering up the body and blood of Our Lord, the bread and wine are consecrated separately and kept separate on the altar at Mass to signify their separation at Our Lord's death in the sacrifice of the Cross, when His sacred blood flowed from His body. The Holy Eucharist is also a Sacrament because it has the three necessary components: (1) The outward sign—that is, the appearance of bread and wine. (2) The inward grace; for it is Jesus Christ Himself, the Author and Giver of all graces. (3) It was instituted by Our Lord.
The Holy Eucharist is therefore both a sacrifice and a Sacrament. It is a sacrifice when offered at Mass, and a Sacrament when we receive it and when it is reserved in the tabernacle.
The Holy Eucharist is both a sacrifice and a Sacrament. It is a sacrifice when offered at Mass, and a Sacrament when we receive it and when it is kept in the tabernacle.
*266 Q. How is the Mass the same sacrifice as that of the Cross? A. The Mass is the same sacrifice as that of the Cross because the offering and the priest are the same—Christ Our Blessed Lord; and the ends for which the sacrifice of the Mass is offered are the same as those of the sacrifice of the Cross.
*266 Q. How is the Mass the same sacrifice as that of the Cross? A. The Mass is the same sacrifice as that of the Cross because the offering and the priest are the same—Christ Our Blessed Lord; and the purposes for which the Mass is offered are the same as those of the sacrifice of the Cross.
On the Cross the offering was the body and blood of Our Lord; the one who offered it was Our Lord; the reason for which He offered it was that He might atone for sin; the one to whom He offered it was His heavenly Father. Now, at Mass it is the same. The object offered is Our Lord's body and blood, the one suffering is Our Lord Himself, through the priest; it is offered for sin, and it is offered to the heavenly Father. All things are the same, except that the blood of Our Lord is not shed, and Our Lord does not die again.
On the Cross, the offering was the body and blood of Our Lord; the one who made the offering was Our Lord; the reason for the offering was to atone for sin; and the one to whom it was offered was His heavenly Father. At Mass, it’s the same. The object being offered is Our Lord's body and blood, the one who suffers is Our Lord Himself, through the priest; it’s offered for sin, and it’s offered to the heavenly Father. Everything is the same, except that Our Lord's blood is not shed, and He does not die again.
*267 Q. What are the ends for which the sacrifice of the Cross was offered? A. The ends for which the sacrifice of the Cross was offered were: first, to honor and glorify God; second, to thank Him for all the graces bestowed on the whole world; third, to satisfy God's justice for the sins of men; fourth, to obtain all graces and blessings.
*267 Q. What are the purposes of the sacrifice of the Cross? A. The purposes of the sacrifice of the Cross were: first, to honor and glorify God; second, to thank Him for all the graces given to the whole world; third, to make amends for God's justice regarding the sins of humanity; fourth, to obtain all graces and blessings.
*268 Q. Is there any difference between the sacrifice of the Cross and the sacrifice of the Mass? A. Yes; the manner in which the sacrifice is offered is different. On the Cross Christ really shed His blood and was really slain; in the Mass there is no real shedding of blood nor real death, because Christ can die no more; but the sacrifice of the Mass, through the separate consecration of the bread and the wine, represents His death on the Cross.
*268 Q. Is there any difference between the sacrifice of the Cross and the sacrifice of the Mass? A. Yes; the way the sacrifice is offered is different. On the Cross, Christ truly shed His blood and was truly killed; in the Mass, there is no actual shedding of blood or real death because Christ cannot die again; however, the sacrifice of the Mass, through the separate consecration of the bread and the wine, represents His death on the Cross.
269 Q. How should we assist at Mass? A. We should assist at Mass with great interior recollection and piety and with every outward mark of respect and devotion.
269 Q. How should we participate in Mass? A. We should participate in Mass with a deep sense of focus and reverence, showing every sign of respect and devotion.
If you were admitted into the presence of a king or of the Holy Father you would be careful not to show any indifference or disrespect in his presence. You would not be guilty of looking around or of talking idly to those near you. Your eyes would be constantly fixed on the great person present. So should you be at Mass, for there you are admitted into the presence of the King of kings, our divine Lord. Your whole attention, therefore, should be reverently given to Him, and to no other. How displeasing it must be to Him to have some in His presence who care so little for Him and who insult Him without thought or regard! If we acted in the presence of any prince as we sometimes act in the presence of Our Lord on the altar, we should be turned out of his house, with orders not to come again. But Our Lord suffers all patiently and meekly, though He will not allow any of this disrespect to go unpunished in this world or in the next. Knowing this, some holy persons offer up their prayers and Holy Communions in reparation for these insults, and try to atone for all the insults offered to Our Lord in the Blessed Sacrament. They have united in holy society for this purpose, called the Apostleship of Prayer, or League of the Sacred Heart, now established in many parishes. If you do not belong to such a society, you should make such an offering yourself privately.
If you were in the presence of a king or the Pope, you would be careful not to show any indifference or disrespect. You wouldn’t look around or chat aimlessly with those next to you. Your gaze would be focused on the important figure in front of you. You should approach Mass the same way, as you are in the presence of the King of kings, our divine Lord. Your full attention should be respectfully directed to Him, and no one else. It must be very displeasing to Him to see some people in His presence who care so little for Him and insult Him thoughtlessly! If we behaved in front of any prince the way we sometimes act before Our Lord on the altar, we would be thrown out of his establishment, with instructions not to return. But Our Lord endures it all patiently and humbly, although He won’t let this disrespect go unpunished, either in this life or the next. Aware of this, some holy individuals offer their prayers and Holy Communions to make up for these insults and try to atone for all the offenses against Our Lord in the Blessed Sacrament. They have come together in a holy community for this purpose, called the Apostleship of Prayer, or League of the Sacred Heart, which is now established in many parishes. If you’re not part of such a community, you should make your own private offering.
In the Old Law the people brought to the temple whatever they wished the priests to offer up for them—sometimes a lamb, sometimes a dove, sometimes fruit, etc. The offering or sacrifice was theirs, and they offered it up by the hands of the priests. In the early ages of the Church the Christians brought to the priests the bread and wine to be consecrated and offered up at Mass. Now as the bread and wine used at the Mass must be of a particular kind, namely, wheaten bread and wine of the grape, there was some danger of the people not bringing the proper kind: so instead of the people bringing these things themselves, the priests began to buy them, and the people gave him money for his own support; and thus you have the origin of offering money to the priest for celebrating Mass for your intention. The money is not to pay for the Mass, because you could not buy any sacred thing without committing sin. The priest may use the money also for the candles burned, the vestments and sacred vessels, etc., used at the Mass. To buy a holy thing for money is the sin of simony—so called after Simon, a magician, who tried to bribe the Apostles to give him Confirmation when he was unworthy of it. To buy religious articles before they are blessed is not simony, nor even after they are blessed, if you pay only for the material of which they are made; but if you tried to buy the blessing, it would be simony. When the Holy Mass is offered, the fruits or benefits of it are divided into four classes. The first benefit comes to the priest who celebrates the Mass; the second, to the one for whom he offers the Mass; the third benefit to those who are present at it; and the fourth to all the faithful throughout the world.
In the Old Law, the people brought to the temple whatever they wanted the priests to offer for them—sometimes a lamb, sometimes a dove, sometimes fruit, etc. The offering or sacrifice was theirs, and they made it through the priests. In the early days of the Church, Christians brought bread and wine to the priests to be consecrated and offered at Mass. Since the bread and wine used at Mass must be of a specific type, namely wheaten bread and grape wine, there was a chance that the people wouldn't bring the right kind. So instead of the people bringing these items themselves, the priests began to purchase them, and the people gave money to support the priest. This is how the practice of offering money to the priest for saying Mass for your intentions began. The money is not to pay for the Mass, since buying any sacred thing would be sinful. The priest can also use the money for candles, vestments, and sacred vessels used at Mass. Purchasing a holy thing with money is the sin of simony, named after Simon, a magician who tried to bribe the Apostles to give him Confirmation when he was unworthy. Buying religious items before they’re blessed isn’t simony, nor is it after they’ve been blessed if you only pay for the materials they’re made from; but if you tried to buy the blessing, that would be simony. When Holy Mass is said, the fruits or benefits of it are divided into four categories. The first benefit goes to the priest who celebrates the Mass; the second to the person for whom the Mass is offered; the third benefit to those who are present at it; and the fourth to all the faithful throughout the world.
*270 Q. Which is the best manner of hearing Mass? A. The best manner of hearing Mass is to offer it to God with the priest for the same purpose for which it is said, to meditate on Christ's sufferings and death, and to go to Holy Communion.
*270 Q. What’s the best way to attend Mass? A. The best way to attend Mass is to offer it to God with the priest for the same purpose it is being said, to reflect on Christ's sufferings and death, and to receive Holy Communion.
That is, to offer it up for whatever intention the priest is offering it—for the dead, for the conversion of sinners, for the good of others, etc.; but especially for the four ends of which I have already spoken—to worship God, thank Him, etc. "Christ's death," of which it reminds us. "Holy Communion," if we are in a state of grace, and have prepared to receive Communion.
That is, to dedicate it for whatever purpose the priest is serving it— for the deceased, for the conversion of sinners, for the benefit of others, etc.; but especially for the four goals I’ve mentioned before—to worship God, express gratitude to Him, etc. "Christ's death," of which it reminds us. "Holy Communion," if we are in a state of grace and have prepared ourselves to receive Communion.
You should go to Holy Communion as often as possible, and you should try every day to make yourself more worthy of that great Sacrament. Think of it! To receive your God and Saviour into your soul, and to be united with Him, as the word communion means! The early Christians used to go to Communion very frequently. The Church requires us to go to Holy Communion at least once a year, but we should not be satisfied with doing merely what is necessary to avoid mortal sin. Do we try to keep away from persons we love? Then if we really love Our Lord should we not desire to receive Him? All good Catholics should go to Holy Communion at least once a week, on Sunday. Persons wishing to lead truly holy lives should go to Communion more often, or even every day.
You should go to Holy Communion as often as possible, and each day you should work on making yourself more worthy of that great Sacrament. Think about it! To receive your God and Savior into your soul and to be united with Him, just like the word communion means! The early Christians went to Communion very frequently. The Church requires us to go to Holy Communion at least once a year, but we shouldn’t just settle for doing the bare minimum to avoid mortal sin. Do we try to stay away from the people we love? Then if we truly love Our Lord, shouldn’t we want to receive Him? All good Catholics should go to Holy Communion at least once a week, on Sunday. Those who want to live genuinely holy lives should go to Communion more often, or even every day.
When we cannot go really to Communion we can merit God's grace by making a spiritual Communion. What is a spiritual Communion? It is an earnest desire to receive Communion. You prepare yourself as if you were really going to Communion; you try to imagine yourself going up, receiving the Blessed Sacrament, and returning to your place. Then you thank God for all His blessings to you as you would have done had you received. This is an act of devotion, and one very pleasing to God, as many holy writers tell us.
When we can’t physically take Communion, we can still receive God's grace by making a spiritual Communion. What is a spiritual Communion? It’s a sincere desire to receive Communion. You prepare yourself as if you were actually going to take Communion; you try to picture yourself going forward, receiving the Blessed Sacrament, and returning to your spot. Then you thank God for all His blessings, just as you would have done if you had received. This is an act of devotion and is very pleasing to God, as many spiritual writers tell us.
I cannot leave this lesson on the Holy Eucharist without telling you something of the devotion to the Sacred Heart of Jesus, now so universally practiced and so closely connected with the devotion to the Blessed Sacrament. The Church grants many indulgences, and Our Lord Himself promises many rewards to those who honor the Sacred Heart. But what do we mean by the Sacred Heart? We mean the real natural heart of Our Lord, to which His divinity is united as it is to His whole body. But why do we adore this real, natural heart of Our Lord? We adore it because love is said to be in the heart, and we wish to return Our Lord love, and gratitude for the great love He has shown to us in dying for us, and in instituting the Sacraments, especially the Holy Eucharist, by which He can remain with us in His sacred humanity. When Our Lord appeared to Saint Margaret Mary He said: "Behold this Heart, that has loved men so ardently, and is so little loved in return." The first Friday of every month and the whole month of June are dedicated to the Sacred Heart.
I can’t finish this lesson on the Holy Eucharist without mentioning the devotion to the Sacred Heart of Jesus, which is now widely practiced and closely linked to the devotion to the Blessed Sacrament. The Church offers many indulgences, and Our Lord Himself promises numerous rewards to those who honor the Sacred Heart. But what do we mean by the Sacred Heart? We mean the real, natural heart of Our Lord, which is united with His divinity just like it is with His whole body. But why do we worship this real, natural heart of Our Lord? We worship it because love is associated with the heart, and we want to return Our Lord's love and gratitude for the immense love He has shown us by dying for us and instituting the Sacraments, especially the Holy Eucharist, which allows Him to remain with us in His sacred humanity. When Our Lord appeared to Saint Margaret Mary, He said: "Behold this Heart, that has loved men so ardently, and is so little loved in return." The first Friday of every month and the entire month of June are dedicated to the Sacred Heart.
Lesson 25
ON EXTREME UNCTION AND HOLY ORDERS
Lesson 25
ON EXTREME UNCTION AND HOLY ORDERS
"Unction" means the anointing or rubbing with oil or ointment. "Extreme" means last. Therefore Extreme Unction means the last anointing. It is called the "last" because other unctions or anointings are received before it. We are anointed at Baptism on three parts of the body—on the breast, the back, and the head. We are anointed on the forehead at Confirmation; and when priests are ordained they are anointed on the hands. The last time we are anointed is just before death, and it is therefore very properly called the last anointing, or Extreme Unction. But if the person should not die after being anointed would it still be called Extreme Unction? Yes; because at the time it was given it was thought to be the last. It sometimes happens that persons receive Extreme Unction several times in their lives, because they could receive it every time they were in danger of death by sickness. Suppose a person should die immediately after being anointed in Baptism or Confirmation, would the anointing in Baptism or Confirmation then become Extreme Unction? No. Because Extreme Unction is in itself a separate and distinct Sacrament—a special anointing with prayers for the sick. Oil is used in Extreme Unction—as in Confirmation—as a sign of strength; for as the priest applies the holy oil in the Sacrament, the grace of the Sacrament is taking effect upon the soul. This Sacrament was instituted as much for the body as for the soul, as all the prayers said by the priest while administering it indicate. It is given generally after a person has made his confession and received the Viaticum, and when his soul is already in a state of grace; showing that it is in a special way intended for the body. It must be given only in sickness; for although one might be in danger of death if the danger did not come from within, but from without, he could not be anointed. A soldier in battle, persons being shipwrecked, firemen working at a great fire, etc., could not be anointed, although they are in very great danger of death; because the danger is not from within themselves, but from without. If, however, these persons were so frightened that there was danger of their dying from the fright, they could then be anointed.
"Unction" refers to the act of anointing or rubbing with oil or ointment. "Extreme" means last. Therefore, Extreme Unction means the final anointing. It’s called the "last" because other anointings happen before it. We are anointed at Baptism on three parts of the body—on the chest, the back, and the head. We receive anointing on the forehead at Confirmation; when priests are ordained, they are anointed on their hands. The last time we are anointed is just before death, which is why it’s rightly called the last anointing, or Extreme Unction. If a person doesn’t die after being anointed, would it still be called Extreme Unction? Yes, because at the time it was given, it was believed to be the last. Sometimes, individuals receive Extreme Unction multiple times in their lives, as they can receive it whenever they are in danger of death due to illness. If someone were to die immediately after being anointed in Baptism or Confirmation, would that anointing become Extreme Unction? No. Extreme Unction is its own separate Sacrament—a special anointing with prayers for the sick. Oil is used in Extreme Unction—just like in Confirmation—as a symbol of strength; as the priest applies the holy oil during the Sacrament, the grace of the Sacrament is actively affecting the soul. This Sacrament was established for both the body and the soul, as all the prayers said by the priest while administering it show. It is usually given after a person has made their confession and received the Viaticum, when their soul is already in a state of grace, indicating that it is particularly intended for the body. It must be administered only during illness; even if someone might be in danger of death, if that danger is external rather than internal, they cannot be anointed. A soldier in battle, individuals caught in a shipwreck, firefighters tackling a huge fire, etc., cannot be anointed even though they face significant danger; the threat comes from outside themselves. However, if these individuals were so terrified that they might die from fear, they could then be anointed.
271 Q. What is the Sacrament of Extreme Unction? A. Extreme Unction is the Sacrament which, through the anointing and prayer of the priest, gives health and strength to the soul, and sometimes to the body, when we are in danger of death from sickness.
271 Q. What is the Sacrament of Extreme Unction? A. Extreme Unction is the Sacrament that, through the anointing and prayer of the priest, provides health and strength to the soul, and sometimes to the body, when we are at risk of death from illness.
"Anointing." In this Sacrament the priest anoints all our senses—the eyes, the ears, the nose, the mouth, the hands, and the feet—and at the same time prays God to forgive the poor sick person all the sins he has committed by any of these. The eyes, by looking at bad objects or pictures; the ears, by listening to bad conversation; the nose, by indulging too much in sensual pleasures; the mouth, by cursing, lying, bad conversation, backbiting, etc.; the hands, by stealing, fighting, or doing sinful things; the feet, by carrying us to do wrong or to bad places. I told you already most of our sins are committed for our body, and the senses are the chief instruments. "Strength to the body," if it is for our spiritual welfare. If God foresees, as He foresees all things, that after our sickness we shall lead better lives and do penance for our sins, then He may be pleased to restore us to health, and give us an opportunity of making up for our past faults. But if He foresees that after our sickness we would again lead bad lives, and fall perhaps into greater sins, then He will likely take us when we are prepared, and will not restore us again to health. As He always knows and does what is best for His children, we must in sickness always be resigned to His holy will, and be satisfied with what He sees fit to do with us.
"Anointing." In this Sacrament, the priest anoints all our senses—the eyes, the ears, the nose, the mouth, the hands, and the feet—and simultaneously prays to God to forgive the sick person for all the sins committed through any of these. The eyes, by looking at inappropriate objects or images; the ears, by listening to harmful conversations; the nose, by indulging in excessive sensual pleasures; the mouth, by cursing, lying, engaging in negative talk, backbiting, etc.; the hands, by stealing, fighting, or committing sinful acts; the feet, by taking us to wrong places or activities. I’ve mentioned before that most of our sins are committed through our bodies, and the senses are the primary tools. "Strength to the body," if it serves our spiritual well-being. If God sees, as He sees all things, that after our illness we will lead better lives and atone for our sins, then He may choose to restore our health and give us a chance to make up for our past mistakes. But if He foresees that after our illness we would return to harmful ways and possibly commit even greater sins, then He will likely take us when we are ready and will not restore our health. Since He always knows and does what’s best for His children, we must accept His holy will in times of sickness and be content with what He chooses to do with us.
*272 Q. When should we receive Extreme Unction? A. We should receive Extreme Unction when we are in danger of death from sickness, or from a wound or accident.
*272 Q. When should we receive Extreme Unction? A. We should receive Extreme Unction when we are at risk of dying from an illness, injury, or accident.
*273 Q. Should we wait until we are in extreme danger before we receive Extreme Unction? A. We should not wait until we are in extreme danger before we receive Extreme Unction, but if possible we should receive it whilst we have the use of our senses.
*273 Q. Should we wait until we are in serious danger before we receive Extreme Unction? A. We should not wait until we are in serious danger before we receive Extreme Unction, but if possible we should receive it while we are still aware of our surroundings.
We should always be glad to receive the grace of the Sacraments. When, therefore, we are sufficiently ill to be anointed—when there is any danger of death—we should send for the priest at once. If the sick person has any chance of recovering, the Sacrament will help him and hasten the recovery; but if the priest is sent for just when the person is in the last agony of death, the person could not recover except by a miracle, and God does not perform miracles for ordinary reasons. If you are in doubt whether the person is sick enough to receive the last Sacraments, do not be the judge yourself, send for the priest and let him judge; and then all the responsibility is removed from you in case the person should die without the Sacraments. Very often persons are near death, and their relatives do not know it. The priest, like the doctor, has experience in these cases, and can judge of the danger. Again, do not foolishly believe, as some seem to do, that if the priest comes to anoint the sick person it will frighten him by making him think he is going to die. It has never been known that the priest killed anyone by coming to see him; and if these same persons who are now sick receive the Sacraments in the church from the very same priest, why should they be afraid to receive them from him in their house? And if they are so near death that a little fright would kill them, then they are surely sick enough to receive the Sacraments. The sick person who is afraid that Extreme Unction will kill him or hasten his death shows that he has not the proper faith and confidence in God's grace. They who do not wish to receive Holy Communion or the Holy Viaticum in their houses do not want Our Lord to visit them. How ungrateful they are! When Our Lord was on earth the people carried the sick out into the streets to lay them near Him that He might cure them. Now, He does not require us to do that, but comes Himself to the sick in the most humble manner, and they refuse to receive Him. See how ungrateful, therefore, and how wanting in faith and devotion such persons are! If the sick person is one who has been careless about his religion, and has for some time neglected to receive the Sacraments, do not wait for him to ask for the priest or for his consent to send for him. Few persons ever believe they are so near death as they really are: they are afraid to think of their past lives, and do not like to send for the priest, or at least they put off doing so, frequently till it is too late. The devil tempts them to put off the reception of the Sacraments, in hopes that they may die without them, and be his forever. In these cases speak to the sick man quietly and gently, and ask him if he would not like to have the priest come and say a few prayers for his recovery. Do not say anything about the Sacraments if you are afraid he will refuse. Simply bring the priest to the sick man, and he will attend to all the rest. Even if the person should refuse—if he has been baptized in the Catholic religion—send for the priest and explain to him the circumstances and dispositions of the sick man. It would be terrible to let such persons die without the Sacraments if there is any possibility of their receiving them. Even when they refuse to see the priest it generally happens that after he has once visited them, talked to them, and explained the benefits of the Sacraments, they are better pleased than anyone else to see him coming again.
We should always be grateful to receive the grace of the Sacraments. Therefore, when we are seriously ill enough to be anointed—when there’s any risk of death—we should call the priest right away. If the sick person has a chance of recovery, the Sacrament will help and speed up healing; but if the priest is called only when the person is close to death, recovery would only happen by a miracle, and God doesn’t perform miracles for ordinary reasons. If you’re unsure whether the person is sick enough to receive the last Sacraments, don’t try to judge for yourself; call the priest and let him decide. This way, you won’t be held responsible if the person dies without the Sacraments. Often, people are close to death, and their family members don’t realize it. The priest, like the doctor, has experience in these situations and can assess the danger. Also, don’t foolishly believe, as some do, that if the priest comes to anoint the sick person, it will scare them into thinking they are dying. It’s never been reported that a priest caused anyone to die by visiting them; and if those same sick individuals receive the Sacraments in church from that same priest, why would they fear receiving them at home? If they are near death to the point that a little scare might kill them, then they are definitely sick enough to receive the Sacraments. A sick person who fears that Extreme Unction will kill them or speed up their death shows a lack of faith and trust in God’s grace. Those who don’t want to receive Holy Communion or the Holy Viaticum at home are refusing a visit from Our Lord. How ungrateful! When Our Lord was on earth, people brought the sick into the streets to get close to Him so He could heal them. Now, He humbly comes to the sick, and they turn Him away. Look at how ungrateful and lacking in faith and devotion such people are! If the sick person hasn’t been serious about their religion and has avoided the Sacraments for a while, don’t wait for them to ask for the priest or give their consent to call him. Few people recognize how close they actually are to death; they’re afraid to reflect on their past lives, and they hesitate to call the priest, often waiting until it’s too late. The devil entices them to delay receiving the Sacraments, hoping they’ll die without them and be his forever. In these situations, speak to the sick person gently and quietly, and ask if they’d like the priest to come and say a few prayers for their recovery. Don’t mention the Sacraments if you think they might refuse. Just bring the priest to the sick person, and he’ll handle everything else. Even if the person refuses—if they’ve been baptized in the Catholic faith—call the priest and explain the situation and the sick person’s feelings. It would be terrible to let such individuals die without the Sacraments if there’s any chance for them to receive them. Even when they refuse to see the priest, it often happens that after he visits them once, talks to them, and explains the benefits of the Sacraments, they’re actually happy to see him return.
Sometimes it is God's goodness that sends sickness to such persons, to bring them back to His worship and the practice of their religion. What does a good father generally do with an unruly child? He advises and warns it, and when words have no effect, punishes it with the rod, not because he wishes to see it suffer, but for its good, that it may give up its evil habits and become an obedient, loving child. In like manner God warns sinners by their conscience, by sermons they hear, by accidents or deaths around about them, etc.; and when none of these things have any effect on them, He sends them some affliction—He brings them to a bed of sickness. He punishes them, as it were, with a rod. This He does, not that He may see them suffer, but for their good; that they may understand He is their Master, the only one who can give them health; that all the doctors and all the friends and money in the world could not save them if He determined that they should die. Then they come to know that the world is not their friend; then they see things as they really are, and begin to think of the next world, of eternity, etc. Thus they again turn to God and to the practices of religion. Many persons who reform and begin to lead good lives in sickness would never have changed if God had left them always in good health. But you must not think that all who are sick are so on account of sin. Sometimes very holy persons are in a state of sickness, and then it is sent them that they may bear it patiently, and have great merit before God for their sufferings, and thus become more holy. Again, very small children who have never sinned are sick, and then it is perhaps that their parents may have merit for patiently taking care of them. I say that God sometimes sends sickness to persons living in sin for the purpose of bringing them back to a better way of living, and in that case their sickness is for them a great mercy from God, who might have allowed them to continue in sin till His judgments and condemnation came suddenly upon them.
Sometimes it's God's goodness that brings sickness to certain people, to lead them back to worshiping Him and practicing their faith. What does a good father usually do with a misbehaving child? He advises and warns them, and when words don't work, he disciplines them—not because he wants to see them suffer, but for their own good, so they can let go of their bad habits and become an obedient, loving child. Similarly, God warns sinners through their conscience, through sermons they hear, through accidents or deaths around them, and so on; and when none of these have any impact, He sends some form of affliction—He brings them to a sickbed. He disciplines them, so to speak, with a rod. He does this not to watch them suffer, but for their benefit; so they realize He is their Master, the only one who can grant them health; that no doctor, friend, or amount of money in the world can save them if He has decided they should die. Then they begin to see that the world is not their ally; they start to see things as they truly are, and begin to contemplate the next life, eternity, and so forth. In this way, they turn back to God and to the practices of their faith. Many people who reform and start living rightly during illness would never have changed if God had allowed them to remain in good health. However, you shouldn't think that everyone who is sick is suffering due to sin. Sometimes very holy people are sick, and that is sent to them so they can endure it patiently and gain great merit before God through their suffering, thus becoming even more holy. Again, very young children who have never sinned can be sick, perhaps so their parents can gain merit for taking care of them patiently. I mention that God sometimes sends sickness to those living in sin to bring them back to a better way of life, and in such cases, their sickness is a great mercy from God, who could have allowed them to continue in sin until His judgments and condemnation suddenly fell upon them.
274 Q. Which are the effects of the Sacrament of Extreme Unction? A. The effects of Extreme Unction are: first, to comfort us in the pains of sickness and to strengthen us against temptations; second, to remit venial sins and to cleanse our soul from the remains of sin; third, to restore us to health when God sees fit.
274 Q. What are the effects of the Sacrament of Extreme Unction? A. The effects of Extreme Unction are: first, to comfort us during sickness and to give us strength against temptations; second, to forgive venial sins and to purify our soul from the remnants of sin; third, to heal us when God deems it necessary.
*275 Q. What do you mean by the remains of sin? A. By the remains of sin I mean the inclination to evil and the weakness of the will, which are the result of our sins and which remain after our sins have been forgiven.
*275 Q. What do you mean by the remains of sin? A. By the remains of sin, I mean the tendency to do wrong and the weakness of our will, which are the consequences of our sins and which stay with us even after our sins have been forgiven.
"Remains of sin"—that is, chiefly the bad habits we have acquired by sin. If a person does a thing very often, he soon begins to do it very easily, and it becomes, as we say, a habit. So, too, a person who sins very much soon begins to sin easily. This Sacrament therefore takes away the ease in sinning and the desire for past sins acquired by frequently committing them.
"Remains of sin"—meaning mainly the bad habits we've developed by sinning. When someone does something frequently, it quickly becomes easy for them, and we refer to it as a habit. Similarly, a person who sins a lot soon finds it easy to keep on sinning. This Sacrament, therefore, reduces the ease of sinning and diminishes the desire for the past sins they've committed often.
*276 Q. How should we receive the Sacrament of Extreme Unction? A. We should receive the Sacrament of Extreme Unction in a state of grace and with lively faith and resignation to the will of God.
*276 Q. How should we receive the Sacrament of Extreme Unction? A. We should receive the Sacrament of Extreme Unction in a state of grace and with genuine faith and acceptance of God’s will.
*277 Q. Who is the minister of the Sacrament of Extreme Unction? A. The priest is the minister of the Sacrament of Extreme Unction.
*277 Q. Who administers the Sacrament of Extreme Unction? A. The priest administers the Sacrament of Extreme Unction.
The Sacraments that the priest administers in the house are the Sacraments for the sick; namely, Penance, Viaticum, or Holy Communion, and Extreme Unction. The other Sacraments may be administered there in special cases of necessity. You should know what things are to be prepared when the priest comes to administer the Sacraments in your house. They are as follows: A small table covered with a clean white cloth, and on it a crucifix and one or two lighted candles in candlesticks; some holy water in a small vessel, with a sprinkler which you can make by tying together a few leaves or small pieces of palm; a glass of clean water, a tablespoon, and a napkin for the sick person to hold under the chin while receiving; also a piece of white cotton wadding, if the priest should ask for it.
The Sacraments that the priest brings to your home are the ones for the sick: Penance, Viaticum (or Holy Communion), and Extreme Unction. Other Sacraments can also be given in special cases of need. When the priest arrives to administer the Sacraments, you should prepare the following items: a small table covered with a clean white cloth, a crucifix, and one or two lighted candles in candlesticks; some holy water in a small container, along with a sprinkler you can make by tying together a few leaves or small pieces of palm; a glass of clean water, a tablespoon, and a napkin for the sick person to hold under their chin while receiving; and a piece of white cotton wadding, if the priest requests it.
Then you may have ready in another place near at hand some water, a towel, and a piece of bread or lemon for purifying the priest's fingers; but these things are not always necessary: still, it would be better to have them ready in case the priest should require them, so as not to keep him waiting. Every good Catholic family should have all these things put away carefully in the house. It would be well, though it is not necessary, to keep a special spoon, napkin, etc., for that purpose alone. Sometimes persons are taken ill very suddenly in the night, and when the priest comes they have none of the things they should have; and if their neighbors are as careless as themselves, they will not have them either: so the priest is delayed in giving the Sacraments, or is obliged to administer them in a way that is always disrespectful to Our Lord. If we would make such preparations for the coming of a friend to our house, why should we be so careless when Our Lord comes? If a friend comes when we are not prepared to receive him, we feel very much ashamed, and make a thousand excuses for our want of thought. Therefore provide the things necessary for the administration of these Sacraments in your house, and keep them though they may be seldom if ever required in your family.
Then you should have some water, a towel, and a piece of bread or lemon on hand to purify the priest's fingers; but these items aren't always essential. Still, it's better to have them ready just in case the priest needs them, so you don't keep him waiting. Every good Catholic family should keep these things stored safely in their home. It would be a good idea, though not essential, to have a special spoon, napkin, etc., just for that purpose. Sometimes, people suddenly fall ill at night, and when the priest arrives, they don’t have the necessary items; and if their neighbors are just as careless, they won't have them either. This causes delays in administering the Sacraments or forces the priest to do so in a manner that's always disrespectful to Our Lord. If we prepare for a friend's visit to our house, why should we be so careless when Our Lord comes? When a friend arrives and we’re unprepared, we feel embarrassed and come up with countless excuses for our lack of thought. So, make sure to have the necessary items for administering these Sacraments in your home, and keep them even if they’re rarely needed in your family.
When Our Lord comes to visit your house receive Him with all possible respect and reverence. Some good Catholics have the very praiseworthy practice of meeting the priest at the door with a lighted candle when he carries the Blessed Sacrament, and of going before him to the sickroom. This can be done where there is only one family living in the house, or at least in the apartment. All who can do this should do it, because it is in keeping with the wish of the Church. In olden times, and even now in Catholic countries, the priest brings the Blessed Sacrament in procession to the sick. He goes vested as for Benediction, accompanied by altar boys with lighted candles and bells. The people kneel by the way as Our Lord passes. Our Lord is carried in procession always in the church and on the feast of Corpus Christi, on Holy Thursday, and during the Devotion of Forty Hours. The Church would like to have this solemn procession in honor of Our Lord every time the Blessed Sacrament is brought from one place to another. But this cannot always be done in the streets, because there are many persons not Catholics who would insult Our Lord while passing along; and in order to prevent this, the priest brings the Blessed Sacrament to the dying without any outward display. But we should always remember the very great respect due to Our Lord, and do all we can to show it when possible.
When Our Lord comes to visit your home, welcome Him with all the respect and reverence you can. Some good Catholics have the commendable practice of meeting the priest at the door with a lighted candle when he carries the Blessed Sacrament and accompanying him to the sickroom. This can be done when there’s only one family living in the house or at least in the apartment. Everyone who can should take part in this, as it aligns with the wishes of the Church. In the past, and still in Catholic countries today, the priest brings the Blessed Sacrament in procession to the sick. He wears the vestments for Benediction, accompanied by altar boys with lighted candles and bells. The people kneel along the way as Our Lord passes. Our Lord is carried in procession in the church and on the feast of Corpus Christi, on Holy Thursday, and during the Devotion of Forty Hours. The Church wishes to have this solemn procession in honor of Our Lord every time the Blessed Sacrament is moved from one place to another. However, this can't always happen in public because many non-Catholics might disrespect Our Lord during the procession; to prevent this, the priest brings the Blessed Sacrament to the dying without any outward display. But we should always remember the immense respect owed to Our Lord and do everything we can to show it whenever possible.
278 Q. What is the Sacrament of Holy Orders? A. Holy Orders is a Sacrament by which bishops, priests, and other ministers of the Church are ordained and receive the power and grace to perform their sacred duties.
278 Q. What is the Sacrament of Holy Orders? A. Holy Orders is a Sacrament through which bishops, priests, and other ministers of the Church are ordained and receive the power and grace to carry out their sacred responsibilities.
"Other ministers," means deacons and subdeacons, properly so-called. When a young man goes to study for the priesthood—after he has discovered that God has called him to that sacred office—he passes several years in learning what is necessary, and in fitting himself for his sacred duties. After some time he receives what is called tonsure; that is, on the day of ordination the bishop cuts a little hair from five places on his head, to show that this young man is giving himself up to God. The tonsure is a mark of the clerical state, and in Catholic countries it is made manifest by keeping a small circular spot on the crown of the head shaved perfectly clean. It reminds the cleric or priest of having dedicated himself to God, and also of the crown of thorns worn by Our Blessed Saviour. For this reason some of the holy monks shaved all the hair from their head, with the exception of a little ring, which resembles very much a wreath or crown of hair encircling the head. You often see them thus represented in holy pictures.
"Other ministers" refers to deacons and subdeacons, specifically. When a young man decides to study for the priesthood—after realizing that God has called him to that sacred role—he spends several years learning what he needs to know and preparing himself for his duties. Eventually, he receives what’s called tonsure; on the day of ordination, the bishop cuts a small amount of hair from five spots on his head to symbolize that he is dedicating himself to God. The tonsure serves as a sign of the clerical state, and in Catholic countries, it is shown by keeping a small circular area on the crown of the head completely shaved. This reminds the cleric or priest of his dedication to God and also of the crown of thorns worn by Our Blessed Savior. Because of this, some holy monks shaved all their hair except for a small ring, which resembles a wreath or crown of hair around the head. They are often depicted this way in religious artwork.
After the young student has received the tonsure and studied for a longer time, he receives the four Minor Orders, by which he is permitted to touch the sacred vessels of the altar, and do certain things about the church which laymen have not the right to do, especially to serve Mass. After more preparation he becomes a subdeacon, and then he may wear vestments and assist the celebrant at Solemn Mass. At a Solemn Mass there are three priests in vestments. The priest standing on the platform of the altar and celebrating Mass is called the celebrant; the one who stands just behind him, generally one step lower, is called the deacon, and the one who stands behind the deacon and on the lower step is called the subdeacon. The one who directs the whole ceremony, and gives signs to the others when to stand, sit down, or kneel, is called the Master of Ceremonies.
After the young student has received the tonsure and studied for a longer time, he receives the four Minor Orders, which allow him to handle the sacred vessels of the altar and perform certain duties in the church that laypeople can't, especially serving Mass. After more preparation, he becomes a subdeacon and can wear vestments and assist the celebrant at Solemn Mass. At a Solemn Mass, there are three priests in vestments. The priest standing on the altar platform and celebrating Mass is called the celebrant; the one who stands just behind him, usually one step lower, is called the deacon, and the one who stands behind the deacon on the lower step is called the subdeacon. The person who directs the entire ceremony and signals the others when to stand, sit, or kneel is called the Master of Ceremonies.
When speaking of the Mass, I forgot to tell you something about the different kinds of Masses—that is, different as far as the ceremonies are concerned, for they are all alike in value. First we have the Low Mass, such as the priest says every day and at the early hours on Sundays. It is called low, because there is no display in ceremony about it. Next we have the High Mass—called Missa Cantata (sung)—at which the priest and choir sing in turn. Lastly, we have the Solemn High Mass, at which we have three ministers or priests, and singing by both ministers and choir, as well as all the ceremonies prescribed by the Church. When any of these Masses are said in black vestments they are called Requiem Masses, because the priest offers them for the rest or happy repose of the soul of some dead person or persons, and the word requiem means rest. Vespers is a portion of the Divine Office of the Church. It is sung generally on Sunday afternoon or evening in the church, and is usually followed by Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament. It is not a mortal sin to stay from Vespers on Sundays, even willfully, because there is no law of the Church obliging you to attend. Nevertheless all good Catholics will attend Vespers when possible.
When talking about the Mass, I forgot to mention something about the different types of Masses—that is, they differ in terms of ceremonies but are equal in value. First, we have the Low Mass, which the priest says every day and during the early hours on Sundays. It’s called low because there’s no elaborate ceremony involved. Next, we have the High Mass—known as Missa Cantata (sung)—where the priest and choir take turns singing. Finally, we have the Solemn High Mass, which involves three ministers or priests, with singing from both the ministers and the choir, along with all the ceremonies required by the Church. When any of these Masses are held in black vestments, they are called Requiem Masses, as the priest offers them for the rest or peaceful repose of a deceased person or persons, and the word requiem means rest. Vespers is part of the Divine Office of the Church. It is usually sung on Sunday afternoons or evenings in the church and is typically followed by Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament. It is not considered a mortal sin to miss Vespers on Sundays, even intentionally, since there is no Church law requiring attendance. Nevertheless, all good Catholics will try to attend Vespers when they can.
To continue about the ministers of the Church: When the subdeacon is ordained a deacon, he can wear still more of the priestly vestments, and also baptize solemnly, preach, and give Holy Communion. After a time the deacon is ordained a priest, and receives power to celebrate Mass and forgive sins. If afterwards the priest should be selected by the Holy Father to be a bishop, he is consecrated; and then he has power to administer Confirmation and Holy Orders, ordaining priests and consecrating bishops. Thus you see there are grades through which the ministers of the Church must pass. First the tonsure, then Minor Orders, then subdeaconship, then deaconship, then priesthood. Nuns, Sisters, Brothers, etc., are not, as some might think, ministers of the Church, because they have never received any of the Holy Orders.
To continue discussing the ministers of the Church: When a subdeacon is ordained as a deacon, he can wear even more of the priestly garments, and also perform baptisms, preach, and distribute Holy Communion. After some time, the deacon is ordained as a priest and gains the authority to celebrate Mass and forgive sins. If later the priest is chosen by the Holy Father to become a bishop, he is consecrated; then he has the authority to administer Confirmation and Holy Orders, ordaining priests and consecrating bishops. So, you can see there are levels that the ministers of the Church must go through. First is the tonsure, then Minor Orders, then subdeacon, then deacon, and finally priest. Nuns, Sisters, Brothers, etc., are not, as some might think, ministers of the Church because they have never received any of the Holy Orders.
The ordained ministers of the Church can perform the duties of any office for which they have ever been ordained, but not the duties of any office above that to which they have been ordained. For example, a subdeacon cannot take the place of a deacon at Mass, nor a deacon the place of a priest; but a priest may take either of their places, because he has, at one time, been ordained to both these offices.
The ordained ministers of the Church can carry out the responsibilities of any role they have ever been ordained to, but not those of any higher office than the one they hold. For instance, a subdeacon cannot serve as a deacon during Mass, nor can a deacon step in for a priest; however, a priest can take on either role since he has been ordained to both positions at some point.
Altar boys should never forget that they are enjoying a very great privilege in being allowed to take the place of an ordained minister of the Church, and serve Mass without being ordained acolytes.
Altar boys should always remember that they are experiencing a significant privilege by being allowed to step in for an ordained minister of the Church and serve at Mass without being ordained as acolytes.
In olden times princes and noblemen used to seek for this wonderful favor, and count themselves happy if they secured it. Think of it! To stand so near our Blessed Lord that they are able to see His sacred body resting upon the altar, and to offer the wine, which a few minutes later is changed into His very blood!
In ancient times, princes and nobles would look for this amazing gift and considered themselves lucky if they obtained it. Imagine that! To be so close to our Blessed Lord that they could see His sacred body resting on the altar and to offer the wine that moments later is transformed into His very blood!
*279 Q. What is necessary to receive Holy Orders worthily? A. To receive Holy Orders worthily it is necessary to be in the state of grace, to have the necessary knowledge, and a divine call to this sacred office.
*279 Q. What do you need to receive Holy Orders properly? A. To receive Holy Orders properly, you need to be in a state of grace, have the necessary knowledge, and receive a divine call to this sacred role.
"Knowledge"—that is, to be able to learn and to have learned all that a priest should know.
"Knowledge"—meaning the ability to learn and to have gained all the information a priest should understand.
"Divine call," explained before in the explanation of vocation, a word that means call. (See Lesson 6, Q. 51.)
"Divine call," as explained earlier in the discussion of vocation, refers to a call. (See Lesson 6, Q. 51.)
*280 Q. How should Christians look upon the priests of the Church? A. Christians should look upon the priests of the Church as the messengers of God and the dispensers of His mysteries.
*280 Q. How should Christians view the priests of the Church? A. Christians should view the priests of the Church as the messengers of God and the stewards of His mysteries.
"Messengers." Our Lord said to His Apostles: "As the Father sent Me, I also send you." That is, as the heavenly Father sent His Beloved Son, Our Lord, into the world to save men's souls, so Our Lord sends His Apostles and their successors through the world to save souls. God told the priests of the Old Law that if they did not warn the people of coming dangers they would be held responsible for the people; but if they warned the people and the people did not heed, then the people would be responsible for their own destruction. So, too, in the New Law the priests warn you against sin, and if you do not heed the warning the loss of your soul will be upon yourself. Therefore you should take every warning coming from the ministers of God as you would from Himself, for it is really God that warns you against sin, and the priests are only His agents or instruments. "Dispensers"—that is, those who administer the Sacraments.
"Messengers." Our Lord said to His Apostles: "Just as the Father sent Me, I am sending you." In other words, just as the heavenly Father sent His Beloved Son, Our Lord, into the world to save people's souls, Our Lord sends His Apostles and their successors throughout the world to save souls. God told the priests of the Old Law that if they did not warn the people about coming dangers, they would be held accountable for the people; but if they warned the people and the people ignored the warnings, then the people would be responsible for their own downfall. Similarly, in the New Law, the priests warn you about sin, and if you disregard the warning, the loss of your soul will be on you. Therefore, you should treat every warning from God's ministers as if it were from Him, because it is truly God warning you against sin, and the priests are just His agents or instruments. "Dispensers"—that is, those who administer the Sacraments.
*281 Q. Who can confer the Sacrament of Holy Orders? A. Bishops can confer the Sacrament of Holy Orders.
*281 Q. Who can give the Sacrament of Holy Orders? A. Bishops can give the Sacrament of Holy Orders.
"Confer"—that is, give or administer. So can a cardinal, if he be a bishop, and so can the Holy Father, who is always a bishop, and called bishop of Rome, while Pope of the whole Church. It will be well here to give some explanation about cardinals—who they are, and what they do. In the United States the President has about him ten prominent men selected by himself, and called his Cabinet. They are his advisers; he consults them on all important matters, and assigns to them various duties. The Holy Father, who is also a ruler—a spiritual ruler—not of one country, but of the whole world, has also a Cabinet, but it is not called by that name: it is called the Sacred College of Cardinals. There are seventy cardinals, to whom the Pope assigns various works in helping him to govern the Church. Some of these cardinals are in different parts of the world, as our own cardinals right here in America. There are cardinals in England, France, Germany, Canada, Spain, etc., but a certain number always remain in Rome with the Holy Father. When a bishop is made cardinal he is raised in dignity in the Church, but he does not receive any greater spiritual power than he had when only a bishop. The cardinals, owing to their high dignity, have many privileges which bishops have not. Their greatest privilege is to take part in the election of a new Pope when the reigning Pope dies.
"Confer" means to give or provide. A cardinal can do this if he is a bishop, and so can the Pope, who is always a bishop and known as the bishop of Rome while being the Pope of the entire Church. It’s useful to explain who cardinals are and what they do. In the United States, the President has about ten key people he chooses himself, called his Cabinet. They are his advisors; he talks to them about all important issues and gives them various tasks. The Pope, who is also a ruler—a spiritual leader—not of just one country, but of the whole world, has a similar group, though it’s not called a Cabinet: it’s called the Sacred College of Cardinals. There are seventy cardinals to whom the Pope gives different responsibilities to help him govern the Church. Some of these cardinals are located in various parts of the world, including our own cardinals right here in America. There are cardinals in England, France, Germany, Canada, Spain, and more, but a specific number always stay in Rome with the Pope. When a bishop becomes a cardinal, he is elevated in status within the Church, but does not gain any greater spiritual authority than he had as just a bishop. Because of their high ranking, cardinals have many privileges that bishops do not have. Their most significant privilege is participating in the election of a new Pope when the current Pope passes away.
The Pope dresses in white, the cardinals in red, the bishops in purple, and the priests and other ministers in black. A "Monsignor" is also a title of dignity granted by our Holy Father to some worthy priests. It gives them certain privileges, and the right to wear purple like a bishop. The "Vicar General" is one who is appointed by the bishop in the diocese, and shares his power. In the bishop's absence he acts as bishop in all temporal and worldly matters and also in some spiritual things, concerning the diocese. A diocese is the extent of country over which a bishop is appointed to rule, as a parish is the extent over which a pastor is appointed to administer the Sacraments and rule under the direction of the bishop. Pastors are also called rectors. Pastor means a shepherd, and rector means a ruler; and as all pastors rule their flocks, pastor and rector mean about the same.
The Pope wears white, the cardinals wear red, the bishops wear purple, and the priests and other ministers wear black. A "Monsignor" is a title of honor given by our Holy Father to some deserving priests. It grants them certain privileges and the right to wear purple like a bishop. The "Vicar General" is someone appointed by the bishop in the diocese and shares his authority. In the bishop's absence, he acts as the bishop in all temporal and worldly matters and also in some spiritual matters concerning the diocese. A diocese is the area of land over which a bishop is appointed to oversee, while a parish is the area over which a pastor is appointed to administer the Sacraments and lead under the bishop's direction. Pastors are also called rectors. "Pastor" means shepherd, and "rector" means ruler; since all pastors guide their flocks, "pastor" and "rector" essentially mean the same thing.
An archbishop is higher than a bishop, though he has no more spiritual power than a bishop. The district over which an archbishop rules contains several dioceses with their bishops, and is called an ecclesiastical province. The bishops in the province are called suffragan bishops, because subject in some things to the authority of the archbishop, who is also called the metropolitan, because bishop of a metropolis or chief city of the province over which he presides.
An archbishop is above a bishop, but he doesn't have more spiritual authority than a bishop. The area that an archbishop oversees includes several dioceses with their bishops and is known as an ecclesiastical province. The bishops in this province are referred to as suffragan bishops because they're subject to the archbishop's authority in some matters. The archbishop is also called the metropolitan because he is the bishop of the main city, or metropolis, of the province he leads.
The archbishop can wear the pallium, a garment worn by the Pope, and sent by him to patriarchs, primates, and archbishops. It is a band of white wool, worn over the shoulders and around the neck after the manner of a stole. It has two strings of the same material and four black or purple crosses worked upon it. It is the symbol of the plenitude of pastoral jurisdiction conferred by the Holy See. Morally speaking, it reminds the wearer how the good shepherd seeks the lost sheep and brings it home upon his shoulders, and how the loving pastor of souls should seek those spiritually lost and bring them back to the Church, the true fold of Christ.
The archbishop can wear the pallium, a garment worn by the Pope, sent by him to patriarchs, primates, and archbishops. It’s a band of white wool worn over the shoulders and around the neck like a stole. It has two strings made of the same material and four black or purple crosses stitched onto it. It symbolizes the full pastoral authority granted by the Holy See. Morally, it serves as a reminder that the good shepherd seeks out the lost sheep and carries it home on his shoulders, just as the loving pastor of souls should search for those who are spiritually lost and guide them back to the Church, the true flock of Christ.
Lesson 26
ON MATRIMONY
Lesson 26
ON MARRIAGE
282 Q. What is the Sacrament of Matrimony? A. The Sacrament of Matrimony is the Sacrament which unites a Christian man and woman in lawful marriage.
282 Q. What is the Sacrament of Matrimony? A. The Sacrament of Matrimony is the Sacrament that brings a Christian man and woman together in a legal marriage.
"Christian," because if they are not Christians they do not receive the grace of the Sacrament.
"Christian," because if they aren't Christians, they don't receive the grace of the Sacrament.
*283 Q. Can a Christian man and woman be united in lawful marriage in any other way than by the Sacrament of Matrimony? A. A Christian man and woman cannot be united in lawful marriage in any other way than by the Sacrament of Matrimony, because Christ raised marriage to the dignity of a Sacrament.
*283 Q. Can a Christian man and woman get married legally in any way other than through the Sacrament of Matrimony? A. A Christian man and woman cannot get married legally in any way other than through the Sacrament of Matrimony, because Christ elevated marriage to the status of a Sacrament.
"Lawful." Persons are lawfully married when they comply with all the laws of God and of the Church relating to marriage. To marry unlawfully is a mortal sin, in which the persons must remain till the sin is forgiven. "Sacrament." Before the coming of Our Lord persons were married as they are now, and even lawfully according to the laws of the Old Testament or old religion; but marriage did not give them any grace. Now it does give grace, because it is a Sacrament, and has been so since the time of Our Lord. Before His coming it was only a contract, and when He added grace to the contract it became a Sacrament.
"Lawful." People are lawfully married when they follow all the laws of God and the Church regarding marriage. Marrying unlawfully is a serious sin, and those involved must remain in that state until the sin is forgiven. "Sacrament." Before the arrival of Our Lord, people were married as they are today, and even legally according to the laws of the Old Testament or earlier faiths; however, marriage did not bestow any grace. Now it does provide grace because it is a Sacrament, which has been true since the time of Our Lord. Before His arrival, it was merely a contract, and when He added grace to the contract, it transformed into a Sacrament.
*284 Q. Can the bond of Christian marriage be dissolved by any human power? A. The bond of Christian marriage cannot be dissolved by any human power.
*284 Q. Can any human authority dissolve the bond of Christian marriage? A. The bond of Christian marriage cannot be dissolved by any human authority.
"Dissolved"—that is, can married persons ever—for any cause—separate and marry again; that is, take another husband or wife while the first husband or wife is living? Never, if they were really married. Sometimes, for good reason, the Church permits husband and wife to separate and live in different places; but they are still married. Sometimes it happens, too, that persons are not really married although they have gone through the ceremony and people think they are married, and they may think so themselves. The Church, however, makes them separate, because it finds they are not really married at all—on account of some impeding circumstance that existed at the time they performed the ceremony. These circumstances or facts that prevent the marriage from being valid are called "Impediments to Marriage." Some of them render the marriage altogether null, and some only make it unlawful. When persons make arrangements about getting married they should tell the priest every circumstance that they think might be an impediment. Here are the chief things they should tell the priest—privately, if possible. Whether both are Christians and Catholics; whether either has ever been solemnly engaged to another person; whether they have ever made any vow to God with regard to chastity, the religious life, or the like; whether they are related and in what degree; whether either was ever married to any member of the other's family—say sister, brother, or cousin, etc.; whether either ever was a godparent in Baptism for the other or for any of the other's children; whether either was married before, and what proof can be given of the death of the first husband or wife; whether they really intend to get married; whether they are of lawful age; whether they are in good health or suffering from some sickness that might prevent their marriage, etc. They should also state whether they live in the parish, and how long they have lived in it. They should give at least three weeks' notice before their marriage, except in special cases of necessity. They should not presume to make final arrangements and invite friends before they have made arrangements with their pastor; because if there should be any delay on account of impediments it would cause them great inconvenience. Let me take an example of a fact that would render the marriage invalid or null though the persons performing the ceremony might not be aware of it. Suppose a woman's husband went to the war, and she heard after a great many years that he had been killed in battle, and she, believing her first husband to be dead, married another man. But the report of the first husband's death turns out to be false, and after a time he returns. Then the Church tells the woman—and she knows it now herself—that the second marriage was invalid, that is, no marriage, because it was performed while the first husband was still living. She must leave the second man and go back to her husband. You see in that case the Church was not dissolving or breaking the marriage bond, but only declaring that the woman and second man were not married from the very beginning, although they thought they were, being ignorant of the existing impediment, and the priest also being deceived performed the ceremony in the usual manner. If it ever happens, therefore, that you hear of the Church permitting persons, already apparently married, to separate and marry others, it is only when it discovers that their first marriage was invalid, and by its action it does not dissolve the bond of marriage, but simply declares that the marriage was null and void from the beginning, as you now easily understand. Thus persons might unwittingly marry with existing impediments that would render their marriage invalid or illicit. Such things, however, happen very rarely, for the priest would discover the impediments in questioning the persons about to marry.
"Dissolved"—can married people ever, for any reason, separate and remarry, taking another husband or wife while their original spouse is still alive? No, they cannot, if they were truly married. Sometimes, for valid reasons, the Church allows a husband and wife to separate and live in different places, but they are still married. There are also cases where people are not actually married even if they went through the ceremony and others believe they are married, and they might think so themselves. However, the Church requires them to separate because it finds that they are not truly married—due to some issue that existed when they got married. These issues that prevent a marriage from being valid are called "Impediments to Marriage." Some of these make the marriage completely invalid, while others just make it unlawful. When people are preparing to get married, they should tell the priest about any circumstances that they think might be an impediment. Here are the main details they should share with the priest—preferably in private: Whether both are Christians and Catholics; whether either has ever been formally engaged to someone else; whether they have made any vow to God regarding chastity, religious life, or similar matters; whether they are related and to what degree; whether either has ever been married to someone in the other’s family—such as a sister, brother, or cousin; whether either was a godparent at the Baptism for the other or for any of their children; whether either has been married before, and what proof exists of the first spouse's death; whether they genuinely intend to marry; whether they are of legal age; whether they are healthy or suffering from any illness that could prevent their marriage, etc. They should also indicate whether they live in the parish and how long they have lived there. Couples should give at least three weeks' notice before their wedding, except in special cases of necessity. They should not assume they can finalize plans and invite friends before discussing arrangements with their pastor; if there are any delays due to impediments, it could cause significant inconvenience. For example, consider a woman whose husband goes off to war. After many years, she hears that he was killed in battle, and believing him to be dead, she marries another man. Later, it turns out that the report of her first husband's death was false, and he eventually comes back. The Church then informs the woman—and she realizes—that her second marriage was invalid, meaning it was never a marriage, because it took place while her first husband was still alive. She must leave the second man and return to her husband. In this case, the Church is not breaking the marriage bond, but rather stating that the woman and the second man were never married from the start, even though they thought they were, unaware of the impediment. The priest, also misled, conducted the ceremony as usual. Therefore, if you ever hear about the Church allowing individuals who seem married to separate and marry others, it is only when it determines that their first marriage was invalid. The Church's action does not dissolve the marriage bond, but simply affirms that the marriage was null and void from the beginning, as you now understand. Thus, people might inadvertently marry despite existing impediments that would make their marriage invalid or unlawful. Fortunately, such situations are very rare because the priest would normally identify any impediments when questioning the individuals before marriage.
Protestants and persons outside the Catholic Church teach that the marriage bond can at times be dissolved, but such doctrines bring great evil upon society. When the father and mother separate and marry again, the children of the first marriage are left to take care of themselves, or receive only such care as the law gives them. They are left without Christian instruction and the good influence of home. Then persons who are divorced once may be divorced a second or third time, and thus all society would be thrown into a state of confusion, and there would be scarcely any such thing as a family to be found. It is bad enough at present, on account of divorces granted by the laws and upheld by Protestants; and only for the influence and good public opinion created by the teaching and opposition of the Catholic Church, it would be much worse. Again, if husbands and wives could separate for this or that fault, they would not be careful in making their choice of the person they wish to marry, nor would their motives be always holy and worthy of the Sacrament.
Protestants and those outside the Catholic Church believe that the marriage bond can sometimes be dissolved, but these beliefs cause significant harm to society. When parents separate and remarry, the children from the first marriage are left to fend for themselves or receive only the minimum care provided by law. They miss out on Christian guidance and the positive influence of a stable home. Furthermore, individuals who are divorced once may end up divorced again, leading to widespread chaos, and families as we know them would almost disappear. It’s already troubling now due to the divorces permitted by law and supported by Protestants; without the influence and strong public opinion promoted by the Catholic Church, it would be far worse. Additionally, if spouses could split over minor issues, they wouldn’t be careful about their choice of partner, and their intentions wouldn't always be pure and deserving of the Sacrament.
285 Q. Which are the effects of the Sacrament of Matrimony? A. The effects of the Sacrament of Matrimony are: first, to sanctify the love of husband and wife; second, to give them grace to bear with each other's weaknesses; third, to enable them to bring up their children in the fear and love of God.
285 Q. What are the effects of the Sacrament of Matrimony? A. The effects of the Sacrament of Matrimony are: first, to make the love between husband and wife holy; second, to provide them with grace to tolerate each other's flaws; third, to empower them to raise their children in the fear and love of God.
The union and love existing between a husband and wife should be like the union and love existing between Our Lord and His Church. The grace of the Sacrament helps them to have such a love. "Weaknesses"—that is, their faults, bad dispositions, etc. "Bring up their children." This is their most important duty, and parents receive grace to perform it, and woe be to them if they abuse that grace! Children should remember that their parents have received this special grace from God to advise, direct, and warn them of sin; and if they refuse to obey their parents or despise their direction, they are despising God's grace. Remember that nothing teaches us so well as experience. Now your parents, even if God gave them no special grace, have experience. They have been children as you are; they have been young persons as you are; they have received advice from their parents and teachers as you do. If your parents are bad, it is because they have not heeded the advice given them. If they are good, it is because they have heeded and followed it. The years of your youth quickly pass, and you will soon be thrown out into the world, among strangers to provide for yourselves, and will perhaps have no one to advise you. If you neglect to learn while you have the opportunity you will be sorry for it in after life. If you waste your time in school, you will leave it knowing very little, and an ignorant man can never take any good position in the world; he can seldom be his own master and independent; he must always toil for others as a servant. God gives us our talents and opportunities that we may use them to the best of our ability, and He will hold us accountable for these. It is good and praiseworthy to raise ourselves and others in the world if we do so by lawful and proper means. You may have the opportunity of getting a good position, and will not be able to take it because you are not sufficiently educated. Many young men live to be sorry for wasting time in school, and try to make up for it by studying at night. You cannot really make up for lost time. Every moment God gives you He gives for some particular work, and He will require an account from you, at the last day, for the use you made of your time. Besides, you can learn with greater ease while you are young. But what shall I say of neglecting to learn your holy religion? If you neglect your school lessons you will not be successful in the world as businessmen or professional men; but if you neglect your religious lessons, you will be miserable, not merely in this world, but in the next, and that for all eternity. Again, will you not feel ashamed to say you are a Catholic when persons who are not Catholics ask you the meaning of something you believe or do, and you will not be able to answer? When they tell falsehoods against your religion, you will not, on account of your ignorance, be able to refute them. Almost the only time you have to learn the truths and practices of your holy religion is during the instructions at Sunday school or day school, and after a few years you will not have this advantage. When you grow up you may hear a sermon, and if you attend early Mass, only a short instruction, on Sundays; and if you do not know your Catechism, you will be less able to profit by the instructions given. Therefore the time to learn is while you are young, have sufficient leisure, and good, willing teachers to explain whatever you do not understand.
The bond and love between a husband and wife should mirror the bond and love between Our Lord and His Church. The grace of the Sacrament helps them develop that love. "Weaknesses"—meaning their faults, bad habits, and so on. "Raising their children." This is their most crucial responsibility, and parents receive grace to fulfill it, and woe to them if they misuse that grace! Children should remember that their parents have received this special grace from God to guide, direct, and warn them about sin; if they refuse to listen to their parents or disregard their guidance, they are rejecting God's grace. Keep in mind that nothing teaches us better than experience. Your parents, even if God didn’t give them any special grace, have experience. They were children like you; they were young adults like you; they received advice from their parents and teachers just like you do. If your parents turn out poorly, it’s because they didn’t follow the advice they were given. If they are good, it’s because they listened to and acted on that advice. Your youth goes by quickly, and soon you’ll be out in the world among strangers trying to take care of yourselves, perhaps with no one to guide you. If you ignore learning while you have the chance, you will regret it later in life. If you waste your time in school, you’ll leave knowing very little, and an uneducated person can rarely secure a good position in the world; they often can’t be independent and must continuously work for others as a servant. God gives us talents and opportunities to use them to the best of our abilities, and He will hold us accountable for this. It’s admirable to elevate yourself and others in society if you do it through lawful and proper means. You might get a chance at a good job but won’t be able to take it because you’re not well educated. Many young men regret wasting time in school and try to make amends by studying at night. You can’t truly make up for lost time. Every moment God provides you comes with a specific purpose, and He will ask you for an account on the last day for how you used that time. Plus, it's easier to learn when you’re young. But what can I say about neglecting to learn your faith? If you ignore your schoolwork, you won’t succeed in the business world or in professional careers; but if you avoid your religious education, you’ll be miserable, not just in this life but in the next, for all eternity. Also, will you not feel embarrassed to call yourself a Catholic when non-Catholics ask you about your beliefs or practices, and you can’t answer? When they spread falsehoods about your faith, your ignorance will prevent you from defending it. Almost the only time you have to learn the truths and practices of your faith is during Sunday school or regular classes, and after a few years, you won’t have that benefit. When you’re older, you might hear a sermon, and if you go to early Mass, just a brief lesson on Sundays; if you don’t know your Catechism, you’ll be less able to benefit from the teachings offered. Therefore, the time to learn is when you’re young, have enough free time, and have good, willing teachers to clarify anything you don’t understand.
When you attend Sunday school, bear in mind that your teachers have frequently to sacrifice their time or pleasure for your sake, and that you should not repay them for their kindness by acts of disobedience, disrespect, and stubbornness. By spending your time in idleness, in giving annoyance to your teacher, and in distracting others who are willing to learn, you show a want of appreciation and gratitude for the blessings God has bestowed upon you, and please the devil exceedingly; and as God will hold you accountable for all His gifts, this one—the opportunity of learning your religion—will be no exception.
When you go to Sunday school, remember that your teachers often have to give up their own time and enjoyment for you. You shouldn't repay their kindness with disobedience, disrespect, or stubbornness. If you waste your time, annoy your teacher, or distract others who want to learn, you show a lack of appreciation and gratitude for the blessings God has given you, and you really please the devil. God will hold you responsible for all His gifts, and this opportunity to learn about your faith is no exception.
286 Q. To receive the Sacrament of Matrimony worthily, is it necessary to be in the state of grace? A. To receive the Sacrament of Matrimony worthily it is necessary to be in the state of grace, and it is necessary also to comply with the laws of the Church.
286 Q. Is it necessary to be in a state of grace to receive the Sacrament of Matrimony worthily? A. Yes, to receive the Sacrament of Matrimony worthily, it is necessary to be in a state of grace, and you also need to follow the laws of the Church.
"The laws," laws concerning marriage. Laws forbidding the solemnizing of marriage at certain times, namely, Advent and Lent; laws forbidding marriage with relatives, or with persons of a different religion or of no religion; laws with regard to age, etc.
"The laws," laws about marriage. Laws that prohibit getting married at certain times, specifically during Advent and Lent; laws that ban marriage with relatives or with people of different religions or no religion; laws regarding age, and so on.
*287 Q. Who has the right to make laws concerning the Sacrament of marriage? A. The Church alone has the right to make laws concerning the Sacrament of marriage, though the State also has the right to make laws concerning the civil effects of the marriage contract.
*287 Q. Who has the authority to create laws about the Sacrament of marriage? A. Only the Church has the authority to create laws about the Sacrament of marriage, although the State also has the authority to create laws regarding the civil effects of the marriage contract.
"Civil effects"—that is, laws with regard to the property of persons marrying, with regard to the inheritance of the children, with regard to the debts of husband and wife, etc.
"Civil effects"—that is, laws concerning the property of people getting married, regarding the inheritance of their children, regarding the debts of husband and wife, etc.
*288 Q. Does the Church forbid the marriage of Catholics with persons who have a different religion or no religion at all? A. The Church does forbid the marriage of Catholics with persons who have a different religion or no religion at all.
*288 Q. Does the Church prohibit Catholics from marrying people of different religions or no religion? A. Yes, the Church does prohibit Catholics from marrying individuals who have a different religion or no religion at all.
*289 Q. Why does the Church forbid the marriage of Catholics with persons who have a different religion or no religion at all? A. The Church forbids the marriage of Catholics with persons who have a different religion or no religion at all because such marriages generally lead to indifference, loss of faith, and to the neglect of the religious education of the children.
*289 Q. Why does the Church not allow Catholics to marry people who have a different religion or no religion? A. The Church does not allow Catholics to marry individuals with a different religion or no religion because these marriages often result in indifference, a loss of faith, and neglect of the religious upbringing of the children.
We know that nothing has so bad an influence upon people as bad company. Now, when a Catholic marries one who is not a Catholic, he or she is continually associated with one who in most cases ignores the true religion, or speaks at least with levity of its devotions and practices. The Catholic party may resist this evil influence for a time, but will, if not very steadfast in the faith, finally yield to it, and, tired of numerous disputes in defense of religious rights, will become more and more indifferent, gradually give up the practice of religion, and probably terminate with complete loss of faith or apostasy from the true religion. We know that the children of Seth were good till they married the children of Cain, and then they also became wicked; for, remember, there is always more likelihood that the bad will pervert the good, than that the good will convert the bad. Besides the disputes occasioned between husband and wife by the diversity of their religion, their families and relatives, being also of different religions, will seldom be at peace or on friendly terms with one another. Then the children can scarcely be brought up in the true religion; for the father may wish them to attend one church, and the mother another, and to settle the dispute they will attend neither. Besides, if they have before them the evil example of a father or mother speaking disparagingly of the true religion, or perhaps ridiculing all religion, it is not likely they will be imbued with great respect and veneration for holy things. There is still another reason why Catholics should dread mixed marriages. If the one who is not a Catholic loses regard for his or her obligations, becomes addicted to any vice, and is leading a bad life, the Catholic party has no means of reaching the root of the evil, no hope that the person may take the advice of the priest, or go to confession or do any of those things that could effect a change in the heart and life of a Catholic. For all these very good reasons and others besides, the Church opposes mixed marriages, as they are called when one of the persons is not a Catholic. Neither does the Church want persons to become converts simply for the sake of marrying a Catholic. Such conversions would not be sincere, and would do no good, but rather make such converts hypocrites, and guilty of greater sin.
We know that nothing has a worse influence on people than bad company. When a Catholic marries someone who isn't a Catholic, they are constantly around someone who often ignores the true religion or at least treats its practices and devotions lightly. The Catholic partner might resist this negative influence for a while, but if they are not very firm in their faith, they will eventually give in. After getting tired of arguing about religious beliefs, they will become more indifferent, gradually stop practicing their religion, and likely end up completely losing their faith or turning away from the true religion. We see that the children of Seth were good until they married the children of Cain, and then they, too, became wicked; because it's always more likely that the bad will corrupt the good than the good will change the bad. Additionally, the conflicts between husband and wife due to their differing religions, along with their families and relatives having different beliefs, will rarely allow for peace or friendly relations. Their children will hardly be raised in the true religion since the father might want them to go to one church while the mother wants them to attend another, and to settle the conflict, they may end up attending neither. Plus, if the children witness a parent speaking negatively about the true religion or mocking all religions, they are unlikely to develop much respect or reverence for sacred matters. There's another reason why Catholics should be cautious about mixed marriages. If the non-Catholic partner loses respect for their obligations, becomes trapped in vice, and is living a bad life, the Catholic partner has no way to address the root of the problem, nor any hope that the person will listen to the priest, go to confession, or undertake any actions that could change their heart and life. For all these very good reasons and more, the Church opposes mixed marriages, which are those where one partner is not Catholic. The Church also doesn't want people to convert just for the sake of marrying a Catholic. Such conversions wouldn't be genuine and would do more harm than good, potentially making those converts hypocrites and guilty of greater sin.
*290 Q. Why do many marriages prove unhappy? A. Many marriages prove unhappy because they are entered into hastily and without worthy motives.
*290 Q. Why do many marriages turn out to be unhappy? A. Many marriages turn out to be unhappy because they are rushed into and not based on good reasons.
"Hastily"—without knowing the person well or considering their character or dispositions; without trying to discover whether they are sober, industrious, virtuous, and the like; whether they know and practice their religion, or whether, on the contrary, they are given to vices forbidden by good morals, and totally forgetful of their religious duties. In a word, those wishing to marry should look for enduring qualities in their lifelong companions, and not for characteristics that please the fancy for the time being. They should, besides, truly love each other. Again, the persons should be nearly equals in education, social standing, etc., for it helps greatly to secure harmony between families and unity of thought and action between themselves.
"Hastily"—without really knowing the person or considering their character or personality; without trying to find out if they are responsible, hardworking, good people, and so on; whether they know and practice their faith, or whether, on the contrary, they indulge in vices that go against good morals and are completely neglectful of their religious duties. In short, those looking to marry should seek lasting qualities in their lifelong partners, not just traits that are appealing in the moment. They should also genuinely love each other. Furthermore, the individuals should be somewhat equal in education, social status, etc., as this greatly helps in ensuring harmony between families and a shared understanding and approach between them.
"Worthy motives." The motives are worthy when persons marry to fulfill the end for which God instituted marriage. It would, for example, be an unworthy motive to marry solely for money, property, or other advantage, without any regard for the holiness and end of the Sacrament. There are many motives that may present themselves to the minds of persons wishing to marry, and they will know whether they are worthy or unworthy, good or bad, if by serious consideration they weigh them well and value them by their desire to please God and lead a good life.
"Worthy motives." Motives are considered worthy when people marry to achieve the purpose for which God established marriage. For instance, it would be an unworthy motive to marry just for money, property, or other benefits, without any consideration for the sanctity and purpose of the Sacrament. There are many reasons that may come to the minds of those wanting to get married, and they will be able to determine if those reasons are worthy or unworthy, good or bad, by seriously reflecting on them and evaluating them based on their desire to please God and live a good life.
Every person's motive in getting married or in entering into any new state of life should be that he may be able to serve God better in that state than in any other.
Every person's reason for getting married or entering any new phase of life should be that they can serve God better in that situation than in any other.
*291 Q. How should Christians prepare for a holy and happy marriage? A. Christians should prepare for a holy and happy marriage by receiving the Sacraments of Penance and Holy Eucharist; by begging God to grant them a pure intention and to direct their choice; and by seeking the advice of their parents and the blessing of their pastors.
*291 Q. How should Christians prepare for a holy and happy marriage? A. Christians should prepare for a holy and happy marriage by receiving the Sacraments of Penance and Holy Eucharist; by asking God for a pure intention and guidance in their choices; and by seeking advice from their parents and the blessing of their pastors.
They should pray for a long time that they may make a good choice. They would do well to read in the Holy Scripture, in the Book of Tobias (8), of the happy marriage of Tobias and Sara, and how they spent their time in prayer both before and after their marriage, and how God rewarded them. Advice is very necessary, as marriage is to last for life, and is to make persons either happy or miserable. They should ask advice from prudent persons, and should try to learn something of the former life of the one they wish to marry. They should know something about the family, whether its members are respectable or not, etc. It is an injustice to parents for sons or daughters to marry into families that may have been disgraced, or that may bring disgrace upon them. Sometimes, however, parents are unreasonable in this matter: they are proud or vain, and want to suit themselves rather than their children. Sometimes, too, they force marriage upon their children, or forbid it for purely worldly or selfish motives. In such cases, and indeed in all cases, the best one to consult and ask advice from is your confessor. He has only your spiritual interests at heart, and will set aside all worldly motives. If your parents are unreasonable, he will be a just judge in the matter, and tell you how to act.
They should pray for a long time to make a good choice. It would be wise to read in the Holy Scripture, specifically in the Book of Tobias (8), about the happy marriage of Tobias and Sara, and how they spent their time in prayer both before and after their marriage, and how God rewarded them. Seeking advice is crucial since marriage is meant to last a lifetime and can either bring happiness or misery. They should consult wise individuals and try to learn about the background of the person they want to marry. It’s important to know about the family, whether its members are respectable or not, etc. It's unjust to parents for their sons or daughters to marry into families that may have a bad reputation or could bring shame upon them. However, sometimes parents can be unreasonable in this regard; they may be proud or vain and seek to fulfill their own desires rather than those of their children. At times, they might even pressure their children into marriage or outright forbid it for selfish or materialistic reasons. In these situations, and indeed in all cases, the best person to consult and seek advice from is your confessor. He only cares about your spiritual well-being and will disregard all worldly considerations. If your parents are being unreasonable, he will be a fair judge in the situation and advise you on how to proceed.
I have now explained all the Sacraments, but before finishing I must say a word about the Holy Oils. We have seen that oil is used in the administration of some Sacraments. There are three kinds of oil blessed by the bishop on Holy Thursday, namely, oil for anointing the sick, called "oil of the infirm"; oil to be used in Baptism and in the ordination of priests, called "oil of catechumens" (catechumens are those who are being instructed for Baptism); the third kind of oil is used also in Baptism, in Confirmation, and when the bishop blesses the sacred vessels, altars, etc.; it is called "holy chrism." Therefore the Sacraments in which oil is used are: Baptism, in which two kinds are used; Confirmation, Extreme Unction, and Holy Orders.
I have now explained all the Sacraments, but before I finish, I need to say a word about the Holy Oils. We have seen that oil is used in some Sacraments. There are three types of oil blessed by the bishop on Holy Thursday: oil for anointing the sick, called "oil of the infirm"; oil used in Baptism and for the ordination of priests, called "oil of catechumens" (catechumens are those being prepared for Baptism); the third type of oil is also used in Baptism, Confirmation, and when the bishop blesses sacred vessels, altars, etc.; it is called "holy chrism." Therefore, the Sacraments that use oil are: Baptism, which uses two kinds; Confirmation, Extreme Unction, and Holy Orders.
Lesson 27
ON THE SACRAMENTALS
Lesson 27
ABOUT THE SACRAMENTALS
292 Q. What is a sacramental? A. A sacramental is anything set apart or blessed by the Church to excite good thoughts and to increase devotion, and through these movements of the heart to remit venial sin.
292 Q. What is a sacramental? A. A sacramental is anything that has been set apart or blessed by the Church to inspire good thoughts and boost devotion, which through these heartfelt responses can help to forgive venial sin.
It is not the sacramental itself that gives grace, but the devotion, the love of God, or sorrow for sin that it inspires. For example, a person comes into the church and goes around the Stations of the Cross. The stations are a sacramental. In looking at one station he sees Our Lord on trial before Pilate; in another he sees Him crowned with thorns; in another, scourged; in another, carrying His Cross; in another, crucified; in another, dead and laid in the tomb. Before all these pictures he reflects on the sufferings of Our Saviour, and begins to hate sin, that caused them. Then he thinks, of his own sins, and begins to be sorry for them. This sorrow, caused by going around the stations, brings him grace that remits venial sins. When we receive the Sacraments we always get the grace of the Sacraments when we are rightly disposed; but in using the sacramentals, the more devotion we have the more grace we receive.
It’s not the sacrament itself that provides grace, but the devotion, love for God, or sorrow for sin that it ignites. For example, someone enters the church and walks around the Stations of the Cross. The stations are a sacramental. When looking at one station, they see Our Lord on trial before Pilate; at another, they see Him crowned with thorns; at another, being scourged; at another, carrying His Cross; at another, crucified; at another, dead and placed in the tomb. In front of all these images, they reflect on the sufferings of Our Savior and start to hate the sin that caused them. Then they think of their own sins and begin to feel sorry for them. This sorrow, triggered by walking around the stations, brings grace that wipes away venial sins. When we receive the Sacraments, we always receive the grace of the Sacraments if we are properly prepared; but when using sacramentals, the more devotion we have, the more grace we receive.
"Increase devotion." If we knelt down before a plain white wall we could not pray with the devotion we would have kneeling before a crucifix. We see the representation of the nails in the hands and feet, the blood on the side, the thorns on the head; and all these must make us think of Our Lord's terrible sufferings. The picture of a friend hanging before us will often make us think of him when we would otherwise forget him. So also will the pictures of Our Lord and of the saints keep them often in our minds.
"Increase devotion." If we knelt down in front of a plain white wall, we couldn't pray with the same devotion as we would kneeling before a crucifix. We see the images of the nails in His hands and feet, the blood on His side, the thorns on His head; and all of this reminds us of Our Lord's terrible sufferings. A picture of a friend hanging in front of us often makes us think of him when we might otherwise forget. Likewise, the pictures of Our Lord and the saints keep them in our thoughts more often.
*293 Q. What is the difference between the Sacraments and the sacramentals? A. The difference between the Sacraments and the sacramentals is: first, the Sacraments were instituted by Jesus Christ and the sacramentals were instituted by the Church; second, the Sacraments give grace of themselves when we place no obstacle in the way; the sacramentals excite in us pious dispositions, by means of which we may obtain grace.
*293 Q. What’s the difference between the Sacraments and the sacramentals? A. The difference between the Sacraments and the sacramentals is: first, the Sacraments were established by Jesus Christ, while the sacramentals were established by the Church; second, the Sacraments provide grace on their own when we don’t put up any barriers, whereas the sacramentals inspire in us a spirit of devotion, through which we can receive grace.
The Church can increase or diminish the number of the sacramentals, but not the number of the Sacraments.
The Church can add to or reduce the number of sacramentals, but it can't change the number of Sacraments.
294 Q. Which is the chief sacramental used in the Church? A. The chief sacramental used in the Church is the Sign of the Cross.
294 Q. What is the main sacramental used in the Church? A. The main sacramental used in the Church is the Sign of the Cross.
295 Q. How do we make the Sign of the Cross? A. We make the Sign of the Cross by putting the right hand to the forehead, then on the breast, and then to the left and right shoulders; saying, In the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Amen.
295 Q. How do we make the Sign of the Cross? A. We make the Sign of the Cross by placing our right hand on our forehead, then on our chest, and then on our left and right shoulders, saying, "In the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit. Amen."
It is important to make an exact cross, and to say all the words distinctly. From carelessness and habit some persons do not make the Sign of the Cross, though they often intend to bless themselves. They put the hand only to the forehead and breast, or forehead and chin, or forehead and shoulders, etc. Some do not even touch the forehead. All these, it is true, are some signs and movements of the hand, but they are not the Sign of the Cross. Therefore, from childhood form the good habit of blessing yourself correctly, and you will continue to do it properly all your life.
It’s important to make a clear Sign of the Cross and say the words clearly. Some people, out of carelessness or habit, don’t make the Sign of the Cross even when they mean to bless themselves. They might only touch their forehead and breast, or forehead and chin, or forehead and shoulders, etc. Some don’t even touch their forehead at all. While these are movements of the hand, they aren’t the Sign of the Cross. So, from childhood, develop the good habit of blessing yourself the right way, and you’ll keep doing it properly throughout your life.
296 Q. Why do we make the Sign of the Cross? A. We make the Sign of the Cross to show that we are Christians and to profess our belief in the chief mysteries of our religion.
296 Q. Why do we make the Sign of the Cross? A. We make the Sign of the Cross to demonstrate that we are Christians and to express our belief in the central mysteries of our faith.
The cross is the banner or standard of Christianity, just as the stars and stripes—the flag of the United States—is our civil standard, and shows to what nation we belong.
The cross is the symbol of Christianity, just like the stars and stripes—the flag of the United States—serves as our national emblem and indicates which country we belong to.
*297 Q. How is the Sign of the Cross a profession of faith in the chief mysteries of our religion? A. The Sign of the Cross is a profession of faith in the chief mysteries of our religion because it expresses the mysteries of the Unity and Trinity of God and of the Incarnation and death of Our Lord.
*297 Q. How is the Sign of the Cross a statement of faith in the main beliefs of our religion? A. The Sign of the Cross is a statement of faith in the main beliefs of our religion because it represents the mysteries of the Unity and Trinity of God, as well as the Incarnation and death of Our Lord.
*298 Q. How does the Sign of the Cross express the mystery of the Unity and Trinity of God? A. The words: "In the name" express the Unity of God; the words that follow, "of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost" express the mystery of the Trinity.
*298 Q. How does the Sign of the Cross express the mystery of the Unity and Trinity of God? A. The phrase "In the name" represents the Unity of God; the following phrase, "of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit," represents the mystery of the Trinity.
*299 Q. How does the Sign of the Cross express the mystery of the Incarnation and death of Our Lord? A. The Sign of the Cross expresses the mystery of the Incarnation by reminding us that the Son of God, having become man, suffered death on the Cross.
*299 Q. How does the Sign of the Cross express the mystery of the Incarnation and death of Our Lord? A. The Sign of the Cross expresses the mystery of the Incarnation by reminding us that the Son of God, having become human, suffered death on the Cross.
Besides these chief mysteries, we will find, if we think a little, that the Sign of the Cross reminds us of many other things. It reminds us of the sin of our first parents, which made the Cross necessary; it reminds us of the hatred God bears to sin, when such sufferings were endured to make satisfaction for it; it reminds us of Christ's love, etc.
Besides these main mysteries, if we reflect a bit, we'll see that the Sign of the Cross reminds us of many other things. It reminds us of the sin of our first parents that made the Cross necessary; it reminds us of God's hatred for sin, given the sufferings endured to make amends for it; it reminds us of Christ's love, and so on.
300 Q. What other sacramental is in very frequent use? A. Another sacramental in very frequent use is holy water.
300 Q. What other sacramental is commonly used? A. Another sacramental that's commonly used is holy water.
301 Q. What is, holy water?
A. Holy water is water blessed by the priest with solemn prayer to beg
God's blessing on those who use it, and protection from the power of
darkness.
301 Q. What is holy water?
A. Holy water is water that a priest has blessed with a serious prayer to ask
for God's blessing on those who use it and for protection from the forces of
darkness.
The priest prays that those who use this water may not fall into sin; may be free from the power of the devil and from bodily diseases, etc. Therefore when they do use the water they get the benefit of all these prayers, because the priest says: "If they use it, God grant them all these things."
The priest prays that everyone who uses this water stays away from sin; may be protected from the devil’s influence and from physical ailments, etc. So, when they do use the water, they receive the benefits of all these prayers, because the priest says, "If they use it, may God grant them all these things."
302 Q. Are there any other sacramentals besides the Sign of the Cross and holy water? A. Besides the Sign of the Cross and holy water there are many other sacramentals, such as blessed candles, ashes, palms, crucifixes, images of the Blessed Virgin and of the saints, rosaries, and scapulars.
302 Q. Are there any other sacramentals besides the Sign of the Cross and holy water? A. Yes, in addition to the Sign of the Cross and holy water, there are many other sacramentals, like blessed candles, ashes, palms, crucifixes, images of the Blessed Virgin and the saints, rosaries, and scapulars.
"Candles," blessed on the Feast of the Purification of the Blessed Virgin (see Butler's Lives of the Saints, Feb. 2, Feast of the Purification). The Church blesses whatever it uses. Some say beautifully that the wax of the candle gathered by the bees from sweet flowers reminds us of Our Lord's pure, human body, and that the flame reminds us of His divinity. Again, candles about the altar remind us of the angels, those bright spirits ever about God's throne; they remind us, too, of the persecution of the Christians in the first ages of the Church, when they had to hear Mass and receive the Sacraments in dark places, where lights were necessary that priests and people might see. Again, lights are a beautiful ornament for the altar, and in keeping with holy things. Lights are a sign of joy: hence the very old custom of lighting bonfires to express joy. So we have lights to express our joy at the celebration of the Holy Mass. Again, if we wish to honor any great person in the Church or State, we illuminate the city for his reception. So, too, we illuminate our altars and churches for the reception of Our Lord, that we may honor Him when He comes in the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass, and is present at Benediction.
"Candles," blessed on the Feast of the Purification of the Blessed Virgin (see Butler's Lives of the Saints, Feb. 2, Feast of the Purification). The Church blesses whatever it uses. Some beautifully say that the wax of the candle, gathered by bees from sweet flowers, reminds us of Our Lord's pure, human body, and that the flame represents His divinity. Furthermore, candles around the altar remind us of the angels, those bright spirits always surrounding God's throne; they also remind us of the persecution of Christians in the early Church when they had to hear Mass and receive the Sacraments in dark places, where lights were necessary for priests and people to see. Additionally, lights are a lovely decoration for the altar and appropriate for sacred things. Lights symbolize joy, which explains the ancient custom of lighting bonfires to show happiness. Thus, we have lights to express our joy during the celebration of the Holy Mass. Moreover, if we want to honor any significant person in the Church or State, we light up the city for their arrival. Similarly, we illuminate our altars and churches to honor Our Lord when He comes in the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass and is present at Benediction.
"Ashes" are placed on our heads by the priest on Ash Wednesday, while he says: "Remember, man, thou art but dust and unto dust thou shalt return." They are a sign of penance, and so we use them at the beginning of Lent.
"Ashes" are put on our heads by the priest on Ash Wednesday, while he says: "Remember, person, you are just dust and to dust you shall return." They are a symbol of regret, and we use them at the start of Lent.
"Palms," to remind us of Our Lord's coming in triumph into Jerusalem, when the people out of respect for Him threw palms, and even their garments, beneath His feet on the way, singing His praises and wishing to make Him king. Yet these same people only one week later were among those who crucified Him. Do we not also at times honor Our Lord, call Him our king, and shortly afterwards insult and, as far as we can, injure Him by sin? Do we not say in the Our Father, "Hallowed, or praised, be His name," and blaspheme it ourselves?
"Palms," to remind us of Jesus' triumphant entry into Jerusalem, when the crowd honored Him by laying down palms and their clothes in His path, singing His praises and wanting to make Him their king. Yet, just one week later, those same people were part of the crowd that crucified Him. Don't we also at times honor Jesus, call Him our king, and shortly after, insult Him and try to hurt Him with our sins? Don’t we say in the Our Father, "Hallowed, or praised, be His name," and then blaspheme it ourselves?
"Crucifix," if it has an image of Our Lord upon it; if not it is simply a cross, because crucifix means fixed to the cross.
"Crucifix," if it has an image of Our Lord on it; if not, it’s just a cross, because crucifix means attached to the cross.
"Images"—that is, statues, pictures, etc.
"Images"—meaning statues, pictures, etc.
"Rosaries," called also the beads. The rosary or beads is a very old and very beautiful form of prayer. In the beginning pious people, we are told, used to say a certain number of prayers, and keep count of them on a string with knots or beads. However that may be, the Rosary, as we now have it, comes down to us from St. Dominic. He instructed the people by it, and converted many heretics. In the rosary beads here are fifty-three small beads on which we say the "Hail Mary" and six large beads on which we say the "Our Father." In saying the Rosary, before saying the "Our Father" on the large beads, we think or meditate for a while on some event in the life of Our Lord, and these events we call Mysteries of the Rosary. There are fifteen of these events taken in the order in which they occurred in the life of Our Lord; and hence there are fifteen Mysteries in the whole Rosary. First we have the five Joyful Mysteries. (1) The Annunciation—that is, the angel Gabriel coming to tell the Blessed Virgin that she is to be the Mother of God. (2) The Visitation, when the Blessed Virgin went to visit her cousin St. Elizabeth—the mother of St. John the Baptist, who was six months older than Our Lord. Elizabeth said to her, "Blessed art thou amongst women, and blessed is the Fruit of thy womb"; and the Blessed Virgin answered her in the beautiful words of the Magnificat, that we sing at Vespers while the priest incenses the altar. (3) The Nativity, or birth of Our Lord, which reminds us how He was born in a stable, in poverty and lowliness. (4) The Presentation of the child Jesus in the Temple. According to the law of Moses, the people were obliged to bring the first boy born in every family to the temple in Jerusalem and offer him to God. Then they gave some offering to buy him back, as it were, from God. The Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph, who kept all the laws, took Our Lord and offered Him in the temple—although He Himself was the Lord of the temple. Nevertheless others did not know this, and the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph observed the laws, though not bound to do so, that their neighbors might not be scandalized in seeing them neglect these things. They did not know, as she did, that the little Infant was the Son of God, and need not keep the law of Moses or any law, because He was the maker of the laws. We should learn from this never to give scandal; and even when we have good excuse for not observing the law, we should observe it for the sake of good example to others; or at least, when we can, we should explain why we do not observe the law. (5) The fifth Joyful Mystery is the finding of the child Jesus in the temple. All the men and boys, from twelve years of age upward, were obliged, according to the Old Law, to go up to Jerusalem and offer sacrifice on the great feasts. On one of these feasts the Blessed Virgin, St. Joseph, and Our Lord went to Jerusalem. When His parents and their friends were returning home Our Lord was missing. He had not accompanied them from the city. Then the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph went back to Jerusalem and sought Him with great sorrow for three days. At the end of that time they found Him in the temple sitting with the doctors of the law asking them questions. Our Lord obediently returned with His parents to Nazareth. At thirty years of age He was baptized by John the Baptist in the River Jordan. The baptism of John was not a Sacrament, did not give grace of itself; but, like a sacramental, it disposed those who received it to be sorry for their sins and to receive the gift of faith and Baptism of Christ. The eighteen years from the time Our Lord went down to Nazareth after being found in the temple till His baptism is called His hidden life, while all that follows His baptism is called His public life. It is very strange that not a single word should be given in the Holy Scriptures about Our Lord during His youth—the very time young men are most anxious to be seen and heard. Our Lord knew all things and could do all things when a young man, and yet for the sake of example He remained silent, living quietly with His parents and doing His daily work for them. Thus you understand what is meant by the five Joyful Mysteries of the Rosary: the Annunciation, the Visitation, the Nativity of Our Lord, the Presentation of the child Jesus in the temple, and the finding of the child Jesus in the temple. You meditate on one of these before each decade (ten) of the beads.
"Rosaries," also known as beads. The rosary or beads is a very old and beautiful way to pray. In the beginning, devout people used to say a certain number of prayers and keep track of them on a string with knots or beads. However, the Rosary as we know it comes from St. Dominic. He taught people using it and converted many heretics. In the rosary beads, there are fifty-three small beads where we say the "Hail Mary" and six larger beads where we say the "Our Father." When praying the Rosary, before saying the "Our Father" on the large beads, we think or meditate for a moment on an event in the life of Our Lord, which we call the Mysteries of the Rosary. There are fifteen of these events in the order they occurred in the life of Our Lord, making a total of fifteen Mysteries in the Rosary. First, there are the five Joyful Mysteries. (1) The Annunciation—that’s when the angel Gabriel came to tell the Blessed Virgin she would be the Mother of God. (2) The Visitation, when the Blessed Virgin went to visit her cousin St. Elizabeth, the mother of St. John the Baptist, who was six months older than Our Lord. Elizabeth said to her, "Blessed are you among women, and blessed is the fruit of your womb"; and the Blessed Virgin responded with the beautiful words of the Magnificat, which we sing at Vespers while the priest incenses the altar. (3) The Nativity, or birth of Our Lord, reminding us how He was born in a stable, in poverty and humility. (4) The Presentation of the child Jesus in the Temple. According to the law of Moses, people had to bring their firstborn son to the temple in Jerusalem and offer him to God. Then they would give an offering to buy him back, so to speak, from God. The Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph, who kept all the laws, took Our Lord and offered Him in the temple—even though He Himself was the Lord of the temple. Still, others didn’t know this, and the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph followed the laws, even though they weren't obligated to, to avoid scandalizing their neighbors by neglecting these practices. They didn’t understand, as she did, that the little Infant was the Son of God and didn’t have to keep the law of Moses or any law, since He was the creator of the laws. We should learn from this to never cause scandal; even when we have good reasons for not following the law, we should adhere to it for the sake of setting a good example for others; or at least, when possible, we should explain why we don't follow the law. (5) The fifth Joyful Mystery is the finding of the child Jesus in the temple. All men and boys aged twelve and older were required by the Old Law to go to Jerusalem and offer sacrifices during the great feasts. During one of these feasts, the Blessed Virgin, St. Joseph, and Our Lord went to Jerusalem. When His parents and their friends were heading home, they realized Jesus was missing. He hadn’t gone with them from the city. So the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph returned to Jerusalem and searched for Him with great sorrow for three days. After that time, they found Him in the temple sitting with the doctors of the law, asking them questions. Our Lord obediently returned with His parents to Nazareth. At the age of thirty, He was baptized by John the Baptist in the River Jordan. John’s baptism wasn’t a Sacrament and didn’t grant grace by itself; rather, like a sacramental, it prepared those who received it to feel remorse for their sins and to accept the gift of faith and the Baptism of Christ. The eighteen years from the time Our Lord returned to Nazareth after being found in the temple until His baptism is referred to as His hidden life, and everything that follows His baptism is called His public life. It’s quite striking that not a single word is written in the Holy Scriptures about Our Lord during His youth—the very period when young men are most eager to be seen and heard. Our Lord knew and could do all things even as a young man, yet for the sake of example, He remained silent, living quietly with His parents and working daily for them. So, you understand what the five Joyful Mysteries of the Rosary are: the Annunciation, the Visitation, the Nativity of Our Lord, the Presentation of the child Jesus in the temple, and the finding of the child Jesus in the temple. You meditate on one of these before each decade (ten) of the beads.
Next in order in the life of Our Lord come the five events called the Sorrowful Mysteries, namely: (1) The agony in the garden, when Our Lord went there to pray on Holy Thursday night, before He was taken prisoner. There the blood came out through His body as perspiration does through ours, and He was in dreadful anguish. The reason of His sorrow and anguish has already been given in the explanation of the Passion. (2) The scourging of Our Lord at the pillar. This also has been explained. What terrible cruelty existed in the world before Christianity! In our times the brute beasts have more protection from cruel treatment than the pagan slaves had then. The Church came to their assistance. It taught that all men are God's children, that slaves as well as masters were redeemed by Jesus Christ, and that masters must be kind and just to their slaves. Many converts from paganism through love for Our Lord and this teaching of the Church, granted liberty to their slaves; and thus as civilization spread with the teaching of Christianity, slavery ceased to exist. It was not in the power of the Church, however, to abolish slavery everywhere, but she did it as soon as she could. Even at present she is fighting hard to protect the poor Negroes of Africa against it, or at least to moderate its cruelty. (3) The third Sorrowful Mystery is the crowning with thorns. (4) The carriage of the Cross to Calvary. It was the common practice to make the prisoner at times carry his cross to the place of execution, and over the cross they printed what he was put to death for. That is the reason they placed over Our Lord's cross I.N.R.I., which are the first letters of four Latin words meaning, "Jesus of Nazareth, King of the Jews." They pretended by this sign that Our Lord was put to death for calling Himself King of the Jews, and was thus a disturber of the public peace, and an enemy of the Roman emperor under whose power they were. Our Lord did say that He was King of the Jews, but He also said that He was not their earthly but their heavenly king. The real cause of their putting Our Lord to death was the jealousy of the Jewish priests and Pharisees. He rebuked them for their faults, and showed the good, sincere people what hypocrites these men were. (5) The last of the Sorrowful Mysteries is the Crucifixion. At the foot of the Cross our blessed Mother stood on the day of Crucifixion, and it must have been a very sad sight for Our Lord. She was without anyone to take care of her; for St. Joseph was dead, and her Son was soon to die. Our Lord asked St. John, one of His Apostles, to take care of her. St. John was dear to Christ, and on that account is called the beloved disciple. He is known to us as St. John the Evangelist. He was the last of the Apostles to die. At one time he was cast into a cauldron of boiling oil, but was miraculously saved by God (see Butler's Lives of the Saints, Dec. 27). He lived to be over a hundred years old, and while on the island of Patmos wrote the Apocalypse or Revelations—the last book of the New Testament—containing prophecies of what will happen at the end of the world. The Blessed Virgin lived on earth about eleven years after the Ascension of Our Lord. They buried her in a tomb, and tradition tells us that after her burial the angels carried her body to Heaven, where she now sits beside her Divine Son. This taking of her body to Heaven is called the Assumption. This feast was celebrated in the Church from a very early age. A very strong proof of the Assumption is that no persons ever claimed to have any part of the body of the Blessed Virgin as a relic. We have the bodies of some of the Apostles, especially St. Peter, St. Paul, and St. James transmitted to us; and certainly if it had been possible the first Christians would have endeavored to get some portion, at least, of the Blessed Virgin's body. Surely St. John, who knew her so well, would have given to the church he established some part of her body as a relic; but since her entire body was taken to Heaven, it was never possible.
Next in the life of Our Lord are the five events known as the Sorrowful Mysteries: (1) The agony in the garden, when Our Lord went there to pray on Holy Thursday night before He was arrested. There, blood poured from His body like sweat does from ours, and He was in terrible anguish. The reasons for His sorrow and anguish have already been explained in the discussion of the Passion. (2) The scourging of Our Lord at the pillar. This has also been explained. It's shocking how much cruelty existed in the world before Christianity! Nowadays, animals have more protection from abuse than the pagan slaves did back then. The Church came to their aid. It taught that all people are God's children, that both slaves and masters were redeemed by Jesus Christ, and that masters must treat their slaves kindly and justly. Many who converted from paganism out of love for Our Lord and the Church's teachings freed their slaves; as Christianity spread, slavery diminished. However, the Church couldn't abolish slavery everywhere, but she acted as soon as she could. Even today, she battles to protect the poor Black people in Africa from it or to reduce its brutality. (3) The third Sorrowful Mystery is the crowning with thorns. (4) The carrying of the Cross to Calvary. It was common for prisoners to carry their crosses to the execution site, and they put a sign over the cross indicating the crime. That's why they placed I.N.R.I. over Our Lord's cross, which are the initials of four Latin words meaning, "Jesus of Nazareth, King of the Jews." They used this sign to suggest that Our Lord was executed for claiming to be the King of the Jews, implying He was a threat to public peace and an enemy of the Roman emperor. Our Lord did claim to be the King of the Jews, but He also stated He was their heavenly king, not an earthly one. The real reason for His execution was the jealousy of the Jewish priests and Pharisees. He called them out for their wrongdoings and showed the sincere people how hypocritical they were. (5) The last of the Sorrowful Mysteries is the Crucifixion. At the foot of the Cross on the day of the Crucifixion stood our blessed Mother, and it must have been a heartbreaking sight for Our Lord. She had no one to care for her since St. Joseph had died, and her Son was about to die. Our Lord asked St. John, one of His Apostles, to look after her. St. John was dear to Christ, which is why he's called the beloved disciple. He’s recognized as St. John the Evangelist. He was the last of the Apostles to die. He was once thrown into a cauldron of boiling oil but was miraculously saved by God (see Butler's Lives of the Saints, Dec. 27). He lived to be over a hundred years old, and while on the island of Patmos, he wrote the Apocalypse or Revelations—the last book of the New Testament—containing prophecies about what will happen at the end of the world. The Blessed Virgin lived about eleven years after Our Lord's Ascension. They buried her in a tomb, and tradition tells us that after her burial, angels took her body to Heaven, where she now sits beside her Divine Son. This event is known as the Assumption. The Church has celebrated this feast since the early days. A strong piece of evidence for the Assumption is that no one has ever claimed to have any part of the Blessed Virgin's body as a relic. We have relics of some of the Apostles, especially St. Peter, St. Paul, and St. James; certainly, if it had been possible, the first Christians would have tried to obtain at least a part of the Blessed Virgin's body. Surely St. John, who knew her so well, would have given the church he founded a part of her body as a relic; but since her entire body was taken to Heaven, that was never possible.
After the Sorrowful Mysteries come the five Glorious Mysteries, and they are: (1) The Resurrection of Our Lord; (2) The Ascension of Our Lord; (3) The Coming of the Holy Ghost upon the Apostles; (4) The Assumption of the Blessed Virgin; and (5) The Coronation of the Blessed Virgin in Heaven. All but the last have been explained in foregoing parts of the Catechism. In this last Mystery we consider our Blessed Lady just after her entrance into Heaven, being received by her Divine Son, our Blessed Lord, and being crowned Queen of Heaven over all the angels and saints. In saying the Rosary we are, as I have told you before, to stop after mentioning the Mystery and think over the lesson it teaches, and thus excite ourselves to love and devotion before saying the "Our Father" and "Hail Marys" in honor of it. Generally what we call the beads is only one third of the Rosary; that is, we can only say five mysteries on the beads unless we go over them three times. If you say your beads every day you will say the whole Rosary twice a week and have one day to spare.
After the Sorrowful Mysteries, we move on to the five Glorious Mysteries, which are: (1) The Resurrection of Our Lord; (2) The Ascension of Our Lord; (3) The Coming of the Holy Spirit upon the Apostles; (4) The Assumption of the Blessed Virgin; and (5) The Coronation of the Blessed Virgin in Heaven. All except for the last one have been explained in earlier parts of the Catechism. In this final Mystery, we reflect on our Blessed Lady just after she enters Heaven, being welcomed by her Divine Son, our Blessed Lord, and being crowned as Queen of Heaven over all the angels and saints. When we say the Rosary, as I mentioned before, we should pause after mentioning the Mystery to contemplate the lesson it conveys, which helps us grow in love and devotion before reciting the "Our Father" and "Hail Marys" in its honor. Generally, what we refer to as the beads is only one-third of the Rosary; that is, we can only complete five mysteries on the beads unless we go through them three times. If you pray the Rosary every day, you will complete the entire Rosary twice a week and have one day left over.
On Sundays, except the Sundays of Advent and Lent, we should say always the Glorious Mysteries. You see, the Mysteries run in the order in which they happen in Our Lord's life. So on Monday we say the Joyful Mysteries, on Tuesday the Sorrowful, and on Wednesday the Glorious. Then we begin again on Thursday the Joyful, on Friday the Sorrowful, on Saturday the Glorious. In Advent we say the Joyful, and in Lent the Sorrowful Mysteries on every day. In Eastertime we always say the Glorious mysteries.
On Sundays, except during Advent and Lent, we should always pray the Glorious Mysteries. The Mysteries follow the order of events in Our Lord's life. So on Monday, we pray the Joyful Mysteries, on Tuesday the Sorrowful, and on Wednesday the Glorious. Then we start over on Thursday with the Joyful, Friday with the Sorrowful, and Saturday with the Glorious. During Advent, we pray the Joyful Mysteries every day, and during Lent, we pray the Sorrowful Mysteries daily. In Eastertime, we always pray the Glorious Mysteries.
I have told you what the letters I.N.R.I. mean; now let me tell you what I.H.S. with a cross over them mean. You often see these letters on altars and on holy things. They are simply an abbreviation for Our Lord's name, "Jesus," as it was first written in Greek letters. Some also take these letters for the first letters of the Latin words that mean: Jesus, Saviour of men. And as the cross is placed over these letters it can signify that He saved them by His death on the Cross.
I’ve explained what the letters I.N.R.I. stand for; now let me explain what I.H.S. with a cross over them means. You often see these letters on altars and sacred items. They are just an abbreviation for Our Lord's name, "Jesus," as it was originally written in Greek. Some also interpret these letters as the first letters of the Latin words that mean: Jesus, Savior of mankind. And since the cross is placed over these letters, it can symbolize that He saved them through His death on the Cross.
"Scapulars." The scapular is a large broad piece of cloth worn by the monks and priests of some of the religious orders. It extends from the toes in front to the heels behind, and is wide enough to cover the shoulders. It is worn over the cassock or habit. It is called scapular because it rests on the shoulders. The scapular as we wear it is two small pieces of cloth fastened together by two pieces of braid or cord resting on the shoulders. It is made thus in imitation of the large scapular, and is to be worn under our ordinary garments. The brown scapular is called the Scapular of Mount Carmel. It was given, we are told on good authority, to blessed Simon Stock by the Blessed Virgin herself, with wonderful promises in favor of those who wear it. The Church grants many privileges and indulgences to those who wear the scapular.
"Scapulars." The scapular is a large, wide piece of cloth worn by monks and priests in some religious orders. It extends from the toes in front to the heels in the back and is broad enough to cover the shoulders. It's worn over the cassock or habit. It's called a scapular because it rests on the shoulders. The scapular as we wear it consists of two small pieces of cloth connected by two pieces of braid or cord that sit on the shoulders. It's designed to imitate the larger scapular and is intended to be worn under our everyday clothes. The brown scapular is known as the Scapular of Mount Carmel. It's said, based on reliable sources, that it was given to Blessed Simon Stock by the Blessed Virgin herself, along with amazing promises for those who wear it. The Church offers many privileges and indulgences to those who wear the scapular.
We wear the scapular to indicate that we place ourselves under the special protection of the Blessed Virgin. We can tell to what army or nation a soldier belongs by the uniform he wears; so we can consider the scapular as the particular uniform of those who desire to serve the Blessed Virgin in some special manner. This wearing of the brown scapular is therefore a mark of special devotion to the Blessed Virgin Mary. As it was first introduced among people by the Carmelite Fathers, or priests of the Order of Mount Carmel, this Scapular is called the Scapular of Mount Carmel. We have also a red scapular in honor of Our Lord's Passion; a white one in honor of the Holy Trinity; a blue one in honor of the Immaculate Conception; and a black one in honor of the seven dolors of sorrows of the Blessed Virgin. When all these are joined together (not in one piece, but at the top only) and worn as one, they are called the five scapulars.
We wear the scapular to show that we put ourselves under the special protection of the Blessed Virgin. Just as you can tell which army or nation a soldier belongs to by their uniform, we can think of the scapular as the unique uniform for those who want to serve the Blessed Virgin in a special way. Wearing the brown scapular is therefore a sign of special devotion to the Blessed Virgin Mary. This scapular was first introduced among people by the Carmelite Fathers, or priests of the Order of Mount Carmel, so it’s called the Scapular of Mount Carmel. We also have a red scapular in honor of Our Lord's Passion; a white one for the Holy Trinity; a blue one for the Immaculate Conception; and a black one for the seven sorrows of the Blessed Virgin. When all these are joined together (not as one piece, but at the top only) and worn as one, they are called the five scapulars.
The seven dolors are seven chief occasions of sorrow in the life of our Blessed Lady. They are: (1) The circumcision of Our Lord, when she saw His blood shed for the first time. (2) Her flight into Egypt to save the life of the little Infant Jesus when Herod was seeking to kill Him. (3) The three days she lost Him in Jerusalem. (4) When she saw Christ carrying His Cross. (5) His death. (6) When He was taken down from the Cross. (7) When He was laid in the sepulchre. There are beads called seven dolor beads constructed with seven medals bearing representations of these sorrows, and seven beads between each medal and the next. At the medals we meditate on the dolor, and then in its honor say "Hail Marys" on the beads.
The seven sorrows are the main moments of grief in the life of our Blessed Lady. They are: (1) The circumcision of Our Lord, when she saw His blood shed for the first time. (2) Her flight into Egypt to save the life of the little Infant Jesus when Herod was trying to kill Him. (3) The three days she lost Him in Jerusalem. (4) When she saw Christ carrying His Cross. (5) His death. (6) When He was taken down from the Cross. (7) When He was laid in the tomb. There are beads called seven sorrow beads made with seven medals that depict these sorrows, along with seven beads between each medal. At each medal, we reflect on the sorrow and then say "Hail Marys" on the beads in its honor.
Lesson 28
ON PRAYER
Lesson 28
ON PRAYER
303 Q. Is there any other means of obtaining God's grace than the Sacraments? A. There is another means of obtaining God's grace, and it is prayer.
303 Q. Is there any other way to receive God's grace besides the Sacraments? A. Yes, there is another way to receive God's grace, and that is through prayer.
304 Q. What is prayer? A. Prayer is the lifting up of our minds and hearts to God to adore Him, to thank Him for His benefits, to ask His forgiveness, and to beg of Him all the graces we need whether for soul or body.
304 Q. What is prayer? A. Prayer is when we lift our minds and hearts to God to adore Him, thank Him for His blessings, ask for His forgiveness, and request all the grace we need for our souls or bodies.
"Hearts," because the mere lifting up of the mind would not be prayer. One who blasphemes Him might also lift up his mind. We lift up the mind to know God and the heart to love Him, and in so doing we serve Him—the three things for which we were created. If we do not think of God we do not pray. A parrot might be taught to say the "Our Father," but it could never pray, because it has no mind to lift up. A phonograph can be made to say the prayers, but not to pray, for it has neither mind nor heart. So praying does not depend upon the words we say, but upon the way in which we say them. Indeed the best prayer, called meditation, is made when we do not speak at all, but simply think of God; of His goodness to us; of our sins against Him; of Hell, Purgatory, Heaven, death, judgment, of the end for which we were created, etc. This is the kind of prayer that priests and religious use most frequently. As you might like to meditate—for all who know how may meditate—let me explain to you the method. First you try to remember that you are in the presence of God. Then you take some subject, say the Crucifixion, to think about. You try to make a picture of the scene in your own mind. You see Our Lord on the Cross; two thieves, one on each side of Him, the one praying to Our Lord and the other cursing Him. You see the multitude of His enemies mocking Him. Over at some distance you behold our Blessed Mother standing sorrowful with St. John and Mary Magdalen. Then you ask yourself—for you must imagine yourself there—to which side would you go. Over to our Blessed Mother to try and console her, or over to the enemies to help them to mock? Then you think how sin was the cause of all this suffering, and how often you yourself have sinned; how you have many a time gone over to the crowd and left the Blessed Mother. These thoughts will make you sorry for your sins, and you will form the good resolution never to sin again. You will thank God for these good thoughts and this resolution, and your meditation is ended. You can spend fifteen minutes, or longer if you wish, in such a meditation. The Crucifixion is only one of the many subjects you may select for meditation. You could take any part of the "Our Father," "Hail Mary," or "Creed," and even the questions in your Catechism. Mental prayer, therefore, is the best, because in it we must think; we must pay attention to what we are doing, and lift up our minds and hearts to God; while in vocal prayer—that is, the prayer we say aloud—we may repeat the words from pure habit, without any attention or lifting up of the mind or heart.
"Hearts," because just raising your mind isn’t enough for prayer. Someone who insults Him might also focus their mind. We raise our minds to know God and our hearts to love Him, and in doing so, we serve Him—the three things for which we were created. If we don’t think about God, we aren’t praying. A parrot might be trained to say the "Our Father," but it can never pray because it has no mind to lift. A record player can be made to recite prayers, but it too can’t pray, as it lacks both mind and heart. So, prayer isn’t about the words we say, but about how we say them. In fact, the best prayer, known as meditation, happens when we don’t speak at all but simply think of God; of His goodness towards us; of our sins against Him; of Hell, Purgatory, Heaven, death, judgment, and the purpose for which we were created, etc. This type of prayer is what priests and religious do most often. If you’d like to meditate—since anyone who knows how can meditate—let me explain the process. First, try to remember that you are in the presence of God. Then pick a subject, like the Crucifixion, to focus on. Picture the scene in your mind. Imagine Our Lord on the Cross; two thieves, one on each side of Him—one praying to Our Lord and the other cursing Him. Visualize the crowd of His enemies mocking Him. A little way off, you see our Blessed Mother standing sorrowful with St. John and Mary Magdalen. Then ask yourself—for you need to imagine being there—would you go to our Blessed Mother to comfort her, or to the enemies to join in mocking? Then reflect on how sin caused all this suffering and how often you have sinned; think about the times you’ve sided with the crowd and ignored the Blessed Mother. These reflections will lead you to regret your sins, and you’ll make a firm resolution to not sin again. You’ll thank God for these positive thoughts and this resolution, and your meditation will conclude. You can spend fifteen minutes or longer if you wish in such meditation. The Crucifixion is just one of many topics you can choose for meditation. You could consider any part of the "Our Father," "Hail Mary," or "Creed," or even the questions from your Catechism. Mental prayer is therefore the best because it requires us to think; we must focus on what we’re doing and lift our minds and hearts to God; whereas in vocal prayer—that is, the prayers we say out loud—we might recite the words out of habit, without true focus or lifting our minds or hearts.
305 Q. Is prayer necessary to salvation? A. Prayer is necessary to salvation, and without it no one having the use of reason can be saved.
305 Q. Is prayer necessary for salvation? A. Prayer is necessary for salvation, and without it, nobody who is capable of reasoning can be saved.
We mean here those who never pray during their whole lives, and not those who sometimes neglect their prayers through a kind of forgetfulness.
We’re referring to those who never pray at any point in their lives, not those who occasionally forget to pray.
306 Q. At what particular times should we pray? A. We should pray particularly on Sundays and holy days, every morning and night, in all dangers, temptations, and afflictions.
306 Q. When should we pray? A. We should pray especially on Sundays and holy days, every morning and night, and in times of danger, temptation, and hardship.
"Sundays and holy days," because these are special days set apart by the Church for the worship of God. In the "morning" we ask God's grace that we may not sin during the day. At "night" we thank Him for all the benefits received during the day, and also that we may be protected while asleep from every danger and accident. We should never, if possible, go to sleep in mortal sin; and if we have the misfortune to be in that state, we should make as perfect an act of contrition as we can, and promise to go to confession as soon as possible. So many accidents happen that we are never safe, even in good health; fires, earthquakes, floods, lightning, etc., might take us off at any moment. If you saw a man hanging by a very slender thread over a great precipice where he would surely be dashed to pieces if the thread broke, and if you saw him thus risking his life willfully and without necessity, you would pronounce him the greatest fool in the world. One who commits sin is a greater fool. He suspends himself, as I have told you once before, over an abyss of eternal torments on the slender thread of his own life, that may break at any moment. Do we tempt God and do to Him what we dare not to do to our fellowman because He is so merciful? Let us be careful. He is as just as He is merciful, and some sin will be our last, and then He will cut the thread of life and allow us to fall into an eternity of sufferings. "Dangers," whether of soul or body. "Afflictions," sufferings or misfortunes of any kind; such as loss of health, death in the family, etc.
"Sundays and holy days" are special days set apart by the Church for worshiping God. In the "morning," we ask for God's grace to help us avoid sin throughout the day. At "night," we thank Him for all the blessings we've received and pray for protection during our sleep from any dangers or accidents. We should never go to sleep in a state of mortal sin if we can help it; and if we find ourselves in that situation, we should make the best act of contrition we can and promise to go to confession as soon as possible. Many accidents can occur unexpectedly, and we are never truly safe, even when we are healthy; fires, earthquakes, floods, lightning, etc., can strike at any moment. If you saw a man dangling by a thin thread over a cliff, certain to be crushed if the thread broke, and he was putting his life at risk without necessity, you would call him incredibly foolish. Someone who sins is an even greater fool. He is, as I've said before, hanging over an abyss of eternal torment on the fragile thread of his own life, which could snap at any moment. Do we dare to test God by doing what we would never do to another person simply because He is so merciful? We need to be cautious. He is just as just as He is merciful, and any sin could be our last. At that point, He will sever the thread of life and let us fall into an eternity of suffering. "Dangers," whether to the soul or the body. "Afflictions," referring to suffering or misfortune of any kind, such as losing health or experiencing death in the family, etc.
*307 Q. How should we pray? A. We should pray: first, with attention; second, with a sense of our own helplessness and dependence upon God; third, with a great desire for the graces we beg of God; fourth, with trust in God's goodness; fifth, with perseverance.
*307 Q. How should we pray? A. We should pray: first, with focus; second, recognizing our own helplessness and dependence on God; third, with a strong desire for the blessings we ask from God; fourth, with confidence in God's goodness; fifth, with persistence.
"Attention," thinking of what we are going to do. Before praying we should think for a moment what prayer is. In it we are about to address Almighty God, our Creator, and we are going to ask Him for something—and what is the particular thing we need and seek for? No one would think of going to a store without first considering what he wanted to buy. He would make, too, all the necessary preparations for getting it. He would find out how much he wanted, and what it would cost, and bring with him sufficient money. He would never think of going in and telling the storekeeper to give him anything. Now it is the same in prayer. When we have thought of what we want of God, from whom we can obtain it, and of the reasons why we need it and why God might be pleased to grant it, we can then kneel down and pray for it. We should pray to God just as a child begs favors from its parents. We should talk to Him in our own simple words, and tell Him the reasons why we ask and why we think He should grant our request. We should, however, be humble and patient in all our prayers. God does not owe us anything, and whatever He gives is a free gift. We should not always read prayers at Almighty God. If you wanted anything very badly from a friend, you would know how to ask for it. You would never ask another to write out your request on paper, and then go and read it to your friend. Now, that is just what we do when we read the prayers that somebody else has written in a prayerbook. Try, therefore, to pray with your own prayers. Of course when the Church gives you certain prayers to say—as it does to its priests in the divine office—or recommends to you such prayers as the "Our Father," "Hail Mary," and "Creed," you should say them in preference to your own, because then the Church adds its petition to yours, and God is more likely to grant such prayers. I mean, therefore, that we should not always pray from prayerbooks, and hurry through the "Our Father" that we may give more time to some printed prayer that pleases us. Our prayer should be a conversation with God. We should, after speaking to Him, listen to what He has to say to us, by our conscience, good thoughts, etc.
"Attention," thinking about what we’re going to do. Before we pray, we should pause for a moment to consider what prayer actually is. In it, we are about to address Almighty God, our Creator, and we’re going to ask Him for something—what exactly do we need and seek? No one would think of entering a store without first figuring out what they wanted to buy. They would also make all the necessary preparations to get it. They would find out how much they wanted and what it would cost, and bring enough money with them. They would never just walk in and tell the storeowner to give them anything. It’s the same with prayer. Once we’ve thought about what we want from God, who can provide it, and the reasons why we need it and why God might be inclined to grant it, we can then kneel down and pray for it. We should pray to God just like a child asks their parents for favors. We should speak to Him in our own simple words, explaining our reasons for asking and why we believe He should fulfill our request. However, we should always be humble and patient in our prayers. God doesn’t owe us anything, and whatever He gives is a free gift. We shouldn’t always read prayers to Almighty God. If you really wanted something from a friend, you’d know how to ask for it. You wouldn’t ask someone else to write down your request and then read it to your friend. That’s exactly what we do when we read prayers someone else has written in a prayer book. So, try to pray using your own words. Of course, when the Church provides specific prayers to say—as it does for its priests in the divine office—or recommends prayers like the "Our Father," "Hail Mary," and "Creed," you should say those instead of your own, because then the Church adds its request to yours, and God is more likely to grant such prayers. So, I mean, we shouldn’t always pray from prayer books and rush through the "Our Father" just to make more time for some printed prayer that we like. Our prayer should be a conversation with God. After speaking to Him, we should listen to what He has to say to us through our conscience, good thoughts, and so on.
I must warn you against some prayers that have been circulated by impostors for the purpose of making money. They pretend that these prayers were found in some remarkable place or manner; that those who carry them or say them will have most wonderful advantages—they will never meet with accident; they will be warned of their death; they will go directly to Heaven after death, etc. If there were any such wonderful prayers the Church would surely know of them and commend them to its children. When you find any prayers of the kind I mention, bring them to the priest and ask his opinion before you use them yourself or give them to others. Never buy prayers or articles said to be blessed from persons unknown to you. Persons selling such things are frequently impostors, who by suave manners and pious speeches unfortunately find Catholics who believe them. These persons—sometimes not Catholics themselves, or at least very bad ones—laugh at the superstition and foolish practices of Catholics who believe everything they hear about pious books, prayers, or articles.
I need to warn you about some prayers that have been spread by frauds looking to make money. They claim that these prayers were discovered in some extraordinary way, and that those who carry or say them will gain amazing benefits—they won't have accidents, they'll be warned about their death, they'll go straight to Heaven after they die, and so on. If there were any such incredible prayers, the Church would definitely be aware of them and would recommend them to its members. If you come across any prayers like the ones I mentioned, take them to the priest and ask for his opinion before you use them yourself or share them with others. Never buy prayers or items claimed to be blessed from people you don't know. Those selling such things are often frauds who, with their smooth talk and pious speeches, unfortunately manage to convince some Catholics to believe them. These people—sometimes not even Catholics themselves, or at least very poor ones—laugh at the superstitions and foolish practices of Catholics who believe everything they hear about religious books, prayers, or items.
In the early ages of the Church, when the enemies of Christ found that they could not refute His teaching, they began to circulate foolish doctrines, pretending that they were taught by Christ, and thus they hoped to bring ridicule upon Christianity. So also in our time many things are circulated as the teaching of the Catholic Church by the enemies of the Church, in hopes that by these falsehoods and foolish doctrines they may bring disgrace and ridicule upon the true religion. Be on your guard against all impostors, remembering it is a safe rule never to buy a religious article from or give money to persons going about from door to door. If you have anything to give in alms, give it to some charitable institution or society connected with the Church, or put it in the poor-box, and then you will be sure it will do the good you intend. Remember, too, that all the religious articles carried about for sale do not come from Rome or the Holy Land, and you are deceived if you think so, notwithstanding the assurance of their owners.
In the early days of the Church, when the enemies of Christ realized they couldn't disprove His teachings, they started spreading ridiculous doctrines, claiming they were from Christ, hoping to make Christianity look foolish. Similarly, today, many things are being shared as the teachings of the Catholic Church by its adversaries, aiming to bring shame and mockery upon true religion with these lies and nonsense. Be cautious of all frauds, and remember it's a good rule never to buy religious items from or give money to people who go door to door. If you want to donate, give to a charitable organization or society related to the Church, or drop it in the poor box, so you can be sure it helps those in need. Also, keep in mind that not all religious items being sold come from Rome or the Holy Land, and you’re mistaken if you believe that, no matter what the sellers claim.
"A trust"—with full confidence that God will grant our petitions if we really need or deserve what we pray for. It is a fault with a great many to pray without the belief that their prayers will be answered. We should pray with such faith and confidence that we would really be disappointed if our prayer was not granted. Once when Our Lord was going about doing good, a poor woman who had been suffering for twelve years with a disease, and who, wishing to be healed, had uselessly spent all her money in seeking medical aid, came to follow Him. (Mark 5:25). She did not ask Him to cure her, but said within herself, "If I can but touch the hem of His garment I know I shall be healed." So she made her way through the throng and followed Our Lord till she could touch His garment without being seen. She succeeded in accomplishing her wishes, touched His garment, and was instantly cured. Our Lord knew her desires and what she had done, and turning around told the people, praising her great faith and confidence, on account of which He had healed her. Such also should be our confidence and trust when we pray to God for our needs.
"A trust"—with complete confidence that God will grant our requests if we truly need or deserve what we ask for. Many people make the mistake of praying without believing that their prayers will be answered. We should pray with such faith and confidence that we would genuinely be disappointed if our request was not fulfilled. One time, as Our Lord was going about doing good, a woman who had been suffering for twelve years from a disease, and who had spent all her money seeking medical help, came to follow Him. (Mark 5:25). She did not ask Him for healing but thought to herself, "If I can just touch the hem of His garment, I know I will be healed." So she worked her way through the crowd and followed Our Lord until she could touch His garment without being noticed. She managed to do just that, touched His garment, and was immediately cured. Our Lord recognized her faith and what she had done, and turning around, He praised her great faith and confidence, saying it was because of that faith that she was healed. Our confidence and trust in God should be just as strong when we pray for our needs.
"Perseverance." We should continue to pray though God does not grant our request. Have you ever noticed a little child begging favors from its mother? See its persistence! Though often refused, it will return again and again with the same request, till the mother, weary of its importunity, finally grants what it asks.
"Perseverance." We should keep praying even if God doesn't give us what we ask for. Have you ever watched a little kid pleading with their mom? Just look at their determination! Even when they're turned down, they come back time and again with the same request until the mom, tired of their insistence, finally gives in and agrees to what they're asking for.
St. Monica prayed seventeen years for the conversion of her son St. Augustine. St. Augustine's father was a pagan, and Monica, his wife, prayed seventeen years for his conversion, and he became a Christian. Just about that time her son Augustine, who was attending school, fell in with bad companions and became a great sinner. She prayed seventeen years more for him, and he reformed, became a great saint and learned bishop in the Church. See, then, the result of thirty-four years' prayer: Monica herself became a saint, her son became a saint, and her husband died a Christian. If St. Monica had ceased praying after ten years, Augustine might not have reformed. We never know when God is about to grant our petition, and we may cease to pray just when another appeal would obtain the object of our prayer. So we should continue to pray till God is pleased to grant our request. Some say their prayers are not heard when they mean to say their prayers are not granted; for God always hears us. But why does He not always grant our request? There are many reasons: (1) We may not pray in the proper manner, namely, with attention, reverence, humility, patience, and perseverance; (2) We may ask for things that God foresees will not be for our spiritual good. This is true even for things that seem good to us, such as the removal of an affliction, temptation, or the like. It often happens that God shows us His greatest mercy in not granting our prayers. Suppose, for example, a father held in his hand a bright and beautiful but very sharp instrument, for which his child continually asked. Do you believe the father would give it if he loved the child? Certainly not. The child thinks, no doubt, it would be benefitted by the possession of the instrument, but the father sees the danger. As God is our loving Father, He acts with us in the same manner. (3) Our prayers are not granted sometimes that we may learn to pray with proper dispositions, and God withholds what He intends finally to give, that we may persevere in prayer and have greater merit. Have you ever observed a mother teaching her child to walk? What does she do? She goes at some distance from the child and holds out an object that she knows will be pleasing to it, and thus tempts it to walk to her. When the child draws near she moves still farther away, and keeps it walking for some time before giving the object. This she does, not through unwillingness to give the article, but in order to teach the child to walk, for she loves to see its efforts. When it falls, she lifts it up and makes it try again. So, too, God teaches us to pray; and though He loves us, He withholds His gifts, that we may pray the longer, and thereby afford Him greater pleasure.
St. Monica prayed for seventeen years for her son St. Augustine to convert. Augustine's dad was a pagan, and Monica, his wife, prayed for his conversion, and he became a Christian. Around that same time, her son Augustine, who was in school, fell in with a bad crowd and became a serious sinner. She prayed for another seventeen years for him, and he changed his ways, becoming a great saint and a learned bishop in the Church. Look at the outcome of thirty-four years of prayer: Monica became a saint, her son became a saint, and her husband died a Christian. If St. Monica had stopped praying after ten years, Augustine might not have changed. We never know when God is about to answer our prayers, and we might stop praying just when another request would finally achieve what we desire. So, we should keep praying until God grants our requests. Some people say their prayers are not heard when they mean their prayers are not granted; God always hears us. But why doesn’t He always grant our requests? There are several reasons: (1) We might not pray properly, that is, with focus, respect, humility, patience, and persistence; (2) We might ask for things that God knows will not benefit our spiritual well-being. This applies even to things that seem good to us, like removing a hardship or temptation. Often, God shows us His greatest mercy by not granting our prayers. For example, imagine a father holding a sharp, beautiful tool that his child constantly asks for. Would the father give it to him if he loves him? Absolutely not. The child thinks it would be good to have the tool, but the father sees the danger. Just as a loving father, God acts the same way with us. (3) Sometimes our prayers aren’t granted so we can learn to pray with the right mindset. God withholds what He ultimately wants to give us so that we may persist in prayer and gain greater merit. Have you ever watched a mother teach her child to walk? What does she do? She steps back a bit and holds out something she knows the child will want, encouraging it to walk towards her. When the child gets close, she moves further away, keeping it walking for a while before giving the item. She does this not because she doesn’t want to give the object, but to help the child learn to walk, because she enjoys seeing its efforts. When the child falls, she picks it up and encourages it to try again. In the same way, God teaches us to pray; even though He loves us, He withholds His gifts so that we may pray longer, which gives Him greater joy.
308 Q. Which are the prayers most recommended to us?
A. The prayers most recommended to us are the Lord's Prayer, the Hail
Mary, the Apostles' Creed, the Confiteor, and the Acts of Faith, Hope,
Love, and Contrition.
308 Q. What are the prayers that are most recommended for us?
A. The prayers that are most recommended for us are the Lord's Prayer, the Hail
Mary, the Apostles' Creed, the Confiteor, and the Acts of Faith, Hope,
Love, and Contrition.
309 Q. Are prayers said with distractions of any avail? A. Prayers said with willful distractions are of no avail.
309 Q. Are prayers said with distractions helpful in any way? A. Prayers said with intentional distractions are not helpful.
"Distraction"—that is, when we willingly and knowingly think of something else while saying our prayers. It would be better not to pray than to pray with disrespect. If there is any time at which we cannot pray well, we should postpone our prayer: for God does not require us to say our prayers just at a particular time; but when we do pray, He requires us to pray with reverence and respect. We would pray well always if we reflected on the great privilege we enjoy in being allowed to pray.
"Distraction"—that is, when we deliberately and consciously think of something else while we’re praying. It’s better not to pray at all than to pray without respect. If there's a time when we can’t pray properly, we should wait to pray because God doesn’t demand that we pray at a specific moment; instead, when we do pray, He wants us to do so with reverence and respect. We would always pray well if we remembered the great privilege we have in being able to pray.
Lesson 29
ON THE COMMANDMENTS OF GOD
Lesson 29
ABOUT GOD'S COMMANDMENTS
310 Q. Is it enough to belong to God's Church in order to be saved? A. It is not enough to belong to the Church in order to be saved, but we must also keep the Commandments of God and of the Church.
310 Q. Is it enough to belong to God's Church to be saved? A. It's not enough to just belong to the Church to be saved; we also need to follow the Commandments of God and the Church.
We call some commandments the Commandments of God and others the commandments of the Church. We do so only to distinguish the Commandments that God gave to Moses from those that the Church made afterwards. They are all the commandments of God, for whatever laws or commandments the Church makes, it makes them under the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, and by God's authority. It would be a mortal sin to break the commandments of the Church, just as it would be to break the Commandments of God. You must remember that the Ten Commandments always existed from the time of Adam, but they were not written till God gave them to Moses. You know that it was always a sin to worship false gods, to blaspheme, to disobey parents, to kill, etc.; for you know Cain was punished by God for the murder of his brother Abel (Gen. 5), and that took place while Adam was still alive.
We refer to some rules as the Commandments of God and others as the commandments of the Church. We do this simply to differentiate the Commandments that God gave to Moses from those made by the Church later on. They are all God’s commandments because any laws or commandments established by the Church are done so under the guidance of the Holy Spirit and with God’s authority. Breaking the commandments of the Church would be a serious sin, just like breaking the Commandments of God. Remember that the Ten Commandments have always existed since the time of Adam, but they weren't formally written down until God gave them to Moses. It has always been wrong to worship false gods, blaspheme, disobey parents, kill, and so on; for instance, Cain was punished by God for killing his brother Abel (Gen. 5), which happened while Adam was still alive.
Before the coming of Our Lord the Israelites, or God's chosen people, had three kinds of laws. They had the civil laws for the government of their nation—just as we have our laws for the people of the United States. They had their ceremonial laws for their services in the temple—as we have our ceremonies for the Church. They had their moral laws—such as the Commandments—teaching them what they must do to save their souls. Their civil laws were done away with when they ceased to be a nation having a government of their own. Their ceremonial laws were done away with when Our Lord came and established His Church; because their ceremonies were only the figures of ours. Their moral laws remained, and Our Lord explained them and made them more perfect. Therefore we keep the Commandments and moral laws as they were always kept by man. Fifty days after the Israelites left Egypt they came to the foot of Mount Sinai. (Ex. 19). Here God commanded Moses to come up into the mountain, and in the midst of fire and smoke, thunder and lightning, God spoke to him and delivered into his hands the Ten Commandments written on two tablets of stone.
Before the coming of Our Lord, the Israelites, or God's chosen people, had three types of laws. They had civil laws for governing their nation—just like we have laws for the United States. They had ceremonial laws for their temple services—similar to our ceremonies in the Church. They had moral laws—like the Commandments—teaching them what they needed to do to save their souls. Their civil laws ended when they stopped being a nation with their own government. Their ceremonial laws ended when Our Lord came and established His Church, because their ceremonies were just foreshadows of ours. Their moral laws remained, and Our Lord explained and perfected them. So, we follow the Commandments and moral laws as they have always been followed by humanity. Fifty days after the Israelites left Egypt, they arrived at the foot of Mount Sinai. (Ex. 19). Here, God instructed Moses to come up the mountain, and amidst fire and smoke, thunder and lightning, God spoke to him and gave him the Ten Commandments written on two stone tablets.
Every day while the Israelites were traveling in the desert God sent them manna—a miraculous food that fell every morning. It was white, and looked something like fine rice. It had any taste they wished it to have. For instance, if they wished it to taste like fruit, it did taste so to them; but its usual taste was like that of flour and honey. (Ex. 16).
Every day while the Israelites were journeying through the desert, God provided them with manna—a miraculous food that appeared every morning. It was white and resembled fine rice. It had any flavor they wanted. For example, if they wanted it to taste like fruit, it tasted that way to them; but its regular flavor was like flour and honey. (Ex. 16).
I said there is no difference between the Ten Commandments of God and the six commandments of the Church; and there is no difference as far as the sin of violating them is concerned. But they differ in this: the Church can change the commandments it made itself, while it cannot change those that God Himself gave directly.
I said there’s no difference between God’s Ten Commandments and the six commandments of the Church; and there’s no difference regarding the sin of breaking them. But they do differ in this: the Church can change the commandments it established itself, while it can’t change those that God gave directly.
*311 Q. Which are the Commandments that contain the whole law of God? A. The Commandments which contain the whole law of God are these two: first, thou shalt love the Lord thy God with thy whole heart, with thy whole soul, with thy whole strength, and with thy whole mind; second, thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself.
*311 Q. What are the Commandments that sum up the entire law of God? A. The Commandments that summarize the entire law of God are these two: first, you shall love the Lord your God with all your heart, all your soul, all your strength, and all your mind; second, you shall love your neighbor as yourself.
"As thyself"—that is, as explained elsewhere, with the same kind, though not necessarily with the same degree, of love. First we must love ourselves and do what is essential for our own salvation, because without our cooperation others cannot save us, though they may help us by their prayers and good works. Next to ourselves nature demands that we love those who are related to us in the order of parents, children, husbands, wives, brothers, etc., and help them in proportion to their needs, and before helping strangers who are in no greater distress.
"As yourself"—which means, as explained elsewhere, with the same kind of love, though not necessarily to the same degree. First, we need to love ourselves and do what’s essential for our own well-being because, without our cooperation, others can't save us, even if they support us with their prayers and good deeds. After ourselves, nature requires that we love our family members—parents, children, spouses, siblings, etc.—and help them according to their needs, before assisting strangers who aren't in greater distress.
*312 Q. Why do these two Commandments of the love of God and of our neighbor contain the whole law of God? A. These two Commandments of the love of God and of our neighbor contain the whole law of God because all the other Commandments are given either to help us to keep these two, or to direct us how to shun what is opposed to them.
*312 Q. Why do these two Commandments about loving God and loving our neighbor encompass the entire law of God? A. These two Commandments about loving God and loving our neighbor encompass the entire law of God because all the other Commandments are meant either to help us follow these two or to guide us in avoiding what goes against them.
Of the Ten Commandments the first three refer to Almighty God and the other seven to our neighbor. Thus all the Commandments may be reduced to the two of the love of God and of the love of our neighbor. The First Commandment says you shall worship only the true God; the Second says you shall respect His holy name; and the Third says you shall worship Him on a certain day. All these are contained therefore in this: Love God all you possibly can, for if you do you will keep the first three of the Commandments. The Fourth says: Honor your father—who in the sense of the Commandment can also be called your neighbor—that is, respect him, help him in his needs. The Fifth says do not kill him; namely, your neighbor. The others say do not rob him of his goods; do not tell lies about him; do not wish unjustly to possess his goods and do not covet his wife. Thus it is clear that the last seven are all contained in this: Love your neighbor, for if you do you will keep the last seven Commandments that refer to him.
Of the Ten Commandments, the first three focus on God, while the other seven focus on our neighbors. So, all the Commandments can essentially be summed up as two: love God and love your neighbor. The First Commandment states that you should worship only the true God; the Second Commandment says to respect His holy name; and the Third Commandment tells you to worship Him on a specific day. Therefore, all of these can be summarized as: Love God to the fullest, because if you do, you'll follow the first three Commandments. The Fourth Commandment says to honor your father—who can also be seen as your neighbor in this context—meaning you should respect him and help him when he’s in need. The Fifth Commandment says not to kill him; specifically, your neighbor. The others tell you not to steal from him, not to lie about him, not to unjustly desire his possessions, and not to covet his wife. This makes it clear that the last seven Commandments are all included in this: Love your neighbor, because if you do, you'll keep the last seven Commandments that relate to him.
313 Q. Which are the Commandments of God? A. The Commandments of God are these ten:
313 Q. What are the Commandments of God? A. The Commandments of God are these ten:
1. I am the Lord thy God, Who brought thee out of the land of Egypt,
out of the house of bondage. Thou shalt not have strange gods before
Me. Thou shalt not make to thyself a graven thing, nor the likeness
of any thing that is in Heaven above, or in the earth beneath, nor
of those things that are in the waters under the earth. Thou shalt
not adore them, nor serve them.
2. Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vain.
3. Remember thou keep holy the Sabbath Day.
4. Honor thy father and thy mother.
5. Thou shalt not kill.
6. Thou shalt not commit adultery.
7. Thou shalt not steal.
8. Thou shalt not bear false witness against thy neighbor.
9. Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor's wife.
10. Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor's goods.
1. I am the Lord your God, who brought you out of the land of Egypt,
out of slavery. You shall not have any other gods before
Me. You shall not make for yourself a carved image, or the likeness
of anything that is in Heaven above, or on the earth below, nor
of anything that is in the waters under the earth. You shall
not worship them, or serve them.
2. You shall not take the name of the Lord your God in vain.
3. Remember to keep the Sabbath Day holy.
4. Honor your father and your mother.
5. You shall not kill.
6. You shall not commit adultery.
7. You shall not steal.
8. You shall not bear false witness against your neighbor.
9. You shall not covet your neighbor's wife.
10. You shall not covet your neighbor's goods.
*314 Q. Who gave the Ten Commandments? A. God Himself gave the Ten Commandments to Moses on Mount Sinai, and Christ Our Lord confirmed them.
*314 Q. Who gave the Ten Commandments? A. God Himself gave the Ten Commandments to Moses on Mount Sinai, and Christ Our Lord confirmed them.
Lesson 30
ON THE FIRST COMMANDMENT
Lesson 30 ON THE FIRST COMMANDMENT
315 Q. What is the First Commandment? A. The First Commandment is: "I am the Lord thy God: thou shalt not have strange gods before Me."
315 Q. What is the First Commandment? A. The First Commandment is: "I am the Lord your God: you shall have no other gods before Me."
"Strange gods." The Israelites were surrounded on all sides by pagan nations who worshipped idols and false gods, and sometimes by mingling with these people they fell into sin, and, forgetting the true God, worshipped their idols. Sometimes, too, they were at war with these pagan nations, and when defeated were led captive into pagan countries and there fell into the sin of worshipping false gods. It was against this sin that God cautioned His people in the First Commandment. From this sin of idolatry among the Israelites we have an example of the evil results of associating with persons not of the true religion. One would think that the Israelites, knowing the true God, might have converted their pagan neighbors to the true religion by the influence of their teaching and example; but, on the contrary, they lost the true faith themselves, as nearly always happens in such cases. How do we sometimes worship false or strange gods? By making dress, money, honor, society, company, or pleasure our god—that is, by giving up the worship of God and sinning for their sake, and thus making them god, at least for the time being, by giving them our heart, mind, and service.
"Strange gods." The Israelites were surrounded by pagan nations that worshipped idols and false gods. Sometimes, by mingling with these people, they fell into sin, forgetting the true God and worshipping their idols. At other times, they were at war with these pagan nations, and when they were defeated, they were taken captive to pagan lands and ended up worshipping false gods there. God warned His people about this sin in the First Commandment. From the Israelites' idolatry, we see the negative outcomes of associating with those outside the true faith. One would think that the Israelites, knowing the true God, could have converted their pagan neighbors to the true faith through their teaching and example; instead, they often lost their own faith, which usually happens in such situations. How do we sometimes worship false or strange gods? By prioritizing things like fashion, money, status, social circles, or pleasure over God—that is, by neglecting our worship of God and sinning for their sake, effectively making them our gods, at least temporarily, by devoting our hearts, minds, and services to them.
*316 Q. How does the First Commandment help us to keep the great Commandment of the love of God? A. The First Commandment helps us to keep the great Commandment of the love of God because it commands us to adore God alone.
*316 Q. How does the First Commandment help us to keep the great Commandment of loving God? A. The First Commandment helps us to keep the great Commandment of loving God because it instructs us to worship God alone.
317 Q. How do we adore God? A. We adore God by faith, hope, and charity, by prayer and sacrifice.
317 Q. How do we worship God? A. We worship God through faith, hope, and love, along with prayer and sacrifice.
318 Q. How may the First Commandment be broken? A. The First Commandment may be broken by giving to a creature the honor which belongs to God alone; by false worship; and by attributing to a creature a perfection which belongs to God alone.
318 Q. How can the First Commandment be violated? A. The First Commandment can be violated by giving a creature the honor that belongs only to God; by engaging in false worship; and by assigning a quality or perfection that belongs solely to God to a creature.
"Creature"—that is, anything created; anything but God Himself, for all other persons and things have been created. If one knelt before a king and adored him, he would be giving to a creature the honor due to God alone. "False worship"—that is, worshipping God not as He directs us by His Church, but in some ways pleasing to ourselves. For example, to sacrifice animals to God would now be false worship; to offer now any of the sacrifices commanded in the Old Law would be false worship, because all these were figures of the real sacrifice of the Cross and Mass, and were to put the people in mind that one day Christ the promised Redeemer would offer up the one great sacrifice of His own body and blood to blot out all the sins of the world. And now that we have the real sacrifice it would be sinful to use only figures, and it would be a false worship displeasing to God. So, too, all those who leave the true Church to practice a religion of their own have a false worship, for they worship God not as He wishes, but as they wish.
"Creature"—meaning anything that has been created; everything except God Himself, since all other beings and things are creations. If someone kneels before a king and worships him, they’re giving a creature the honor that belongs to God alone. "False worship"—worshiping God not according to His guidance through His Church, but in ways that satisfy our own preferences. For instance, sacrificing animals to God today would be considered false worship; offering any sacrifices mandated in the Old Law would also be false worship because those were symbols of the real sacrifice of the Cross and Mass, meant to remind people that one day Christ, the promised Redeemer, would offer the ultimate sacrifice of His own body and blood to erase all the sins of the world. Now that we have the actual sacrifice, it would be wrong to rely only on symbols, and it would be a false worship that displeases God. Similarly, anyone who leaves the true Church to create their own religion practices false worship because they are worshiping God not as He desires, but as they desire.
Heaven is a reward, and when we see how the saints labored to secure it we must be ashamed of the little we do for God. Take out of a whole year—that is, 365 days or 8,760 hours—the time you give to the service of God, and you will find it very little. Even the time you spent at Mass and prayers was filled with distraction and little of it entirely given to God. Since this is true for one year, what will it be for all the years of your life? Think of them all and you will perceive that God, who gave you all the time you had, and who on the last day will demand an exact account of it, will find very little of it spent in His honor or in His service. Even the time wasted in school and instructions will all stand against you. Time lost is lost forever, and you can never make it up. Next to grace, time is the most valuable thing God gives us, and we should use it well. "Attributing to a creature a perfection" etc. Persons who go to fortune tellers do this. Fortune tellers are persons who pretend to know what is going to happen in the future. We know from our religion that only God Himself knows the future. Neither the angels nor saints, nor even the Blessed Virgin, know the future. Even they could not tell your fortune unless God revealed it to them. So when you go to a fortune teller you place the poor sinful person who is doing the devil's work above the Blessed Virgin and all the saints and angels, and make that wretch equal to God Himself. Surely this is a sin, even if you do not believe these so-called fortune tellers, but go to them merely through curiosity or with others. Again, we pay these persons for telling us some foolish nonsense, and thus encourage them to continue their sinful business. They doubtless laugh at the foolishness of those who go to them or believe what they say and pay them generously. You might with as much sense stop a man on the street, ask him to tell your fortune, and hand him your money, for he would know as much about it as so-called fortune tellers do. Rarely these sinful people might tell you something that has happened in your life; but if they do, they merely guess at it or are aided by the devil. The devil did not lose his intelligence when driven out of Heaven, and he uses it now for doing evil. He has vast experience, for he is as old as Adam, or older, and has seen and known all the men that have lived in the world. He can move rapidly through the world and easily know what is visibly taking place, so that, strictly speaking, he could make known to his sinful agents what is present or past, but never the future. Thus some fortune tellers, clairvoyants, mindreaders, mediums, or whatever else they call themselves, who are truly in league with the devil, may by his power tell you the past of your life to make you believe that they know also the future. The past and present in your life you already know, and the future they cannot tell; therefore it is useless as well as sinful to go to them. I say only it is possible for some fortune tellers to employ the assistance of the devil, for all of them, with very rare exception, are clever impostors who take your money for guessing at what they suspect you will be most pleased to hear.
Heaven is a reward, and when we see how hard the saints worked to achieve it, we should feel ashamed of how little we do for God. If you take a whole year—that is, 365 days or 8,760 hours—and subtract the time you dedicate to serving God, you’ll realize it’s very little. Even the time you spend at Mass and in prayer is often filled with distractions, and not much of it is fully devoted to God. If this is true for one year, what about all the years of your life? When you think about all of them, you’ll recognize that God, who gave you all the time you have, will expect a detailed account of how you used it on the last day and will find that very little was spent honoring Him or serving Him. Even the time wasted in school and during lessons will count against you. Time that is lost is lost forever, and you can never get it back. Next to grace, time is the most precious gift God gives us, and we should use it wisely. "Attributing to a creature a perfection" etc. People who visit fortune tellers do this. Fortune tellers are individuals who claim to know what will happen in the future. Our faith teaches us that only God knows the future. Neither angels, saints, nor even the Blessed Virgin know what’s to come. They couldn’t predict your future unless God revealed it to them. So when you visit a fortune teller, you’re placing that misguided person, who is engaging in the devil’s work, above the Blessed Virgin and all the saints and angels, making that person equal to God Himself. This is undoubtedly sinful, even if you don’t actually believe what these so-called fortune tellers say, but go to them out of curiosity or alongside others. Furthermore, we pay these individuals to tell us ridiculous things, thus encouraging them to continue their sinful practice. They must laugh at the foolishness of those who visit them or believe what they say and generously pay them. You might as well stop someone on the street, ask them to tell your fortune, and hand them your money, as they would know just as much as the so-called fortune tellers do. Occasionally, these unscrupulous individuals might mention something that has happened in your life, but if they do, it’s either a guess or they’re being assisted by the devil. The devil didn’t lose his cunning when he was cast out of Heaven; he now uses it for evil purposes. He has immense experience, as he is as old as Adam or older, and has seen and known all the people who have lived in the world. He can move quickly through the world and can easily be aware of what is visibly happening, so, in a sense, he can inform his sinful agents about what is present or past, but never the future. Therefore, some fortune tellers, clairvoyants, mind readers, mediums, or whatever they call themselves, who are genuinely in league with the devil, may use his power to reveal your past to make you believe they also know your future. You already know your past and present, and they can’t predict your future; hence, it’s both useless and sinful to consult them. I only suggest that some fortune tellers might use the devil's help; most of them, with very few exceptions, are clever frauds who take your money for guessing what they think you’d like to hear.
*319 Q. Do those who make use of spells and charms, or who believe in dreams, in mediums, spiritists, fortune tellers, and the like, sin against the First Commandment? A. Those who make use of spells and charms, or who believe in dreams, in mediums, spiritists, fortune tellers, and the like, sin against the First Commandment, because they attribute to creatures perfections which belong to God alone.
*319 Q. Do people who use spells and charms, or who believe in dreams, psychics, spiritists, fortune tellers, and similar practices, go against the First Commandment? A. Yes, those who use spells and charms, or who believe in dreams, psychics, spiritists, fortune tellers, and similar practices, go against the First Commandment because they attribute qualities that only belong to God to created beings.
"Spells" are certain words, the saying of which persons believe will effect for them something wonderful—a miraculous cure, for instance, or protection from some evil. "Charms" are articles worn about the body for the same purpose. They may be little black beans, little stones of a certain shape, the teeth of animals, etc. In uncivilized countries the inhabitants use many of these charms. But you may ask, Are not these medals, scapulars, etc., that we wear, also charms? No. These things are blessed and worn in honor of God, of His Blessed Mother, or of the saints. We do not expect any help from the little piece of brass or cloth we wear, but from those in whose honor we wear it, and from the prayers said in the blessing for those who wear it. But they who wear charms expect the help from the thing itself, which makes their conduct foolish and sinful, since God alone can protect from evil. Again, such things as medals, crosses, and scapulars are blessed by the Church and worn by its consent, and it could never allow all its children to do a sinful thing. It is good and praiseworthy, therefore, to wear the blessed sacramentals in God's honor; but even with these holy things we must be careful not to go too far. It is true the Blessed Virgin will protect those who wear her scapular; but it would be sinful willfully to expose ourselves to danger without any necessity, because we wear a scapular. Thus it would be suicide for a boy who could not swim to plunge into deep water because, having his scapulars on, the Blessed Virgin ought to save him by a miracle. Again, it is wrong to look for miracles from God when natural help will answer. Thus it would be wrong for a man who broke his leg to refuse to have the doctors set it, because he wanted God alone to heal it. "Dreams" are caused by the mind being at work while the body is sleeping or at rest. The mind never sleeps; it is always awake and working. Thus when we are asleep the imagination, without the reason to guide it, mixes together a number of things we have seen, heard, or thought of, and gives us strange scenes and pictures. Sometimes what we dream of seems to happen; but that is only because we dream so much that it would be strange if none of the things ever happened. We will generally dream about whatever was on our mind shortly before. We read in the Holy Scriptures that God at times made known His will to certain persons by dreams; as when the king of Egypt dreamt of the great famine that was to come; or when the angel appeared in sleep to St. Joseph, telling him to take Our Lord into Egypt, where Herod the king could not kill him. (Matt. 2).
"Spells" are specific words that people believe will bring about something amazing—like a miraculous cure or protection from evil. "Charms" are objects worn on the body for similar reasons. They could be small black beans, stones of a particular shape, animal teeth, etc. In less developed countries, people use many of these charms. But you might ask, aren't the medals, scapulars, etc., that we wear also charms? No. These items are blessed and worn to honor God, His Blessed Mother, or the saints. We don't expect help from the small piece of metal or fabric we wear, but from those we honor through it and from the prayers said for those who wear it. However, those who wear charms expect help from the objects themselves, which makes their actions foolish and sinful, since God alone can protect us from evil. Additionally, medals, crosses, and scapulars are blessed by the Church and worn with its approval, and it would never permit its members to engage in sinful actions. It's good and commendable, therefore, to wear blessed sacramentals in God's honor; but even with these holy items, we must be cautious not to take things too far. It’s true that the Blessed Virgin will protect those who wear her scapular; however, it would be sinful to intentionally put ourselves in danger unnecessarily just because we’re wearing a scapular. For example, it would be reckless for a boy who can’t swim to jump into deep water thinking that because he has his scapular on, the Blessed Virgin will save him by a miracle. Moreover, it's wrong to seek miracles from God when natural solutions are available. For instance, it would be wrong for a man with a broken leg to refuse medical help because he wants God to heal him alone. "Dreams" occur when the mind is active while the body is asleep or resting. The mind never sleeps; it’s always awake and functioning. So, when we sleep, our imagination, without reason to guide it, combines various things we've seen, heard, or thought about, resulting in strange scenes and images. Sometimes what we dream about seems to come true; however, this is simply because we dream so often that it would be odd if none of our dreams ever happened. Typically, we dream about whatever was on our minds right before sleeping. The Holy Scriptures tell us that God occasionally conveyed His will to certain individuals through dreams, such as when the king of Egypt dreamed about the impending famine or when the angel appeared to St. Joseph in a dream, instructing him to take Our Lord to Egypt so Herod couldn't kill him. (Matt. 2).
The dreams mentioned in the Holy Scripture were more frequently visions than dreams. In a vision the things we see are really present, whereas in dreams they are not, but we imagine they are. God no longer makes use of dreams as a means of communicating with His creatures, because His Church will make known to us His will. He sometimes, however, makes known certain things to His holy servants on earth in a very special and private manner: as, for example, when Our Lord appeared to Saint Margaret Mary and told her He would like to have the devotion to the Sacred Heart established. We must always believe what the Church tells us God has made known to it; but when holy people tell us that God revealed special things to them, we are not obliged to believe what they say, unless the Church confirms it. I say we are not obliged—that is, we may if we please; but we would not be heretics and commit sin if we did not believe all the revelations and wonderful things we find recorded in the lives of saints, though they may all be true.
The dreams mentioned in the Bible were more often visions than actual dreams. In a vision, what we see is really there, while in dreams, it's just our imagination. God no longer uses dreams to communicate with His people because His Church reveals His will to us. However, He sometimes shares special insights with His holy servants on earth, like when Our Lord appeared to Saint Margaret Mary and expressed His desire for the devotion to the Sacred Heart to be established. We should always trust what the Church tells us God has revealed to it; but when holy people claim that God has shared special messages with them, we’re not required to believe them unless the Church confirms it. I mean we're not obligated—that is, we can if we want; but we wouldn't be heretics or sin if we choose not to believe all the revelations and amazing stories we find in the lives of saints, even if they might all be true.
"Mediums and spiritists" are persons who pretend they can talk with the dead in the other world, and learn where they are and what they are doing. They have figures to move and apparently speak, and other contrivances to deceive those who confide in them. Their work is all deception and very sinful. If any of these things could be done, or if God wished them to be known, He would give the power to the Church founded by His divine Son, and not to a few sinful men or women here and there. After a soul leaves the body its fate is hidden from us, and we can say nothing with absolute certainty of its reward or punishment. No one ever came back from the other world to give a minute account of its general appearance or of what takes place there. All that is known about it the Church knows and tells us, and all over and above that is false or doubtful. By thinking a little you can see how all these dealings with fortune tellers, etc., are giving to creatures what belongs to God alone.
"Mediums and spiritists" are people who claim they can communicate with the dead and find out where they are and what they're doing. They use figures that seem to move and talk, along with other tricks to fool those who trust them. Their actions are purely deceptive and very wrong. If any of these things were truly possible, or if God wanted this knowledge to be known, He would grant the ability to the Church established by His divine Son, not to some sinful individuals scattered here and there. Once a soul leaves the body, its destiny is a mystery to us, and we can't say anything with absolute certainty about its reward or punishment. Nobody has ever returned from the afterlife to give a detailed description of what it's like or what happens there. Everything we know about it comes from the Church, and anything beyond that is false or questionable. If you think about it, you can see that engaging with fortune tellers and similar practices is giving what belongs to God alone to mere humans.
320 Q. Are sins against faith, hope, and charity also sins against the
First Commandment?
A. Sins against faith, hope, and charity are also sins against the First
Commandment.
320 Q. Are sins against faith, hope, and charity also sins against the
First Commandment?
A. Sins against faith, hope, and charity are also sins against the First
Commandment.
321 Q. How does a person sin against faith? A. A person sins against faith, first, by not trying to know what God has taught; second, by refusing to believe all that God has taught; third, by neglecting to profess his belief in what God has taught.
321 Q. How does a person sin against faith? A. A person sins against faith, first, by not making an effort to understand what God has taught; second, by choosing not to believe everything that God has taught; third, by failing to openly profess their belief in what God has taught.
"Not trying to know." Thus children who idle their time at Sunday school or religious instruction, and do not learn their Catechism, sin against faith in the first way. In like manner grown persons who do not sometime or other endeavor to hear sermons or instructions, to attend missions or learn from good books, sin against faith. "Refusing to believe," as all those do who leave the true religion, or who, knowing it, do not embrace it. "Neglecting to profess." We may do this by not living up to the practice of our holy religion. We believe, for example, we should hear Mass every Sunday and holy day; we should receive the Sacraments at certain times in the year; but if we only believe these things and do not do them, we neglect to profess our faith, neglect to show others that we really believe all the Church teaches, and are anxious to practice it. Many know and believe what they should do, but never practice it. Such persons do great injury to the Church, for persons who do not live up to their holy religion but act contrary to its teaching give scandal to their neighbor. How many persons at present not Catholics would be induced to enter the true Church if they saw all Catholics virtuous, truthful, sober, honest, upright, and industrious! But when they see Catholics—be they ever so few—cursing, quarrelling, backbiting, drinking, lying, stealing, cheating, etc.—in a word, indulging in the same vices as those who claim to have no religion, what must they think of the moral influence of Catholic faith? Thus they do great injustice to the Church and the cause of religion, and are working against our Blessed Lord when they should be working for Him.
"Not trying to know." This is how children waste their time in Sunday school or religious classes and don’t learn their Catechism, committing a sin against faith in the first way. Similarly, adults who don't make an effort to hear sermons or teachings, attend missions, or learn from good books, also sin against faith. "Refusing to believe," applies to those who abandon true religion, or who, knowing it, choose not to accept it. "Neglecting to profess." We do this by not living according to our holy religion. For instance, we believe we should attend Mass every Sunday and holy day; we should receive the Sacraments at certain times of the year; but if we only believe these things and don’t act on them, we neglect to profess our faith and fail to demonstrate to others that we genuinely believe all that the Church teaches and are eager to practice it. Many people know and believe what they should do but never actually follow through. Such individuals cause great harm to the Church, as those who don’t live according to their holy faith but instead act contrary to its teachings create a scandal for their neighbors. How many people today who are not Catholic would be encouraged to join the true Church if they saw all Catholics being virtuous, honest, upright, and hardworking! Yet when they observe Catholics—no matter how few—cursing, arguing, gossiping, drinking, lying, stealing, cheating, etc.—in short, indulging in the same vices as those who claim to have no religion, what must they think of the moral impact of the Catholic faith? In doing so, they do a great disservice to the Church and the cause of religion, and they are working against our Blessed Lord when they should be working for Him.
The Christian religion spread very rapidly through the world in the first ages of its existence; and one of the chief reasons was the good example given by the Christians; for pagans seeing the holy lives, the kindness and charity of their Christian neighbors, could not help admiring and loving them, and wishing to be members of the Church that made them so good and amiable. How many pagans do you think would be converted nowadays by the lives of some who call themselves Catholics? Not many, I think. Besides this, the early Christians really labored to instruct others in the Christian religion, and to make them converts. Often we find servants—even slaves—by their instructions converting their pagan masters and mistresses. They all felt that they were missionaries working for Jesus Christ, and their influence reached where the priest's influence could not reach, because they came in contact with persons the priests never had an opportunity of seeing. If all Catholics had the same spirit, what good they could do! Their business or duty may often bring them into daily intercourse with persons not of their faith, and who never knew or perhaps heard any of the beautiful truths of our holy religion. Yes, Catholics could do much good if they had only the good will and knew their religion well. I do not mean that they should be always discussing religion with everyone they meet. Let them preach chiefly by the example of their own good lives, and when questioned explain modestly and sincerely the truths they believe.
The Christian religion spread very quickly around the world in its early days, and one of the main reasons was the positive example set by Christians. Pagans, seeing the holy lives, kindness, and charity of their Christian neighbors, couldn’t help but admire and love them, wishing to join the Church that made them so good and likable. How many pagans do you think would be converted today by the lives of some who call themselves Catholics? Not many, I think. Besides this, early Christians genuinely worked to educate others about Christianity and to bring them into the faith. Often, we see servants—even slaves—converting their pagan masters and mistresses through their teachings. They all saw themselves as missionaries for Jesus Christ, and their influence reached places the priests couldn’t, as they interacted with people the priests never got a chance to meet. If all Catholics had the same spirit, imagine the good they could do! Their work or duty often brings them into regular contact with people who don’t share their faith, and who have never heard of the beautiful truths of our holy religion. Yes, Catholics could make a significant impact if they had the willingness and understood their faith well. I don’t mean they should always discuss religion with everyone they encounter. They should primarily preach through the example of their own good lives, and when asked, explain the truths they believe in a modest and sincere way.
If you should be asked, for instance: Why do you not eat flesh-meat on Friday? you should be able to answer: "Because I am a Christian and wish to keep always before my mind how our Blessed Lord suffered for me in His holy flesh on that day; and anyone who claims to be a Christian, ought, I think, to be glad to do what reminds him so regularly and well of Our Lord's Passion." Such an answer if given kindly and mildly would silence and instruct your adversary; it might make him reflect, and might, in time, bring him to the true religion. Sometimes a few words make a great impression and bring about conversion. St. Francis Xavier was a worldly young man, learned and ambitious, and he heard from St. Ignatius these words of Our Lord: "What doth it profit a man if he gain the whole world and suffer the loss of his own soul?" He went home and kept thinking of them till they impressed him so strongly that he gave up the world, became a priest and by his labors and preaching in India, converted to the true religion many thousand pagans. In the lives of the saints there are many examples of a few words, by God's grace, bringing men from a life of sin to a life of great holiness.
If someone asks you, for example: Why don’t you eat meat on Friday? you should be able to reply: "Because I’m a Christian, and I want to remember how our Blessed Lord suffered for me in His holy flesh on that day; and anyone who calls themselves a Christian should, I believe, be happy to do something that reminds them so regularly of Our Lord's Passion." A kind and gentle response like that would silence and educate your opponent; it might make them think and could eventually lead them to the true faith. Sometimes just a few words can have a huge impact and inspire a change of heart. St. Francis Xavier was once a worldly young man, intelligent and ambitious, but after hearing St. Ignatius quote Our Lord: "What does it profit a man if he gains the whole world and loses his own soul?" he couldn’t stop thinking about it. The words struck him so deeply that he left the world behind, became a priest, and through his efforts and preaching in India, he converted many thousands of pagans to the true faith. In the lives of the saints, there are numerous examples of just a few words, through God's grace, leading people from a life of sin to one of great holiness.
*322 Q. How do we fail to try to know what God has taught? A. We fail to try to know what God has taught by neglecting to learn the Christian doctrine.
*322 Q. How do we fail to try to know what God has taught? A. We fail to try to know what God has taught by neglecting to learn the Christian doctrine.
*323 Q. Who are they who do not believe all that God has taught? A. They who do not believe all that God has taught are the heretics and infidels.
*323 Q. Who are the ones that don’t believe everything that God has taught? A. Those who don’t believe everything that God has taught are the heretics and nonbelievers.
There are many kinds of unbelievers: atheists, deists, infidels, heretics, apostates, and schismatics. An atheist is one who denies the existence of God, saying there is no God. A deist is one who says he believes God exists, but denies that God ever revealed any religion. These are also called freethinkers. An infidel properly means one who has never been baptized—one who is not of the number of the faithful; that is, those believing in Christ. Sometimes atheists are called infidels. Heretics are those who were baptized and who claim to be Christians, but do not believe all the truths that Our Lord has taught. They accept only a portion of the doctrine of Christ and reject the remainder, and hence they become rebellious children of the Church. They belong to the true Church by being baptized, but do not submit to its teaching and are therefore outcast children, disinherited till they return to the true faith. A schismatic is one who believes everything the Church teaches, but will not submit to the authority of its head—the Holy Father. Such persons do not long remain only schismatics; for once they rise up against the authority of the Church, they soon reject some of its doctrines and thus become heretics; and indeed, since Vatican Council I, all schismatics are heretics.
There are many types of nonbelievers: atheists, deists, infidels, heretics, apostates, and schismatics. An atheist is someone who denies the existence of God, claiming there is no God. A deist believes that God exists but denies that God has revealed any religion. These individuals are also referred to as freethinkers. An infidel traditionally means someone who has never been baptized—someone who is not among the faithful, meaning those who believe in Christ. Sometimes, atheists are called infidels. Heretics are those who have been baptized and claim to be Christians, but do not accept all the truths that Our Lord has taught. They accept only part of Christ's doctrine and reject the rest, making them rebellious children of the Church. They belong to the true Church through baptism, but do not adhere to its teachings and are therefore considered outcast, disinherited until they return to the true faith. A schismatic is someone who agrees with everything the Church teaches but refuses to accept the authority of its head—the Holy Father. Such individuals don’t stay merely schismatics for long; once they oppose the Church’s authority, they soon begin to reject some of its doctrines and become heretics. In fact, since Vatican Council I, all schismatics are considered heretics.
*324 Q. Who are they who neglect to profess their belief in what God has taught? A. They who neglect to profess their belief in what God has taught are all those who fail to acknowledge the true Church in which they really believe.
*324 Q. Who are the people who ignore expressing their belief in what God has taught? A. The people who ignore expressing their belief in what God has taught are those who do not recognize the true Church in which they genuinely believe.
There are some outside the Church who feel and believe that the Catholic Church is the true Church, and yet they do not become Catholics, because there are so many difficulties in the way. For example, they have been brought up in another religion, and all their friends, relatives, or associates are opposed to the Catholic religion. Their business, their social life, their worldly interests will all suffer if they become Catholics. So, although they feel they should at once embrace the true religion, they keep putting off till death comes and finds them outside the Church—and most probably guilty of other mortal sins. Such persons cannot be saved, for they reject all the graces God bestows upon them. A very common fault with such people is to excuse this conduct by saying: Oh! I was brought up in the Protestant religion, and everyone ought to live in the religion in which he was brought up. Let me ask: If persons were brought up with some bodily deformity that their parents neglected to have remedied while they were young, would they not use every means themselves to have the deformity removed as soon as they became old enough to see and understand their misfortune? In like manner, if unfortunately parents bring up their children in a false religion—that is, with spiritual deformities, it is the duty of the children to embrace the true religion as soon as they know it. Again persons will say: Oh, I believe one religion as good as another; we are all Christians, and all trying to serve God. If one religion is as good as another, why did not Our Lord allow the old religions—false or true—to remain? If one man says a thing is black and another says it is white, they cannot both be right, for a thing cannot be black and white at the same time. Only one can be right; and, if we are anxious about the color of the object, we must try to find which one is right. Just in the same way all the religions that claim to be Christian contradict one another; one says a thing is false and another says it is true: one says Our Lord taught so and so and another says He did not. Now since it is very important for us to know which is right, we must find out which is really the Church Our Lord established; and when we have found it we will know that all the other pretended Christian religions must be false. Our Lord has given us marks by which we can know His Church, as we saw while speaking of the marks of the Church; and the Roman Catholic Church is the only Church that has all these marks. We say that we are Roman Catholics to show that we are in communion with the Church of Rome, established by St. Peter, the chief of the Apostles.
There are people outside the Church who believe that the Catholic Church is the true Church, yet they hesitate to become Catholics because they face many obstacles. For instance, they were raised in another religion, and all their friends, family, or colleagues are against the Catholic faith. Their work, social life, and other interests could suffer if they convert. So, even though they feel they should embrace the true religion immediately, they keep delaying until death finds them outside the Church—likely guilty of other serious sins. Such individuals cannot be saved because they reject the graces God gives them. A common excuse they use is, "Oh! I was raised in the Protestant religion, and everyone should stay in the faith they were brought up in." But let me ask: If someone grew up with a physical disability that their parents neglected to address when they were young, wouldn’t they do everything possible to correct it once they were old enough to understand their situation? Similarly, if parents raise their children in a false religion—essentially with spiritual disabilities—it is the children’s responsibility to embrace the true religion as soon as they recognize it. People also say, "Oh, I think one religion is just as good as another; we’re all Christians, and we’re all trying to serve God." If one religion is as good as another, then why didn’t Our Lord allow the old religions—whether false or true—to continue? If one person claims something is black while another says it’s white, they can’t both be right because something can't be both black and white at the same time. Only one can be correct; and if we care about knowing the truth, we have to figure out which one it is. Similarly, all the religions that claim to be Christian contradict each other; one asserts something is false while another claims it’s true: one says Our Lord taught this, and another argues He did not. Since it’s crucial for us to know which is right, we must identify which is truly the Church Our Lord established; and once we find it, we will understand that all other claimed Christian religions must be false. Our Lord gave us signs to recognize His Church, as we discussed regarding the marks of the Church, and the Roman Catholic Church is the only one that possesses all these signs. We identify as Roman Catholics to indicate that we are in communion with the Church of Rome, established by St. Peter, the head of the Apostles.
*325 Q. Can they who fail to profess their faith in the true Church in which they believe expect to be saved while in that state? A. They who fail to profess their faith in the true Church in which they believe cannot expect to be saved while in that state, for Christ has said: "Whoever shall deny Me before men, I will also deny him before My Father who is in Heaven."
*325 Q. Can those who don't openly declare their faith in the true Church they believe in expect to be saved while in that condition? A. Those who don't profess their faith in the true Church they believe in cannot expect to be saved while in that condition, for Christ said: "Whoever denies Me before others, I will also deny him before My Father who is in Heaven."
326 Q. Are we obliged to make open profession of our faith? A. We are obliged to make open profession of our faith as often as God's honor, our neighbor's spiritual good, or our own requires it. "Whosoever," says Christ, "shall confess Me before men, I will also confess him before My Father who is in Heaven."
326 Q. Are we required to openly express our faith? A. We are required to openly express our faith whenever it serves God's honor, benefits our neighbor's spiritual well-being, or is necessary for ourselves. "Whoever," says Christ, "acknowledges Me before others, I will also acknowledge them before My Father in Heaven."
It is not necessary for us to proclaim in the streets that we are Catholics; neither need we tell our religion to impudent people that may ask us only to insult us; but when a real need of professing our faith presents itself, then we must profess it. Suppose you are stopping in a hotel in which you are the only Catholic. If flesh-meat is placed before you on a Friday in Lent you must quietly push it aside and ask for fish or other food; although by so doing you will show that you are a Catholic and make a silent profession of your faith. God's honor and your own good require it, for you must keep the laws of God and of His Church on every possible occasion. Suppose again there were in the same hotel some indifferent Catholics, socially your equals or inferiors, who through human respect were ashamed to go to Mass on Sunday; then you should publicly go to Mass and even declare that you must go, for by so doing you would encourage these indifferent Catholics to follow your example. In that case your neighbor's good requires that you profess your faith. In a word, you must keep up the practice of your religion even if by so doing you have to make an open profession of your faith and suffer for it. But suppose it is something that God or the Church does not command you to do but only recommends, such as blessing yourself before meals or some pious practice, you could in public omit such an action if you pleased without any sin or denial of faith, because you violate no law.
It's not necessary for us to shout from the rooftops that we are Catholics; we don't need to share our beliefs with rude people who might just want to insult us. However, when there's a real need to express our faith, we should do so. Imagine you're staying at a hotel where you're the only Catholic. If they serve you meat on a Friday during Lent, you should politely push it aside and ask for fish or something else instead; by doing this, you'll quietly show that you're a Catholic and make a discreet statement of your faith. It's important for God's honor and your own well-being to follow God's laws and those of His Church whenever possible. Now, imagine there are some indifferent Catholics in the same hotel, people who are socially equal to you or lower, who are too embarrassed to attend Mass on Sunday. In that case, you should openly go to Mass and even announce that you must go, as this would encourage those indifferent Catholics to follow your lead. In this situation, your neighbor's well-being depends on you professing your faith. In short, you need to maintain your religious practices, even if it means openly stating your beliefs and facing any consequences for it. However, if it’s something that God or the Church only recommends, like blessing yourself before meals or doing a pious act, you can choose to skip it in public without it being a sin or a denial of faith, since you're not breaking any laws.
327 Q. Which are the sins against hope? A. The sins against hope are presumption and despair.
327 Q. What are the sins against hope? A. The sins against hope are taking things for granted and losing all hope.
328 Q. What is presumption? A. Presumption is a rash expectation of salvation without making proper use of the necessary means to obtain it.
328 Q. What is presumption? A. Presumption is a reckless hope for salvation without properly using the necessary means to achieve it.
A person who goes on leading a bad life, and says when warned of his danger that he is in no hurry to reform, that he will repent some day before he dies, is always living in and committing the sin of presumption. It is a great sin, for it is living in open defiance of Almighty God. Such persons are very seldom given the opportunity to repent at the last moment, and are, in most cases, called to judgment when they least expect it. We are all presumptuous sometimes. Do we not often, when we have fallen into a certain sin, easily repeat the act, saying to ourselves, now that we will have to confess the sin committed, the mention of the number of times will not make such difference for it will not increase our shame and confusion? This is presumption; for we do not know whether God will ever give us the opportunity of making a confession. Again, one mortal sin is sufficient to keep our souls in Hell for all eternity; what then will be our punishment for many mortal sins? Then there is another thing you should remember: God has fixed a certain number of sins that He will suffer you to commit before He sends His punishment. You do not know which sin will complete the number and be the last. The very sin you are now about to commit may be that one, and the moment you have committed it, God will call you to judgment, whether it be night or day, whether you are at home or in the streets—though perhaps not immediately, but before you commit another sin. Such a thought alone should keep you from sinning. Moreover, after confession you strongly resist the first temptation to mortal sin, but after you have yielded to the first you scarcely make any more resistance, but easily yield again and again. You should therefore, to prevent this, go to confession just as soon as you possibly can after falling into mortal sin. It is bad enough to commit mortal sin, but it is terrible to be living in that state day and night—always an enemy of God—losing the merit of all the works you do and yet you must stay in that state of sin till you go to confession and receive absolution. Peter the Apostle committed the sin of presumption. (Matt. 26). Our Lord told him to watch and pray for he would be tempted and yield that night, but Peter said: "No Lord, I will never deny Thee." Instead of begging Our Lord's help and grace, he trusted to himself and fell miserably into sin. He went into dangerous company and that was another cause of his fall. But afterwards he saw his sin and folly and never ceased to repent of it.
A person who keeps living a bad life and, when warned about the danger, claims they’re not in a rush to change and will eventually repent before they die is always committing the sin of presumption. It's a serious sin because it openly defies Almighty God. People like this are rarely given a last-minute chance to repent, and most of the time, they face judgment when they least expect it. We all act presumptuously at times. Don’t we often, when we fall into a certain sin, repeat the behavior, telling ourselves that since we’ll have to confess, the number of times doesn’t really matter because it won't add to our shame or confusion? That’s presumption; we have no idea if God will ever give us the chance to confess. Also, one mortal sin is enough to damn our souls to Hell for eternity; just imagine the punishment for many mortal sins. Additionally, remember that God has set a limit on the number of sins He will allow you to commit before sending punishment. You don’t know which sin will push you over the edge and be the last one. The sin you’re about to commit could be that one, and once you do it, God might call you to judgment, whether it’s day or night, whether you’re at home or out in public—possibly not right away but before you commit another sin. Just thinking about that should be enough to keep you from sinning. Moreover, after confession, you may strongly resist the first temptation to commit a mortal sin, but once you give in, you hardly resist anymore and easily fall into the same sin again and again. To avoid this, you should go to confession as soon as possible after committing a mortal sin. It’s bad enough to commit a mortal sin, but it’s awful to live in that state all the time—always in opposition to God—losing the merit of all your good works, and you have to stay in that state of sin until you go to confession and receive absolution. Peter the Apostle committed the sin of presumption. (Matt. 26). Our Lord told him to watch and pray because he would be tempted and might fall that night, but Peter insisted: "No Lord, I will never deny You." Instead of seeking Our Lord's help and grace, he relied on himself and fell miserably into sin. He associated with dangerous company, which contributed to his downfall. But eventually, he recognized his sin and foolishness and never stopped repenting for it.
329 Q. What is despair? A. Despair is the loss of hope in God's mercy.
329 Q. What is despair? A. Despair is losing hope in God's mercy.
Despair is a sin because by it you deny that God is infinitely merciful—that He is merciful enough to forgive even your many and great sins if you are truly sorry for them. Judas committed the sin of despair. After he had betrayed Our Lord, he went and hanged himself, thus committing, besides the sin of betraying his divine Master, two other great sins; namely, despair in God's mercy and suicide. If he had gone to Our Lord and confessed his sin, and implored pardon and promised penance, can we doubt that He would have forgiven even Judas, as He forgave Peter, and those that crucified Him, praying that His Father might not punish them for their sins? Therefore, no matter what sins you have committed, never lose confidence in God's mercy. See how Our Lord pardoned the thief on the cross and Mary Magdalen and other sinners. Be sorry for your sins, and God will hear your prayers. Call upon the Blessed Virgin, your patron saint, and guardian angel to help you, and ask others, especially good persons, to pray for you.
Despair is a sin because it implies that you deny God's infinite mercy—that He’s merciful enough to forgive even your many and serious sins if you genuinely regret them. Judas fell into the sin of despair. After he betrayed Our Lord, he went and hanged himself, thereby committing, along with the betrayal of his divine Master, two other serious sins: despair in God's mercy and suicide. If he had gone to Our Lord to confess his sin, begged for forgiveness, and promised to make amends, can we doubt that He would have forgiven even Judas, just as He forgave Peter and those who crucified Him, praying that His Father wouldn’t punish them for their sins? So, no matter what sins you’ve committed, never lose faith in God’s mercy. Look how Our Lord forgave the thief on the cross, Mary Magdalene, and other sinners. Be genuinely sorry for your sins, and God will hear your prayers. Call upon the Blessed Virgin, your patron saint, and guardian angel for help, and ask others, especially good people, to pray for you.
*330 Q. How do we sin against the love of God? A. We sin against the love of God by all sin, but particularly by mortal sin.
*330 Q. How do we go against the love of God? A. We go against the love of God by any sin, but especially by serious sin.
Lesson 31
THE FIRST COMMANDMENT—ON THE HONOR AND INVOCATION OF SAINTS
Lesson 31
THE FIRST COMMANDMENT—ON THE HONOR AND INVOCATION OF SAINTS
331 Q. Does the First Commandment forbid the honoring of the saints? A. The First Commandment does not forbid the honoring of the saints, but rather approves of it; because by honoring the saints, who are the chosen friends of God, we honor God Himself.
331 Q. Does the First Commandment prohibit honoring the saints? A. The First Commandment does not prohibit honoring the saints; instead, it supports it. By honoring the saints, who are God's chosen friends, we are honoring God Himself.
Think of the many helps God gives us to save our souls: an angel to be always with us upon earth; a saint always praying for us in Heaven, and besides these all the graces, the Sacraments, the Masses, the prayers, etc. If then we lose our soul, surely we cannot say, God did not give us sufficient help. "Invocation" means calling upon them to help us. Everyone is pleased when his friends are honored. Who is not glad to hear his parents praised or see them respected? By praying to the saints, instead of dishonoring God—as Protestants say we do—we really honor Him more than by praying directly to Himself We show that we believe in His great dignity, His awful majesty and our own nothingness. If a poor person wanted to obtain a favor from the President of the United States, would he go directly to the President himself? No. He would find someone who had influence with the President, and ask him to obtain the favor. Why, the very persons that say we should not use the influence of saints do themselves use the influence of others to obtain favors. They never go to an enemy of the one from whom they desire the favor, but to some of his friends, knowing that a person will often grant a favor for a friend's sake that he would not grant for the sake of others. Now we do exactly the same when we pray to the saints. They are the special friends of God. They fasted, prayed, preached, labored, or suffered death for His honor and glory. He showed them great favors while they were upon earth. He performed miracles at their request. Will He deny them now, when they are always present with Him in Heaven—where they could not possibly sin? He loves to grant them favors; and, as they do not need any for themselves, He grants them for others through their intercession. Again men are honored by the praises of their fellowman. A great general is honored by having all his countrymen praise him; so, too, God wants His saints honored, for their great spiritual deeds, by the praise of the children of the Church. God is not annoyed by being asked for favors. Nothing can trouble Him, for all is done by an act of His will. He loses nothing by giving, for He is infinite. By praying to the saints for help we confess that we are too unworthy to present ourselves to God and address Him—to come before His awful Majesty, and that we will wait here in the humble attitude of prayer while you, holy saints, His dearest friends, go into His presence and ask for us the favors and graces we require.
Think about all the ways God helps us save our souls: an angel is always with us on earth; a saint is always praying for us in Heaven; and on top of that, we have all the graces, Sacraments, Masses, prayers, and more. If we end up losing our souls, we certainly can't say that God didn't give us enough help. "Invocation" means calling on them to assist us. Everyone feels good when their friends are recognized. Who isn't happy to hear their parents praised or to see them respected? By praying to the saints, instead of dishonoring God—as some Protestants claim—we actually honor Him more than if we just prayed directly to Him. We demonstrate that we believe in His immense dignity, His terrifying majesty, and our own insignificance. If someone who's poor wanted to get a favor from the President of the United States, would they go directly to the President? No. They'd find someone who has influence with the President and ask that person to help them out. Interestingly, those who say we shouldn’t rely on the saints’ influence do the same thing—they seek out others to help them get favors. They wouldn't reach out to someone who opposes the person they want favor from but would go to a friend, knowing that a person is more likely to grant a favor for a friend’s request. We do exactly this when we pray to the saints. They are God's special friends. They fasted, prayed, preached, worked hard, or even died for His honor and glory. God showed them great kindness while they were on earth. He performed miracles at their request. Would He deny them now that they are always in His presence in Heaven—where they can’t possibly sin? He loves granting them favors; since they don't need anything for themselves, He gives them graces for others through their intercession. Furthermore, people appreciate being honored by the praise of others. A great general feels honored when his fellow countrymen recognize him; similarly, God wants His saints to be honored for their remarkable spiritual achievements by the praise of the children of the Church. God isn't bothered by being asked for favors. Nothing can upset Him since everything happens by His will. He loses nothing by giving since He is infinite. By praying to the saints for help, we admit that we’re unworthy to approach God and address Him—to stand before His overwhelming Majesty—and that we will remain here in a humble posture of prayer while you, holy saints, His closest friends, go into His presence and request for us the favors and graces we need.
332 Q. Does the First Commandment forbid us to pray to the saints? A. The First Commandment does not forbid us to pray to the saints.
332 Q. Does the First Commandment stop us from praying to the saints? A. The First Commandment does not stop us from praying to the saints.
We do not pray to them as to God. We never say to them, "Give us this or that," but always, "Obtain it for us." In all the litanies you cannot find one petition where we say, even to the Blessed Virgin: "Have mercy on us," but, "Pray for us," or, "Intercede for us."
We don’t pray to them like we do to God. We never say, “Give us this or that,” but always, “Obtain it for us.” In all the litanies, you won’t find a single petition where we say, even to the Blessed Virgin: “Have mercy on us,” but rather, “Pray for us,” or, “Intercede for us.”
333 Q. What do we mean by praying to the saints? A. By praying to the saints we mean the asking of their help and prayers.
333 Q. What do we mean by praying to the saints? A. By praying to the saints, we mean asking for their help and prayers.
*334 Q. How do we know that the saints hear us? A. We know that the saints hear us, because they are with God, who makes our prayers known to them.
*334 Q. How do we know that the saints hear us? A. We know that the saints hear us because they are with God, who lets them know our prayers.
*335 Q. Why do we believe that the saints will help us? A. We believe that the saints will help us because both they and we are members of the same Church, and they love us as their brethren.
*335 Q. Why do we believe that the saints will help us? A. We believe that the saints will help us because they are part of the same Church as we are, and they care for us like family.
*336 Q. How are the saints and we members of the same Church? A. The saints and we are members of the same Church, because the Church in Heaven and the Church on earth are one and the same Church, and all its members are in communion with one another.
*336 Q. How are the saints and we members of the same Church? A. The saints and we are members of the same Church because the Church in Heaven and the Church on Earth are one and the same Church, and all its members are connected with each other.
*337 Q. What is the communion of the members of the Church called? A. The communion of the members of the Church is called the communion of saints.
*337 Q. What do we call the community of the members of the Church? A. The community of the members of the Church is called the communion of saints.
*338 Q. What does the communion of saints mean? A. The communion of saints means the union which exists between the members of the Church on earth with one another and with the blessed in Heaven and with the suffering souls in Purgatory.
*338 Q. What does the communion of saints mean? A. The communion of saints means the connection that exists between the members of the Church on earth, each other, the blessed in Heaven, and the souls in Purgatory who are suffering.
*339 Q. What benefits are derived from the communion of saints? A. The following benefits are derived from the communion of saints: the faithful on earth assist one another by their prayers and good works, and they are aided by the intercession of the saints in Heaven, while both the saints in Heaven and the faithful on earth help the souls in Purgatory.
*339 Q. What benefits come from the communion of saints? A. The following benefits come from the communion of saints: the faithful on earth support each other through their prayers and good deeds, and they receive help from the intercession of the saints in Heaven, while both the saints in Heaven and the faithful on earth assist the souls in Purgatory.
340 Q. Does the First Commandment forbid us to honor relics? A. The First Commandment does not forbid us to honor relics, because relics are the bodies of the saints or objects directly connected with them or with Our Lord.
340 Q. Does the First Commandment prohibit us from honoring relics? A. The First Commandment does not prohibit us from honoring relics, because relics are the bodies of the saints or objects directly associated with them or with Our Lord.
"Relic" means a thing left. Relics are pieces of the body—bones, etc. Pieces of saints' clothing, writing, etc., are also called relics. Pieces of the True Cross, the nails that pierced Christ's hands, etc., are relics of Our Lord's Passion. We have no relic of Our Lord's Body because He took it into Heaven with Him when He ascended. All relics of the saints must be examined at Rome, by those whom the Holy Father has appointed for that work. They must be marked and accompanied by the testimony of the Cardinals, or others who examined them, to show that they are true relics. It would be superstitious to use anything as a relic unless we were sure of its being genuine.
"Relic" refers to an object that remains. Relics are parts of the body—bones, etc. Pieces of saints' clothing, writings, etc., are also called relics. Fragments of the True Cross, the nails that pierced Christ's hands, etc., are relics of Our Lord's Passion. We don’t have any relic of Our Lord's Body because He took it to Heaven with Him when He ascended. All relics of the saints must be examined in Rome by those appointed by the Holy Father for that purpose. They must be labeled and accompanied by testimony from the Cardinals or others who examined them to prove they are genuine relics. It would be superstitious to use anything as a relic unless we are sure it is authentic.
341 Q. Does the First Commandment forbid the making of images? A. The First Commandment does forbid the making of images if they are made to be adored as gods, but it does not forbid the making of them to put us in mind of Jesus Christ, His Blessed Mother, and the saints.
341 Q. Does the First Commandment prohibit making images? A. The First Commandment does prohibit making images if they are intended to be worshiped as gods, but it does not prohibit making them to remind us of Jesus Christ, His Blessed Mother, and the saints.
Protestants and others say that Catholics break the First Commandment by having images in their churches, because the First Commandment says: "Thou shalt not make graven images or the likeness of anything upon the earth," etc. Now, if that is exactly what the Commandment means, then they break it also, because they make the images of generals, statesmen, writers, etc., and place them in their parks. They also take photographs of their relatives and friends and hang them on the walls of their homes. They do this, they say, and we believe them, to show their respect and veneration for the persons represented, and not to worship their images. Now we do no more. We simply place in our churches the images of saints to show our respect and veneration for the persons they represent, and not to worship the images themselves. So if we break the First Commandment, they who make any picture or statue break it also. Can our accusers not see that they and every citizen do the very thing for which they reproach us? On Decoration Day they place flowers around the statue of Washington and other great men. Does anyone believe that they are trying to honor the piece of metal or stone, or that the metal or stone statue knows that it is being honored? Certainly not. They do so to honor Washington or whomsoever the statue represents; and for the same reason Catholics place flowers and lights around the statues and images of saints. Every child knows that the wood in the statue might as well have been a pillar in the Church, and that its selection for a statue was merely accidental, and hence he knows that the statue cannot hear or see him, and so he prays not to the statue but to the person it represents. Again if you can offer a person insult by dishonoring his image, may we not honor him by treating it with respect? What greater insult, for instance, could be offered to your deceased father and yourself than to burn him in effigy, or contemptuously trample his picture under foot in your presence? Thus they who treat the images of Christ or His saints with disrespect dishonor Christ and His saints.
Protestants and others argue that Catholics violate the First Commandment by having images in their churches, because the Commandment states: "You shall not make graven images or the likeness of anything on earth," etc. If that's exactly what the Commandment means, then they break it too, as they create images of generals, statesmen, writers, etc., and display them in their parks. They also take photographs of their relatives and friends and hang them on the walls of their homes. They do this, they say, and we believe them, to show their respect and admiration for the people represented, not to worship their images. We do exactly the same. We place images of saints in our churches to show our respect and admiration for the individuals they represent, not to worship the images themselves. So if we break the First Commandment, then those who create any picture or statue do too. Can our critics not see that they and every citizen are doing the very thing for which they criticize us? On Decoration Day, they put flowers around the statue of Washington and other great figures. Does anyone truly believe they are honoring the piece of metal or stone, or that the metal or stone statue is aware of the honor? Certainly not. They do it to honor Washington or whoever the statue represents; and for the same reason, Catholics place flowers and lights around the statues and images of saints. Every child knows that the wood in the statue could just as easily be a pillar in the Church, and that its being chosen for a statue was purely coincidental, so he understands that the statue cannot hear or see him, and therefore, he prays not to the statue but to the person it represents. Moreover, if you can insult a person by disrespecting their image, can we not honor them by treating it with respect? What greater insult, for example, could be given to your deceased father and to you than to burn him in effigy or contemptuously trample his picture in your presence? Thus, those who show disrespect to the images of Christ or His saints dishonor Christ and His saints.
Again we may learn our religion by our sight as well as by our hearing, and may be led by these visible objects to a knowledge of the invisible things they represent. Let us take an example. A poor ignorant man enters a Catholic church, and sees hanging there a picture of St. Vincent de Paul. He can learn the life of the saint from that picture almost as well as if he read it in a book. He sees the saint dressed in a cassock, and that tells him St. Vincent was a priest. He sees him surrounded by little ragged children and holding some of them in his arms; that tells him the saint took care of poor children and orphans, and founded homes and asylums for them. He sees on the saint's table a human skull, and that tells him St. Vincent frequently meditated upon death and what follows it. He sees beside the skull a little lash or whip, and that tells him the saint was a man who practiced penance and mortification. Thus you have another reason why the true Church is very properly called Catholic; because its teaching suits all classes of persons. The ignorant can know what it teaches as well as the learned; for if they cannot read they can listen to its priests, watch its ceremonies, and study its pictures, by all of which it teaches. The Protestant religion, on the contrary, is not adapted to the needs of every class, for it teaches that all must find their doctrines in the Bible, and understand them according to their lights, giving their own interpretation to the passages of the sacred text; and thus we come to have a variety of Protestant denominations, all claiming the Bible for their guide, though following different paths. If every Protestant has the right to take his own meaning out of the Holy Scripture, what right have Protestant ministers to preach the meaning they have found, and compel others to accept it? The Bible alone is not sufficient. It must be explained by the Church that teaches us also the traditions that have come down to us from the Apostles. If the Bible alone were the rule of our faith, what would become of all those who could not read the Bible? What would become of those who lived before the Apostles wrote the New Testament? for they did not write in the first years of their ministry, neither did they commit to writing all the truths they taught, because Our Lord did not command them to write, but to preach; and He Himself never wrote any of His doctrines. Again Catholics are accused of superstition for keeping the relics of saints. Yet when General Grant died and was buried in New York, many citizens of every denomination, anxious to have a relic of the great man they loved and admired, secured, even at a cost, small pieces of wood from his house, of cloth from his funeral car, a few leaves or a little sand from his tomb. Now, if it was not superstition to keep these relics, why should it be superstition to keep the relics of the saints?
Again, we can learn about our faith through what we see just as much as through what we hear, and these visible things can lead us to understand the invisible truths they represent. Let's consider an example. A poor, uneducated man walks into a Catholic church and sees a picture of St. Vincent de Paul hanging there. He can learn about the saint's life from that picture almost as well as if he read about it in a book. He sees the saint wearing a cassock, which indicates that St. Vincent was a priest. He sees him surrounded by little ragged children and holding some of them in his arms; that shows him the saint cared for poor children and orphans and started homes and shelters for them. He notices a human skull on the saint's table, which tells him that St. Vincent often contemplated death and what comes after it. Next to the skull, he sees a small whip, indicating that the saint practiced penance and self-discipline. This illustrates why the true Church is rightly called Catholic; its teachings are appropriate for everyone. The uneducated can grasp its teachings just as well as the educated can; if they can’t read, they can listen to its priests, watch its ceremonies, and study its artwork, all of which serve as teachers. In contrast, the Protestant faith does not meet everyone’s needs, as it asserts that all must find their beliefs in the Bible and interpret them as they see fit, leading to a variety of Protestant denominations that all claim the Bible as their guide but follow different paths. If every Protestant is allowed to interpret the Holy Scripture in their own way, what authority do Protestant ministers have to preach their interpretations and require others to accept them? The Bible alone is not enough. It needs to be explained by the Church, which also transmits the traditions handed down from the Apostles. If the Bible were the sole foundation of our faith, what would happen to those who couldn’t read it? What about those who lived before the Apostles wrote the New Testament? They didn’t start writing until years into their ministry, and they didn’t write down all the truths they taught because Our Lord commanded them to preach, not to write; and He Himself never wrote any of His teachings. Catholics are also accused of superstition for keeping the relics of saints. However, when General Grant died and was buried in New York, many people from various denominations, eager to have a piece of the great man they admired, acquired even at a cost, small bits of wood from his home, pieces of fabric from his funeral carriage, or tiny leaves and sand from his grave. If it wasn’t superstition to keep those relics, then why is it considered superstition to keep the relics of the saints?
Even God Himself honored the relics of saints, for He has often performed or granted miracles through their use. We read in the Bible (4 Kings 13:21)—and it is the word of God—that once some persons who were burying a dead man, seeing their enemies coming upon them, hastily cast the body into a tomb and fled. It was the tomb of the holy prophet Eliseus, and when the dead body touched the bones of this great servant of God, the dead man came to life and stood erect. Here is at least one miracle that God performed through the relics of a saint.
Even God Himself revered the relics of saints, as He has frequently performed or granted miracles through them. In the Bible (2 Kings 13:21)—and this is the word of God—we read that once, some people were burying a dead man when they saw their enemies approaching. In a hurry, they threw the body into a tomb and ran away. It was the tomb of the holy prophet Elisha, and when the dead body touched the bones of this great servant of God, the dead man came back to life and stood up. This is at least one miracle that God performed through the relics of a saint.
God does not forbid the mere making of images, but only the making of them as gods. He gave the Commandments to Moses and afterwards told him to make images; namely, angels of gold for the temple. (Ex. 25:18). Now, God does not change His mind or contradict Himself as men do. Whatever He does is done forever. Therefore if He commanded Moses by the First Commandment not to make any images, He could not tell him later to make some. It is not the mere making, therefore, that God forbids, but the adoring. What He insists upon is: "You shall not adore or serve the images you make." This is very clear if we consider the history of the Israelites, to whom God first gave the law. They were the only nation in the whole world that knew and worshipped the true God, and often, as I told you, they fell into idolatry and really worshipped images. When Moses delayed on the mountain with God, and they thought he was not coming back, they made a golden calf and adored it as a god. (Ex. 32).
God doesn't prohibit the creation of images, but rather the creation of them as gods. He gave the Commandments to Moses and later instructed him to create images, specifically, gold angels for the temple. (Ex. 25:18). God doesn't change His mind or contradict Himself like humans do. Everything He does is permanent. So if He commanded Moses through the First Commandment not to create any images, He couldn't later tell him to create some. Therefore, it is not simply the making that God forbids, but the worship. What He emphasizes is: "You shall not worship or serve the images you create." This is very clear when we look at the history of the Israelites, to whom God first gave the law. They were the only nation in the world that knew and worshipped the true God, and frequently, as I mentioned, they fell into idolatry and genuinely worshipped images. When Moses was delayed on the mountain with God, and they thought he wasn't returning, they made a golden calf and worshipped it as a god. (Ex. 32).
The Israelites fell into idolatry chiefly by associating with persons not of the true religion. Let us learn from their sins never to run the risk of weakening or losing our faith by making bosom friends and steady companions of those not of the true religion or of no religion at all. You are not, however, to treat any person with contempt or to despise anyone, but to look upon all as the children of God, and pray for those not of the true religion, that they may be converted and saved.
The Israelites fell into idolatry mainly by hanging out with people who didn’t follow the true faith. Let’s learn from their mistakes and avoid risking our faith by becoming close friends and constant companions with those who don’t share our beliefs or have no faith at all. However, you should not treat anyone with disdain or look down on anyone; instead, view them all as children of God, and pray for those who don’t share the true faith, that they may find their way to belief and salvation.
342 Q. Is it right to show respect to the pictures and images of Christ
and His saints?
A. It is right to show respect to the pictures and images of Christ and
His saints, because they are the representations and memorials of them.
342 Q. Is it okay to show respect to the pictures and images of Christ
and His saints?
A. Yes, it is appropriate to show respect to the pictures and images of Christ and
His saints because they represent and commemorate them.
343 Q. Is it allowed to pray to the crucifix or to the images and relics of the saints? A. It is not allowed to pray to the crucifix or images and relics of the saints, for they have no life, nor power to help us, nor sense to hear us.
343 Q. Is it okay to pray to the crucifix or to the images and relics of the saints? A. It is not okay to pray to the crucifix or images and relics of the saints, because they have no life, no power to help us, and no ability to hear us.
344 Q. Why do we pray before the crucifix and the images and relics of the saints? A. We pray before the crucifix and the images and relics of the saints because they enliven our devotion by exciting pious affections and desires, and by reminding us of Christ and of the saints, that we may imitate their virtues.
344 Q. Why do we pray in front of the crucifix and the images and relics of the saints? A. We pray in front of the crucifix and the images and relics of the saints because they strengthen our devotion by stirring up our pious feelings and desires, and by reminding us of Christ and the saints, so that we can imitate their virtues.
Lesson 32
FROM THE SECOND TO THE FOURTH COMMANDMENT
Lesson 32
FROM THE SECOND TO THE FOURTH COMMANDMENT
345 Q. What is the Second Commandment? A. The Second Commandment is: Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vain.
345 Q. What is the Second Commandment? A. The Second Commandment is: You shall not take the name of the Lord your God in vain.
"In vain"—that is, without necessity.
"In vain"—meaning, without reason.
346 Q. What are we commanded by the Second Commandment? A. We are commanded by the Second Commandment to speak with reverence of God and of the saints, and of all holy things, and to keep our lawful oaths and vows.
346 Q. What does the Second Commandment command us? A. The Second Commandment commands us to speak respectfully about God, the saints, and all sacred things, and to uphold our lawful oaths and vows.
A very common sin against this Commandment is to use the words and sayings of Holy Scripture in a worldly or bad sense. The Church forbids us to use the words and sayings of Holy Scripture to convey any meaning but the one God intended them to convey, or at least to use them in any but a sacred sense.
A very common sin against this Commandment is using the words and sayings of the Bible in a secular or negative way. The Church prohibits us from using the words and sayings of the Bible to imply anything other than the meaning God intended, or at least to use them in any way that isn't sacred.
347 Q. What is an oath? A. An oath is the calling upon God to witness the truth of what we say.
347 Q. What is an oath? A. An oath is when we invoke God to witness the truth of our words.
We declare a thing to be so or not, and call God to be our witness that we are speaking truly. This is one of the most solemn acts that men can perform in the presence of their fellowman. All the nations of the earth regard an oath as a most sacred thing, and one who swears falsely is the vilest of men—a perjurer. God is infinite truth and hates lies. What a frightful thing then to call Him to sanction a lie!
We affirm something to be true or not, and we call upon God as our witness that we're speaking honestly. This is one of the most serious actions people can take in front of others. All the nations in the world see an oath as a deeply sacred matter, and someone who lies under oath is considered the worst of all— a liar. God embodies ultimate truth and detests falsehoods. How terrible it is, then, to ask Him to endorse a lie!
*348 Q. When may we take an oath? A. We may take an oath when it is ordered by lawful authority or required for God's honor or for our own or our neighbor's good.
*348 Q. When can we take an oath? A. We can take an oath when it's ordered by legal authority or needed for God's honor or for our own or our neighbor's benefit.
An oath is generally taken in a court of law when the judge wishes to find out the truth of the case. We may be a witness against one who is guilty, or in defense of an innocent person, and in such cases a lie would have most evil consequences. The judge has a right, therefore, to make us take an oath that we will testify truly. Officers of the law, magistrates, judges, etc., take an oath when entering upon their duties that they will perform them faithfully.
An oath is usually taken in a court when the judge wants to determine the truth of the case. We might be a witness against someone who is guilty or in defense of an innocent person, and in these situations, lying could have terrible consequences. Therefore, the judge has the authority to make us swear an oath that we will testify honestly. Law enforcement officers, magistrates, judges, and others take an oath when they start their duties, promising to perform them faithfully.
*349 Q. What is necessary to make an oath lawful? A. To make an oath lawful it is necessary that what we swear be true, and that there be a sufficient cause for taking an oath.
*349 Q. What is needed for an oath to be considered lawful? A. For an oath to be lawful, it is necessary that what we swear is true, and that there is a valid reason for taking the oath.
350 Q. What is a vow? A. A vow is a deliberate promise made to God to do something that is pleasing to Him.
350 Q. What is a vow? A. A vow is a conscious promise made to God to do something that makes Him happy.
"Deliberate"—that is, with full consent and freedom. If we are forced to make it, it is not valid. "To God," not to another; though we may vow to God that we will do something in honor of the Blessed Virgin, or of the saints, or for another. "Something pleasing," because if we promise something that is forbidden by God or displeasing to Him, it is not a vow. A solemn promise, for instance, to kill your neighbor or steal his goods could not be a vow. You would commit a sin by making such a vow, and another by keeping it, for if you promise something you cannot do without committing sin then you must not keep that promise. We have an example in the life of St. John the Baptist. King Herod was leading a sinful life, and St. John rebuked him for it. The wife of the king's brother—Herodias was her name—hated St. John for this, and she sought to have him killed. Once when the king had a great feast and all his notables were assembled, this woman's daughter danced before them, and the king was so pleased with her that he vowed to give her whatever she asked. He should have said, if it is something pleasing to God, but he did not. Her mother made her ask for the head of John the Baptist. The king was sad, but because he had made the vow or promise he thought he had to keep it, and ordered St. John to be beheaded and his head brought to her. (Matt. 14). He was not bound to keep any such vow, and sinned by doing so.
"Deliberate"—meaning, with full consent and freedom. If we're forced to do it, it's not valid. "To God," not to someone else; although we can vow to God that we'll do something in honor of the Blessed Virgin, or the saints, or for someone else. "Something pleasing," because if we promise something that's forbidden by God or makes Him unhappy, it’s not a vow. A serious promise, for example, to kill your neighbor or steal his possessions could never be a vow. You would sin by making such a vow, and also by keeping it, because if you promise something you can't do without sinning, then you shouldn't keep that promise. We see an example in the life of St. John the Baptist. King Herod was living in sin, and St. John confronted him about it. The king's brother's wife—Herodias was her name—had a grudge against St. John for this and wanted him dead. One time, when the king hosted a big feast and all his important guests were there, this woman's daughter danced for them, and the king was so impressed that he promised to give her whatever she wanted. He should have specified, if it’s something pleasing to God, but he didn’t. Her mother made her request the head of John the Baptist. The king was upset, but because he had made the vow or promise, he felt he had to keep it and ordered St. John to be beheaded and his head brought to her. (Matt. 14). He was not obligated to keep any such vow and sinned by doing so.
Again, they also commit sin who become members of such secret societies as the freemasons or similar organizations, promising to do whatever they are ordered without knowing what may be ordered; for they sin not only by obeying sinful commands, but by the very fact of being in a society in which they are exposed to the danger of being forced to sin. Such secret societies are forbidden by the Church because they strive to undermine its authority, and make their rules superior to its teaching. They also influence those in authority to persecute the Church and its ministers, and do not hesitate to recommend even assassination at times for the accomplishment of their ends. Therefore the Church forbids Catholics to join societies of which (1) the objects are unlawful, (2) where the means used are sinful, or (3) where the rights of our conscience and liberty are violated by rash or dangerous oaths.
Again, those who join secret societies like the freemasons or similar organizations commit sin by promising to follow orders without knowing what those orders might be. They sin not only by following sinful commands but also by being part of a group where they risk being forced to sin. The Church forbids such secret societies because they seek to undermine its authority and elevate their rules above its teachings. They also encourage those in power to persecute the Church and its ministers, and don’t hesitate to suggest even assassination at times to achieve their goals. Therefore, the Church prohibits Catholics from joining societies where (1) the goals are unlawful, (2) the means used are sinful, or (3) the rights of our conscience and freedom are violated by reckless or dangerous oaths.
The Church does not oppose associations founded on law and justice; but on the contrary, has always encouraged and still encourages every organization that tends to benefit its members spiritually and temporally, and opposes only societies that have not a legitimate end. Therefore you may understand that labor unions and benefit societies in which persons are leagued together for their own protection or the protection of their interests are not secret societies, though they may conduct their meetings in secret.
The Church doesn't oppose groups based on law and justice; instead, it has always supported and continues to support any organization that aims to benefit its members both spiritually and materially, and only opposes groups that lack a legitimate purpose. Therefore, you can see that labor unions and benefit societies, where individuals come together to protect themselves or their interests, are not secret societies, even if they hold their meetings privately.
351 Q. Is it a sin not to fulfill our vows? A. Not to fulfill our vows is a sin, mortal or venial according to the nature of the vow and the intention we had in making it.
351 Q. Is it a sin not to keep our promises? A. Not keeping our promises is a sin, either serious or minor, depending on the nature of the promise and the intention we had when making it.
"Vows"—that is, lawful vows. When a man who is in the habit of getting intoxicated vows not to take liquor for a certain time, he generally intends to bind himself only under venial sin; that is, if he breaks that pledge or promise it will be a venial and not a mortal sin; but he can make it a mortal sin by intending, when he takes the pledge, that if he breaks it he will be guilty of mortal sin.
"Vows"—that is, legal vows. When a man who frequently gets drunk vows not to drink alcohol for a certain period, he usually means to commit himself only to a minor sin; that is, if he breaks that pledge or promise, it will be a minor and not a serious sin; however, he can turn it into a serious sin by intending, when he makes the pledge, that if he breaks it, he will be guilty of a serious sin.
352 Q. What is forbidden by the Second Commandment? A. The Second Commandment forbids all false, rash, unjust, and unnecessary oaths, blasphemy, cursing, and profane words.
352 Q. What is forbidden by the Second Commandment? A. The Second Commandment prohibits all false, reckless, unfair, and unnecessary oaths, as well as blasphemy, cursing, and disrespectful language.
"Rash"—swearing a thing is true or false without knowing for certain whether it is or not. "Blasphemy" is not the same as cursing or taking God's name in vain. It is worse. It is to say or do something very disrespectful to God. To say that He is unjust, cruel or the like, is to blaspheme. We can blaspheme also by actions. To defy God by a sign or action, to dare Him to strike us dead, etc., would be blasphemy. We have a terrible example of blasphemy related in the life of Julian the Apostate. An apostate is one who renounces and gives up his religion, not one who merely neglects it. Julian was a Roman emperor and had been a Catholic, but apostatized. Then in his great hatred for Our Lord he wished to falsify His prophecies and prove them untrue. Our Lord had said that of the temple of Jerusalem there would not be left a stone upon a stone. To make this false Julian began to rebuild the temple. In making the preparation he cleared away the ruins of the old building, not leaving a single stone upon a stone, and thus was instrumental himself in verifying the words of Our Lord; for while the ruins remained there were stones upon stones. He wished to defy God, but when he began to build, fire came forth from the earth and drove back the workmen, and a strong wind scattered the materials. Afterwards Julian was wounded in battle, an arrow having pierced his breast. He drew it out, and throwing a handful of his blood toward heaven, said: "Thou hast conquered, O Galilean," meaning Our Lord. This was a horrible blasphemy—throwing his blood in defiance, and calling the Son of God a name which he thought would be insulting (see Fredet's Modern History, Life of Julian). Therefore we can blaspheme by actions or words, doing or saying things intended to insult Almighty God. "Profane words"—that is, bad, but especially irreverent and irreligious words.
"Rash"—claiming something is true or false without being sure if it actually is. "Blasphemy" is different from cursing or misusing God's name. It's more serious. It's saying or doing something extremely disrespectful toward God. To claim that He is unjust or cruel, for example, is blasphemy. We can also blaspheme through our actions. Defying God with a gesture or action, daring Him to strike us down, etc., would be blasphemy. A clear example of blasphemy is found in the life of Julian the Apostate. An apostate is someone who renounces and abandons their faith, not just someone who neglects it. Julian was a Roman emperor who was once Catholic, but he turned away from his faith. Out of his deep hatred for Our Lord, he wanted to disprove His prophecies. Our Lord had said that not one stone would be left on another of the temple in Jerusalem. To prove this false, Julian started rebuilding the temple. In doing so, he cleared away the ruins of the old structure, leaving not a single stone upon a stone, and thus unwittingly fulfilled Our Lord's words; because while the ruins remained, there were stones on top of stones. He intended to challenge God, but when he began to build, fire erupted from the ground and drove the workers back, and a strong wind scattered the building materials. Later, Julian was wounded in battle, an arrow piercing his chest. He pulled it out and, throwing a handful of his blood toward heaven, said: "You have conquered, O Galilean," referring to Our Lord. This was a terrible act of blasphemy—throwing his blood in defiance and using a term he thought would be insulting toward the Son of God (see Fredet's Modern History, Life of Julian). Therefore, we can blaspheme through actions or words, by doing or saying things meant to insult Almighty God. "Profane words"—are bad words, especially those that are irreverent and disrespectful.
353 Q. What is the Third Commandment? A. The Third Commandment is: Remember thou keep holy the Sabbath day.
353 Q. What is the Third Commandment? A. The Third Commandment is: Remember to keep the Sabbath day holy.
*354 Q. What are we commanded by the Third Commandment? A. By the Third Commandment we are commanded to keep holy the Lord's Day and the holy days of obligation, on which we are to give our time to the service and worship of God.
*354 Q. What are we required to do by the Third Commandment? A. The Third Commandment requires us to keep the Lord's Day and the holy days of obligation sacred, during which we dedicate our time to the service and worship of God.
"Holy days" we are bound to keep holy just in the same manner we do Sundays—that is, by hearing Mass and refraining from servile works. Those who after hearing Mass must attend to business or work on those days should make this known to their confessor, that he may judge if they have a sufficient excuse for engaging in servile works, and thus they will avoid the danger of sinfully violating an important law. There must always be a good reason for working on a holy day. Those who are so situated that they can readily refrain from servile work on holy days must do so. And, where it is possible, the same opportunity must be afforded to their servants.
"Holy days" should be kept sacred just like Sundays—that means attending Mass and avoiding any routine work. If someone needs to attend to business or work after going to Mass on those days, they should inform their confessor so he can determine if they have a valid reason for doing so, helping them avoid the risk of sinfully breaking an important rule. There must always be a good reason for working on a holy day. Those who can easily refrain from regular work on holy days should do so. And, when possible, the same opportunity should also be provided to their employees.
"Of obligation," because there are some holy days not of obligation. We celebrate them, but we are not bound under pain of mortal sin to hear Mass or keep from servile works on such days. For example, St. Patrick's Day is not a holy day of obligation. The great feast of Corpus Christi is not a holy day of obligation. Not satisfied with doing only what the Church obliges us to do on Sundays and holy days, those who really love God will endeavor to do more than the bare works commanded. Sunday is a day of rest and prayer. While we may take innocent and useful amusement, we should not join in any public or noisy entertainments. We may rest and recreate ourselves, but we should avoid every place where vulgar and sometimes sinful amusements, scenes, or plays are presented. Even in taking lawful recreation we may serve God and please Him if we take it to strengthen our bodies that we may be enabled to do the work He has assigned to us in this world.
"Of obligation," because there are some holy days that are not mandatory. We celebrate them, but we aren’t required under pain of mortal sin to attend Mass or refrain from work on those days. For example, St. Patrick's Day is not a holy day of obligation. The significant feast of Corpus Christi is also not a holy day of obligation. Those who truly love God won’t just do what the Church requires on Sundays and holy days; they will strive to do more than the minimum. Sunday is a day for rest and prayer. While we can enjoy innocent and beneficial activities, we should avoid participating in any public or loud entertainment. We can rest and recharge, but we should steer clear of places where crude or sometimes sinful activities, scenes, or performances are shown. Even when engaging in lawful recreation, we can honor God and make Him happy if we use it to strengthen our bodies so we can fulfill the work He has given us in this world.
Sunday is well spent by those who, after hearing Mass, devote some part of the day to good works, such as pious reading, teaching in Sunday school, bringing relief to the poor and sick, visiting the Blessed Sacrament, attending Vespers, Rosary, etc. Not that I mean they should do nothing but pray on Sundays; but they should not give the whole day to useless enjoyment or idleness, and forget God. Some begrudge God even the half-hour they are obliged to give to Mass on Sundays: they stand near the door, ready to be the first out, and perhaps were the last in; or they come late, and do not give the full time necessary to hear the entire Mass. Others spend the whole day in reading newspapers, magazines, or useless—I will not say sinful—books. It is not a sin to read newspapers, etc., on Sunday; but to give the whole time to them, and never read anything good and instructive, is a willful waste of time—and waste of time is sinful. There should be in every family, according to its means, one or more good Catholic newspapers or magazines. Not all papers that bear the name of Catholic are worthy of it. A truly Catholic paper is one that teaches or defends Catholic truth, and warns us against its enemies, their snares, deceptions, etc.; one, too, that tells us what is being done in the interests of religion, education, etc. Besides such a paper there should be a few standard good books in every family such as the New Testament, the Imitation of Christ, a large and full catechism of Christian doctrine, etc. On the other hand, all the books in your house need not be books treating of religion or piety. Any book that is not against faith or morals may be kept and read. A book may not be bad in itself, but it may be bad for you, either because it is suggestive of evil, or you misunderstand it, and take evil out of it. In such a case you should not read it. At the present time there are so many bad books that persons should be very careful as to what they read.
Sunday is well spent by those who, after attending Mass, dedicate some time to good deeds, like reading inspirational material, teaching in Sunday school, helping the poor and sick, visiting the Blessed Sacrament, and attending Vespers, the Rosary, etc. I don't mean to imply they should only pray on Sundays; however, they shouldn’t spend the entire day on mindless enjoyment or laziness while forgetting about God. Some people even begrudge God the half-hour they have to give to Mass on Sundays; they stand near the door, eager to be the first to leave, and often were the last to arrive; or they come late, not allowing enough time to hear the whole Mass. Others waste the entire day reading newspapers, magazines, or trivial—I won’t say sinful—books. It's not a sin to read newspapers or similar material on Sunday, but spending all your time on them without reading anything beneficial or enlightening is a deliberate waste of time—and wasting time is sinful. Every family should have, according to their means, one or more good Catholic newspapers or magazines. Not all papers that call themselves Catholic are truly worthy of the name. A genuine Catholic paper teaches or defends Catholic truths and warns us about its enemies, their traps, and tricks; it also informs us about what is happening in support of religion, education, and so on. In addition to such a paper, there should be a few good standard books in every family, like the New Testament, the Imitation of Christ, a comprehensive catechism of Christian doctrine, etc. However, not all the books in your home need to be focused on religion or piety. Any book that isn’t against faith or morals can be kept and read. A book may not be harmful in itself, but it could be harmful for you, either because it suggests something bad or you interpret it incorrectly and draw something negative from it. In that case, you should avoid reading it. Nowadays, there are so many bad books that people need to be very careful about what they choose to read.
Not only should we keep Sunday well ourselves, but we should endeavor to have it so kept by others. We must be careful, however, not to fall into the mistake of some who wish the Sunday to be kept as the Pharisees of old kept the Sabbath, telling us we must not walk, ride, sail, or take any exercise or enjoyment on that day. This is not true, for Our Lord rebuked the Pharisees for such excessive rigor; God made the Sunday for our benefit, and if we had to keep it as they say we must, it would be more of a punishment than a benefit.
Not only should we observe Sunday well ourselves, but we should also try to encourage others to do the same. We need to be careful not to make the mistake of those who want Sunday to be observed like the Pharisees of old observed the Sabbath, insisting that we must not walk, ride, sail, or engage in any exercise or enjoyment on that day. This isn’t accurate, as Our Lord criticized the Pharisees for such extreme strictness; God created Sunday for our benefit, and if we had to observe it the way they suggest, it would be more of a punishment than a blessing.
355 Q. How are we to worship God on Sundays and holy days of obligation? A. We are to worship God on Sundays and holy days of obligation by hearing Mass, by prayer, and by other good works.
355 Q. How should we worship God on Sundays and holy days of obligation? A. We should worship God on Sundays and holy days of obligation by attending Mass, praying, and doing other good deeds.
*356 Q. Are the Sabbath day and the Sunday the same? A. The Sabbath day and the Sunday are not the same. The Sabbath is the seventh day of the week, and is the day which was kept holy in the Old Law; the Sunday is the first day of the week, and is the day which is kept holy in the New Law.
*356 Q. Are the Sabbath and Sunday the same? A. The Sabbath and Sunday are not the same. The Sabbath is the seventh day of the week and was observed as a holy day in the Old Law; Sunday is the first day of the week and is observed as a holy day in the New Law.
"Old Law" means the law that God gave to the Jews, the New Law, the law that Our Lord gave to Christians.
"Old Law" refers to the law that God gave to the Jews, while the New Law is the law that Our Lord gave to Christians.
*357 Q. Why does the Church command us to keep the Sunday holy instead of the Sabbath? A. The Church commands us to keep the Sunday holy instead of the Sabbath because on Sunday Christ rose from the dead, and on Sunday He sent the Holy Ghost upon the Apostles.
*357 Q. Why does the Church require us to keep Sunday holy instead of the Sabbath? A. The Church requires us to keep Sunday holy instead of the Sabbath because on Sunday Christ rose from the dead, and on Sunday He sent the Holy Spirit to the Apostles.
We keep Sunday instead of Saturday also to teach that the Old Law is not now binding upon us, but that we must keep the New Law, which takes its place.
We observe Sunday instead of Saturday to show that the Old Law no longer applies to us, and that we need to follow the New Law, which replaces it.
358 Q. What is forbidden by the Third Commandment? A. The Third Commandment forbids all unnecessary servile work and whatever else may hinder the due observance of the Lord's day.
358 Q. What is not allowed by the Third Commandment? A. The Third Commandment prohibits all unnecessary work and anything else that may interfere with the proper observance of the Lord's day.
359 Q. What are servile works? A. Servile works are those which require labor rather of body than of mind.
359 Q. What are servile works? A. Servile works are those that require more physical effort than mental effort.
"Servile"—that is, work which was formerly done by the slaves. Therefore writing, reading, studying, etc., are not servile, because they were not the works of slaves.
"Servile"—that is, work that used to be done by slaves. Therefore, writing, reading, studying, etc., are not servile because they were not the tasks of slaves.
360 Q. Are servile works on Sunday ever lawful? A. Servile works are lawful on Sunday when the honor of God, the good of our neighbor, or necessity requires them.
360 Q. Are non-essential tasks on Sunday ever okay? A. Non-essential tasks are okay on Sunday when it's necessary for honoring God, helping others, or when it's absolutely needed.
"Honor of God"; for example, erecting an altar that could not be erected at another time, so that the people may hear Mass on that day.
"Honor of God"; for instance, setting up an altar that couldn't be built at any other time, so that the people can attend Mass on that day.
"Good of our neighbor"—such as reconstructing a broken bridge that must be used every day; or clearing away obstacles after a railroad accident, that trains may not be delayed. "Necessity"—firemen endeavoring to extinguish a fire, sailors working on a ship at sea, etc.
"Good of our neighbor"—like fixing a broken bridge that people need to use every day; or clearing away debris after a train accident, so that trains can keep running on time. "Necessity"—firefighters trying to put out a fire, sailors working on a ship at sea, etc.
Lesson 33
FROM THE FOURTH TO THE SEVENTH COMMANDMENT
Lesson 33
FROM THE FOURTH TO THE SEVENTH COMMANDMENT
361 Q. What is the Fourth Commandment? A. The Fourth Commandment is: Honor thy father and thy mother.
361 Q. What is the Fourth Commandment? A. The Fourth Commandment is: Honor your father and your mother.
362 Q. What are we commanded by the Fourth Commandment? A. We are commanded by the Fourth Commandment to honor, love, and obey our parents in all that is not sin.
362 Q. What does the Fourth Commandment tell us to do? A. The Fourth Commandment tells us to honor, love, and obey our parents in everything that isn't sinful.
"In all that is not sin," because if our parents or superiors, being wicked, bid us do things that we know to be certainly sinful, then we must not obey them under any circumstances. God will not excuse us for doing wrong because we were commanded. But if, on the contrary, we are forced in spite of our resistance to do the sinful act, then not we but they have to answer for the sin. If, however, you simply doubt about the sinfulness of the act, then you must obey; because you must always suppose that your superiors know better than you the things that concern their duty. Even if they should be mistaken in the exercise of their authority, God will reward your obedience. Besides obeying them, you must also help and support your parents if they need your assistance. You must not scoff at or despise them for their want of learning or refinement, because they perhaps have made many sacrifices to give you the advantages of which they in their youth were deprived. Do we not sometimes find persons of pretended culture ignorantly slighting their plain-mannered parents, or showing that they are ashamed of them or unwilling to recognize them before others, ungratefully forgetting that whatever wealth or learning they themselves have came through the love and kindness of these same parents? Again, is it not sinful for the children, especially of such parents, to waste their time in school, knowing that they are being supported in idleness by the hard toil and many sacrifices of a poor father? Never, then, be guilty of an unkind or ungrateful act. No matter who they are or what their condition, never forget those who have helped you and been your temporal or spiritual benefactors. If you cannot return the kindness to the one who helped you, at least be as ready as he was to do good to another. It is told of a great man that, wishing always to do good, he made it a rule never to stand looking at the effects of a disturbance, disaster, or accident unless he could do some good by being there.
"In everything that isn't a sin," because if our parents or superiors, who are wicked, tell us to do things that we know are definitely wrong, then we must not obey them under any circumstances. God won’t excuse us for doing wrong just because we were told to. But if we are forced to commit the sinful act against our will, then we are not the ones responsible for the sin; they are. However, if you are uncertain about whether the act is sinful, then you must obey, because you should always believe that your superiors know better than you about their responsibilities. Even if they make mistakes in exercising their authority, God will reward your obedience. Besides obeying them, you should also help and support your parents if they need your assistance. Don’t look down on or disrespect them for their lack of education or refinement, because they may have made many sacrifices to provide you with the opportunities they missed in their youth. Do we not sometimes see people of supposed culture thoughtlessly dismissing their humble parents, showing shame or reluctance to acknowledge them in front of others, forgetting in gratitude that whatever wealth or knowledge they have came from the love and support of those same parents? Again, isn’t it wrong for children, especially those of such parents, to waste their time in school, knowing that they are being supported in idleness by the hard work and sacrifices of a struggling father? Therefore, never commit an unkind or ungrateful act. No matter who they are or what their situation may be, never forget those who have helped you and been your temporal or spiritual benefactors. If you can’t return the kindness to the one who helped you, at least be as willing as they were to do good for someone else. A great man was known for always wanting to do good, so he made it a point never to stand by and watch the aftermath of a disturbance, disaster, or accident unless he could help in some way.
Wherever you are, ask yourselves now and then, Why am I in this particular place; what good am I doing here? etc. St. Aloysius when about to perform any action used to ask himself, it is said, What has this action to do with my eternal salvation? and St. Alphonsus de Liguori made a vow never to waste a moment of his time. These were some of the great heroes of the Church, and this is one of the reasons why they could accomplish so much for God.
Wherever you are, take a moment to ask yourself, Why am I here? What positive impact am I having? St. Aloysius supposedly used to question before any action, What does this action have to do with my eternal salvation? St. Alphonsus de Liguori made a vow to never waste a moment of his time. These were some of the great figures of the Church, and this is part of why they achieved so much for God.
363 Q. Are we bound to honor and obey others than our parents? A. We are bound to honor and obey our bishops, pastors, magistrates, teachers, and other lawful superiors.
363 Q. Are we required to honor and obey anyone besides our parents? A. We are required to honor and obey our bishops, pastors, magistrates, teachers, and other lawful authorities.
"Magistrates"—that is, civil rulers, like the president, governor, mayor, judges, etc.
"Magistrates"—that is, civil leaders, like the president, governor, mayor, judges, etc.
*364 Q. Have parents and superiors any duties towards those who are under their charge? A. It is the duty of parents and superiors to take good care of all under their charge and give them proper direction and example.
*364 Q. Do parents and guardians have responsibilities towards those in their care? A. Yes, parents and guardians are responsible for taking good care of everyone in their charge and providing them with appropriate guidance and a positive example.
It is so much their duty that God will hold them responsible for it, and punish them for neglecting it; so that your parents are not free to give you your own way. They have to do God's work, and, as His agents, punish you when you deserve it. You should take their punishment as coming from God Himself. They do not punish you because they wish to see you suffer, but for your good. Think of the terrible responsibility of parents. Let us suppose that the parents of a family give bad example; their children follow their example, and when they become heads of families their children also will grow up in wickedness: and thus we can go on for generations, and all those sins will be traced back to the first bad parents. What is true for bad example is true also for good example; that is, the good done by the children will all be traced back to the parents. Sometimes you may be punished when you are not guilty; then think of the times you were guilty and were not punished. Remember also how Our Lord was falsely accused before Herod and Pilate, and yet He never opened His lips to defend Himself, but suffered patiently. God sees your innocence and will reward you if you bear your trial patiently. Indeed, we are foolish not to bear all our sufferings patiently, for we have to bear them anyway, and we might just as well have the reward that patient suffering will bring us. Those who suffer should find comfort in this: by suffering they are made more like Our Lord and His blessed Mother. She lived on earth over sixty years, and during all that time she seems never to have had any of those things that bring worldly pleasure and happiness. She was left an orphan when quite young, and spent her early life in the temple, which was for her a kind of school; then she was married to a poor old carpenter, and must have found it very hard at times to get a living. Our Lord was born while she was away from home in a strange place. After she had returned and had just settled down in her little dwelling, she had to fly with St. Joseph into Egypt to save the life of the little Infant Jesus, whom the king's officers were seeking to kill. In Egypt they were strangers, among people not of their own nationality or religion, and St. Joseph must have found great difficulty in providing for them; yet they had to remain there for some time. Then when our divine Lord was grown to manhood and could be a great comfort to His Mother, He was seized and put to death in her presence. Her most beloved and innocent Son put to death publicly as a criminal before all her neighbors! The same persons who insulted Our Lord would not hesitate to insult and cruelly treat His blessed Mother also. At His death He left her no money or property for her support, but asked a friend, St. John, to receive her into his house and do Him the favor of taking care of her. She must have often felt that she was a burden in that man's house; that she had no home of her own, but was living like a poor woman on the charity of kind friends, for St. Joseph died before Our Lord's public life began. The Blessed Mother was, however, obliged to remain upon earth for about eleven years after Our Lord's Ascension. Thus we see her whole life was one of trials and sorrows. Now certainly Our Lord loved His Mother more than any other son could; and certainly also He, being God, could have made His blessed Mother a queen upon the earth, rich and powerful among men, and free from every suffering or inconvenience. If, then, He sent her sorrows and trials, it must have been because these were best for her, and because He knew that for this suffering here upon earth her happiness and glory in Heaven would be much increased; and as He wished her to have all the happiness and glory she was capable of possessing, He permitted her to suffer. If, then, suffering was good for Our Lord's Mother, it is good also for us; and when it comes we ought not to complain, but bear it patiently, as she did, and ask Our Lord to give us that grace.
It is their duty to the point that God will hold them accountable and punish them for neglecting it; therefore, your parents cannot just let you do as you please. They are doing God's work and, as His representatives, will correct you when it’s warranted. You should view their discipline as coming from God Himself. They don’t punish you out of a desire for you to suffer but for your own good. Consider the heavy responsibility of parents. If a family sets a bad example, their children will likely follow suit, and when those children become parents, their kids will also grow up in wrongdoing. This cycle can continue through generations, with all those sins tracing back to the original bad parents. The same goes for good examples; the positive actions of children can also be traced back to their parents. Sometimes you might be punished when you’re innocent; during those times, remember the times you were guilty but not punished. Also think about how Our Lord was falsely accused before Herod and Pilate, yet He remained silent and endured suffering patiently. God sees your innocence and will reward you if you endure your trials with patience. In fact, it’s foolish not to face our sufferings with patience since we have to endure them anyway, so we might as well earn the reward that comes from patient suffering. Those who suffer should find solace in this: through their suffering, they become more like Our Lord and His blessed Mother. She lived on earth for over sixty years and, during that time, it seems she never experienced the worldly pleasures or happiness. She was an orphan at a young age, spent her early years in the temple, which served as her school, married a poor old carpenter, and likely faced challenges making a living. Our Lord was born while she was far from home in an unfamiliar place. After she returned and had just settled into her small home, she had to flee with St. Joseph to Egypt to save the Infant Jesus from being killed by the king’s officers. In Egypt, they were strangers among people who didn’t share their nationality or faith, and St. Joseph must have struggled to support them; yet they had to stay there for some time. Then, when our divine Lord reached adulthood and could provide comfort to His Mother, He was captured and killed right before her eyes. Her beloved and innocent Son was executed publicly as a criminal in front of her neighbors! Those who mocked Our Lord would not hesitate to insult and treat His blessed Mother cruelly as well. At His death, He left her without money or belongings for her support, instead asking a friend, St. John, to take her into his home and care for her. She must have often felt like a burden in that man’s house, lacking a home of her own and living like a poor woman reliant on the kindness of friends, since St. Joseph had died before Our Lord's public life began. Nevertheless, the Blessed Mother had to stay on earth for about eleven years after Our Lord's Ascension. So we see that her entire life was filled with trials and sorrows. Now, without a doubt, Our Lord loved His Mother more than any son could, and being God, He could have easily made His blessed Mother a queen on earth, wealthy and powerful among people, without any suffering or discomfort. Therefore, if He allowed her sorrows and trials, it was because these were what was best for her, and He knew that her happiness and glory in Heaven would be greatly enhanced because of this suffering. As He wanted her to experience every happiness and glory she could, He permitted her to endure suffering. If suffering was beneficial for Our Lord's Mother, then it is also good for us; and when suffering arrives, we should not complain but bear it patiently, just as she did, asking Our Lord for the grace to do so.
365 Q. What is forbidden by the Fourth Commandment? A. The Fourth Commandment forbids all disobedience, contempt, and stubbornness towards our parents or lawful superiors.
365 Q. What is forbidden by the Fourth Commandment? A. The Fourth Commandment forbids any disobedience, disrespect, or stubbornness towards our parents or lawful authority figures.
"Contempt." Showing by our words or actions that we disregard or despise those placed over us. A man who is summoned to appear in court and does not come is punished for "contempt of court," because he shows that he disregards the authority of the judge. A thing not very bad in itself may become very bad if done out of contempt. For example, there would be a great difference between eating a little more than the Church allows on a fast-day, simply because you were hungry, and eating it because you wanted to show that you despised the law of fasting and the authority of the Church. The first would be only a venial sin, but the latter mortal. So for all your actions. An act which in itself might be a venial sin could easily become a mortal sin if you did it through contempt. "Stubbornness"—that is, unwillingness to give in, even when you know you are wrong and should yield. Those who obey slowly and do what they are ordered in a sulky manner are also guilty of stubbornness.
"Contempt." This is when we show through our words or actions that we ignore or scorn those in authority over us. For instance, a person who is called to appear in court but doesn't show up is punished for "contempt of court" because they demonstrate a disregard for the judge's authority. Something that isn't very bad on its own can become very bad if it's done out of contempt. For example, there's a big difference between eating a little more than what the Church permits on a fasting day just because you're hungry, and doing it to show that you scorn the fasting rules and the authority of the Church. The first scenario would only be a minor sin, while the latter would be a serious one. This principle applies to all your actions. An act that could be a minor sin might easily turn into a serious sin if it's done out of contempt. "Stubbornness" refers to the unwillingness to back down, even when you know you're wrong and should concede. Those who obey slowly and carry out orders in a sulky way are also guilty of stubbornness.
366 Q. What is the Fifth Commandment? A. The Fifth Commandment is: Thou shalt not kill.
366 Q. What is the Fifth Commandment? A. The Fifth Commandment is: You shall not kill.
367 Q. What are we commanded by the Fifth Commandment? A. We are commanded by the Fifth Commandment to live in peace and union with our neighbor, to respect his rights, to seek his spiritual and bodily welfare, and to take proper care of our own life and health.
367 Q. What does the Fifth Commandment tell us to do? A. The Fifth Commandment tells us to live in peace and harmony with our neighbors, respect their rights, look out for their spiritual and physical well-being, and take good care of our own life and health.
"Proper care of our own life." It is not our property, but God's. He lends it to us and leaves it with us as long as He pleases: nor does He tell us how long He will let us have the use of it. Thus suicide, or the taking of one's own life, is a mortal sin, for by it we resist the will of God. One who in sound mind and full possession of reason causes his own death is guilty of suicide. But it is sometimes very difficult to determine whether the person was really sane at the time he committed the act; hence, when there is any reasonable doubt on that point, the unfortunate suicide is usually given the benefit of it. It is also a sin to risk our lives uselessly or to continue in any habit that we are sure is injuring our health and shortening our lives.
"Taking proper care of our own lives." Our lives are not our own, but God's. He lends them to us and allows us to keep them for as long as He wishes, and He doesn't tell us how long that will be. Therefore, suicide, or taking one's own life, is considered a mortal sin because it goes against the will of God. A person who is in full possession of their reasoning and chooses to end their own life is guilty of suicide. However, it can be very challenging to determine if the person was truly sane when they did it; so when there is any reasonable doubt about that, the unfortunate individual is usually given the benefit of the doubt. It's also a sin to recklessly endanger our lives or to maintain habits we know are damaging our health and shortening our lifespan.
Thus an habitual drunkard is guilty of sin against the Fifth Commandment, for besides his sin of drunkenness, he is hastening his own death. So, too, boys or girls who indulge in habits which their parents forbid are guilty of sin. For example, a boy is forbidden to smoke, and he does smoke. Now to smoke is not in itself a sin, but it becomes a sin for that boy, because in the first place he is disobedient, and secondly is injuring his health. Thus persons who indulge in sinful habits may commit more than one kind of sin, for besides the sins committed by the habits themselves, these vices may injure their health and bring sickness and disease upon their bodies.
So, a habitual drunkard is committing a sin against the Fifth Commandment because, in addition to his sin of drunkenness, he is rushing toward his own death. Similarly, boys or girls who engage in activities their parents forbid are also guilty of sin. For example, if a boy is told not to smoke and he does it anyway, smoking itself isn't a sin, but it becomes a sin for him because he is being disobedient and harming his health. Therefore, people who engage in sinful habits may commit multiple types of sin, as the vices they indulge in can both lead to further sins and negatively impact their health, resulting in sickness and disease.
368 Q. What is forbidden by the Fifth Commandment? A. The Fifth Commandment forbids all willful murder, fighting, anger, hatred, revenge, and bad example.
368 Q. What is forbidden by the Fifth Commandment? A. The Fifth Commandment prohibits all intentional murder, violence, anger, hate, revenge, and setting a bad example.
Therefore it forbids all that might lead to murder. So we can violate any of the Commandments by doing anything that leads to breaking them. "Revenge" is a desire to injure others because they injured you.
Therefore, it prohibits anything that could result in murder. This means we can break any of the Commandments by doing anything that leads to violating them. "Revenge" is the urge to hurt others because they hurt you.
369 Q. What is the Sixth Commandment? A. The Sixth Commandment is: Thou shalt not commit adultery.
369 Q. What is the Sixth Commandment? A. The Sixth Commandment is: You shall not commit adultery.
370 Q. What are we commanded by the Sixth Commandment? A. We are commanded by the Sixth Commandment to be pure in thought and modest in all our looks, words, and actions.
370 Q. What does the Sixth Commandment tell us to do? A. The Sixth Commandment tells us to keep our thoughts pure and to be modest in our looks, words, and actions.
We should be most careful about this Commandment, because almost every violation of it is a mortal sin. For example, if you steal only a little, it is a venial sin; for in stealing the greatness of the sin will depend upon the amount you steal; but if you do a real bad action, or think a real bad thought against the Sixth Commandment, it will be a mortal sin, no matter how short the time. Again, we have more temptations against this Commandment, for we are tempted by our own bodies and we cannot avoid them: hence the necessity of being always guarded against this sin. It enters into our soul through our senses; they are, as it were, the doors of our soul. It enters by our eyes looking at bad objects or pictures; by our ears listening to bad conversation; by our tongue saying and repeating immodest words, etc. If then, we guard all the doors of our soul, sin cannot enter. It would be foolish to lock all the doors in your house but one, for one will suffice to admit a thief, and we might as well leave them all open as one. So, too, we must guard all the senses; for sin can enter by one only as well as by all.
We need to be very careful about this Commandment because almost every violation of it is a serious sin. For instance, if you steal a small amount, it's considered a minor sin; the severity of the sin depends on how much you steal. However, if you commit a serious wrongful act or think a seriously wrong thought related to the Sixth Commandment, it will be a major sin, regardless of how brief the moment. Additionally, we face more temptations related to this Commandment because we are tempted by our own bodies, and we can't avoid that. This is why it's crucial to always be on guard against this sin. It gets into our souls through our senses, which can be seen as the doors to our souls. It can come in through our eyes when we look at inappropriate things or images; through our ears when we listen to harmful conversations; and through our mouths when we say or repeat inappropriate words, and so on. Therefore, if we protect all the doors of our souls, sin can't enter. It would be silly to lock all the doors in your house but one because any one door can let a thief in, making it just as easy to leave them all open as to leave one open. Similarly, we must protect all our senses because sin can come in through any single one just as easily as through all of them.
371 Q. What is forbidden by the Sixth Commandment? A. The Sixth Commandment forbids all unchaste freedom with another's wife or husband: also all immodesty with ourselves or others in looks, dress, words, or actions.
371 Q. What does the Sixth Commandment prohibit? A. The Sixth Commandment prohibits all inappropriate behavior with someone else's spouse, as well as any indecent behavior with ourselves or others in our appearance, clothing, language, or actions.
372 Q. Does the Sixth Commandment forbid the reading of bad and immodest books and newspapers? A. The Sixth Commandment does forbid the reading of bad and immodest books and newspapers.
372 Q. Does the Sixth Commandment prohibit reading inappropriate and indecent books and newspapers? A. Yes, the Sixth Commandment does prohibit reading inappropriate and indecent books and newspapers.
Reading brings us into the company of those who wrote the book. Now we should be just as careful to avoid a bad book as a bad man, and even more so; for while we read we can stop to think, and read over again, so that bad words read will often make more impression upon us than bad words spoken to us. You should avoid not only bad, but useless books. You could not waste all your time with an idle man without becoming like him—an idler. So if you waste your time on useless books, your knowledge will be just like the books—useless. Many authors write only for the sake of money, and care little whether their book is good or bad, provided it sells well. How many young people have been ruined by bad books, and how many more by foolish books! Boys, for example, read in some worthless book of desperate deeds of highway robbery or piracy, and are at once filled with the desire to imitate the hero of the tale. Young girls, on the other hand, are equally infatuated by the wonderful fortunes and adventures of some young woman whose life has been so vividly described in a trashy novel. As the result of such reading, young persons lose the true idea of virtue and valor of true, noble manhood and womanhood, and with their hearts and minds corrupted set up vice for their model.
Reading connects us with the authors of the books. We should be just as careful to avoid a bad book as we would a bad person, and even more so; while reading, we can pause to reflect and reread, so the negative words we read can often leave a stronger impression than those spoken to us. You should steer clear not only of bad books but also of useless ones. Spending all your time with a lazy person will only turn you into one—just as wasting your time on pointless books will leave your knowledge equally pointless. Many authors write solely for money and don’t care whether their book is good or bad, as long as it sells. Countless young people have been harmed by bad books, and even more by foolish ones! For instance, boys might read some worthless book about daring highway robberies or piracy and immediately be inspired to mimic the story's hero. Young girls can become just as enchanted by the amazing fortunes and adventures of a young woman vividly portrayed in a cheap novel. As a result of such reading, young individuals can lose sight of what true virtue and bravery look like and, with their hearts and minds tainted, end up idolizing vice.
Again, these books are filled with such terrible lies and unlikely things that any sensible boy or girl should see their foolishness at once. Think, for example, of a book relating how two boys defeated and killed or captured several hundred Indians! Is that likely? The truth is, if two Indians shook their tomahawks at as many boys as you could crowd into this building, every single one of them would run for his life.
Again, these books are packed with such ridiculous lies and improbable events that any sensible kid should recognize their absurdity immediately. Take, for example, a book that tells the story of two boys who defeated and either killed or captured several hundred Native Americans! Is that believable? The reality is, if two Native Americans shook their tomahawks at as many kids as you could fit into this building, every single one of them would run for their lives.
Let me give you still another reason for not reading trashy books. Your minds can hold just so much good or evil information, and if you fill them full of lies and nonsense you leave no room for true knowledge.
Let me give you another reason to avoid reading junk books. Your minds can only contain so much good or bad information, and if you fill them up with lies and nonsense, you leave no space for real knowledge.
Do not, therefore, get into the habit of reading foolish story-papers and cheap novels. Read good books in which you can find information that will be useful to you all through your life.
Do not get into the habit of reading silly magazines and cheap novels. Read quality books that provide information useful for your entire life.
If now and then you read story-books for amusement or rest from study, let them be good story-books, written by good authors. Ask someone's advice about the books you read—someone who is capable of giving such advice: your pastor, your teachers, and frequently your parents and friends. Learn all through your life to ask advice on every important matter. How many mistakes in life would have been prevented if those making them had only asked advice from the proper persons and followed it. Your parents have traveled the road of life before you. Now it is known to them and they can point out its dangers. To you the road is entirely new, and it will be only after you have traveled it and arrived nearly at its end in the latter days of your life that you also will be able to advise others how to pass through it in safety. This road can be traveled only once, so be advised by those who have learned its many dangers by their own experience. You should be very glad that those of experience are willing to teach you, and if you neglect their warnings you will be very sorry for it someday.
If you occasionally read storybooks for fun or to take a break from studying, make sure they’re good ones, written by quality authors. Get recommendations from someone who knows about books—like your pastor, teachers, or often your parents and friends. Throughout your life, learn to seek advice on important matters. Think of how many mistakes could have been avoided if those who made them had just asked for guidance from the right people and followed it. Your parents have already traveled the road of life before you. They understand it and can highlight its dangers. For you, this road is completely new, and only after you've traveled it and reached the later stages of your life will you be able to advise others on how to navigate it safely. You only travel this road once, so take advice from those who have learned its many risks through their own experiences. You should be thankful that experienced people are willing to guide you, and if you ignore their warnings, you might regret it one day.
Lesson 34
FROM THE SEVENTH TO THE END OF THE TENTH COMMANDMENT
Lesson 34
FROM THE SEVENTH TO THE END OF THE TENTH COMMANDMENT
373 Q. What is the Seventh Commandment? A. The Seventh Commandment is: Thou shalt not steal.
373 Q. What is the Seventh Commandment? A. The Seventh Commandment is: You shall not steal.
Stealing is one of those vices of which you have to be most careful. Children should learn to have honest hearts, and never to take unjustly even the smallest thing; for some begin a life of dishonesty by stealing little things from their own house or from stores to which they are sent for goods. A nut, a cake, an apple, a cent, etc., do not seem much, but nevertheless to take any of them dishonestly is stealing. Children who indulge in this trifling thievery seldom correct the habit in after life and grow up to be dishonest men and women. How do you suppose all the thieves now spending their miserable lives in prison began? Do you believe they were very honest—never having stolen even the slightest thing—up to a certain day, and at once became thieves by committing a highway robbery? No; they began by stealing little things, then greater, and kept on till they made stealing their business and thus became professional thieves. Again, the little you steal each day does not seem much at the time, but if you put all the "littles" together you may soon have something big, and almost before you know it—if you intend to continue stealing—you may have taken enough to make you guilty of mortal sin. If you intended to steal, for instance, only a small amount every day for the whole year, you would at the end have stolen a large amount and committed a mortal sin. There are many ways of violating the Seventh Commandment. Workmen who do not do a just day's work, or employers who cheat their workmen out of wages earned; merchants who charge unjust prices and seek unjust profits; dealers who give light weight or short measure or who misrepresent goods; those who speculate rashly or gamble with the money of others, and those who borrow with no intention or only slight hope of being able to pay back, all violate this Commandment. You violate it also by not paying your just debts or by purchasing goods that you know you will never be able to pay for. Moreover, besides the injustice, it is base ingratitude not to pay your debts when in your power to do so. The one who trusted or lent you helped you in your need and did you a great favor, and yet when you can you will not pay, and what is worse, frequently abuse and insult him for asking his own. Though such dishonest and ungrateful persons may escape in this world, they will not escape in the next, for Almighty God will make them suffer for the smallest debt they owe.
Stealing is one of those vices you need to be really careful about. Kids should learn to have honest hearts and never take anything unfairly, even the smallest items. Some people start a life of dishonesty by stealing little things from their own homes or from stores where they're sent for goods. A nut, a cake, an apple, a penny, etc., don’t seem like much, but taking any of them dishonestly is still stealing. Kids who indulge in these small thefts often don't break the habit later in life and end up becoming dishonest adults. How do you think all the thieves currently living miserable lives in prison started out? Do you think they were completely honest, never having stolen anything, until one day they just became thieves after committing a big robbery? No; they started by stealing little things, then moved on to bigger ones, and continued until they made stealing their profession and became career criminals. Again, the little bit you steal each day might not seem like much at the time, but if you add up all the "littles," you could soon have something significant. Almost before you know it—if you plan to keep stealing—you might have taken enough to be guilty of a serious sin. If you intended to steal just a small amount every day for an entire year, by the end, you would have stolen a large sum and committed a serious sin. There are many ways to violate the Seventh Commandment. Workers who don't put in an honest day's work, or employers who cheat their workers out of earned wages; merchants who charge unfair prices and seek unjust profits; sellers who give less than what is owed or misrepresent their goods; those who recklessly speculate or gamble with other people's money, and those who borrow with little intention or chance of repaying—all break this Commandment. You also violate it by not paying your debts or by buying things you know you'll never be able to pay for. Moreover, besides the injustice, it's cruel ingratitude not to pay your debts when you have the means to do so. The person who trusted or lent you money helped you in your time of need and did you a big favor, yet when you can, you refuse to pay, and what’s worse, you often mistreat and insult them for asking for what’s rightfully theirs. Though such dishonest and ungrateful people may escape consequences in this world, they won’t escape in the next, for God will make them pay for even the smallest debt they owe.
Again, others often suffer for the dishonesty of those I have mentioned, for when some good person who really intends to pay is in great need and wishes to borrow or be trusted, he is refused because others have been dishonest. Everyone should pay his debts, and even keep from buying things that are not really necessary till he is thus enabled to pay what he owes. You must pay your just debts even before you can give anything in charity.
Again, others often suffer because of the dishonesty of those I’ve mentioned. When a good person who genuinely intends to repay is in need and wants to borrow or be trusted, they’re turned away because of the actions of others. Everyone should pay their debts and avoid buying things that aren’t really necessary until they can pay what they owe. You should settle your debts before you can give anything to charity.
374 Q. What are we commanded by the Seventh Commandment? A. By the Seventh Commandment we are commanded to give to all men what belongs to them and to respect their property.
374 Q. What does the Seventh Commandment tell us to do? A. The Seventh Commandment tells us to give everyone what is rightfully theirs and to respect their property.
"Respect their property"—that is, acknowledge and respect their rights to their property and do nothing to violate these rights.
"Respect their property"—that is, recognize and respect their rights to their property and do nothing to infringe on these rights.
375 Q. What is forbidden by the Seventh Commandment? A. The Seventh Commandment forbids all unjust taking or keeping what belongs to another.
375 Q. What does the Seventh Commandment prohibit? A. The Seventh Commandment prohibits any unfair taking or keeping of what belongs to someone else.
"Taking," either with your own hands or from the hands of another; for the one who willingly and knowingly receives from a thief the whole or part of anything stolen becomes as bad as the thief. Even if you only help another to steal, and receive none of the stolen goods, you are guilty. There are several ways of sharing in the sin of another; namely, by ordering or advising him to do wrong; by praising him for doing wrong and thus encouraging him; by consenting to wrong when you should oppose it—for instance, a member of a society allowing an evil act to be done by the society when his vote would prevent it; again, by affording wrongdoers protection and means of escape from punishment for their evil deeds. This does not mean that we should not defend the guilty. We should defend them, but should not encourage them to do wrong by offering them a means of escape from just punishment. We share in another's sin also by neglecting to prevent his bad action when it is our duty to do so. For example, if a police officer paid for guarding your property should see a thief stealing it and not prevent him, he would be as guilty as the thief. Your neighbor indeed might warn you that the thief was stealing your goods, but he would not be bound in justice to do so, as the officer is, but only in charity, because it is not his duty to guard your property. Parents who know that their children steal and do not prevent them or compel them to bring back what they stole, but rather encourage them by being indifferent, are guilty of dishonesty as well as the children, and share in their sins of theft. But suppose you did not know the thing was stolen when you received it, but learned afterward that it was, must you then return it to the proper owner? Yes; just as soon as you know to whom it belongs you begin to sin by keeping it. But suppose you bought it not knowing that it was stolen, would you still have to restore it? Yes, when the owner asks for it, because it belongs to him till he sells it or gives it away. If you have bought from a thief you have been cheated and must suffer the loss. Your mistake will make you more careful on the next occasion. Suppose you find a thing, what must you do? Try to find its owner, and if you find him give him what is his, and that without any reward for restoring it, unless he pleases to give you something, or unless you have been put to an expense by keeping it. If you cannot find the owner after sincerely seeking for him, then you may keep the thing found. But suppose you kept the article so long before looking for the owner that it became impossible for you to restore it to him, either because he had died or removed to parts unknown during your delay—what then? Then you must give the article or its value to his children or others who have a right to his goods; and if no one who has such a right can be found, you must give it to the poor, for you have it unjustly—since you did not look for the owner when it was possible to find him—and therefore cannot keep it.
"Taking," whether you do it yourself or accept it from someone else; because anyone who knowingly accepts anything stolen from a thief, in whole or in part, becomes just as guilty as the thief. Even if you only assist someone in stealing and don't receive any of the stolen items yourself, you are still guilty. There are many ways to share in someone else's wrongdoing; for example, by instructing or advising them to do something wrong; by praising them for their wrongdoing and thus encouraging their behavior; by agreeing to wrongdoing when you should oppose it—like a member of a group allowing a harmful act to occur when their vote could stop it; or by providing wrongdoers with protection and means to escape punishment for their misdeeds. This doesn’t mean we shouldn’t defend the guilty. We should defend them, but we shouldn't encourage them to do wrong by providing ways for them to evade just punishment. We also share in someone else's sin by failing to prevent their bad actions when we have a duty to do so. For instance, if a police officer who is paid to guard your property sees a thief taking it and fails to act, he is as guilty as the thief. Your neighbor might warn you about a thief stealing your belongings, but he isn't legally obligated to do so, just morally, because he doesn't have a duty to guard your property. Parents who know their children are stealing and do not intervene or make them return what they’ve stolen, but rather encourage them by being indifferent, are guilty of dishonesty alongside the children and share in their theft. But what if you received something not knowing it was stolen, and later learned it was? Yes, you must return it to the rightful owner as soon as you find out to whom it belongs; keeping it after that point is a sin. What if you bought something without knowing it was stolen? Yes, you must restore it when the owner asks for it, because it belongs to them until they sell it or give it away. If you bought from a thief, you’ve been deceived and must absorb the loss. Your mistake will make you more cautious next time. If you find an item, what should you do? Try to locate its owner; if you find them, give it back without expecting a reward unless they choose to give you something, or unless you incurred expenses while keeping it. If you can’t find the owner after sincerely searching for them, then you may keep the found item. But if you held onto the item for so long before trying to locate the owner that it becomes impossible to return it—say, if the owner has died or moved away—what should you do? In that case, you must give the item or its equivalent value to the owner’s children or others who have a right to their belongings; if no one can be found with such rights, you must give it to the poor, because you have it unrightfully—since you didn’t search for the owner when it was possible to do so—and therefore cannot keep it.
376 Q. Are we bound to restore ill-gotten goods? A. We are bound to restore ill-gotten goods, or the value of them, as far as we are able; otherwise we cannot be forgiven.
376 Q. Are we required to return stolen goods? A. We are required to return stolen goods, or their value, as much as we can; otherwise we cannot be forgiven.
"Ill-gotten"—that is, unjustly gotten. "Value." It sometimes happens that persons lose or destroy the article stolen, and therefore cannot return it. What must be done in such cases? They must give the owner the value of it. However, when you have stolen anything and have to restore it, you need not go to the owner and say, "Here is what I stole from you." It is only necessary that he gets what is his own or its value. He need not even know that it is being restored to him, unless he knows you stole it; and then it would be better for your own good name to let him know that you are making amends for the injustice done. Therefore, no one need have any excuse for not restoring what he has unjustly, because he has only to see that it is returned in some way to its owner, or to those who have the next right to it, or to the poor. But you must remember you cannot make restitution by giving to the poor if you can restore to the proper owner. You must restore by giving to the poor only when the owner cannot be found or reached. Some persons do not like the duty of restoring to the proper owner, and think they satisfy their obligation by giving the ill-gotten goods to the poor; but they do not. You cannot give even in charity the goods of another without being guilty of dishonesty. If you wish to be charitable, give from your own goods. It is a sin to delay making restitution after you are able to restore. You must restore just as soon as you can, because the longer you keep the owner out of his property and its benefits, the greater the injury you do him and the greater the sin. One who, after being told by his confessor to make restitution, and promising to do so, still delays or keeps putting off, runs the risk of being guilty of sacrilege by receiving the Sacraments without proper dispositions. But suppose a person cannot restore; suppose he lost the thing stolen and has not the value of it. What must he do? He must have the firm resolution of restoring as soon as he possibly can; and without this good resolution he could not be absolved from his sins—even if he had not the real means of restoring. The good intention and resolution will suffice till he has really the means; but this intention must be serious, otherwise there will be no forgiveness.
"Ill-gotten"—meaning obtained unfairly. "Value." Sometimes people lose or destroy the stolen item and can’t return it. What should they do in those cases? They must give the owner its value. However, when you have stolen something and need to return it, you don’t need to approach the owner and say, "Here’s what I took from you." It only matters that they receive what is theirs or its value. They don’t even have to know it’s being returned to them unless they know you stole it; if they do, it’s better for your reputation to let them know you’re making amends for the wrong done. So, there’s no excuse for not returning what you took unfairly; you just have to ensure it gets back to its owner or to those who have the next right to it, or to the poor. But remember, you can’t make restitution by giving to the poor if you can return it to the rightful owner. You can only give to the poor when the owner cannot be found or reached. Some people dislike the responsibility of restoring to the rightful owner and think they fulfill their obligation by giving the stolen goods to the poor; but they do not. You cannot even donate someone else's property without being dishonest. If you want to be charitable, give from your own belongings. It’s a sin to delay making restitution once you can. You should restore as soon as you can because the longer you keep the owner from their property and its benefits, the greater the harm you cause them and the bigger the sin. Someone who has been advised by their confessor to make restitution, and promises to do so but still puts it off, risks committing sacrilege by receiving the Sacraments without the right mindset. But what if a person can’t restore? What if they lost the stolen item and don’t have its value? They must be firmly resolved to restore it as soon as possible; without this commitment, they can’t be absolved from their sins—even if they don’t have the actual means to restore it. The good intention and resolution are enough until they truly have the means, but this intention must be genuine; otherwise, there will be no forgiveness.
377 Q. Are we obliged to repair the damage we have unjustly caused? A. We are bound to repair the damage we have unjustly caused.
377 Q. Are we required to fix the damage we’ve caused unfairly? A. We are obligated to fix the damage we’ve caused unfairly.
378 Q. What is the Eighth Commandment? A. The Eighth Commandment is: Thou shalt not bear false witness against thy neighbor.
378 Q. What is the Eighth Commandment? A. The Eighth Commandment is: You shall not bear false witness against your neighbor.
Either in a court, while we are acting as witnesses, or by telling lies about him at any other time.
Either in court, while we're serving as witnesses, or by spreading falsehoods about him at any other time.
379 Q. What are we commanded by the Eighth Commandment? A. We are commanded by the Eighth Commandment to speak the truth in all things, and to be careful of the honor and reputation of everyone.
379 Q. What are we told to do by the Eighth Commandment? A. We are told by the Eighth Commandment to speak the truth in everything and to be mindful of everyone's honor and reputation.
"Reputation." If it be a sin to steal a man's money, which we can restore to him, it is certainly a much greater sin to steal his good name, which we can never restore, and especially as we have nothing to gain from injuring his character. It is a sin to tell evil things about another—his sins, vices, etc.—even when they are true. The only thing that will excuse us from telling another's fault is the necessity to do so in which we are placed, or the good we can do to the person himself or others by exposing faults. How shall you know when you have injured the character of another? You have injured another's character if you made others think less of him than they did before. If you have exposed some crime that he really committed, your sin is called detraction; if you accuse him of one he did not commit, your sin is calumny; and if you maliciously circulate these reports to injure his character, your sin is slander. But how shall you make reparation for injuring the character of another? If you have told lies about him, you must acknowledge to those with whom you have talked that you have told what was untrue about him, and you must even compensate him for whatever loss he has suffered by your lies: for example, the loss of his situation by your accusing him of dishonesty. But if what you said of him was true, how are you to act? At every opportunity say whatever good you can of him in the presence of those before whom you have spoken the evil.
"Reputation." If it’s a sin to take away a man’s money, which we can give back to him, it’s definitely a much worse sin to take away his good name, which we can never give back, especially since we gain nothing from damaging his reputation. It’s a sin to spread bad things about someone—his mistakes, vices, etc.—even if they are true. The only reason that justifies us in pointing out someone else’s flaws is if it's necessary or if we can do good for that person or others by revealing those flaws. How can you tell if you’ve harmed someone’s character? You’ve harmed another's character if you’ve made others think less of him than they did before. If you’ve revealed a crime he actually committed, your wrongdoing is called detraction; if you accuse him of something he didn’t do, your sin is calumny; and if you maliciously spread these stories to harm his reputation, your sin is slander. But how do you repair the damage done to someone’s character? If you’ve lied about him, you must admit to those you’ve talked to that you spoke untruths about him, and you should compensate him for any losses he has suffered because of your lies—like if he lost his job due to your accusations of dishonesty. But if what you said about him was true, what should you do? Make sure to highlight anything good about him whenever you’re around those you’ve spoken negatively to.
380 Q. What is forbidden by the Eighth Commandment? A. The Eighth Commandment forbids all rash judgments, backbiting, slanders, and lies.
380 Q. What is forbidden by the Eighth Commandment? A. The Eighth Commandment forbids all hasty judgments, gossip, slander, and falsehoods.
"Rash judgment"—that is, having in your mind and really believing that a person is guilty of a certain sin when you have no reason for thinking so, and no evidence that he is guilty. "Backbiting"—that is, talking evil of persons behind their backs. You would not like your neighbor to backbite you, and you have no right to do to him what you would not wish him to do to you. Besides, everyone hates and fears a backbiter; because as he brings to you a bad story about another, he will in the same manner bring to someone else a bad story about you. It is certainly an honor to be able to say of a person: "He never has a bad word of anyone"; while on the other hand, he must be a despicable creature who never speaks of others except to censure or revile them. Never listen to a backbiter, detractor, or slanderer—it is sinful. Another way of injuring your neighbor is revealing the secrets he has confided to you. You will tell one friend perhaps and caution him not to repeat it to another; but if you cannot keep the secret yourself, how can you expect others to keep it? Again you may injure your neighbor by reading his letters without his consent when you have no authority to do so. This is considered a crime in the eyes even of the civil law, and anyone who opens and reads the letters of another can be punished by imprisonment. It is a kind of theft, for it is stealing secrets and information that you have no right to know. It is dishonorable to read another's letter without his consent, even when you find it open. To carry to persons the evil things said about them by others so as to bring about disputes between them is very sinful. The Holy Scripture (Rom. 1:29) calls this class of sinners whisperers, and says that they will not enter into Heaven—that is, as long as they continue in the habit. If ever, then, you hear one person saying anything bad about another, never go and tell it to the person of whom it was said. If you do, you will be the cause of all the sin that follows from it—of the anger, hatred, revenge, and probably murder itself, as sometimes happens.
"Rash judgment"—that is, having in your mind and truly believing that someone is guilty of a particular sin without any reason to think so and no evidence of their guilt. "Backbiting"—that is, speaking ill of people behind their backs. You wouldn’t want your neighbor talking behind your back, and you have no right to do to him what you wouldn’t want done to you. Moreover, everyone hates and fears a backbiter; because just as he brings you a negative story about someone, he will do the same to someone else about you. It’s definitely an honor to be able to say of someone: "He never has a bad word to say about anyone"; whereas, it reflects poorly on a person who only speaks of others to criticize or insult them. Never listen to a backbiter, detractor, or slanderer—it’s wrong. Another way to hurt your neighbor is by revealing the secrets he has shared with you. You might tell a friend and ask him not to share it with anyone else; but if you can’t keep the secret yourself, how can you expect others to? Again, you can harm your neighbor by reading his letters without his permission when you have no right to do so. This is considered a crime even by civil law, and anyone who opens and reads someone else's letters can face imprisonment. It’s a form of theft, as it involves taking secrets and information you have no right to know. It’s dishonorable to read another's letter without his consent, even if you find it open. Spreading negative things said about others to create conflict between them is very wrong. The Holy Scripture (Rom. 1:29) refers to this type of sinner as whisperers and says they will not enter Heaven—that is, as long as they maintain this habit. So, if you ever hear someone saying something bad about another, do not go and tell the person it was said about. If you do, you’ll be the cause of all the sin that follows from it—of the anger, hatred, revenge, and possibly even murder, as can sometimes happen.
*381 Q. What must they do who have lied about their neighbor and seriously injured his character? A. They who have lied about their neighbor and seriously injured his character must repair the injury done as far as they are able, otherwise they will not be forgiven.
*381 Q. What should people do who have lied about their neighbor and seriously harmed their reputation? A. Those who have lied about their neighbor and seriously harmed their reputation must correct the damage they've caused as much as they can, or else they will not be forgiven.
382 Q. What is the Ninth Commandment? A. The Ninth Commandment is: Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor's wife.
382 Q. What is the Ninth Commandment? A. The Ninth Commandment is: You shall not covet your neighbor's wife.
383 Q. What are we commanded by the Ninth Commandment? A. We are commanded by the Ninth Commandment to keep ourselves pure in thought and desire.
383 Q. What does the Ninth Commandment tell us to do? A. The Ninth Commandment commands us to stay pure in our thoughts and desires.
384 Q. What is forbidden by the Ninth Commandment? A. The Ninth Commandment forbids unchaste thoughts, desires of another's wife or husband, and all other unlawful impure thoughts and desires.
384 Q. What is forbidden by the Ninth Commandment? A. The Ninth Commandment forbids lustful thoughts, desires for someone else's wife or husband, and all other unlawful and impure thoughts and desires.
*385 Q. Are impure thoughts and desires always sins? A. Impure thoughts and desires are always sins, unless they displease us and we try to banish them.
*385 Q. Are impure thoughts and desires always sins? A. Impure thoughts and desires are always sins, unless they bother us and we make an effort to get rid of them.
386 Q. What is the Tenth Commandment? A. The Tenth Commandment is: Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor's goods.
386 Q. What is the Tenth Commandment? A. The Tenth Commandment is: You shall not covet your neighbor's property.
"Covet" means to long for or desire inordinately or unlawfully. If I should desire, for example, my friend to be killed by an accident, in order that I might become the owner of his gold watch, I would be coveting it. But if I desired to have it justly—that is, to be able to purchase it, or another similar to it, that would not be covetousness.
"Covet" means to intensely desire something, often in an unlawful way. For example, if I wished for my friend to die in an accident so I could take his gold watch, that would be coveting it. However, if I simply wanted to buy it or a similar one fairly, that wouldn’t be coveting.
387 Q. What are we commanded by the Tenth Commandment? A. By the Tenth Commandment we are commanded to be content with what we have, and to rejoice in our neighbor's welfare.
387 Q. What does the Tenth Commandment tell us to do? A. The Tenth Commandment tells us to be satisfied with what we have and to celebrate our neighbor's well-being.
388 Q. What is forbidden by the Tenth Commandment? A. The Tenth Commandment forbids all desires to take or keep wrongfully what belongs to another.
388 Q. What does the Tenth Commandment prohibit? A. The Tenth Commandment prohibits all desires to wrongfully take or keep what belongs to someone else.
Lesson 35
ON THE FIRST AND SECOND COMMANDMENTS OF THE CHURCH
Lesson 35
ON THE FIRST AND SECOND COMMANDMENTS OF THE CHURCH
389 Q. Which are the chief commandments of the Church? A. The chief commandments of the Church are six:
389 Q. What are the main commandments of the Church? A. The main commandments of the Church are six:
1. To hear Mass on Sundays and holy days of obligation. 2. To fast and abstain on the days appointed. 3. To confess at least once a year. 4. To receive the Holy Eucharist during the Easter time. 5. To contribute to the support of our pastors. 6. Not to marry persons who are not Catholics, or who are related to us within the third degree of kindred, nor privately without witnesses, nor to solemnize marriage at forbidden times.
1. To attend Mass on Sundays and holy days of obligation. 2. To fast and abstain on the designated days. 3. To confess at least once a year. 4. To receive the Holy Eucharist during Easter. 5. To support our pastors financially. 6. Not to marry people who are not Catholics, or who are related to us within the third degree of kinship, nor to do so privately without witnesses, nor to solemnize marriage during forbidden times.
390 Q. Is it a mortal sin not to hear Mass on a Sunday or a holy day of obligation? A. It is a mortal sin not to hear Mass on a Sunday or a holy day of obligation, unless we are excused for a serious reason. They also commit a mortal sin, who, having others under their charge, hinder them from hearing Mass, without a sufficient reason.
390 Q. Is it a serious sin not to attend Mass on a Sunday or a holy day of obligation? A. It is a serious sin not to attend Mass on a Sunday or a holy day of obligation, unless there's a valid reason. Those who prevent others under their care from attending Mass without a good reason also commit a serious sin.
"Serious reason"—that is, a very good reason, such as sickness, necessity of taking care of the sick, great danger of death, etc. Some persons when they go to the country in the summer believe themselves excused from hearing Mass because the church is a little further from them or the Mass at more inconvenient times than in the city. When they are in the country they are bound by the same obligations as the Catholics who live in that parish the whole year round, and they must go to Mass as these do, even if it is more inconvenient than in the city. Persons who have it in their power to select their own summer resort, should not, without great necessity, select a place where there is no Catholic church, and where they will be deprived of Mass and the Sacraments for several months, and where there is danger of their dying without the Sacraments. Some excuse themselves from going to Mass because they are too tired to rise in the morning. They should be ashamed to give such an excuse. Was our Blessed Lord not tired when He carried His Cross? He was tired, for He fell under it several times. And where was He going? To Calvary, to offer up the bloody sacrifice of the Cross for you. Will you plead fatigue as an excuse when you come to be judged by Him? Others again have a great habit of coming late for Mass. No matter at what hour the Mass may be, they will always be late; and I am afraid these persons will also be too late to enter Heaven. By coming late they show disrespect to Our Lord and distract others; and to avoid doing so, they should, when late, take a place in the rear of the church. When you are very late for one Mass, you should wait for the next—at least, for as much of the next as you did not hear in the first. You should not, however, begrudge a little extra time to God. To hear Mass properly, you should be in your place a few minutes before the priest comes out, and make up your mind what blessing you will ask, or for what intention you desire to hear the Mass.
"Serious reason"—meaning a really good reason, like illness, the need to care for someone sick, or a serious risk of death, etc. Some people, when they go to the countryside in the summer, think they're excused from attending Mass because the church is a bit farther away or the Mass times are less convenient than in the city. While they're in the countryside, they're still bound by the same obligations as the Catholics who live in that parish year-round, and they must attend Mass just like they do, even if it’s more inconvenient than in the city. People who can choose their summer destination shouldn’t pick a place without a Catholic church, where they will miss Mass and the Sacraments for several months and risk dying without the Sacraments. Some excuse themselves from attending Mass because they are too tired to get up in the morning, and they should be embarrassed to use such an excuse. Was our Blessed Lord not tired when He carried His Cross? He was tired, as He fell under it multiple times. And where was He going? To Calvary, to offer up the bloody sacrifice of the Cross for you. Will you use fatigue as an excuse when you stand before Him at judgment? Others have a bad habit of arriving late to Mass. No matter what time the Mass starts, they will always show up late; and I worry these people might also be too late to enter Heaven. By being late, they show disrespect to Our Lord and distract others; to avoid this, they should take a spot at the back of the church when they arrive late. If you are very late for one Mass, you should wait for the next—at least for as much of the next as you missed in the first. You should not, however, resent giving a little extra time to God. To properly attend Mass, you should be in your spot a few minutes before the priest comes out and decide what blessing you will ask for or what intention you want to recall during the Mass.
"Having others under their charge." Some parents are very careless about their children attending Mass, especially on holy days. Now, they must remember that in such neglect the sin will be theirs as well as the children's. Again, masters and mistresses do not at times give their workmen and servants sufficient opportunity to hear Mass, above all on holy days. All masters and mistresses must remember that they are bound not only to give their servants an opportunity to hear Mass, but they are bound as far as they conveniently can to see that they embrace the opportunity, just as they should see to their children in such matters. Catholics having in their employ others, such as engineers, drivers, conductors, etc., must make some arrangement between their men by which they will be able to attend Mass on Sundays and holy days. The same holds good for companies and corporations having under their charge a large force of men who are obliged by circumstances to work on Sundays.
"Having others under their care." Some parents are very careless about their kids going to Mass, especially on holy days. They need to remember that their neglect will be a sin for both them and their children. Similarly, employers sometimes don’t give their workers enough chances to attend Mass, especially on holy days. All employers must remember that they are required not only to provide their employees with the opportunity to go to Mass, but they should also make an effort to ensure they take that opportunity, just like they should for their own children. Catholics who employ others, like engineers, drivers, conductors, etc., should arrange things so their staff can attend Mass on Sundays and holy days. The same applies to companies and corporations with many workers who, due to their jobs, are required to work on Sundays.
*391 Q. Why were holy days instituted by the Church? A. Holy days were instituted by the Church to recall to our minds the great mysteries of religion and the virtues and rewards of the saints.
*391 Q. Why did the Church establish holy days? A. Holy days were established by the Church to remind us of the great mysteries of faith and the virtues and rewards of the saints.
For just the same reason that the government has legal holidays. What would the people of this country know or think at the present time about the Declaration of Independence, and all connected with it, if they did not celebrate from childhood every year, on the Fourth of July, the great day on which their forefathers claimed to be free and independent from the nation that was persecuting them? The Fourth of July keeps alive in our memory the struggles of our ancestors of one hundred years or more ago—their great battles, their sufferings and triumph, the blessings they secured for us, and for which we praise them. In like manner, the feast of the Resurrection of Our Lord keeps us in mind of the sad condition in which we were before Our Lord redeemed us, and how He liberated us from the slavery of the devil and secured for us so many wonderful blessings. Again, what would we remember about George Washington if we did not celebrate his birthday? That holiday keeps before our minds the life and actions of that great man and all he did for our benefit. So, too, when we celebrate every year the feast of a saint in the Church, it keeps before our minds his works and all that he did for God and the Church, and makes us anxious to imitate his virtues. On every day in the year the Church honors some mystery of our holy faith or some saint by saying Mass all over the world in honor of the feast, and by obliging the priests and bishops to say the divine office for the same purpose. The feast-day of a saint is generally the day on which he died; because that is considered the day on which he entered into Heaven—the day on which he was born into the new world.
For the same reason that the government has official holidays. What would people in this country know or think about the Declaration of Independence and everything related to it if they didn’t celebrate every year on the Fourth of July, the significant day when their ancestors declared they were free and independent from the nation that was oppressing them? The Fourth of July keeps alive in our minds the struggles of our ancestors from over a hundred years ago—their great battles, their hardships and victories, the blessings they secured for us, and for which we honor them. Similarly, the feast of the Resurrection of Our Lord reminds us of the sad state we were in before Our Lord redeemed us, and how He freed us from the devil's bondage and granted us so many amazing blessings. Again, what would we remember about George Washington if we didn’t celebrate his birthday? That holiday keeps alive the memory of that great man and all he did for our benefit. Likewise, when we celebrate the feast of a saint in the Church every year, it brings to mind his works and all he did for God and the Church, inspiring us to emulate his virtues. Throughout the year, the Church honors some mystery of our holy faith or some saint by celebrating Mass all over the world in honor of the feast, and by requiring the priests and bishops to pray the divine office for the same reason. The feast day of a saint usually falls on the day he died; this day is considered the day he entered Heaven—the day he was born into the new world.
The "divine office" is a collection of prayers, hymns, lessons, and psalms which every priest and bishop must read every day of his life. As it is said each day in honor of some particular mystery or saint, the greater part of it differs for each day. The prayers are to God, asking some grace or blessing in honor of the saint—generally such graces as were granted to the saint. The hymns are in the saint's honor; the lessons are parts of the Holy Scripture, or an account of the saint's life; and the psalms are those beautiful poems that King David composed and sang to God. The divine office is the prayer of the universal Church for its children, and if a priest neglects to say it he commits a mortal sin. It takes about an hour to say the whole divine office, but it is not intended to be said all at once. It is so divided that it is said at three times in the day. The part called "Matins" and "Lauds" is said very early in the morning and before Mass. The part called "Little Hours" is said later in the day; and the part called "Vespers" and "Compline" is said in the afternoon. See, therefore, how anxious the Church is for the good of its children, when it makes its bishops, priests, and religious pray daily for all the faithful, and send up in one voice the same prayer to the throne of God.
The "divine office" is a set of prayers, hymns, lessons, and psalms that every priest and bishop must read every day of their lives. Since each day honors a specific mystery or saint, most of it changes from day to day. The prayers are directed to God, asking for grace or blessings in honor of the saint—typically the same kinds of graces that were given to the saint. The hymns are dedicated to the saint; the lessons are excerpts from the Holy Scripture or stories about the saint's life; and the psalms are those beautiful poems that King David wrote and sang to God. The divine office is the prayer of the universal Church for its members, and if a priest fails to say it, he commits a mortal sin. It takes about an hour to complete the entire divine office, but it isn't meant to be done all at once. It's divided to be said three times throughout the day. The section called "Matins" and "Lauds" is recited very early in the morning and before Mass. The section known as "Little Hours" is recited later in the day, and the sections called "Vespers" and "Compline" are recited in the afternoon. So, see how committed the Church is to the well-being of its members, as it requires its bishops, priests, and religious to pray daily for all the faithful and to raise a unified prayer to the throne of God.
*392 Q. How should we keep the holy days of obligation? A. We should keep the holy days of obligation as we should keep the Sunday.
*392 Q. How should we observe the holy days of obligation? A. We should observe the holy days of obligation just like we observe Sunday.
393 Q. What do you mean by fast-days? A. By fast-days I mean days on which we are allowed but one full meal.
393 Q. What do you mean by fast days? A. By fast days, I mean days when we are allowed only one full meal.
According to the traditional Catholic method of fasting, one may eat "one full meal" each day with meat included, plus two smaller meatless meals, both of which together do not equal the one full meal. No eating between meals is allowed, although drinking beverages such as coffee and tea are allowed and are not considered to break the fast. (Milk, juice, and soft drinks are also considered not to break the fast, although they are in fact foods and mitigate the effects of the fast and work contrary to its intent because they satisfy one's hunger to some extent, since they have food value.) They, therefore, who follow the above regulations obey the Catholic method of fasting. Today the prescribed days of fast for the whole Church are Ash Wednesday and Good Friday (these are also days of abstinence). However the Church today says that the meaning of the law of fasting during Lent remains, although the extent of the obligation has been changed. In other words, Lent remains as a season of penance in the Church, but how it is to be observed is greatly up to the individual, though no one may think himself excused from all penance whatsoever, and those who are in the fasting age group should still practice the Church's form of fasting, since fasting is a primary and very efficacious form of penance.
According to the traditional Catholic approach to fasting, you can have "one full meal" each day that includes meat, plus two smaller meals that don't contain meat, which together should not equal that one full meal. No eating between meals is permitted, but you can drink beverages like coffee and tea without breaking the fast. (Milk, juice, and soft drinks also don't break the fast, even though they are technically foods and lessen the effects of fasting, working against its purpose since they can satisfy hunger to some degree due to their nutritional content.) Therefore, those who adhere to these guidelines comply with the Catholic fasting method. Currently, the designated fasting days for the entire Church are Ash Wednesday and Good Friday (these are also days of abstinence). However, the Church now states that while the essence of the fasting law during Lent continues, the specific obligations have changed. In other words, Lent remains a time of penance within the Church, but how it's observed is largely up to the individual. Nevertheless, no one can consider themselves exempt from all forms of penance, and those within the appropriate age group for fasting should still practice the Church's fasting guidelines, as fasting is an essential and highly effective way of doing penance.
Those who, for sufficient reasons, are excused from the obligation of fasting, are not on that account freed from the law of abstinence, for all who have reached their fourteenth birthday are bound to abstain from flesh-meat on days when it is forbidden—Ash Wednesday and the Fridays of Lent. The following persons are excused from fasting: (1) those who are not yet twenty-one or who have begun their sixtieth year (from their 59th birthday onward); (2) those whose infirmity, condition, or occupation renders it impossible or dangerous for them to fast. If you think you should be excused from fasting or abstaining, state your reasons to your confessor and ask his advice. On a fast-day, therefore, you have to look both to the quantity and the kind of food, while on a day of abstinence—as the Fridays in Lent other than Good Friday—you have to look only to the kind.
Those who have valid reasons for being excused from fasting are still required to follow the rules of abstinence. Anyone who has turned 14 must avoid eating meat on days when it is prohibited—specifically, Ash Wednesday and the Fridays during Lent. The following individuals are exempt from fasting: (1) those who are under 21 or have just started their 60th year (from their 59th birthday onward); (2) those whose health, situation, or job makes it impossible or unsafe for them to fast. If you believe you should be excused from fasting or abstaining, discuss your reasons with your confessor and ask for their guidance. Therefore, on a fast day, you need to consider both the amount and type of food, while on an abstinence day—such as the Fridays in Lent except for Good Friday—you only need to focus on the type.
394 Q. What do you mean by days of abstinence? A. By days of abstinence I mean days on which we are forbidden to eat flesh-meat, but are allowed the usual amount of food.
394 Q. What do you mean by days of abstinence? A. By days of abstinence, I mean days when we aren't allowed to eat meat, but we can still have our usual amount of food.
395 Q. Why does the Church command us to fast and abstain? A. The Church commands us to fast and abstain in order that we may mortify our passions and satisfy for our sins.
395 Q. Why does the Church tell us to fast and abstain? A. The Church tells us to fast and abstain so that we can control our desires and make amends for our sins.
"Mortify our passions," keep our bodies under control, do bodily penance. Remember it is our bodies that generally lead us into sin; if therefore we punish the body by fasting and mortification, we atone for the sin, and thus God wipes out a part of the temporal punishment due to it.
"Control our desires," keep our bodies in check, and practice self-discipline. Remember that our bodies usually lead us to sin; if we therefore discipline the body through fasting and self-denial, we make up for the sin, and as a result, God lessens some of the temporary punishment we deserve for it.
*396 Q. Why does the Church command us to abstain from flesh-meat on Ash Wednesday and the Fridays of Lent and to abstain from flesh-meat or do some other chosen penance on the other Fridays of the year? A. The Church commands us to abstain, from flesh-meat on Ash Wednesday and the Fridays of Lent and to abstain from flesh-meat or do some other chosen penance on the other Fridays of the year in honor of the day on which Our Saviour died.
*396 Q. Why does the Church tell us to give up meat on Ash Wednesday and the Fridays during Lent, and to either give up meat or do some other penance on the other Fridays of the year? A. The Church asks us to give up meat on Ash Wednesday and the Fridays during Lent, and to either give up meat or choose another form of penance on the other Fridays of the year to honor the day when Our Savior died.
Lesson 36
ON THE THIRD, FOURTH, FIFTH, AND SIXTH COMMANDMENTS OF THE CHURCH
Lesson 36
ABOUT THE THIRD, FOURTH, FIFTH, AND SIXTH COMMANDMENTS OF THE CHURCH
397 Q. What is meant by the command of confessing at least once a year? A. By the command of confessing at least once a year is meant that we are obliged, under pain of mortal sin, to go to confession within the year.
397 Q. What does the requirement to confess at least once a year mean? A. The requirement to confess at least once a year means that we are obligated, under the threat of mortal sin, to go to confession within the year.
"Within the year"—that is, the time between your confessions must never be longer than a year, or, at least not longer than the period between the beginning of one Eastertime and the end of the next. All persons who have attained the age of reason are bound to comply with this precept, and parents should remind their children of it.
"Within the year"—meaning the time between your confessions must never be longer than a year, or at least not longer than the period from the start of one Easter to the end of the next. Everyone who has reached the age of reason is required to follow this guideline, and parents should remind their children about it.
*398 Q. Should we confess only once a year? A. We should confess frequently, if we wish to lead a good life.
*398 Q. Should we confess only once a year? A. We should confess regularly if we want to live a good life.
Some seem to think that they need not go to confession if they have not committed sin since their last confession. Two graces are given in penance, as you already know: one, to take away the sins confessed, and the other, to strengthen us against temptation and enable us to keep our good resolutions. Now, as we are always tempted, we should go frequently to confession to get the grace to resist. The saints used to go to confession very frequently, sometimes every day. They used to go when tempted, to obtain the grace to resist and to expose their temptations to their confessor and ask his advice. Again the Holy Scripture tells us that the just man falls seven times; and "just man" in Holy Scripture means a very good man, that is, one doing for God, his neighbor, and himself what he ought to do. St. Joseph is called in the Scripture a "just man," and he was the foster-father of Our Lord. Now, if the good man falls seven times, he must arise after each fall; for if he did not get up after the first fall, he could not fall the second time. This teaches us that we all commit some kind of sin, at least, and have always something to confess if we only examine our conscience closely. It teaches us also that when we have the misfortune to fall into sin, we should rise as quickly as possible.
Some people think they don’t need to go to confession if they haven’t sinned since their last one. There are two graces we receive in penance: one removes the confessed sins, and the other strengthens us against temptation and helps us stick to our good intentions. Since we are always tempted, we should go to confession frequently to gain the grace to resist. Saints often went to confession very often, sometimes even daily. They would go when tempted, seeking grace to resist and sharing their temptations with their confessor for advice. The Holy Scriptures tell us that even the righteous person falls seven times; and "righteous person" in the Scriptures refers to someone who is very good, meaning they are doing what they should for God, their neighbors, and themselves. St. Joseph is called a "righteous man" in the Scriptures, and he was the foster-father of Our Lord. If a good person falls seven times, they must get back up each time; if they didn’t get up after the first fall, they wouldn’t fall a second time. This shows that we all commit some kind of sin at least once and always have something to confess if we examine our conscience closely. It also teaches us that when we unfortunately fall into sin, we should get back up as quickly as possible.
*399 Q. Should children go to confession? A. Children should go to confession when they are old enough to commit sin, which is commonly about the age of seven years.
*399 Q. Should kids go to confession? A. Kids should go to confession when they are old enough to sin, which is usually around the age of seven.
"To commit sin"—that is, when they know the difference between good and evil.
"To commit sin"—that is, when they understand the difference between right and wrong.
400 Q. What sin does he commit who neglects to receive Communion during the Easter time? A. He who neglects to receive Communion during the Easter time commits a mortal sin.
400 Q. What sin does a person commit when they skip receiving Communion during Easter time? A. A person who skips receiving Communion during Easter time commits a mortal sin.
401 Q. What is the Easter time? A. The Easter time is, in this country, the time between the first Sunday of Lent and Trinity Sunday, inclusive.
401 Q. What is the Easter time? A. The Easter time is, in this country, the period between the first Sunday of Lent and Trinity Sunday, inclusive.
Trinity Sunday is the eighth Sunday after Easter. Therefore the whole Easter-time is from the first Sunday of Lent—that is, seven weeks before Easter—to Trinity Sunday, eight weeks after it, or fifteen weeks in all; and anyone who does not go to Holy Communion sometime during these fifteen weeks commits mortal sin.
Trinity Sunday is the eighth Sunday after Easter. So, the entire Easter season spans from the first Sunday of Lent—seven weeks before Easter—until Trinity Sunday, which is eight weeks after Easter, making it a total of fifteen weeks; and anyone who does not attend Holy Communion at least once during these fifteen weeks commits a serious sin.
402 Q. Are we obliged to contribute to the support of our pastors? A. We are obliged to contribute to the support of our pastors, and to bear our share in the expenses of the Church and school.
402 Q. Are we required to help support our pastors? A. We are required to help support our pastors and to share in the expenses of the Church and school.
And any charitable institution connected with the Church. The Holy Land was divided among the tribes of Israel, who were the descendants of the twelve sons of Jacob. Now, one of these twelve tribes was made up entirely of priests and persons who served in the temple of God, called Levites. They received none of the land, but were to be supported by the other eleven tribes. All the people were obliged by the law to give what they called first-fruits, and tithes—that is, one tenth of their income in goods or money each year to the temple for its support and the support of those who served it. In the New Law no definite amount is assigned, but every Christian is left free to give what he can to God's Church according to his generosity. But if God left you free, should you therefore be stingy with Him? Moreover, all that we have comes from God, and should we return Him the least and the worst? For every alms you give for God's sake He can send you a hundred blessings; and what you refuse to give to His Church or poor He can take from you in a thousand ways, by sending misfortunes. We read in the Bible (Gen. 4) that Adam's sons, Cain and Abel, both offered sacrifice to God. Abel's sacrifice was pleasing, but Cain's was not. Why? Because, as we are told, Cain did not offer to God the best he had, but likely the worst; or at least, he offered his sacrifice with a bad disposition. Then when he saw that his brother's sacrifice was pleasing to God, being filled with jealousy, he killed him; and in punishment God marked him and condemned him to be a wanderer on the face of the earth. We are told he was always afraid of being killed by everyone he saw. See, then, what comes of being unwilling to be generous with God. What we give Him He does not need, but by giving, we worship and thank Him. Do not people in the world often give presents to those who have done them a favor, that they may thus show their gratitude? Now, God is always doing us favors, and why should we not show our gratitude to Him by giving generously in His honor? When we give to the orphans, etc., we give to Him; for He says: "Whatsoever you give to these little ones you give to Me." Again, when Our Lord tells what will happen on the Day of Judgment (Matt. 25:31, etc.), He says, the Judge will divide all the people of the world into two bodies; the good He will place on His right hand and the wicked on His left. Then He will praise the good for what they did and welcome them to Heaven; but to the wicked He will say, "Depart from Me, because when I was hungry you gave Me not to eat; when I was thirsty you gave Me not to drink; you clothed Me not," etc. And then the wicked shall ask, when did we see You in want and not relieve You? He will tell them that He considered the poor just the same as Himself; and as they did nothing for His poor, they did nothing for Him.
And any charitable organization associated with the Church. The Holy Land was divided among the tribes of Israel, who were the descendants of Jacob's twelve sons. One of these tribes was made up entirely of priests and those who served in God's temple, called Levites. They received no land but were to be supported by the other eleven tribes. Everyone was required by law to give what they referred to as first-fruits and tithes—that is, ten percent of their income in goods or money each year to support the temple and those who served there. In the New Law, there's no specific amount given, so every Christian is free to contribute what they can to God's Church based on their generosity. But if God gives you that freedom, should you really hold back from Him? Besides, everything we have comes from God, so should we return Him the least and the worst? For every act of charity you make for God's sake, He can bless you a hundredfold; and what you refuse to give to His Church or the needy, He can take away from you in many ways through misfortunes. We read in the Bible (Gen. 4) that Adam's sons, Cain and Abel, both made sacrifices to God. Abel's sacrifice was pleasing, but Cain's wasn’t. Why? Because, as we're told, Cain didn't offer God the best he had, but probably the worst; or at least, he made his sacrifice with a bad attitude. Then when he saw that his brother's sacrifice was pleasing to God, he became jealous and killed him; as punishment, God marked him and condemned him to wander the earth. We're told he was always afraid of being killed by anyone he encountered. So, see what happens when you're unwilling to be generous with God. What we give Him is something He doesn't need, but in giving, we worship and thank Him. Don't people often give gifts to those who have done them a favor to show their appreciation? God is always doing us favors, so why shouldn't we show our gratitude by giving generously in His honor? When we give to orphans, etc., we're giving to Him; for He says, "Whatever you do for these little ones, you do for Me." Moreover, when our Lord describes what will happen on Judgment Day (Matt. 25:31, etc.), He says the Judge will separate all the people of the world into two groups; the good will be placed on His right and the wicked on His left. He will praise the good for their actions and welcome them to Heaven; but to the wicked, He will say, "Depart from Me, for when I was hungry, you didn’t feed Me; when I was thirsty, you didn’t give Me anything to drink; you didn’t clothe Me," etc. And the wicked will ask, when did we see You in need and not help You? He will tell them that He views the poor as being the same as Himself; and since they did nothing for His poor, they did nothing for Him.
*403 Q. What is the meaning of the commandment not to marry within the third degree of kindred? A. The meaning of the commandment not to marry within the third degree of kindred is that no one is allowed to marry another within the third degree of blood relationship.
*403 Q. What does the commandment about not marrying within the third degree of kindred mean? A. The commandment not to marry within the third degree of kindred means that no one is allowed to marry someone who is closely related by blood within that degree.
"Third Degree." What relatives are in the third degree? Brother and sister are in the first degree; first cousins are in the second degree; second cousins are in the third degree. Therefore all who are second cousins or in nearer relationship cannot be married without a dispensation from the Church allowing them to do so. A dispensation granted by the Church is a permission to do something which its law forbids. Since it made the law, it can also dispense from the observance of it. The Church could not give permission to do anything that God's law forbids. It could not, for example, give permission to a brother and sister to marry, because it is not alone the law of the Church but God's law also that forbids that. But God's law does not forbid first or second cousins to get married; but the Church's law forbids it, and thus it can in special cases dispense from such laws. God's law is called also the natural law. You must be very careful not to confound the marriage laws that the Church makes with the marriage laws that the State makes. When the State makes laws contrary to the laws of God or of the Church, you cannot obey such laws without committing grievous sin. For instance, the State allows divorce; it allows persons to marry again if the husband or wife has been sentenced to imprisonment for life; it does not recognize all the impediments to marriage laid down by the Church. Such laws as these Catholics cannot comply with; but when the State makes laws which regard only the civil effects of marriage, such as refer to the property of the husband or wife, the inheritance of the children, etc., laws, in a word, which are not opposed either to the laws of God or of His Church, then you may and must obey them; for the authorities of the government are our lawful superiors, and must be obeyed in all that is not sin. What we have said with regard to the marriage laws is true for all the rest. Thus the civil court might, on account of some technicality, free you legally from the payment of a debt; but that would not free you in conscience from paying what you justly owe. Again, the court might legally decide in your favor in an unjust suit; but that would not give you the right in conscience to keep what you have thus fraudulently or unjustly obtained.
"Third Degree." Which relatives fall into the third degree? Brothers and sisters are in the first degree; first cousins are in the second degree; second cousins are in the third degree. Therefore, anyone who is a second cousin or closer cannot marry without a dispensation from the Church permitting it. A dispensation granted by the Church is permission to do something that its laws prohibit. Since the Church established these laws, it can also grant exceptions to them. The Church cannot allow anything that God's law forbids. For instance, it cannot permit a brother and sister to marry, as both Church law and God's law prohibit that. However, God's law does not restrict first or second cousins from marrying; Church law does, so it can grant exceptions in special cases. God's law is also known as natural law. It's important to not confuse the marriage laws established by the Church with those established by the State. When the State enacts laws that contradict God's laws or the Church’s laws, obeying such laws would involve serious sin. For example, the State allows divorce; it permits people to remarry if their spouse has been sentenced to life imprisonment; it does not recognize all the impediments to marriage defined by the Church. Catholics cannot adhere to such laws, but when the State creates laws that only concern the civil aspects of marriage—like property rights of spouses or inheritance for children—laws that do not oppose God's laws or those of the Church, then you should and must follow them; for the government authorities are our legitimate superiors and must be obeyed in all matters that are not sinful. What we have said regarding marriage laws holds true for all other matters. Thus, a civil court might, due to some technicality, legally release you from having to pay a debt; however, that wouldn’t absolve your conscience regarding the obligation to pay what you owe. Similarly, the court might rule in your favor in an unjust lawsuit, but that doesn’t give you the right in conscience to keep what you’ve obtained fraudulently or unjustly.
*404 Q. What is the meaning of the command not to marry privately? A. The command not to marry privately means that none should marry without the blessing of God's priests or without witnesses.
*404 Q. What does it mean to not marry privately? A. Not marrying privately means that no one should get married without the blessing of God's priests or without witnesses.
If persons wishing to be married suspect that there is any impediment existing between them, they should express their doubts and the reasons for them to the priest.
If people wanting to get married suspect that there’s a problem between them, they should share their concerns and the reasons behind them with the priest.
Here it is well for you to know that if any Catholic goes to be married before a Protestant minister, he is, by the laws of the Church in the United States, excommunicated. [In 1966 the penalty of excommunication for this offense was lifted by the Sacred Congregation for the Doctrine of the Faith. Yet it remains a mortal sin for a Catholic to attempt to marry outside the Catholic Church, and such a "marriage" will be invalid.] You must know excommunication means cut off from the communion of the Church and the body of the faithful; cut off from the Sacraments and from a share in all the holy Masses and public prayers offered by the Church throughout the world. It is a punishment the Church inflicts upon its disobedient children who will not repent but persist in wrongdoing. If they die willfully excommunicated, they die in mortal sin, and no Mass or funeral prayers can be publicly offered for them; nor can they be buried in consecrated ground. Besides the excommunicated, there are others who cannot be buried in consecrated ground: namely, infants or others who have not been baptized; those who deliberately committed suicide; those who have publicly lived sinful lives and evidently died in that public sin; and all persons who are not Catholics. If a Catholic who is not publicly a sinner dies suddenly, we cannot judge that he is in mortal sin; and hence such a one may be buried in consecrated ground.
Here, it’s important for you to know that if any Catholic gets married in front of a Protestant minister, they are, according to the laws of the Church in the United States, excommunicated. [In 1966, the penalty of excommunication for this offense was lifted by the Sacred Congregation for the Doctrine of the Faith. However, it remains a mortal sin for a Catholic to attempt to marry outside of the Catholic Church, and such a "marriage" will be invalid.] You should understand that excommunication means being cut off from the communion of the Church and the community of believers; cut off from the Sacraments and from participating in all the holy Masses and public prayers offered by the Church around the world. It is a punishment the Church imposes on its disobedient children who refuse to repent and continue in wrongdoing. If they die while excommunicated, they die in mortal sin, and no Mass or funeral prayers can be publicly offered for them; nor can they be buried in consecrated ground. Besides those who are excommunicated, there are others who cannot be buried in consecrated ground: namely, infants or others who haven't been baptized; those who deliberately committed suicide; those who have openly lived sinful lives and clearly died in that public sin; and all individuals who are not Catholics. If a Catholic who isn't publicly a sinner dies suddenly, we cannot assume they are in mortal sin; therefore, such a person may be buried in consecrated ground.
It is the desire of the Church that all its faithful children should be buried in the ground which it has blessed for their remains; and wherever it is possible Catholics must have their own burying ground.
It is the Church's wish that all its faithful members should be buried in the ground it has blessed for their remains; and wherever possible, Catholics should have their own burial site.
*405 Q. What is the meaning of the precept not to solemnize marriage at forbidden times? A. The meaning of the precept not to solemnize marriage at forbidden times is that during Lent and Advent the marriage ceremony should not be performed with pomp or a nuptial Mass.
*405 Q. What does it mean to not conduct marriages during forbidden times? A. It means that during Lent and Advent, weddings shouldn't be celebrated with extravagance or a nuptial Mass.
Persons may be married at these times quietly, wherever it is not positively forbidden by the laws of the diocese.
People can get married quietly at these times, wherever it isn't explicitly forbidden by the laws of the diocese.
*406 Q. What is the nuptial Mass? A. The nuptial Mass is a Mass appointed by the Church to invoke a special blessing upon the married couple.
*406 Q. What is the wedding Mass? A. The wedding Mass is a Mass designated by the Church to ask for a special blessing on the married couple.
It is a Mass especially for them and cannot be said for anyone else. At the most solemn parts of the Mass the priest turns to them and prays that God may bless their union.
It is a special Mass just for them and cannot be said for anyone else. At the most solemn parts of the Mass, the priest turns to them and prays that God will bless their union.
*407 Q. Should Catholics be married at a nuptial Mass? A. Catholics should be married at a nuptial Mass, because they thereby show greater reverence for the holy Sacrament and bring richer blessings upon their wedded life.
*407 Q. Should Catholics get married during a nuptial Mass? A. Catholics should get married during a nuptial Mass because it shows greater respect for the holy Sacrament and brings more blessings to their married life.
The Church wishes to give to the marriage of its children observing its laws all the solemnity possible, and to impress its dignity and sanctity so deeply upon their minds that they may never forget the solemn promise made at the altar of God. The thought of that day will keep them from sin. On the other hand, the Church shows its great displeasure when Catholics do not keep its laws, but marry persons not of their own religion. At a mixed marriage the couple cannot be married in the church, nor even in the sacristy; the priest cannot wear a surplice or stole or any of the sacred vestments of the Church; he cannot use holy water, or the Sign of the Cross; he cannot bless the ring or even use the Church's language—Latin. Everything is done in the coldest manner, to remind Catholics that they are doing what is displeasing to their mother the Church.
The Church aims to give the marriages of its members the utmost seriousness and to instill a sense of dignity and sanctity so deeply that they will never forget the solemn promise made at God's altar. The memory of that day will help prevent them from sinning. Conversely, the Church expresses its strong disapproval when Catholics don't follow its rules and marry outside their religion. In a mixed marriage, the couple cannot be married in the church or even in the sacristy; the priest cannot wear a surplice, stole, or any sacred vestments; he cannot use holy water or make the Sign of the Cross; he cannot bless the ring or even use the Church's language—Latin. Everything is conducted in the coldest manner to remind Catholics that they are acting in a way that displeases their mother, the Church.
Again the Church wishes its children to prepare for the Sacrament of Matrimony just as they would prepare for any other Sacrament—Penance, Holy Eucharist, Holy Orders, etc. Imagine a boy going up for First Communion laughing, talking, or gazing about him, without any thought of the great Sacrament he is about to receive; thinking only of how he appears in his new clothing, of those who are present, etc., and spending all his time of preparation not in purifying his soul, but in adorning his body! Think of him returning from Holy Communion and immediately forgetting Our Lord! Now, Matrimony is deserving of all the respect due to a Sacrament, and hence the Church wishes all its children to be married at Mass; or at least in the morning. It does not like them to marry in the evening, and go to the reception of the Sacrament as they would to a place of vain amusement. For on such occasions they cannot show the proper respect in the church, and possibly turn the ceremony into an occasion of sin for all who attend; for they often seem to forget the holiness of the place and the respect due to the presence of Our Lord upon the altar. Indeed it should be remembered, at whatever time the marriage takes place, that conduct, dress, and all else must be in keeping with the dignity of the place and the holiness of the Sacrament, and the women should not come into the Church with uncovered heads.
Again, the Church wants its members to prepare for the Sacrament of Matrimony just like they would for any other Sacrament—Penance, Holy Eucharist, Holy Orders, etc. Imagine a boy going up for First Communion laughing, chatting, or looking around, without any thought of the great Sacrament he’s about to receive; only focused on his new clothes or those who are there, spending all his preparation time not in getting his soul ready, but in looking good! Picture him coming back from Holy Communion and instantly forgetting about Our Lord! Now, Matrimony deserves all the respect that comes with being a Sacrament, so the Church wants all its members to get married at Mass, or at least in the morning. It doesn't like them marrying in the evening and treating the reception like a party. On those occasions, they can’t show the proper respect in church and may turn the ceremony into a moment of sin for everyone present; they often seem to forget the sacredness of the place and the respect owed to Our Lord on the altar. It should be remembered, no matter when the marriage occurs, that behavior, attire, and everything else must match the dignity of the place and the holiness of the Sacrament, and women should not enter the Church with their heads uncovered.
Lesson 37
ON THE LAST JUDGMENT AND THE RESURRECTION, HELL, PURGATORY, AND HEAVEN
Lesson 37
ABOUT THE FINAL JUDGMENT AND THE RESURRECTION, HELL, PURGATORY, AND HEAVEN
408 Q. When will Christ judge us? A. Christ will judge us immediately after our death, and on the last day.
408 Q. When will Christ judge us? A. Christ will judge us right after we die, and on the last day.
"Immediately." In the very room and on the very spot where we die, we shall be judged in an instant, and even before those around us are sure that we are really dead. When we have a trial or judgment in one of our courts, we see the judge listening, the lawyers defending or trying to condemn, and the witnesses for or against the person accused. We are in the habit of imagining something of the same kind to take place in the judgment of God. We see Almighty God seated on His throne; our angel and patron saint giving their testimony about us—good or bad—and then we hear the Judge pronounce sentence. This takes place, but not in the way we imagine, for God needs no witnesses: He knows all. An example will probably make you understand better what really takes place. If you are walking over a very muddy road on a dark night, you cannot see the spattered condition of your clothing; but if you come suddenly into a strong light you will see at a glance the state in which you are. In the same way the soul during our earthly life does not see its own condition; but when it comes into the bright light of God's presence, it sees in an instant its own state and knows what its sentence will be. It goes immediately to its reward or punishment. This judgment at the moment of our death will settle our fate forever. The general judgment will not change, but only repeat, the sentence before the whole world. Oh, how we should prepare for that awful moment! See that poor sick man slowly breathing away his life. All his friends are kneeling around him praying; now he becomes unconscious; now the death rattle sounds in his throat; now the eyes are fixed and glassy. A few minutes more and that poor soul will stand in the awful presence of God, to give an account of that man's whole life—of every thought, word, and deed. All he has done on earth will be spread out before him like a great picture. He will, towards the end of his life, have altogether forgotten perhaps what he thought, said, or did on a certain day and hour—the place he was in and the sin committed, etc.; but at that moment of judgment he will remember all. How he will wish he had been good! How, then, can we be so careless now about a matter of such importance, when we are absolutely certain that we too shall be judged, and how soon we know not. When you are about to be examined on what you have learned in school or instructions in six months or a year, how anxious you are in making the necessary preparation, and how you fear you might not pass, but be kept back for a while! How delighted you would be to hear that a very dear friend, and one who knew you well, was to be your examiner! Prepare in the same way for the examination you have to stand at the end of your life. Every day you can make a preparation by examining your conscience on the sins you have committed; by making an act of contrition for them, and resolving to avoid them for the future. You should never go to sleep without some preparation for judgment. But above all, try to become better acquainted with your Examiner—Our Lord Jesus Christ; try by your prayers and good works to become His special friend, and when your judgment comes you will be pleased rather than afraid to meet Him.
"Immediately." In the exact room and on the exact spot where we die, we will be judged in an instant, even before those around us are sure that we are really dead. When we have a trial or judgment in one of our courts, we see the judge listening, the lawyers either defending or trying to condemn, and the witnesses for or against the accused. We tend to imagine something similar happening in God's judgment. We envision Almighty God seated on His throne; our angel and patron saint giving their testimony about us—good or bad—and then we hear the Judge pronounce the sentence. This does happen, but not in the way we imagine, because God needs no witnesses: He knows everything. An example might help clarify what really occurs. If you’re walking along a muddy road on a dark night, you can't see how dirty your clothes are; but if you suddenly step into a bright light, you will instantly see your condition. Similarly, during our earthly life, the soul does not see its own state; but when it comes into the bright light of God's presence, it instantly understands its condition and knows what its sentence will be. It moves immediately to its reward or punishment. This judgment at the moment of our death will determine our fate forever. The general judgment will not change this, only restate the sentence for all to see. Oh, how we should prepare for that dreadful moment! Look at that poor sick man slowly breathing his last. All his friends are kneeling around him to pray; now he becomes unconscious; now the death rattle is heard in his throat; now his eyes are fixed and glassy. In a few more minutes, that poor soul will stand in the terrifying presence of God, accountable for his entire life—every thought, word, and deed. All he has done on earth will be laid out before him like a huge image. By the end of his life, he may have completely forgotten what he thought, said, or did on a certain day and hour—the place he was and the sin committed, etc.; but at that moment of judgment, he will remember everything. How he will wish he had been good! So how can we be so careless now about something so important, when we are absolutely certain that we too will be judged, and we don’t know when? When you’re about to be tested on what you’ve learned in school over the last six months or a year, how anxious you are to prepare, and how you fear you might fail and have to be held back! How delighted you would be to learn that a dear friend, someone who knows you well, would be your examiner! Prepare in the same way for the examination you will face at the end of your life. Every day, you can get ready by examining your conscience about the sins you’ve committed; making an act of contrition for them, and resolving to avoid them in the future. You should never go to sleep without some preparation for judgment. But most importantly, try to get to know your Examiner better—Our Lord Jesus Christ; strive through your prayers and good deeds to become His special friend, and when your judgment comes, you will be happier than afraid to meet Him.
409 Q. What is the judgment called which we have to undergo immediately
after death?
A. The judgment we have to undergo immediately after death is called the
Particular Judgment.
409 Q. What is the judgment called that we have to face right after
death?
A. The judgment we have to face immediately after death is called the
Particular Judgment.
"Particular," because one particular person is judged.
"Particular," because one specific person is judged.
410 Q. What is the judgment called which all men have to undergo on the last day? A. The judgment which all men have to undergo on the last day is called the General Judgment.
410 Q. What is the judgment called that everyone has to face on the last day? A. The judgment that everyone has to face on the last day is called the General Judgment.
"General," because every creature gifted with intelligence will be judged on that day—the angels of Heaven, the devils of Hell, and all men, women, and children that have ever lived upon the earth. The Holy Scripture gives us a terrible account of that awful day. (Matt. 24-25). On some day—we know not when, it might be tomorrow for all we know—the world will be going on as usual, some going to school, others to business; some seeking pleasure, others suffering pain; some in health, others in sickness, etc. Suddenly they will feel the earth beginning to quake and tremble; they will see the ocean in great fury, and will be terrified at its roar as, surging and foaming, it throws its mighty waves high in the air. Then the sun will grow red and begin to darken; a horrid glare will spread over the earth, beginning to burn up. Then, says the Holy Scripture, men will wither away for fear of what is coming; they will call upon the mountains to fall and hide them; they will be rushing here and there, not knowing what to do. Money will be of no value then; dress, wealth, fame, power, learning, and all else will be useless, for at that moment all men will be equal. Then shall be heard the sound of the angel's great trumpet calling all to judgment. The dead shall come forth from their graves, and the demons rush from Hell. Then all shall see our Blessed Lord coming in the clouds of Heaven in great power and majesty surrounded by countless angels bearing His shining Cross before Him. He will separate the good from the wicked; He will welcome the good to Heaven and condemn the wicked to Hell. The sins committed shall be made public before all present. Imagine your feelings while you are standing in that great multitude, waiting for the separation of the good from the bad. To which side will you be sent? Our Lord is coming, not with the mild countenance of a saviour, but with the severe look of a judge. As He draws nearer and nearer to you, you see some of your dear friends, whom you thought good enough upon earth, sent over to the side of the wicked; you see others that you deemed foolish sent with the good, and you become more anxious every instant about the uncertainty of your own fate. You see fathers and mothers sent to opposite sides, brothers and sisters, parents and children, separated forever. Oh, what a terrible moment of suspense! How you will wish you had been better and always lived a friend of God! The side you will be on depends upon what you do now, and you can be on the better side if you wish. Do, then, in your life what you would wish to have done at that terrible moment. Learn to judge yourself frequently. Say this, or something similar, to yourself. "Now I have lived twelve, fifteen, twenty, or more years; if that judgment came today, on which side should I be? Probably on the side of the wicked. If then I spend the rest of my life as I have lived in the past, on the last day I shall surely be with the wicked. If my good deeds and bad deeds were counted today, which would be more numerous? What, then, must I do? It will not be enough for me simply to be better for the future—I must try also to make amends for the past. If a man wishing to complete a journey on a certain time, by walking a fixed number of miles each day, falls behind a great deal on one day, he must not only walk the usual number of miles the next, but must make up for the distance lost on the previous day. So in our journey through this life we must do our duty each day for the future, and, as far as we can, make up for what we have neglected in the past.
"General," because every being with intelligence will be judged on that day—the angels in Heaven, the devils in Hell, and all men, women, and children who have ever lived on earth. The Holy Scripture gives us a chilling account of that dreadful day. (Matt. 24-25). One day—we don't know when, it could be tomorrow for all we know—the world will carry on as usual, some going to school, others to work; some seeking pleasure, others enduring pain; some in good health, others in sickness, etc. Suddenly, they will feel the ground starting to shake; they will see the ocean in a wild rage, terrified by its roar as, surging and frothing, it hurls its massive waves high into the air. Then, the sun will turn red and start to darken; a dreadful glare will spread over the earth, beginning to scorch it. Then, says the Holy Scripture, people will fade away in fear of what is approaching; they will cry out for the mountains to fall and hide them; they will be running frantically, unsure of what to do. Money will hold no value then; clothing, wealth, fame, power, education, and everything else will be useless, for at that moment everyone will be equal. Then the sound of the angel's great trumpet will be heard, calling everyone to judgment. The dead will rise from their graves, and the demons will rush from Hell. Then all will see our Blessed Lord coming in the clouds of Heaven with great power and majesty, surrounded by countless angels bearing His shining Cross before Him. He will separate the good from the wicked; He will welcome the good to Heaven and condemn the wicked to Hell. The sins committed will be revealed before all present. Imagine how you'll feel standing in that vast crowd, waiting for the separation of the good from the bad. To which side will you be sent? Our Lord is coming, not with the gentle face of a savior, but with the stern look of a judge. As He gets closer and closer to you, you’ll see some of your dear friends, whom you thought were good enough in life, sent to the side of the wicked; you’ll see others whom you considered foolish sent with the good, and your anxiety will grow every moment about the uncertainty of your own fate. You’ll see fathers and mothers sent to opposite sides, brothers and sisters, parents and children, separated forever. Oh, what a terrible moment of suspense! How you will wish you had been better and always lived as a friend of God! The side you end up on depends on what you do now, and you can choose to be on the better side if you wish. So, in your life, act as you would wish you had acted at that terrifying moment. Learn to evaluate yourself regularly. Say this, or something like it, to yourself: "Now I have lived twelve, fifteen, twenty, or more years; if that judgment came today, which side would I be on? Probably on the side of the wicked. If I spend the rest of my life as I have lived in the past, on that last day, I will surely end up with the wicked. If my good deeds and bad deeds were counted today, which would be more numerous? What, then, do I need to do? It won’t be enough for me to just improve moving forward—I must also try to make amends for the past. If someone wants to complete a journey in a certain timeframe by walking a fixed number of miles each day, but falls significantly behind one day, they cannot just walk the usual number of miles the next day; they must also make up for the distance lost the day before. Similarly, in our journey through life, we must do our duty each day for the future and, as much as we can, compensate for what we have neglected in the past.
*411 Q. Why does Christ judge men immediately after death? A. Christ judges men immediately after death to reward or punish them according to their deeds.
*411 Q. Why does Christ judge people right after they die? A. Christ judges people right after they die to reward or punish them based on their actions.
412 Q. What are the rewards or punishments appointed for men's souls after the Particular Judgment? A. The rewards or punishments appointed for men's souls after the Particular Judgment are Heaven, Purgatory, and Hell.
412 Q. What are the rewards or punishments assigned to people's souls after the Particular Judgment? A. The rewards or punishments assigned to people's souls after the Particular Judgment are Heaven, Purgatory, and Hell.
413 Q. What is Hell? A. Hell is a state to which the wicked are condemned, and in which they are deprived of the sight of God for all eternity, and are in dreadful torments.
413 Q. What is Hell? A. Hell is a condition where the wicked are sentenced, where they are permanently separated from the presence of God and endure terrible suffering.
"Deprived of the sight of God." This is called the pain of loss, while the other sufferings the damned endure are called the pain of sense—that is, of the senses. The pain of loss causes the unfortunate souls more torment than all their other sufferings; for as we are created for God alone, the loss of Him—our last end—is the most dreadful evil that can befall us. This the damned realize, and know that their souls will be tortured by a perpetual yearning never to be satisfied. This is aggravated by the thought of how easily they might have been saved, and how foolishly they threw away their happiness and lost all for some miserable pleasure or gratification, so quickly ended.
"Being deprived of the sight of God." This is referred to as the pain of loss, while the other sufferings the damned endure are known as the pain of sense—that is, relating to the senses. The pain of loss inflicts more torment on the unfortunate souls than all their other sufferings combined; since we are created for God alone, losing Him—our ultimate purpose—is the most terrible evil that can happen to us. The damned understand this and realize that their souls will be tortured by an everlasting longing that will never be fulfilled. This is intensified by the awareness of how easily they could have been saved and how foolishly they threw away their happiness, losing everything for some fleeting pleasure or satisfaction that ended so quickly.
Besides this remorse, they suffer most frightful torments in all their senses. The worst sufferings you could imagine would not be as bad as the sufferings of the damned really are; for Hell must be the opposite of Heaven, and since we cannot, as St. Paul says, imagine the happiness of Heaven, neither can we imagine the misery of Hell. Sometimes you will find frightful descriptions of Hell in religious books that tell of the horrible sights, awful sounds, disgusting stenches, and excruciating pains the lost souls endure. Now, all these descriptions are given rather to make people think of the torments of Hell than as an accurate account of them. No matter how terrible the description may be, it is never as bad as the reality. We know that the damned are continually tormented in all their senses, but just in what way we do not know. We know that there is fire in Hell, but it is entirely different from our fire; it neither gives light nor consumes what it burns, and it causes greater pain than the fire of earth, for it affects both body and soul. We know that the damned will never see God and there will never be an end to their torments. Now, all this is contained in the following: Hell is the absence of everything good and the presence of everything evil, and it will last forever. Now, a priest coming out to preach on Hell would not say to the people: "Hell is the absence of everything good and the presence of everything evil, and it will last forever," and then step down from the altar and say no more. He must give a fuller explanation to those who are unable to think for themselves. He must point out some of the evils present in Hell and some of the good things absent, and thus teach the people how to meditate on these dreadful truths. If, then, you bear in mind that there is nothing good in Hell and it will last forever, and often think of these two points, you will have a holy fear of the woeful place and a deep sorrow for your sins which expose you to the danger of suffering its torments.
Besides this guilt, they experience the most terrifying torment in every sense. The worst suffering you could imagine isn't even close to what those damned truly endure; Hell must be the opposite of Heaven, and since, as St. Paul says, we can't imagine the joy of Heaven, we also can’t fathom the agony of Hell. Sometimes you come across horrifying descriptions of Hell in religious texts that detail the awful sights, terrible sounds, foul smells, and unbearable pains that lost souls experience. However, these descriptions are meant more to make people consider the torments of Hell rather than provide an accurate representation of them. No matter how horrific the description may be, it can never truly capture the reality. We know the damned are constantly tortured in every sense, but we don’t know exactly how. We understand that there is fire in Hell, but it’s completely different from our fire; it neither gives off light nor burns up what it consumes, and it inflicts greater pain than earthly fire, as it affects both body and soul. We know that the damned will never see God, and that their suffering will never end. All of this boils down to: Hell is the absence of all good and the presence of all evil, and this state will last forever. Now, if a priest were to come out to preach about Hell, he wouldn’t just say, "Hell is the absence of everything good and the presence of everything evil, and it will last forever," and then step down from the altar without further explanation. He must provide a more thorough explanation for those who have a harder time thinking for themselves. He needs to highlight some of the evils present in Hell and some of the good things missing, teaching people how to reflect on these dreadful truths. If you keep in mind that there is nothing good in Hell and that it lasts forever, and often contemplate these two points, you will develop a holy fear of that miserable place and a deep sorrow for your sins that put you at risk of suffering its torments.
It should be enough, therefore, for you to remember: there is nothing good in Hell, and it will last forever. Think of anything good you please and it cannot be found in Hell. Is light good? Yes. Then it is not in Hell. Is hope good? Yes. Then it is not in Hell. Is true friendship good? Yes. Then it is not in Hell. There the damned hate one another. There the poor sufferers curse forever those who led them into sin. Hence, persons should try to bring back to a good life everyone they may have led into sin or scandalized by bad example.
It should be enough for you to remember this: there’s nothing good in Hell, and it lasts forever. Think of anything good you want, and it’s not found in Hell. Is light good? Yes. Then it’s not in Hell. Is hope good? Yes. Then it’s not in Hell. Is true friendship good? Yes. Then it’s not in Hell. There, the damned hate each other. There, the suffering curse forever those who led them into sin. Therefore, people should try to bring back to a good life anyone they may have led into sin or scandalized by bad example.
414 Q. What is Purgatory? A. Purgatory is the state in which those suffer for a time who die guilty of venial sins, or without having satisfied for the punishment due to their sins.
414 Q. What is Purgatory? A. Purgatory is the state where those who die with venial sins or without having fulfilled the punishment for their sins suffer for a time.
"Punishment"—that is, temporal punishment, already explained to you. After the general judgment there will be Heaven and Hell, but no Purgatory, for there will be no men living or dying upon the earth in its present condition to go there. All will be dead and judged and sent to their final abodes. Those in Purgatory are the friends of God; and knowing Him as they do now, they would not go into His holy presence with the slightest stain upon their souls; still they are anxious for their Purgatory to be ended that they may be with God. They suffer, we are told, the same pains of sense as the damned; but they suffer willingly, for they know that it is making them more pleasing to God, and that one day it will all be over and He will receive them into Heaven. Their salvation is sure, and that thought makes them happy. If, therefore, you believe any of your friends are in Purgatory, you should help them all you can, and try by your prayers and good works to shorten their time of suffering. They will help you—though they cannot help themselves—by their prayers. And oh, when they are admitted into Heaven, how they will pray for those that have helped them out of Purgatory! If you do this great charity, God will, when you die, put in some good person's heart to pray for you while you suffer in Purgatory. There must be a Purgatory, for one who dies with the slightest stain of sin upon his soul cannot enter Heaven, and yet God would not send him to Hell for so small a sin. But why does God punish those He loves? Why does He not forgive everything? He punishes because He is infinitely just and true. He warned them that if they did certain things they would be punished; and they did them, and God must keep His promise. Moreover He is just, and must give to everyone exactly what he deserves.
"Punishment"—specifically, temporary punishment, as I've already explained to you. After the final judgment, there will be Heaven and Hell, but no Purgatory, since there will be no living or dying people on Earth as it is now. Everyone will be dead, judged, and assigned to their final destinations. Those in Purgatory are God's friends; and knowing Him as they do now, they wouldn’t dare enter His holy presence with even the slightest stain on their souls. Still, they are eager for their time in Purgatory to end so they can be with God. They suffer, we’re told, the same pains as the damned; but they endure it willingly because they understand it makes them more pleasing to God, and that one day it will all be over and He will welcome them into Heaven. Their salvation is guaranteed, and that thought brings them joy. If you believe any of your friends are in Purgatory, you should help them as much as you can, and try through your prayers and good deeds to shorten their suffering. They will support you—though they cannot help themselves—by their prayers. And oh, when they enter Heaven, how they will pray for those who helped them escape from Purgatory! If you do this great kindness, God will, when you die, inspire someone good to pray for you while you are in Purgatory. There must be a Purgatory, because someone who dies with even the smallest stain of sin on their soul cannot enter Heaven, yet God wouldn’t send them to Hell for such a minor sin. But why does God punish those He loves? Why doesn’t He forgive everything? He punishes because He is infinitely just and truthful. He warned them that if they did certain things, they would be punished; they did them anyway, and God must keep His promise. Furthermore, He is just and must give everyone exactly what they deserve.
*415 Q. Can the faithful on earth help the souls in Purgatory? A. The faithful on earth can help the souls in Purgatory by their prayers, fasts, almsdeeds; by indulgences, and by having Masses said for them.
*415 Q. Can the people on earth help the souls in Purgatory? A. People on earth can help the souls in Purgatory through their prayers, fasting, charitable deeds, by obtaining indulgences, and by having Masses said for them.
*416 Q. If everyone is judged immediately after death, what need is there of a general judgment? A. There is need of a general judgment, though everyone is judged immediately after death, that the providence of God, which, on earth, often permits the good to suffer and the wicked to prosper, may in the end appear just before all men.
*416 Q. If everyone is judged right after they die, why is there a need for a final judgment? A. There is a need for a final judgment, even though everyone is judged right after death, so that God's justice, which on earth often allows good people to suffer and bad people to thrive, can ultimately be shown to be fair to everyone.
"Providence of God." Sometimes here on earth we see a good man always in want, out of employment, sickly, unsuccessful in all his undertakings, while his neighbor, who is a very bad man, is wealthy and prosperous, and seems to have every pleasure. Why this is so we cannot understand now, but God's reason for it will be made known to us on the Day of Judgment. Sometimes the wicked do good actions here on earth—help the poor, or contribute to some charity, for instance; and as God on account of their wickedness cannot reward them in the next world, He rewards them chiefly in this world by temporal goods and pleasures. For all their good deeds they get their reward in this world, and for the evil their punishment in the next. The good man who suffers gets all his reward in the next world, that even his sufferings here atone partly for the evil he has done.
"Divine Providence." Sometimes, we see a good person struggling, out of work, unhealthy, and failing in their efforts, while their neighbor, who is not a good person, enjoys wealth and success, indulging in every pleasure. We can't understand why this happens now, but the reasons will be revealed to us on Judgment Day. Sometimes, bad people perform good deeds here on earth—like helping the poor or donating to charity; since God cannot reward them in the afterlife due to their wickedness, He grants them rewards in this life through material wealth and pleasure. For all their good acts, they receive their payoff in this world, and for their wrongdoings, they face punishment in the next. The good person who suffers earns their reward in the next life, and even their hardships here serve to atone for some of their past wrongs.
A second reason for a general judgment is to show the crimes of sinners and the justice of their punishment; also that the saints may have all their good works made known before the world and receive the glory they deserve. On earth these saints were sometimes considered fools and treated as criminals, falsely accused, etc., and now the whole truth will stand out before the world. But above all, the general judgment is for the honor and glory of Our Lord. At His first coming into the world He was poor and weak; many would not believe Him the Son of God, and insulted Him as an impostor. He was falsely accused, treated shamefully, and was put to death, many believing Him guilty of some crime. Now He will appear before all as He really is—their Lord and Master, their Creator and Judge. How they will tremble to look upon Him whom they have crucified! How all those who have denied Him, blasphemed Him, persecuted His Church, and the like, will fear when they see Him there as Judge! How they will realize the terrible mistake worldlings made!
A second reason for a final judgment is to reveal the wrongdoings of sinners and the justice of their punishment; also so that the saints can have all their good deeds recognized before the world and receive the glory they deserve. On earth, these saints were sometimes seen as foolish and treated like criminals, falsely accused, etc., and now the complete truth will be laid bare for everyone to see. But above all, the final judgment is for the honor and glory of Our Lord. When He first came into the world, He was poor and weak; many didn’t believe He was the Son of God and mocked Him as a fraud. He was falsely accused, treated with disgrace, and put to death, with many believing Him guilty of some crime. Now He will appear before everyone as He truly is—their Lord and Master, their Creator and Judge. How they will tremble to face Him whom they have crucified! How all those who have denied Him, blasphemed Him, persecuted His Church, and so on, will tremble when they see Him as Judge! How they will realize the terrible mistake that worldly people made!
417 Q. Will our bodies share in the reward or punishment of our souls? A. Our bodies will share in the reward or punishment of our souls, because through the Resurrection they will again be united to them.
417 Q. Will our bodies be part of the reward or punishment of our souls? A. Our bodies will be part of the reward or punishment of our souls because, through the Resurrection, they will be reunited with them.
*418 Q. In what state will the bodies of the just rise? A. The bodies of the just will rise glorious and immortal.
*418 Q. In what state will the bodies of the righteous rise? A. The bodies of the righteous will rise glorious and immortal.
We honor the dead body and treat it with great respect because it was the dwelling place of the soul and was often nourished with the Sacraments; also because it will rise in glory and be united with the soul in the presence of God forever. For these reasons we use incense and holy water when the body is to be buried, and even bless the ground in which it is laid. "Faithful departed" means all those who died in a state of grace and who are in Heaven or Purgatory. They may be in Purgatory, and so we pray for them. We pray that they may "rest in peace"—that is be in Heaven, where they will have no sufferings.
We honor the deceased and treat their bodies with great respect because they were the home of the soul and were often nurtured by the Sacraments; also because they will rise in glory and reunite with the soul in God's presence forever. For these reasons, we use incense and holy water when the body is buried, and we even bless the ground where it rests. "Faithful departed" refers to everyone who died in a state of grace and is in Heaven or Purgatory. They might be in Purgatory, so we pray for them. We pray that they may "rest in peace"—meaning to be in Heaven, where they will experience no suffering.
*419 Q. Will the bodies of the damned also rise? A. The bodies of the damned will also rise, but they will be condemned to eternal punishment.
*419 Q. Will the bodies of the damned also rise? A. The bodies of the damned will also rise, but they will be condemned to eternal punishment.
420 Q. What is Heaven? A. Heaven is the state of everlasting life in which we see God face to face, are made like unto Him in glory, and enjoy eternal happiness.
420 Q. What is Heaven? A. Heaven is the state of eternal life where we see God directly, are transformed to be like Him in glory, and experience everlasting happiness.
The most delightful place we could possibly imagine as Heaven would not be near what it really is. Everything that is good is there and forever, and we shall never tire of its joys. All the pleasures and beauties of earth are as nothing compared with Heaven; and though we think we can imagine its beauty and happiness now, we shall see how far we have been from the real truth if ever we reach this heavenly home.
The most amazing place we could ever picture as Heaven wouldn’t even come close to what it actually is. Everything good is there and lasts forever, and we will never get tired of its joys. All the pleasures and beauties of Earth pale in comparison to Heaven; and even though we think we can imagine its beauty and happiness now, we’ll realize how far off we are from the real truth if we ever make it to this heavenly home.
"God face to face"—that is, as He is. We shall not see Him with the eyes of the body, but of the soul. That we may see with our natural eyes, two things are necessary: first, an object to look at, and secondly, light to see it. Now, to see God in Heaven we need a special light, which is called the "light of glory." God Himself gives us this light and thus enables us to see Him as He is. This beautiful vision of God in Heaven is called the "beatific vision," and thus our whole life in Heaven—our joy and happiness—consists in the enjoyment of the beatific vision.
"God face to face"—meaning, as He truly is. We won’t see Him with our physical eyes, but with our spiritual ones. To see with our natural eyes, two things are required: first, an object to look at, and second, light to see it. To see God in Heaven, we need a special light called the "light of glory." God Himself provides us this light, allowing us to see Him as He is. This beautiful vision of God in Heaven is known as the "beatific vision," and our entire life in Heaven—our joy and happiness—comes from the enjoyment of the beatific vision.
*421 Q. What words should we bear always in mind? A. We should bear always in mind these words of Our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ: "What doth it profit a man if he gain the whole world and suffer the loss of his own soul, or what exchange shall a man give for his soul? For the Son of man shall come in the glory of His Father with His angels: and then will He render to every man according to his works."
*421 Q. What words should we keep in mind? A. We should always keep in mind these words of Our Lord and Savior Jesus Christ: "What does it benefit a person if he gains the whole world but loses his own soul? Or what can a person give in exchange for his soul? For the Son of Man will come in the glory of His Father with His angels, and then He will reward each person according to their actions."
What does it benefit the poor creatures in Hell to have been rich, or beautiful, or learned, or powerful? If they had been good, it was all that was necessary to escape all their sufferings. Is there anything on earth that they would not give to be released? Why, then, did they sell their souls for so little while on earth? The present is the only time you have to merit Heaven and escape Hell. The past you cannot recall, and of the future you are not sure. Then use the present well and decide daily whether you wish to be in Heaven or in Hell.
What does it do for the poor souls in Hell to have been rich, beautiful, smart, or powerful? If they had been good, that was all they needed to avoid their suffering. Is there anything on earth they wouldn’t give to be free? So, why did they sell their souls for so little while they were alive? The present is the only time you have to earn Heaven and avoid Hell. The past is gone, and the future is uncertain. So make the most of the present and choose each day whether you want to be in Heaven or in Hell.
NOTE—Wherever in the foregoing pages explanations have been omitted after certain questions or answers it is because the matter they contain has been explained in some preceding question, or is to be explained in some following question, or is clear enough in itself without explanation. The explanations of such questions or answers can be easily found by referring to the index.
NOTE—Wherever explanations have been left out after certain questions or answers in the pages above, it's because the information has been explained in a previous question, will be explained in a later question, or is clear enough on its own without needing further explanation. You can easily find the explanations for these questions or answers by checking the index.
QUESTIONS ON THE EXPLANATIONS
The Lord's Prayer
Our Father’s Prayer
1. Who made the Lord's Prayer?
2. Why do we say "our" and not "my" Father?
3. Why do we call God "Father"?
4. What person of the Blessed Trinity is meant by "Father" in the
Lord's Prayer?
5. Was God called "Father" before the time of Our Lord? Why?
6. Why do we say "Who art in Heaven," if God is everywhere?
7. What does "hallowed" mean?
8. What do we ask for by "Thy kingdom come"?
9. What does "Thy kingdom" mean here?
10. Who do God's will in Heaven?
11. What do we ask for by "our daily bread"?
12. Why do we say "daily"?
13. What do "trespasses" mean?
14. What do we mean by "as we forgive those who trespass against us"?
15. What example did Our Lord give?
16. What is temptation?
17. Does God tempt us to sin?
18. Is it a sin to be tempted?
19. Are there any tempters besides the devil?
20. Should we seek temptation?
21. What does "Amen" mean?
22. What does "Christian" mean?
23. What makes us Christian?
24. What does "doctrine" mean?
1. Who created the Lord's Prayer?
2. Why do we say "our" instead of "my" Father?
3. Why do we refer to God as "Father"?
4. Which person of the Blessed Trinity is referred to as "Father" in the
Lord's Prayer?
5. Was God called "Father" before the time of Our Lord? Why?
6. Why do we say "Who art in Heaven," if God is everywhere?
7. What does "hallowed" mean?
8. What do we request with "Thy kingdom come"?
9. What does "Thy kingdom" mean in this context?
10. Who does God's will in Heaven?
11. What do we ask for with "our daily bread"?
12. Why do we say "daily"?
13. What do "trespasses" mean?
14. What do we mean by "as we forgive those who trespass against us"?
15. What example did Our Lord provide?
16. What is temptation?
17. Does God tempt us to sin?
18. Is it a sin to be tempted?
19. Are there any tempters other than the devil?
20. Should we seek out temptation?
21. What does "Amen" mean?
22. What does "Christian" mean?
23. What makes us Christian?
24. What does "doctrine" mean?
The Angelical Salutation
The Angelic Greeting
25. How many parts in the Hail Mary? 26. What part did the Angel Gabriel make? 27. When did he make it? 28. How did Mary know what the angel's words meant? 29. What part of the Hail Mary did St. Elizabeth make? 30. Who was St. Elizabeth's son? 31. Why is Mary called "blessed amongst women"? 32. What part of the Hail Mary did the Church make? 33. What does "hail" mean? 34. Why do we say "full of grace"? 35. Why is Mary called "holy"? 36. Why do we need Mary's prayer at the hour of death? 37. What is the Angelus? 38. What does "the Word" mean? 39. What does "made flesh" mean in the third part of the Angelus? 40. What is the Litany of the Blessed Virgin? 41. Are there other litanies besides the Litany of the Blessed Virgin?
25. How many parts are in the Hail Mary? 26. What part did the Angel Gabriel contribute? 27. When did he say it? 28. How did Mary understand what the angel's words meant? 29. What part of the Hail Mary did St. Elizabeth contribute? 30. Who was St. Elizabeth's son? 31. Why is Mary called "blessed among women"? 32. What part of the Hail Mary did the Church contribute? 33. What does "hail" mean? 34. Why do we say "full of grace"? 35. Why is Mary called "holy"? 36. Why do we need Mary's prayer at the hour of death? 37. What is the Angelus? 38. What does "the Word" mean? 39. What does "made flesh" mean in the third part of the Angelus? 40. What is the Litany of the Blessed Virgin? 41. Are there other litanies besides the Litany of the Blessed Virgin?
The Apostles' Creed
The Apostles' Creed
42. What is a creed? 43. Who were the Apostles? 44. Were the Apostles bishops or priests? 45. How do you know? 46. Who were the disciples of Our Lord? 47. Why did the Apostles make the creed? 48. How many articles or parts in the Apostles' Creed? 49. What does "Creator" mean? 50. By what names is Our Lord called? 51. How many sons had God the Father? 52. Why do we say "died" instead of "was killed"? 53. Why do we say "He was buried"? 54. Is Limbo the same as Purgatory? Why? 55. Who were in Limbo at the time Our Lord was crucified? 56. Name some good men who lived before Christ. 57. Did Our Lord's body descend into Limbo? 58. Was Our Lord three full days in the holy sepulchre? 59. How can you prove they could not put Our Lord to death unless He permitted it? 60. Why do we say "right hand of God" when God has no hands? 61. What do you mean by "judge the living and the dead"? 62. Who are "the living"? 63. Who are "the dead" mentioned here? 64. What are ghosts? 65. Are there any? 66. What do you mean by the "Church Militant"? 67. Who are its members? 68. Who are the enemies of our salvation? 69. Why does the devil wish to keep us out of Heaven? 70. What do we mean when we say "the world" is one of our spiritual enemies? 71. Have all the saints their bodies in Heaven? 72. Who are in Heaven in their bodies at present? 73. What is meant by our "concupiscence"? 74. Which tempts us most to sin, our soul or our body? Why? 75. Why did God leave concupiscence in us? 76. What do we mean by "the Church Suffering"? 77. Who are its members? 78. Why are souls in Purgatory? 79. What do you mean by "the Church Triumphant"? 80. Who are its members? 81. Are there any saints in Heaven whose names we do not know? 82. Who are saints? 83. What is the difference between a saint and an angel? 84. Why does the Church canonize holy persons? 85. Does canonization make the person a saint? 86. How does the Church canonize a saint? 87. Explain the "communion of saints." 88. What is the difference between beatification and canonization? 89. How is the resurrection of the body possible? 90. What is death? 91. What does "life everlasting" mean? 92. How many fathers had Our Lord? Who were they? 93. How many mothers had He? 94. Of what religion was Pontius Pilate? 95. Are all in Heaven saints?
42. What is a creed? 43. Who were the Apostles? 44. Were the Apostles bishops or priests? 45. How do you know? 46. Who were the disciples of Our Lord? 47. Why did the Apostles create the creed? 48. How many articles or parts are in the Apostles' Creed? 49. What does "Creator" mean? 50. By what names is Our Lord called? 51. How many sons did God the Father have? 52. Why do we say "died" instead of "was killed"? 53. Why do we say "He was buried"? 54. Is Limbo the same as Purgatory? Why? 55. Who was in Limbo at the time Our Lord was crucified? 56. Name some good men who lived before Christ. 57. Did Our Lord's body descend into Limbo? 58. Was Our Lord in the holy sepulchre for three full days? 59. How can you prove they could not put Our Lord to death unless He allowed it? 60. Why do we say "right hand of God" when God has no hands? 61. What do you mean by "judge the living and the dead"? 62. Who are "the living"? 63. Who are "the dead" mentioned here? 64. What are ghosts? 65. Are there any? 66. What do you mean by the "Church Militant"? 67. Who are its members? 68. Who are the enemies of our salvation? 69. Why does the devil want to keep us out of Heaven? 70. What do we mean when we say "the world" is one of our spiritual enemies? 71. Do all the saints have their bodies in Heaven? 72. Who is in Heaven in their bodies right now? 73. What do we mean by our "concupiscence"? 74. Which tempts us more to sin, our soul or our body? Why? 75. Why did God leave concupiscence in us? 76. What do we mean by "the Church Suffering"? 77. Who are its members? 78. Why are souls in Purgatory? 79. What do you mean by "the Church Triumphant"? 80. Who are its members? 81. Are there any saints in Heaven whose names we don’t know? 82. Who are saints? 83. What is the difference between a saint and an angel? 84. Why does the Church canonize holy people? 85. Does canonization make a person a saint? 86. How does the Church canonize a saint? 87. Explain the "communion of saints." 88. What is the difference between beatification and canonization? 89. How is the resurrection of the body possible? 90. What is death? 91. What does "life everlasting" mean? 92. How many fathers did Our Lord have? Who were they? 93. How many mothers did He have? 94. What religion was Pontius Pilate? 95. Are all in Heaven saints?
The Confiteor and Acts
The Confiteor and Actions
96. In how many ways can we sin? 97. What should we think of when we say the Confiteor? 98. What is the substance of the "act of faith"? 99. Why do we find different acts of faith? 100. What is the substance of the "act of hope"? 101. What is the substance of the "act of love"? 102. Do an "act of love" and an "act of charity" mean the same? 103. How do you show that they are the same? 104. What makes us help others? 105. How may we be charitable to our neighbor? 106. What is the substance of the "act of contrition"? 107. What does "grace" at meals mean? 108. Why should we say grace at meals? 109. Why should we be content with our food? 110. Is the Apostles' Creed an act of faith? 111. Did John the Baptist institute the Sacrament of Baptism? 112. In giving Baptism, can one pour the water and another say the words?
96. How many ways can we sin? 97. What should we think about when we say the Confiteor? 98. What is the essence of the "act of faith"? 99. Why do we have different acts of faith? 100. What is the essence of the "act of hope"? 101. What is the essence of the "act of love"? 102. Do an "act of love" and an "act of charity" mean the same thing? 103. How can you show that they are the same? 104. What motivates us to help others? 105. How can we be charitable to our neighbors? 106. What is the essence of the "act of contrition"? 107. What does saying "grace" at meals mean? 108. Why should we say grace before meals? 109. Why should we be satisfied with our food? 110. Is the Apostles' Creed an act of faith? 111. Did John the Baptist establish the Sacrament of Baptism? 112. When giving Baptism, can one person pour the water while another says the words?
CATECHISM
Lesson 1
Lesson 1
113. What is a catechism? 114. What does our Catechism contain? 115. Why should we learn the Catechism? 116. What do we mean by the "end of man"? 117. For what end was man created? 118. In what respect are all men equal? 119. What is "woman"? 120. In the first question, what does "world" mean? 121. What is a creature? 122. Is every invisible thing a spirit? 123. Of what use is reason to us? 124. What makes man different from all other animals? 125. Have any brute animals reason? 126. How do you know brute animals have not reason? 127. Can we learn all truths by our reason alone? 128. What is revelation? 129. What is "free will" in man? 130. Have brute animals "free will"? 131. Why is it necessary for us to know God? 132. What does "worship" mean? 133. How do we know when we love God above all? 134. Does the Apostles' Creed contain all the truths we must believe? 135. Name some truths not mentioned in it. 136. Is a tree a creature?
113. What is a catechism? 114. What does our Catechism include? 115. Why should we study the Catechism? 116. What do we mean by the "purpose of man"? 117. Why was man created? 118. In what ways are all people equal? 119. What does "woman" mean? 120. In the first question, what does "world" refer to? 121. What is a creature? 122. Is everything invisible a spirit? 123. How does reason benefit us? 124. What sets humans apart from other animals? 125. Do any animals have reason? 126. How can you tell that animals don't have reason? 127. Can we discover all truths through reason alone? 128. What is revelation? 129. What does "free will" mean for humans? 130. Do animals have "free will"? 131. Why is it important for us to know God? 132. What does "worship" mean? 133. How can we tell when we love God above everything else? 134. Does the Apostles' Creed cover all the truths we need to believe? 135. Can you name some truths that aren't included in it? 136. Is a tree a creature?
Lesson 2
Lesson 2
137. What is a spirit? 138. What does "infinite" mean? 139. Why does God watch over us? 140. Why is it necessary for God to watch over us? 141. Why must God be "just" as well as "merciful"?
137. What is a spirit? 138. What does "infinite" mean? 139. Why does God watch over us? 140. Why is it important for God to watch over us? 141. Why does God have to be "just" as well as "merciful"?
Lesson 3
Lesson 3
142. What does "supreme" mean? 143. When are two persons said to be equal? 144. From whom does authority come? 145. Is there any difference in the ages of God the Father and God the Son? 146. Do first, second, and third in the Blessed Trinity mean that one person was before the other? 147. Why must we believe mysteries? 148. Must we understand everything we believe?
142. What does "supreme" mean? 143. When are two people said to be equal? 144. Where does authority come from? 145. Is there a difference in age between God the Father and God the Son? 146. Do first, second, and third in the Blessed Trinity mean that one person existed before the other? 147. Why do we have to believe in mysteries? 148. Do we need to understand everything we believe?
Lesson 4
Lesson 4
149. How may the things God created be classed? 150. Why did God create angels? 151. If angels have no bodies, how can they appear? 152. Are the angels all equal in dignity? 153. How many classes of angels are there? 154. What did the Archangel Michael do? 155. What did the Archangel Gabriel do? 156. Who gave the angels their names? 157. What are the duties of the angels? 158. What does our angel guardian do for us? 159. How do you know that the angels offer our prayers and good works to God? 160. Give a short history of Tobias. 161. What do we mean by "Jacob's ladder"? 162. Are there other guardian angels besides the guardian angels of persons? 163. Name some persons to whom angels appeared. 164. Were angels ever sent to punish men? 165. If God watches over us, why should angels guard us? 166. What was the devil's name before he was cast out of Heaven? 167. Why was he cast out? 168. Is the Blessed Virgin only a creature? Why?
149. How can we categorize the things God created? 150. Why did God create angels? 151. If angels don't have bodies, how can they show up? 152. Are all angels equal in rank? 153. How many types of angels are there? 154. What did the Archangel Michael do? 155. What did the Archangel Gabriel do? 156. Who named the angels? 157. What are the responsibilities of the angels? 158. What does our guardian angel do for us? 159. How do you know that the angels present our prayers and good deeds to God? 160. Give a brief history of Tobias. 161. What do we mean by "Jacob's ladder"? 162. Are there other guardian angels besides those assigned to people? 163. Name some individuals to whom angels have appeared. 164. Have angels ever been sent to punish humans? 165. If God is looking out for us, why do we need angels to guard us? 166. What was the devil's name before he was expelled from Heaven? 167. Why was he expelled? 168. Is the Blessed Virgin just a creature? Why?
Lesson 5
Lesson 5
169. How did God create Eve? 170. What relation was Eve to Adam? 171. Were Adam and Eve created at the same time? 172. What was the "Garden of Paradise"? 173. How did Adam commit his first sin? 174. How was Eve tempted to disobey God? 175. In what way do we sometimes imitate Eve's conduct? 176. Why does the devil tempt us? 177. What were the effects of Adam's sin? 178. Why do we suffer for the sin of our first parents? 179. What did Adam lose by his sin? 180. What do you mean when you say Adam's will was weakened by sin? 181. Can we always overcome temptation if we wish? 182. Why was the Blessed Virgin preserved from Original Sin?
169. How did God create Eve? 170. What was Eve's relationship to Adam? 171. Were Adam and Eve created at the same time? 172. What was the "Garden of Paradise"? 173. How did Adam commit his first sin? 174. How was Eve tempted to disobey God? 175. In what ways do we sometimes imitate Eve's actions? 176. Why does the devil tempt us? 177. What were the consequences of Adam's sin? 178. Why do we suffer because of the sin of our first parents? 179. What did Adam lose due to his sin? 180. What do you mean when you say Adam's will was weakened by sin? 181. Can we always resist temptation if we want to? 182. Why was the Blessed Virgin saved from Original Sin?
Lesson 6
Lesson 6
183. How is sin divided? 184. In what ways can we commit actual sin? 185. What is a sin of omission? Give an example. 186. How is Heaven a reward? 187. How can we merit it? 188. Are all religions equally good? Why? 189. What do you mean by a person's "vocation"? 190. How are we to know our vocation? 191. How should parents act with regard to their children's vocation? 192. When is a soul said to be dead? 193. How can we judge whether a thing is sinful or not? 194. What is a material sin? 195. Why is it wrong to judge others guilty of sin? 196. Why does venial sin lessen the love of God in our hearts? 197. Why are pride, covetousness, etc., called "capital sins"? 198. What is meant by our "predominant" or "ruling" sin? 199. What is pride? 200. Why should we take care of our bodies? 201. What sins follow pride? 202. What is covetousness? 203. What sins follow covetousness? 204. What is lust? 205. What sins follow lust? 206. What is gluttony? 207. What kind of sin is drunkenness? 208. How can we commit gluttony by eating? 209. How can we commit gluttony by drinking? 210. What sins does the drunkard commit? 211. What three great sins should you always guard against? 212. Why are drunkenness, dishonesty, and impurity so dangerous? 213. What is envy? 214. How do we commit the sin of sloth? 215. How can we best destroy sin in our souls? 216. Should we cease striving to be good, if we seem to be making no improvement? Why?
183. How is sin categorized? 184. What ways can we actually sin? 185. What is a sin of omission? Give an example. 186. How is Heaven a reward? 187. How can we earn it? 188. Are all religions equally valid? Why? 189. What do you mean by a person's "calling"? 190. How are we supposed to discover our calling? 191. How should parents approach their children's calling? 192. When is a soul considered dead? 193. How can we determine if something is sinful or not? 194. What is a material sin? 195. Why is it wrong to judge others as guilty of sin? 196. Why does venial sin reduce the love of God in our hearts? 197. Why are pride, greed, etc., called "capital sins"? 198. What do we mean by our "dominant" or "ruling" sin? 199. What is pride? 200. Why should we take care of our bodies? 201. What sins are associated with pride? 202. What is greed? 203. What sins are associated with greed? 204. What is lust? 205. What sins are associated with lust? 206. What is gluttony? 207. What type of sin is drunkenness? 208. How can we commit gluttony by eating? 209. How can we commit gluttony by drinking? 210. What sins does a drunkard commit? 211. What three major sins should you always be cautious of? 212. Why are drunkenness, dishonesty, and impurity so harmful? 213. What is envy? 214. How do we commit the sin of laziness? 215. How can we effectively eliminate sin from our souls? 216. Should we stop trying to be good if it seems like we're not improving? Why?
Lesson 7
Lesson 7
217. What does "incarnation" mean? 218. What does "redemption" mean? 219. Who are slaves? 220. How were we in slavery by the sin of Adam? 221. What price did Our Lord pay to redeem us? 222. Did Our Lord leave us any means of being redeemed more than once? 223. What does "abandon" mean? 224. Has Heaven really gates? 225. What are the "gates of Heaven"? 226. Is Our Lord now in Heaven as God or as man? 227. Who was Our Lord's foster-father? 228. What is a foster-father? 229. How many years from the time Adam sinned till the Redeemer came? 230. Why did God allow so long a time to pass before redeeming us? 231. What was the Deluge? 232. When and why did God send it? 233. Who were saved from the Deluge? How? 234. What animals did Noe have in the Ark? 235. What were the "clean animals"? Name some. 236. Why did he have more "clean" than "unclean" animals? 237. How long did Noe spend in making the Ark? 238. How old was Adam when he died? 239. Who was the oldest man? 240. What was his age? 241. How did the Deluge come upon the earth? 242. How long did the Ark float upon the waters? 243. How did Noe learn that the waters were going down? 244. What was the condition of men before the coming of Our Lord? 245. When and to whom did God promise the Redeemer? 246. What did the prophets foretell about Christ? 247. Why was the Redeemer not welcomed by all when He came? 248. What day of the year is Annunciation Day? 249. How could the good people of the Old Law be saved by the merits of Christ, when Christ was not yet born? 250. In what kind of a stable was Our Lord born? 251. Why did the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph go to Bethlehem before the birth of Our Lord? 252. Who were the Magi? 253. What brought them to Bethlehem? 254. Why did King Herod wish to find the Infant Jesus? 255. On what feast do we commemorate the adoration of the Magi? 256. At what time of the year is the Epiphany? 257. What is the feast of "Holy Innocents"? 258. When does it come? 259. Give a short history of Our Lord's life. 260. What do we mean by His "hidden life"? 261. What do we mean by His "public life"? 262. How old was Our Lord when He began His public life? 263. What do we know of Our Lord's hidden life? 264. Why did He lead a hidden life for so many years? 265. Does "mankind" mean men or women? 266. Had Our Lord any brothers or sisters? 267. What did the Angel Gabriel say at the Annunciation?
217. What does "incarnation" mean? 218. What does "redemption" mean? 219. Who are slaves? 220. How were we enslaved by Adam's sin? 221. What price did Our Lord pay to redeem us? 222. Did Our Lord give us any way to be redeemed more than once? 223. What does "abandon" mean? 224. Are there really gates to Heaven? 225. What are the "gates of Heaven"? 226. Is Our Lord in Heaven as God or as a man? 227. Who was Our Lord's foster father? 228. What is a foster father? 229. How many years passed from Adam's sin to the coming of the Redeemer? 230. Why did God wait so long before redeeming us? 231. What was the Deluge? 232. When and why did God send it? 233. Who was saved from the Deluge? How? 234. What animals did Noah have in the Ark? 235. What were the "clean animals"? Name some. 236. Why did he have more "clean" than "unclean" animals? 237. How long did Noah take to build the Ark? 238. How old was Adam when he died? 239. Who was the oldest man? 240. What was his age? 241. How did the Deluge come upon the earth? 242. How long did the Ark float on the waters? 243. How did Noah find out that the waters were receding? 244. What was the state of humanity before Our Lord came? 245. When and to whom did God promise the Redeemer? 246. What did the prophets predict about Christ? 247. Why wasn't the Redeemer welcomed by everyone when He came? 248. What day of the year is Annunciation Day? 249. How could the good people of the Old Testament be saved by Christ's merits before He was born? 250. What kind of stable was Our Lord born in? 251. Why did the Blessed Virgin and St. Joseph travel to Bethlehem before Our Lord's birth? 252. Who were the Magi? 253. What brought them to Bethlehem? 254. Why did King Herod want to find the Infant Jesus? 255. On what feast do we celebrate the Magi's adoration? 256. When does the Epiphany occur? 257. What is the feast of the "Holy Innocents"? 258. When is it celebrated? 259. Give a brief overview of Our Lord’s life. 260. What do we mean by His "hidden life"? 261. What do we mean by His "public life"? 262. How old was Our Lord when He started His public life? 263. What do we know about Our Lord's hidden life? 264. Why did He live a hidden life for so many years? 265. Does "mankind" refer to men or women? 266. Did Our Lord have any brothers or sisters? 267. What did the Angel Gabriel say at the Annunciation?
Lesson 8
Lesson 8
268. What do you mean by Our Lord's "Passion"? 269. When did it begin and when did it end? 270. Give an account of Our Lord's Passion. 271. Where was Gethsemani or the Garden of Olives? 272. Who went into it with Our Lord? 273. What did Our Lord do in this garden? 274. What else happened there? 275. What caused Our Lord's sufferings in the garden? 276. Why could Christ's body suffer greater pain than ours? 277. What do we mean by the "agony in the garden"? 278. Who betrayed Our Lord? 279. How did the Jews act unjustly in the trial of Our Lord? 280. What was the "scourging at the pillar"? 281. What was the "crowning with thorns"? 282. What happened at the death of Our Lord? 283. Where was Calvary? 284. Why were no criminals put to death in Jerusalem? 285. How was the temple of Jerusalem divided? 286. What was the "Holy of Holies"? 287. What was the "Ark of the Covenant," and what did it contain? 288. Of what were the ark and its contents figures? 289. What was the veil of the temple? 290. Why was this veil rent asunder at the death of Our Lord? 291. What does Calvary mean? 292. Why was Our Lord crucified between thieves? 293. Why do we call one of these the "penitent thief"? 294. Why did Christ suffer more than was necessary? 295. What is a sepulchre? 296. How was Our Lord buried? 297. What did the Jews count the beginning and the end of their day? 298. Was the Jewish religion ever the true religion? 299. What is a miracle? 300. What does a miracle prove? 301. What miracles did Our Lord perform? 302. What was His greatest? 303. What are the qualities of a glorified body? 304. Show that Our Lord's body had all these qualities. 305. What was the "Transfiguration of Our Lord"? Describe it. 306. Who were present at it? 307. What happened on the way to Emmaus? 308. What benefit is derived from Thomas the Apostle doubting the resurrection of Our Lord? 309. Will all who rise on the last day have glorified bodies? 310. What does the "stigmata of Our Lord" mean? 311. Did anyone ever have it? 312. Was Our Lord visible to everyone during the forty days after His resurrection? 313. About how many times and to whom did He appear during the forty days? 314. Describe Our Lord's Ascension. 315. Did Christ always live at Bethlehem?
268. What do you mean by Our Lord's "Passion"? 269. When did it start and when did it end? 270. Give an account of Our Lord's Passion. 271. Where was Gethsemane or the Garden of Olives? 272. Who went into it with Our Lord? 273. What did Our Lord do in this garden? 274. What else happened there? 275. What caused Our Lord's suffering in the garden? 276. Why could Christ's body experience greater pain than ours? 277. What do we mean by the "agony in the garden"? 278. Who betrayed Our Lord? 279. How did the Jews act unjustly during the trial of Our Lord? 280. What was the "scourging at the pillar"? 281. What was the "crowning with thorns"? 282. What happened at the death of Our Lord? 283. Where was Calvary? 284. Why were no criminals executed in Jerusalem? 285. How was the temple of Jerusalem organized? 286. What was the "Holy of Holies"? 287. What was the "Ark of the Covenant," and what did it hold? 288. What did the ark and its contents symbolize? 289. What was the veil of the temple? 290. Why was this veil torn at the death of Our Lord? 291. What does Calvary mean? 292. Why was Our Lord crucified between thieves? 293. Why do we call one of these the "penitent thief"? 294. Why did Christ suffer more than was needed? 295. What is a sepulcher? 296. How was Our Lord buried? 297. How did the Jews define the beginning and end of their day? 298. Was the Jewish religion ever the true religion? 299. What is a miracle? 300. What does a miracle prove? 301. What miracles did Our Lord perform? 302. What was His greatest miracle? 303. What are the qualities of a glorified body? 304. Show that Our Lord's body had all these qualities. 305. What was the "Transfiguration of Our Lord"? Describe it. 306. Who was present during it? 307. What happened on the way to Emmaus? 308. What benefit comes from Thomas the Apostle doubting the resurrection of Our Lord? 309. Will everyone who rises on the last day have glorified bodies? 310. What does the "stigmata of Our Lord" refer to? 311. Has anyone else ever had it? 312. Was Our Lord visible to everyone during the forty days after His resurrection? 313. How many times and to whom did He appear during the forty days? 314. Describe Our Lord's Ascension. 315. Did Christ always live in Bethlehem?
Lesson 9
Lesson 9
316. Did the Holy Ghost ever appear? 317. When and under what forms? 318. What does Whitsunday mean? 319. What does Pentecost mean? 320. What effect did the coming of the Holy Ghost have upon the Apostles? 321. How many temples had the Jews? 322. What was a "synagogue"? 323. What was done in the synagogues? 324. How did the synagogues differ from the temple? 325. What did the feast of the Pasch or Passover commemorate? 326. Give a short history of Moses. 327. How did the Israelites come to be in Egypt? 328. Give an account of their sufferings in Egypt. 329. How were they delivered or liberated? 330. Give a short account of Joseph and his family. 331. Why did Joseph's brothers wish to put him to death? 332. What did they do to hide their crime? 333. What did the King of Egypt dream? 334. What did his dream mean? 335. What do we learn from the life of Joseph in Egypt? 336. How was Moses saved on the bank of the Nile? 337. What was the "burning bush" that Moses saw? 338. Why did God command Moses to remove his shoes before coming to the "burning bush"? 339. Who went with Moses to deliver the Israelites? 340. What signs did God give to Moses to show King Pharao? 341. What did the king's magicians do? 342. What were "the ten plagues of Egypt"? 343. Describe each plague. 344. Why did God send them? 345. What was the "Paschal Lamb"? 346. Of what was it a figure? 347. What happened to the Israelites and Egyptians at the Red Sea? 348. How long were the Israelites in the desert? 349. What was the "manna"? 350. Why were the Israelites so long in the desert? 351. What do you mean by the "gift of tongues"? 352. Why did God perform more miracles in the first ages of the Church than now? 353. How and where was St. Peter put to death? 354. How did the other Apostles die? 355. St. Paul? 356. What did the Apostles prove by suffering death for their faith?
316. Did the Holy Spirit ever show up? 317. When and in what forms? 318. What does Whitsunday mean? 319. What does Pentecost mean? 320. How did the arrival of the Holy Spirit affect the Apostles? 321. How many temples did the Jews have? 322. What was a "synagogue"? 323. What activities took place in the synagogues? 324. How were the synagogues different from the temple? 325. What did the feast of the Passover commemorate? 326. Give a brief history of Moses. 327. How did the Israelites end up in Egypt? 328. Describe their suffering in Egypt. 329. How were they rescued or freed? 330. Give a brief account of Joseph and his family. 331. Why did Joseph’s brothers want to kill him? 332. What did they do to cover up their crime? 333. What did the King of Egypt dream about? 334. What did his dream mean? 335. What can we learn from Joseph's life in Egypt? 336. How was Moses saved by the Nile River? 337. What was the "burning bush" that Moses encountered? 338. Why did God tell Moses to take off his shoes before approaching the "burning bush"? 339. Who accompanied Moses to free the Israelites? 340. What signs did God give to Moses to show to King Pharaoh? 341. What did the king’s magicians do? 342. What were "the ten plagues of Egypt"? 343. Describe each plague. 344. Why did God send them? 345. What was the "Paschal Lamb"? 346. What did it symbolize? 347. What happened to the Israelites and Egyptians at the Red Sea? 348. How long were the Israelites in the desert? 349. What was "manna"? 350. Why were the Israelites in the desert for so long? 351. What do you mean by the "gift of tongues"? 352. Why did God perform more miracles in the early Church than now? 353. How and where was St. Peter executed? 354. How did the other Apostles die? 355. What about St. Paul? 356. What did the Apostles demonstrate by facing death for their faith?
Lesson 10
Lesson 10
357. What do we mean by an effect? 358. What does "supernatural" mean? 359. What is merit? 360. What is a virtue? 361. What is a vice? 362. Does habit excuse us for the sins committed through it? 363. When will habit excuse us for the sin? 364. Why do we believe revealed truths? 365. Who is our neighbor? 366. What example did Our Lord give to explain this? 367. How do we love our neighbor as ourselves? 368. Why should we love our neighbor? 369. Can we merit the grace of perseverance?
357. What do we mean by an effect? 358. What does "supernatural" mean? 359. What is merit? 360. What is a virtue? 361. What is a vice? 362. Does habit excuse us for the sins committed through it? 363. When will habit excuse us for the sin? 364. Why do we believe revealed truths? 365. Who is our neighbor? 366. What example did Our Lord give to explain this? 367. How do we love our neighbor as ourselves? 368. Why should we love our neighbor? 369. Can we earn the grace of perseverance?
Lesson 11
Lesson 11
370. When did men begin to speak different languages? 371. Who were the prophets? 372. Give a short history of religion before the time of Christ. 373. What are the chief works of the Church? 374. Why are our churches holy? 375. What are the catacombs, and why were they made? 376. What are altar stones? 377. Why are relics placed in them? 378. How many general persecutions of the Church were there? 379. Tell what you know of these persecutions. 380. What lessons do we learn from the sufferings of the early Christians? 381. Who are "lawful pastors"? 382. Could anyone be Pope without being Bishop of Rome? 383. What does "vicar" mean? 384. Why are Catholics called Roman? 385. How could a Protestant be saved?
370. When did people start speaking different languages? 371. Who were the prophets? 372. Give a brief history of religion before the time of Christ. 373. What are the main works of the Church? 374. Why are our churches considered holy? 375. What are the catacombs, and why were they created? 376. What are altar stones? 377. Why are relics placed in them? 378. How many major persecutions of the Church happened? 379. Share what you know about these persecutions. 380. What lessons can we learn from the sufferings of the early Christians? 381. Who are "lawful pastors"? 382. Could anyone be Pope without being the Bishop of Rome? 383. What does "vicar" mean? 384. Why are Catholics called Roman? 385. How could a Protestant be saved?
Lesson 12
Lesson 12
386. What is an attribute? 387. What is authority? 388. Why is it sinful to resist lawful authority? 389. What does "cathedra" mean? 390. Why is the bishop's church called cathedral? 391. How do we know when the Pope speaks "ex cathedra"? 392. What is required that the Pope may so speak? 393. Is the Pope infallible in everything he says? 394. What do you mean by "faith and morals"? 395. How many Popes from St. Peter to Pius XI? 396. Why should we have the greatest respect for the opinions of the Holy Father on any subject? 397. Why must the Pope sometimes speak on political matters? 398. Can the Pope commit sin? 399. What do we mean by the "temporal power" of the Pope? 400. How did he acquire it, and how did he lose it? 401. Why has he need of it? 402. How is the "temporal power" useful to the Church? 403. What is "Peter's pence"? 404. Does the Church change its doctrines? 405. How can you show that the Church is one in government and doctrine? 406. What is the hierarchy of the Church? 407. Could a person be a Catholic and not believe all the Church teaches? 408. Why are Protestants so called? 409. Why does the Church use Latin as its language? 410. Why does the Church define some truths? 411. Does the Church by defining truths make new doctrines? 412. Give a short history of Luther. 413. Why was he cut off from the true Church? 414. Why did many follow him? 415. How did the first Protestants act towards the Church? 416. What foolish excuses do some give for not becoming Catholics? 417. Why must the true Church be visible? 418. Who are heathens? 419. Who were the "publicans" mentioned by Our Lord?
386. What is an attribute? 387. What is authority? 388. Why is it wrong to resist lawful authority? 389. What does "cathedra" mean? 390. Why is the bishop's church called a cathedral? 391. How do we know when the Pope speaks "ex cathedra"? 392. What is required for the Pope to do so? 393. Is the Pope infallible in everything he says? 394. What do you mean by "faith and morals"? 395. How many Popes have there been from St. Peter to Pius XI? 396. Why should we have great respect for the opinions of the Holy Father on any topic? 397. Why must the Pope sometimes address political matters? 398. Can the Pope sin? 399. What do we mean by the "temporal power" of the Pope? 400. How did he gain it, and how did he lose it? 401. Why does he need it? 402. How is the "temporal power" beneficial to the Church? 403. What is "Peter's pence"? 404. Does the Church change its doctrines? 405. How can you show that the Church is united in government and doctrine? 406. What is the hierarchy of the Church? 407. Can someone be a Catholic and not believe everything the Church teaches? 408. Why are they called Protestants? 409. Why does the Church use Latin as its language? 410. Why does the Church define certain truths? 411. Does the Church create new doctrines by defining truths? 412. Give a brief history of Luther. 413. Why was he excluded from the true Church? 414. Why did many followers support him? 415. How did the first Protestants treat the Church? 416. What silly excuses do some give for not becoming Catholics? 417. Why must the true Church be visible? 418. Who are heathens? 419. Who were the "publicans" mentioned by Our Lord?
Lesson 13
Lesson 13
420. What three things are necessary to make a Sacrament? 421. What is the outward sign in Baptism? 422. Why is water used in Baptism? 423. What is the outward sign in Confirmation? 424. Why is oil used in Confirmation? 425. What is the use of the outward sign in the Sacraments? 426. In what ways does the life of the soul resemble the life of the body? 427. What does a "Sacrament of the dead" mean? 428. In what ways can we commit sacrilege? 429. What is the sacramental grace given in Penance? 430. What are the "right dispositions" for Penance, for Holy Eucharist? 431. What is conditional Baptism, and when is it given? 432. Can all the Sacraments be given conditionally? 433. What is the outward sign in Matrimony? 434. Can a bishop give all the Sacraments? 435. Can a priest? 436. Can a person receive all the Sacraments? 437. Can any of the Sacraments be given to the dead?
420. What three things do you need to create a Sacrament? 421. What’s the outward sign in Baptism? 422. Why is water used in Baptism? 423. What’s the outward sign in Confirmation? 424. Why is oil used in Confirmation? 425. What’s the purpose of the outward sign in the Sacraments? 426. In what ways does the life of the soul reflect the life of the body? 427. What does "Sacrament of the dead" mean? 428. How can we commit sacrilege? 429. What is the sacramental grace given in Penance? 430. What are the "right dispositions" for Penance and Holy Eucharist? 431. What is conditional Baptism, and when is it used? 432. Can all the Sacraments be given conditionally? 433. What’s the outward sign in Matrimony? 434. Can a bishop provide all the Sacraments? 435. Can a priest? 436. Can someone receive all the Sacraments? 437. Can any of the Sacraments be given to the dead?
Lesson 14
Lesson 14
438. What is an heir? 439. Why is the Bible called the Old and New Testament? 440. What does the Old Testament contain? 441. What does the New Testament show? 442. What is the difference between Baptism and Penance in the remission of the guilt and punishment? 443. Could a person gain an indulgence immediately after Baptism? Why? 444. What does the "temporal punishment" for sin mean? 445. Where will persons go who have never sinned and who die without Baptism? 446. What do we mean by "the ordinary minister" of a Sacrament? 447. Can you baptize an infant when its parents are unwilling? 448. What is private Baptism? 449. How is it given? 450. What ceremonies are used in solemn Baptism? 451. What do they signify? 452. What is the baptistery? 453. What do we mean by the "pomps" of the devil? 454. What is martyrdom? 455. Who are catechumens? 456. What is necessary that persons may be really martyrs? 457. What is meant by "patron saint"? 458. On what day is a saint's feast kept by the Church? 459. What does "sponsors" mean? Who are sponsors by proxy? 460. With whom do godparents contract relationship? 461. What names should be given in Baptism?
438. What is an heir? 439. Why do we call the Bible the Old and New Testament? 440. What does the Old Testament contain? 441. What does the New Testament show? 442. What’s the difference between Baptism and Penance regarding the forgiveness of guilt and punishment? 443. Can someone receive an indulgence right after Baptism? Why? 444. What does "temporal punishment" for sin mean? 445. Where do people go who have never sinned and die without Baptism? 446. What do we mean by "the ordinary minister" of a Sacrament? 447. Can you baptize a baby if its parents don't want it? 448. What is private Baptism? 449. How is it performed? 450. What rituals are used in formal Baptism? 451. What do they represent? 452. What is the baptistery? 453. What do we mean by the "pomps" of the devil? 454. What is martyrdom? 455. Who are catechumens? 456. What is needed for someone to be a true martyr? 457. What does "patron saint" mean? 458. On what day does the Church celebrate a saint's feast? 459. What does "sponsors" mean? Who are sponsors by proxy? 460. What kind of relationship do godparents establish? 461. What names should be chosen for Baptism?
Lesson 15
Lesson 15
462. What does balm in the chrism signify? 463. Why should we be proud of the Catholic religion? 464. When are we required to profess our religion?
462. What does the balm in the chrism mean? 463. Why should we take pride in the Catholic faith? 464. When are we expected to profess our faith?
Lesson 16
Lesson 16
465. Why is the devil wiser than we are? 466. Who made the Beatitudes? 467. Where did Our Lord generally preach? 468. What do the Beatitudes teach? 469. How is a person "poor in spirit"? 470. How can the rich be "poor in spirit"? 471. Explain the other Beatitudes.
465. Why is the devil smarter than we are? 466. Who came up with the Beatitudes? 467. Where did Our Lord usually preach? 468. What do the Beatitudes teach us? 469. What does it mean to be "poor in spirit"? 470. How can wealthy people be "poor in spirit"? 471. Explain the other Beatitudes.
Lesson 17
Lesson 17
472. How does the institution of Penance show the goodness of Our Lord? 473. What is absolution? 474. How do you know Our Lord could forgive sins? 475. How does the power to forgive sins imply the obligation of going to confession? 476. How do we prepare for confession? 477. What is the best method of examining our conscience? 478. What is the most important part of the Sacrament of Penance? 479. What kind of sorrow should we have for our sins? 480. When should you say the penance given in confession?
472. How does the practice of Penance demonstrate the goodness of Our Lord? 473. What is absolution? 474. How do you know Our Lord can forgive sins? 475. How does the ability to forgive sins create a responsibility to go to confession? 476. How do we get ready for confession? 477. What’s the best way to examine our conscience? 478. What’s the most important part of the Sacrament of Penance? 479. What kind of sorrow should we feel for our sins? 480. When should you perform the penance given in confession?
Lesson 18
Lesson 18
481. When is our contrition perfect? 482. What is attrition? 483. How many kinds of occasions of sin are there? 484. Why must we avoid occasions of sin?
481. When is our sorrow for sin perfect? 482. What is superficial remorse? 483. How many types of situations that lead to sin are there? 484. Why should we steer clear of situations that lead to sin?
Lesson 19
Lesson 19
485. Who is a "duly authorized" priest? 486. How can a dumb man make his confession? 487. What can one do who cannot remember his sins in confession? 488. How can persons whose language the priest cannot understand confess if they are in danger of death? 489. Is it wrong to accuse ourselves of sins we have not committed? 490. Why is it foolish to conceal sins in confession? 491. How were the ancient Christian churches divided? 492. How did the early Christians do penance? 493. Explain the temporal and eternal punishment for sin. 494. Is your confession worthless if you forget to say your penance? 495. What is Lent? 496. What is almsgiving? 497. How can we distinguish between spiritual and corporal works of mercy? 498. When are we obliged to admonish the sinner? 499. What were the Crusades? 500. Why were they commenced? 501. How many Crusades were there? 502. How long did they last? 503. Why were those who took part in these expeditions called Crusaders? 504. What is a pilgrim? 505. How have we been relieved from doing many of the works of mercy ourselves? 506. Who are religious? 507. What is a hermit? 508. What is a general confession? 509. When and why should we make it? 510. Who are scrupulous persons?
485. Who is a "duly authorized" priest? 486. How can a mute person make their confession? 487. What can someone do if they can’t remember their sins during confession? 488. How can people whose language the priest doesn't understand confess if they are in danger of death? 489. Is it wrong to accuse ourselves of sins we didn't commit? 490. Why is it unwise to hide sins in confession? 491. How were the early Christian churches divided? 492. How did the early Christians perform penance? 493. Explain the temporary and eternal punishment for sin. 494. Is your confession invalid if you forget to mention your penance? 495. What is Lent? 496. What is almsgiving? 497. How can we tell the difference between spiritual and corporal works of mercy? 498. When are we required to warn a sinner? 499. What were the Crusades? 500. Why were they started? 501. How many Crusades were there? 502. How long did they last? 503. Why were those who participated in these expeditions called Crusaders? 504. What is a pilgrim? 505. How have we been relieved from performing many works of mercy ourselves? 506. Who are religious people? 507. What is a hermit? 508. What is a general confession? 509. When and why should we make one? 510. Who are scrupulous individuals?
Lesson 20
Lesson 20
511. When is it well to add to our confession a sin of our past life? 512. What duties does the priest perform in the confessional? 513. Show how he is judge, father, teacher, and physician. 514. Why is it well to confess always to the same priest? 515. Can you have half your sins forgiven? 516. When will perfect contrition blot out mortal sin?
511. When is it appropriate to include a sin from our past in our confession? 512. What responsibilities does the priest have in the confessional? 513. Explain how he acts as a judge, father, teacher, and physician. 514. Why is it beneficial to confess to the same priest each time? 515. Is it possible to have only some of your sins forgiven? 516. When will true remorse erase a serious sin?
Lesson 21
Lesson 21
517. How does God reward us for good works done in a state of mortal sin? 518. Is it easy to gain a plenary indulgence? Why? 519. What works are generally enjoined for indulgences? 520. What does praying for a "person's intention" mean? 521. How can we have the intention of gaining an indulgence? 522. What does "an indulgence of 40 days," etc., mean? 523. Why did the early Christians do more severe penance than we do? 524. Are indulgences attached to anything but prayers?
517. How does God reward us for good deeds done while in a state of serious sin? 518. Is it easy to obtain a full indulgence? Why? 519. What actions are typically required for indulgences? 520. What does it mean to pray for someone's "intention"? 521. How can we intend to obtain an indulgence? 522. What does "a 40-day indulgence," etc., refer to? 523. Why did early Christians practice stricter penance than we do? 524. Are indulgences linked to anything other than prayers?
Lesson 22
Lesson 22
525. What does "Eucharist" mean? 526. What is the difference between Holy Eucharist and Holy Communion? 527. What did Our Lord do at the marriage in Cana? 528. Is Our Lord's body in the Holy Eucharist living or dead? 529. How do you know you receive both the body and the blood of Our Lord under the appearance of bread alone? 530. Why does the Church not give the Holy Eucharist to the people under the appearance of wine also? 531. Could it do so? Did it ever do it? 532. How long does Our Lord remain in the Holy Communion? 533. What is the ciborium? 534. At what part of the Mass are the words of consecration said? 535. What are the parts of the Mass? 536. What is the sacristy? 537. What does the priest prepare for Mass? 538. What is the chalice? 539. What is the paten? 540. What is the purificator? 541. What is the pall? 542. What is the host? 543. Where does the priest get the host? 544. What are the different vestments used at Mass called? 545. What do they signify? 546. What is the "Offertory" in the Mass? 547. When does the "Canon" of the Mass begin? 548. What is the "Elevation" in the Mass? 549. Where does the priest get the Blessed Sacrament he gives to the people? 550. What is the tabernacle? 551. What is Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament? 552. What is the monstrance used at Benediction? 553. Why should we be anxious to attend Benediction? 554. What is the cope? 555. What is the humeral, or Benediction veil? 556. Why does the priest wear vestments? 557. What do their colors signify? 558. Can Holy Communion be given in the afternoon? 559. What is the Holy Eucharist called when received by a person who is not fasting? 560. Can the priest say Mass in the evening? Why? 561. Why does the priest genuflect, etc., during Mass?
525. What does "Eucharist" mean? 526. What’s the difference between Holy Eucharist and Holy Communion? 527. What did Jesus do at the wedding in Cana? 528. Is Jesus' body in the Holy Eucharist alive or dead? 529. How can you be sure you receive both the body and blood of Jesus under just the appearance of bread? 530. Why doesn’t the Church give the Holy Eucharist to people under the appearance of wine too? 531. Could it do that? Has it ever done it? 532. How long does Jesus stay in Holy Communion? 533. What is the ciborium? 534. At what point in the Mass are the words of consecration said? 535. What are the parts of the Mass? 536. What is the sacristy? 537. What does the priest prepare for Mass? 538. What is the chalice? 539. What is the paten? 540. What is the purificator? 541. What is the pall? 542. What is the host? 543. Where does the priest get the host? 544. What are the different vestments used at Mass called? 545. What do they signify? 546. What is the "Offertory" in the Mass? 547. When does the "Canon" of the Mass begin? 548. What is the "Elevation" in the Mass? 549. Where does the priest get the Blessed Sacrament he gives to the people? 550. What is the tabernacle? 551. What is Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament? 552. What is the monstrance used at Benediction? 553. Why should we be eager to attend Benediction? 554. What is the cope? 555. What is the humeral, or Benediction veil? 556. Why does the priest wear vestments? 557. What do their colors signify? 558. Can Holy Communion be given in the afternoon? 559. What is the Holy Eucharist called when received by someone who isn’t fasting? 560. Can the priest say Mass in the evening? Why? 561. Why does the priest genuflect, etc., during Mass?
Lesson 23
Lesson 23
562. What should we do if we break our fast before Holy Communion? 563. When is Holy Communion called the "Viaticum"? 564. Who offered the first Sacrifice of the Holy Mass?
562. What should we do if we break our fast before Communion? 563. When is Communion referred to as the "Viaticum"? 564. Who offered the first Sacrifice of the Mass?
Lesson 24
Lesson 24
565. When is the Holy Eucharist a sacrifice? 566. When a Sacrament? 567. What was the temple of the Pantheon in Rome? 568. Who are pagans, idolaters, heathens? 569. How many kinds of sacrifice had the Israelites? 570. How is the Mass a sacrifice? 571. What is the league of the Sacred Heart? 572. Why was it established? 573. What was the origin of offering the priest money for celebrating Mass for your intention? 574. What is the sin of simony? 575. Why is it so called? 576. How are the fruits of the Mass divided? 577. What is a spiritual Communion? 578. How is it made?
565. When is the Holy Eucharist considered a sacrifice? 566. When is it a Sacrament? 567. What was the Pantheon temple in Rome? 568. Who are pagans, idolaters, and heathens? 569. How many types of sacrifice did the Israelites have? 570. How is the Mass a sacrifice? 571. What is the league of the Sacred Heart? 572. Why was it created? 573. What is the origin of giving money to the priest for celebrating Mass for your intention? 574. What is the sin of simony? 575. Why is it called that? 576. How are the benefits of the Mass shared? 577. What is a spiritual Communion? 578. How is it done?
Lesson 25
Lesson 25
579. What does "unction" mean? 580. How often in their lives are Catholics anointed? 581. Is it called Extreme Unction even when the person recovers after receiving it? 582. What parts of the body are anointed in Extreme Unction? 583. When should the priest be sent for in cases of sickness? 584. What should you do if the sick Catholic does not wish or refuses to see the priest? 585. How is sickness a benefit to some? 586. What Sacraments are never given in the Church? 587. What things should you prepare when the priest is coming to give the Viaticum or Extreme Unction in your house? 588. How is the Blessed Sacrament carried to the sick in Catholic countries? 589. Who are the "other ministers of the Church," besides bishops and priests? 590. What is the tonsure? 591. Of what does the tonsure remind the priest? 592. What are the duties and privileges of these other ministers of the Church? 593. How many kinds of Masses are there? 594. Do they differ in value, one being better than another? 595. Who is meant by the "celebrant" of the Mass? 596. What does the "master of ceremonies" do? 597. What is a Requiem Mass? 598. Why is it so called? 599. What is Vespers? 600. Is it a mortal sin to be willingly absent from Vespers? 601. Will Vespers take the place of Mass on Sundays for those who do not attend Mass? 602. Who are cardinals? 603. What are their duties? 604. Who is a monsignor? 605. Who is a vicar general? 606. What is a diocese? 607. What is a parish? 608. Does "rector" and "pastor" mean the same? 609. What do we mean by "Suffragan Bishops"? 610. What is the pallium? 611. Who can wear it?
579. What does "unction" mean? 580. How often in their lives are Catholics anointed? 581. Is it still called Extreme Unction even when the person recovers after receiving it? 582. Which parts of the body are anointed during Extreme Unction? 583. When should you call the priest in cases of illness? 584. What should you do if the sick Catholic doesn’t want to see the priest or refuses to? 585. How can sickness be beneficial to some? 586. Which Sacraments are never given in the Church? 587. What should you prepare when the priest is coming to give the Viaticum or Extreme Unction at your home? 588. How is the Blessed Sacrament taken to the sick in Catholic countries? 589. Who are the "other ministers of the Church," besides bishops and priests? 590. What is the tonsure? 591. What does the tonsure remind the priest of? 592. What are the duties and privileges of these other ministers of the Church? 593. How many types of Masses are there? 594. Do they differ in value, with one being better than another? 595. Who is referred to as the "celebrant" of the Mass? 596. What does the "master of ceremonies" do? 597. What is a Requiem Mass? 598. Why is it called that? 599. What are Vespers? 600. Is it a mortal sin to willingly miss Vespers? 601. Will Vespers replace Mass on Sundays for those who do not attend? 602. Who are cardinals? 603. What are their responsibilities? 604. Who is a monsignor? 605. Who is a vicar general? 606. What is a diocese? 607. What is a parish? 608. Do "rector" and "pastor" mean the same thing? 609. What do we mean by "Suffragan Bishops"? 610. What is the pallium? 611. Who is allowed to wear it?
Lesson 26
Lesson 26
612. When are persons lawfully married? 613. When was marriage first instituted? 614. What sin is it to marry unlawfully? 615. What are "impediments to marriage"? 616. What things should persons tell the priest when they are making arrangements for marriage? 617. Can persons marry invalidly without knowing it? 618. What evils follow divorce? 619. Why should children study? 620. What is meant by the "civil effects of marriage"? 621. What are the chief evils of "mixed marriage"? 622. What is a "mixed marriage"? 623. When are motives for marriage "worthy"? 624. How should persons make a choice for marriage? 625. How are parents sometimes guilty of injustice to their children in case of marriage? 626. What is holy oil? 627. When is it blessed? 628. Can a priest bless it in case of necessity? 629. How many kinds of holy oil are there? 630. For what are they used? 631. In the administration of what Sacraments is oil used? 632. Can persons receive the Sacrament of Matrimony more than once? 633. Where and at what time of the day should Catholics be married? 634. What is balm? 635. Was there any Sacrament of Matrimony before the time of Our Lord? 636. Were the people of the Old Law validly married? 637. How did their marriage differ from Christian marriage?
612. When are people legally married? 613. When was marriage first established? 614. What sin is it to marry unlawfully? 615. What are "impediments to marriage"? 616. What details should people share with the priest when planning their wedding? 617. Can people enter into an invalid marriage without realizing it? 618. What negative consequences come from divorce? 619. Why should children study? 620. What does "civil effects of marriage" mean? 621. What are the main problems with "mixed marriage"? 622. What is a "mixed marriage"? 623. When are the reasons for marriage considered "worthy"? 624. How should individuals decide on marriage? 625. How can parents sometimes treat their children unfairly in the context of marriage? 626. What is holy oil? 627. When is it blessed? 628. Can a priest bless it in cases of necessity? 629. How many types of holy oil are there? 630. What are they used for? 631. In which Sacraments is oil used? 632. Can people receive the Sacrament of Matrimony more than once? 633. Where and when of day should Catholics get married? 634. What is balm? 635. Was there a Sacrament of Matrimony before the time of Our Lord? 636. Were people of the Old Law validly married? 637. How did their marriage differ from Christian marriage?
Lesson 27
Lesson 27
638. Can the Church change the number of sacramentals? Why? 639. Why is it necessary to bless yourself properly? 640. When are candles blessed in the Church? 641. Of what do candles on the altar remind us? 642. When are ashes blessed in the Church? 643. Of what do they remind us? 644. Of what do the palms remind us? 645. What is the difference between a cross and a crucifix? 646. What is the Rosary? 647. How do we say the beads? 648. What is meant by "Mysteries of the Rosary"? 649. How many Mysteries of the Rosary are there? 650. How are they divided? 651. Name the different Mysteries of the Rosary. 652. What is the Magnificat? 653. Who baptized Our Lord? 654. Was the baptism of John the Baptist a Sacrament? Why? 655. To whom did Our Lord give an example by His hidden or private life? 656. What did the Church do for slaves? 657. What do the letters "I.N.R.I." over the Cross mean? 658. Did Our Lord claim to be king of the Jews? 659. Why was Our Lord put to death? 660. With whom did the Blessed Virgin live after the death of Our Lord? 661. Who was St. John the Evangelist? 662. What is the Apocalypse? 663. About how long did the Blessed Virgin live on earth after the Ascension of Our Lord? 664. What is meant by the "Assumption" of the Blessed Virgin? 665. What proof have we of it? 666. On what days are the different Mysteries of the Rosary said? 667. What does "I.H.S." with a cross over it mean? 668. What is the scapular, and why do we wear it? 669. What is the brown scapular called? 670. How many kinds of scapular are there? 671. What are the "seven dolors" of the Blessed Virgin? Name them. 672. What are the seven dolor beads? 673. What are "religious orders"? 674. What vows do the members of religious orders take? 675. Why were religious orders founded? 676. Why are there different kinds of religious orders?
638. Can the Church change the number of sacramentals? Why? 639. Why is it important to bless yourself correctly? 640. When are candles blessed in the Church? 641. What do the candles on the altar remind us of? 642. When are ashes blessed in the Church? 643. What do they remind us of? 644. What do the palms remind us of? 645. What's the difference between a cross and a crucifix? 646. What is the Rosary? 647. How do we say the beads? 648. What does "Mysteries of the Rosary" mean? 649. How many Mysteries of the Rosary are there? 650. How are they divided? 651. Name the different Mysteries of the Rosary. 652. What is the Magnificat? 653. Who baptized Our Lord? 654. Was John the Baptist's baptism a Sacrament? Why? 655. To whom did Our Lord set an example through His hidden or private life? 656. What did the Church do for slaves? 657. What do the letters "I.N.R.I." over the Cross stand for? 658. Did Our Lord claim to be king of the Jews? 659. Why was Our Lord put to death? 660. With whom did the Blessed Virgin live after the death of Our Lord? 661. Who was St. John the Evangelist? 662. What is the Apocalypse? 663. About how long did the Blessed Virgin live on earth after the Ascension of Our Lord? 664. What is meant by the "Assumption" of the Blessed Virgin? 665. What proof do we have of it? 666. On what days are the different Mysteries of the Rosary said? 667. What does "I.H.S." with a cross over it mean? 668. What is the scapular, and why do we wear it? 669. What is the brown scapular called? 670. How many types of scapular are there? 671. What are the "seven dolors" of the Blessed Virgin? Name them. 672. What are the seven dolor beads? 673. What are "religious orders"? 674. What vows do the members of religious orders take? 675. Why were religious orders established? 676. Why are there different types of religious orders?
Lesson 28
Lesson 28
677. How many kinds of prayer are there? 678. What is "meditation"? 679. What should we do before praying? 680. What do you know of St. Monica? 681. Of St. Augustine? 682. Why does God not always grant our prayers? 683. If prayer is necessary for salvation, how can infants be saved who die without having prayed?
677. How many types of prayer are there? 678. What is "meditation"? 679. What should we do before we pray? 680. What do you know about St. Monica? 681. What about St. Augustine? 682. Why doesn’t God always answer our prayers? 683. If prayer is essential for salvation, how can infants who die without praying be saved?
Lesson 29
Lesson 29
684. Were people obliged to keep the Commandments before the time of Moses? 685. How many kinds of laws had the Israelites? 686. When were these laws abolished? 687. How were the Commandments given to Moses? 688. What was manna? 689. What is the difference between the Commandments of God and the commandments of the Church? 690. What does "love thy neighbor as thyself" mean?
684. Were people required to follow the Commandments before Moses' time? 685. How many types of laws did the Israelites have? 686. When were these laws eliminated? 687. How were the Commandments given to Moses? 688. What was manna? 689. What is the difference between God's Commandments and the Church's commandments? 690. What does "love your neighbor as yourself" mean?
Lesson 30
Lesson 30
691. How did the Israelites come to worship false gods? 692. How do we sometimes worship strange gods? 693. What are "fortune tellers"? 694. Why is going to fortune tellers a sin? 695. What are spells, charms? 696. Are medals, scapulars, etc., worn about us charms? 697. What are dreams? 698. Did God ever use them to make known His will? 699. Why does He not use them now? 700. What are mediums and spiritists? 701. How do bad Catholics do injury to the Church? 702. Why did the Christian religion spread so rapidly? 703. Who are atheists, deists, infidels, heretics, apostates, and schismatics? 704. Are all religions equally true? 705. Why is presumption a great sin? 706. How are we frequently presumptuous? 707. Are heretics Christians?
691. How did the Israelites start worshiping false gods? 692. How do we sometimes end up worshiping strange gods? 693. What are "fortune tellers"? 694. Why is visiting fortune tellers considered a sin? 695. What are spells and charms? 696. Are medals, scapulars, and similar items we wear considered charms? 697. What are dreams? 698. Did God ever use them to reveal His will? 699. Why doesn’t He use them now? 700. What are mediums and spiritists? 701. How do unfaithful Catholics harm the Church? 702. Why did Christianity spread so quickly? 703. Who are atheists, deists, infidels, heretics, apostates, and schismatics? 704. Are all religions equally true? 705. Why is presumption such a serious sin? 706. How are we often presumptuous? 707. Are heretics considered Christians?
Lesson 31
Lesson 31
708. What help does God give us to save our souls? 709. How do we honor God by praying to the saints? 710. What is a relic? 711. Have we any relics of Our Lord's body? Why? 712. Why does the Catholic religion suit all classes of persons? 713. Why are there so many kinds of Protestants? 714. Does the Bible contain all the truths of our religion? 715. How did God honor the relics of saints? Give an example. 716. When did the Jewish religion cease to be the true religion?
708. What help does God give us to save our souls? 709. How do we honor God by praying to the saints? 710. What is a relic? 711. Do we have any relics of Our Lord's body? Why? 712. Why does the Catholic religion suit all kinds of people? 713. Why are there so many different types of Protestants? 714. Does the Bible include all the truths of our religion? 715. How did God honor the relics of saints? Give an example. 716. When did the Jewish religion stop being the true religion?
Lesson 32
Lesson 32
717. Is it a sin to use the words of Scripture in a bad sense? 718. What is a perjurer? 719. Why was John the Baptist put to death? 720. Why is it sinful to be a member of a secret society? 721. When is an oath rash? 722. What is the difference between blasphemy and cursing? 723. Can we blaspheme by action? 724. Tell what happened to Julian the Apostate. 725. Are there any holy days not of obligation? 726. How is the Sunday well kept? 727. What is a real Catholic newspaper? 728. What books should be found in every Catholic family? 729. What is meant by the Old Law? 730. What by the New? 731. Are we bound to keep an unlawful oath?
717. Is it wrong to use Scripture in a negative way? 718. What does it mean to be a perjurer? 719. Why was John the Baptist executed? 720. Why is it wrong to belong to a secret society? 721. When is an oath considered rash? 722. What's the difference between blasphemy and cursing? 723. Can we commit blasphemy through our actions? 724. Share what happened to Julian the Apostate. 725. Are there any holy days that aren't obligatory? 726. How do we properly observe Sunday? 727. What defines a genuine Catholic newspaper? 728. What books should every Catholic family have? 729. What does the Old Law refer to? 730. What does the New Law refer to? 731. Are we obligated to uphold an unlawful oath?
Lesson 33
Lesson 33
732. What do we mean by "magistrates"? 733. What should we remember when we are unjustly punished? 734. How does suffering make us more like to Our Lord and His Blessed Mother? 735. Why did the Blessed Virgin suffer so many trials upon earth? 736. What is contempt? 737. What is stubbornness? 738. Why is suicide a mortal sin? 739. What is revenge? 740. Why should we be most careful about the Sixth Commandment? 741. Why should we guard against bad reading? 742. Why should we seek advice?
732. What do we mean by "judges"? 733. What should we keep in mind when we're unfairly punished? 734. How does suffering make us more similar to Our Lord and His Blessed Mother? 735. Why did the Blessed Virgin go through so many hardships while on earth? 736. What is disrespect? 737. What is stubbornness? 738. Why is suicide considered a serious sin? 739. What is revenge? 740. Why should we be particularly cautious about the Sixth Commandment? 741. Why should we be careful about what we read? 742. Why should we seek guidance?
Lesson 34
Lesson 34
743. In how many ways may we violate the Seventh Commandment? 744. Why is it unkind and ungrateful not to pay our debts? 745. Is the receiver of stolen goods as bad as the thief? 746. In how many ways may we share in the sin of another? 747. If you bought an article not knowing that it was stolen, would you be obliged to give it up to its owner? 748. What must you do with anything you find? 749. What must you do if you have lost or destroyed the article you stole? 750. Can we always make restitution by giving to the poor? 751. Is it a sin to delay making restitution? 752. What must a person do who cannot restore? 753. What will excuse us for telling another's faults? 754. How can you know when you have injured the character of another? 755. What is detraction? 756. What is calumny? 757. What is slander? 758. How can you make reparation for injuring another's character? 759. Are you bound to do so? 760. What is "rash judgment"? 761. What is backbiting? 762. Is it sinful to listen to backbiting, slander, etc? 763. Why is it wrong to tell another's secrets or read another's letters? 764. What does "covet" mean?
743. In how many ways can we break the Seventh Commandment? 744. Why is it unkind and ungrateful not to pay our debts? 745. Is the person receiving stolen goods as guilty as the thief? 746. In how many ways can we participate in someone else's sin? 747. If you bought something without knowing it was stolen, would you have to give it back to its owner? 748. What should you do with anything you find? 749. What should you do if you lost or destroyed something you stole? 750. Can we always make restitution by giving to the poor? 751. Is it a sin to delay making restitution? 752. What should someone do who can’t make restitution? 753. What excuses us for discussing someone else's faults? 754. How can you tell when you have harmed someone else's reputation? 755. What is detraction? 756. What is calumny? 757. What is slander? 758. How can you make amends for harming someone else's reputation? 759. Are you required to do so? 760. What is "rash judgment"? 761. What is backbiting? 762. Is it wrong to listen to backbiting, slander, etc.? 763. Why is it wrong to share someone else's secrets or read their letters? 764. What does "covet" mean?
Lesson 35
Lesson 35
765. What is meant by a "serious reason" for missing Mass? 766. What excuse do some give for not hearing Mass? 767. Why is it wrong to come late for Mass? 768. On what day do we keep a saint's feast? 769. What is the "divine office"? 770. How is it divided? 771. Who are excused from fasting? 772. Who are obliged to abstain from flesh-meat on fast-days and days of abstinence? 773. Is every fast-day a day of abstinence?
765. What does a "serious reason" for missing Mass mean? 766. What excuses do some people give for not attending Mass? 767. Why is it wrong to arrive late for Mass? 768. On what day do we celebrate a saint's feast? 769. What is the "divine office"? 770. How is it organized? 771. Who is exempt from fasting? 772. Who has to abstain from meat on fast days and days of abstinence? 773. Is every fast day also a day of abstinence?
Lesson 36
Lesson 36
774. Why should we go to confession even when we have not committed sin since our last confession? 775. When is Trinity Sunday? 776. How was the Holy Land divided? 777. Who were the "Levites" in the Old Law? 778. What were "first fruits" and tithes in the Old Law? 779. Why was Cain's sacrifice displeasing to God? 780. What relations are within the third degree of kindred? 781. What is a "dispensation" granted by the Church? 782. What is meant by the "natural law"? 783. When can we obey the laws that the State makes with regard to marriage? 784. What is "excommunication"? 785. What effect has it? 786. Who are excluded from Christian burial? 787. How does the Church show its displeasure when Catholics marry persons not Catholics? 788. How should persons prepare for marriage? 789. Are women ever allowed in the Church with their heads uncovered? 790. Can the priest say a "nuptial Mass" for a husband or wife after their death?
774. Why should we go to confession even when we haven't sinned since our last confession? 775. When is Trinity Sunday? 776. How was the Holy Land divided? 777. Who were the "Levites" in the Old Law? 778. What were "first fruits" and tithes in the Old Law? 779. Why was Cain's sacrifice unacceptable to God? 780. What relatives are considered within the third degree of kinship? 781. What is a "dispensation" granted by the Church? 782. What does "natural law" mean? 783. When should we follow the laws set by the State regarding marriage? 784. What is "excommunication"? 785. What impact does it have? 786. Who is excluded from Christian burial? 787. How does the Church express its disapproval when Catholics marry non-Catholics? 788. How should people prepare for marriage? 789. Are women ever allowed in the Church with their heads uncovered? 790. Can the priest offer a "nuptial Mass" for a husband or wife after they have died?
Lesson 37
Lesson 37
791. Where will the particular judgment be held? 792. How will it take place? 793. Will the sentence given at the particular judgment be changed at the general judgment? 794. How can we daily prepare for judgment? 795. Who will be judged at the general judgment? 796. How will the general judgment take place? 797. What do we mean by the "pain of loss"? 798. What by the "pain of sense" that the damned suffer? 799. Why can we not imagine the sufferings of Hell? 800. How does the fire of Hell differ from our fire? 801. Will there be a Purgatory after the general judgment? 802. Why must there be a Purgatory now? 803. If God loves those in Purgatory, why does He punish them? 804. Why do we show respect to the bodies of the dead? 805. What does "faithful departed" mean? 806. What does "rest in peace" mean? 807. What does "seeing God face to face" mean, if God has no face? 808. What is the beatific vision? 809. Of what does our happiness in Heaven consist? 810. How long will Purgatory last?
791. Where will the individual judgment take place? 792. How will it happen? 793. Will the decision made at the individual judgment be changed at the final judgment? 794. How can we prepare for judgment every day? 795. Who will be judged at the final judgment? 796. How will the final judgment occur? 797. What do we mean by the "pain of loss"? 798. What do we mean by the "pain of sense" that the damned experience? 799. Why can't we fully comprehend the sufferings of Hell? 800. How is the fire of Hell different from our fire? 801. Will there be a Purgatory after the final judgment? 802. Why does Purgatory need to exist now? 803. If God loves those in Purgatory, why does He punish them? 804. Why do we show respect for the bodies of the deceased? 805. What does "faithful departed" mean? 806. What does "rest in peace" mean? 807. What does "seeing God face to face" mean, if God has no physical face? 808. What is the beatific vision? 809. What contributes to our happiness in Heaven? 810. How long will Purgatory last?
GENERAL INDEX
A
QUESTION
Absolution . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 188
Acolyte . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Actual grace . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 110
Adoration of the Magi . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Advice necessary and useful . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 372
Agony in the garden . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Alb . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Alms to the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 402
Almsgiving . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 221
Altar boys . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Altars and altar stones . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
Amice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Ancient Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Angels . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 35
Angelus . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .The Angelical Salutation
Anger . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Annunciation Day . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 64
Apocalypse . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Apostles . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Apostate . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Apostolicity of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
Apparitions of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 90
Archbishop . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Ark of Noe . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Ark of the Covenant . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Ascension of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 91
Ashes . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Assumption of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Atheist . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Attributes of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 12, title
Attrition . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 198
Authority . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 123
A
QUESTION
Absolution . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 188
Acolyte . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Actual grace . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 110
Adoration of the Magi . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Advice that’s essential and helpful . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 372
Agony in the garden . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Alb . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Alms to the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 402
Almsgiving . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 221
Altar boys . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Altars and altar stones . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
Amice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Ancient Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Angels . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 35
Angelus . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .The Angelical Salutation
Anger . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Annunciation Day . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 64
Apocalypse . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Apostles . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Apostate . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Apostolicity of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
Apparitions of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 90
Archbishop . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Ark of Noah . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Ark of the Covenant . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Ascension of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 91
Ashes . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Assumption of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Atheist . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Attributes of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 12, title
Attrition . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 198
Authority . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 123
B
Backbiting . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 380
Bad company . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Bad example . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 364
Baptism of blood and desire . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 154
Baptism in case of necessity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 159
Baptism of St. John . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Beads . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Bearing wrongs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Beatific vision . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 420
Beatification . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Beatitudes . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 185
Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Benefits of the Sacrament of Penance . . . . . Lesson 17, title
Biretta . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Birth of Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Bishop of Rome . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 117
Blasphemy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 352
Blessed Sacrament carried to the sick . . . . . . . . . . . 277
Bloody sweat of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Body of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 64
Body of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 121
Breaking the fast for Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 254
Burial of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88
Burning bush . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Backbiting . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 380
Bad company . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Bad example . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 364
Baptism of blood and desire . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 154
Baptism in case of necessity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 159
Baptism of St. John . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Beads . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Bearing wrongs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Beatific vision . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 420
Beatification . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Beatitudes . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 185
Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Benefits of the Sacrament of Penance . . . . . Lesson 17, title
Biretta . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Birth of Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Bishop of Rome . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 117
Blasphemy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 352
Blessed Sacrament carried to the sick . . . . . . . . . . . 277
Bloody sweat of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Body of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 64
Body of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 121
Breaking the fast for Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 254
Burial of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88
Burning bush . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
C
Cain . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 11, title
Cain's sacrifice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 402
Call of Abraham . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Calumny . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 379
Calvary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Candles, why used . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Canonization of saints . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Canonical penance . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Capital sins . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Caravansary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Cardinals . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Carrying stories . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 185
Catacombs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 154
Catechumens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
Catechism . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 1, title
Cathedral . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 124
Catholic books and newspapers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Catholicity of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 131
Causes of unhappy marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 290
Celebrant of Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Census-taking in olden times . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Chalice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Changing water into wine . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 242
Character in Baptism, etc. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 149
Charitable institutions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 213
Charity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Act of Love
Charms . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 319
Chasuble . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Choice of persons in marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 291
Church, Militant, Triumphant, Suffering . . The Apostles' Creed
Church instituted by Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Churches . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
Ciborium . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 245
Cincture . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Cities of ancient times . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Color of the vestments . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 242
Communion of saints . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Commandments of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 29, title
Concealing sins in confession . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Concupiscence . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 40
Condition of the world before Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Confession necessary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 190
Confessor's duties . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 228
Confusion of tongues . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 11, title
Consecrated ground . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 404
Consecration in the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Contempt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 365
Contrition . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Converts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 289
Cope . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Coronation of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Corporal works of mercy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Covetousness . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Creation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Creation of Adam and Eve . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 39
Crowning with thorns . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Crucifixion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Crucifix . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Cruelty of the Romans . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Crusades . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Cain . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 11, title
Cain's sacrifice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 402
Call of Abraham . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Calumny . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 379
Calvary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Candles, why used . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Canonization of saints . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Canonical penance . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Capital sins . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Caravansary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Cardinals . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Carrying stories . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 185
Catacombs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 154
Catechumens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
Catechism . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 1, title
Cathedral . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 124
Catholic books and newspapers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Catholicity of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 131
Causes of unhappy marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 290
Celebrant of Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Census-taking in olden times . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Chalice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Changing water into wine . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 242
Character in Baptism, etc. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 149
Charitable institutions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 213
Charity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Act of Love
Charms . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 319
Chasuble . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Choice of persons in marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 291
Church, Militant, Triumphant, Suffering . . The Apostles' Creed
Church instituted by Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Churches . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
Ciborium . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 245
Cincture . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Cities of ancient times . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Color of the vestments . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 242
Communion of saints . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Commandments of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 29, title
Concealing sins in confession . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Concupiscence . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 40
Condition of the world before Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Confession necessary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 190
Confessor's duties . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 228
Confusion of tongues . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 11, title
Consecrated ground . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 404
Consecration in the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Contempt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 365
Contrition . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Converts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 289
Cope . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Coronation of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Corporal works of mercy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Covetousness . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Creation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Creation of Adam and Eve . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 39
Crowning with thorns . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Crucifixion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Crucifix . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Cruelty of the Romans . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Crusades . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
D
Danger of living in sin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 272
Day of the Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88
Days of abstinence . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 394
Deacon . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Dead body . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Dead souls . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 141
Death . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Death of St. John the Baptist . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 350
Debts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 377
Definition of Dogma of Faith . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Degrees of kindred . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 403
Deist . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Deliverance of the Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 95
Deluge . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Descent of the Holy Ghost . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Despair . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 329
Detraction . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 379
Devil . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 38
Diocese . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Disciples . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Disciples on the way to Emmaus . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Dishonest persons . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 373
Dispensations . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 402
Disrespect to parents . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 362
Distraction at prayer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 309
Divine Office . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 391
Division of the Holy Land . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 403
Divorce or separation in marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . 284
Doubt of Thomas the Apostle . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Dreams . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 319
Dress at weddings . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 407
Dress of the hierarchy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Drunkenness . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Duty to parents . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 364
Danger of living in sin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 272
Day of the Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88
Days of abstinence . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 394
Deacon . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Dead body . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Dead souls . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 141
Death . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Death of St. John the Baptist . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 350
Debts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 377
Definition of Dogma of Faith . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Degrees of kindred . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 403
Deist . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Deliverance of the Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 95
Deluge . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Descent of the Holy Ghost . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Despair . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 329
Detraction . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 379
Devil . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 38
Diocese . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Disciples . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Disciples on the way to Emmaus . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Dishonest persons . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 373
Dispensations . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 402
Disrespect to parents . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 362
Distraction at prayer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 309
Divine Office . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 391
Division of the Holy Land . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 403
Divorce or separation in marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . 284
Doubt of Thomas the Apostle . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Dreams . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 319
Dress at weddings . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 407
Dress of the hierarchy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Drunkenness . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Duty to parents . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 364
E
Egyptian bondage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Elevation in the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
End of man . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 1, title
Envy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Epiphany . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 36, title
Equality among all men . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 22
Eternity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Evils of divorce . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 284
Evil effects of scandal . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 321
Examination of conscience . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Example of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Ex cathedra . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 124
Excommunication . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 404
Excuses for not embracing the true religion . . . . . . . . 324
Excuses for not attending Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 390
Extreme Unction . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 25, title
Extreme Unction, to whom it can be given . . . Lesson 25, title
Egyptian bondage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Elevation in the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
End of man . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 1, title
Envy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Epiphany . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 36, title
Equality among all men . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 22
Eternity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Evils of divorce . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 284
Evil effects of scandal . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 321
Examination of conscience . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Example of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Ex cathedra . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 124
Excommunication . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 404
Excuses for not embracing the true religion . . . . . . . . 324
Excuses for not attending Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 390
Extreme Unction . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 25, title
Extreme Unction, to whom it can be given . . . Lesson 25, title
F
Faith . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 107
Faithful departed . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 418
Fall of the angels . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 38
Fall of Adam . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 43
False worship . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 318
Fast-days . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 393
Feasts of the Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Feasts of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 391
Final perseverance . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 113
Finding of Our Lord in the Temple . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
First Protestants . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
Flight into Egypt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Forgiveness of sins . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 188
Forgiveness of injuries . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
Fortune tellers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 318
Foster-father . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 63
Fraternal correction . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 222
Free will in man . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Frequent Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 270
Fruits of the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Faith . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 107
Faithful departed . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 418
Fall of the angels . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 38
Fall of Adam . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 43
False worship . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 318
Fast-days . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 393
Feasts of the Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Feasts of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 391
Final perseverance . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 113
Finding of Our Lord in the Temple . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
First Protestants . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
Flight into Egypt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Forgiveness of sins . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 188
Forgiveness of injuries . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
Fortune tellers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 318
Foster-father . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 63
Fraternal correction . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 222
Free will in man . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Frequent Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 270
Fruits of the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
G
Gates of Heaven . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 60
General confession . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 217
Gift of tongues . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Gladiators . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 25, title
Glorified bodies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Gluttony . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
God, our Father . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
Gods of the pagans . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Golden calf . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 341
Gratitude to benefactors . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 362
Guardian angel . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 36
Gates of Heaven . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 60
General confession . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 217
Gift of tongues . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Gladiators . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 25, title
Glorified bodies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Gluttony . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
God, our Father . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
Gods of the pagans . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Golden calf . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 341
Gratitude to benefactors . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 362
Guardian angel . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 36
H
Hasty marriages . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 290
Heaven . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 420
Heaven a reward . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 51
Heirs of Heaven . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 152
Hell . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 413
Help to salvation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 331
Heretics . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Herod . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Hidden life of Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Hierarchy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 129
History of the Israelites in Egypt . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Holy days . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Holy Ghost . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Holy Innocents' feast . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Holy of holies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Holy oils . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 291
Holy Orders . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Holy Sepulchre . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88
Holy water . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 292
Holiness of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 130
Honoring the saints . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 331
How to meditate . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 304
Human sacrifice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Humeral, or Benediction veil . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Hasty marriages . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 290
Heaven . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 420
Heaven as a reward . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 51
Heirs of Heaven . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 152
Hell . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 413
Help for salvation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 331
Heretics . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Herod . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Hidden life of Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Hierarchy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 129
History of the Israelites in Egypt . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Holy days . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Holy Spirit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Feast of the Holy Innocents . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Holy of holies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Holy oils . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 291
Holy Orders . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Holy Sepulchre . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88
Holy water . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 292
Holiness of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 130
Honoring the saints . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 331
How to meditate . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 304
Human sacrifice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Humeral, or Benediction veil . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
I
"I.H.S." with a cross . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Images in the churches . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 341
Immaculate Conception . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 50
Impediments to marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 284
Impurity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 370
Incarnation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 7, title
Indefectibility of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 125
Indifferentism in religion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 51
Indulgences . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 231
Infallibility of the Pope . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 124
Infidel . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Injuring the character of others . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 379
"I.N.R.I." on the Cross . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Instinct of animals . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Intention at Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Intention of the Pope . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 237
Intention to gain indulgences . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 239
Interpretation of the Holy Scriptures . . . . . . . . . . . 129
"I.H.S." with a cross . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Images in the churches . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 341
Immaculate Conception . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 50
Impediments to marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 284
Impurity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 370
Incarnation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 7, title
Indefectibility of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 125
Indifferentism in religion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 51
Indulgences . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 231
Infallibility of the Pope . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 124
Infidel . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Injuring the character of others . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 379
"I.N.R.I." on the Cross . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Instinct of animals . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Intention at Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Intention of the Pope . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 237
Intention to gain indulgences . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 239
Interpretation of the Holy Scriptures . . . . . . . . . . . 129
J
Jacob, father of the twelve tribes . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Jacob's vision and the ladder . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 36
Jehova . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
John the Evangelist . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Joseph in Egypt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Journey of the Israelites in the desert . . . . . . . . . . 97
Judgment, particular and general . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 408
Julian the Apostate . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 352
Justice of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 20
Jacob, the father of the twelve tribes . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Jacob's vision and the ladder . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 36
God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
John the Evangelist . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Joseph in Egypt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
The Israelites' journey in the desert . . . . . . . . . . 97
Judgment, both specific and general . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 408
Julian the Apostate . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 352
The justice of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 20
K
Kinds of indulgences . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 237
Kinds of Masses . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Kinds of scapulars . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Kingdom of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
Knowledge of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 6
Kinds of indulgences . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 237
Kinds of Masses . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Kinds of scapulars . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Kingdom of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
Knowledge of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 6
L
Late-coming to Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 390
Latin language in the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 131
Lawful marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 283
Laws made by the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 126
Laws of the Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 29, title
League of the Sacred Heart . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Lent . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 221
Levites . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 402
Life of Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Life of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 364
Limbo . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Litanies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Angelical Salutation
Lives of the early Christians . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 321
Lost time . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 285
Louise Lateau . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Love of our neighbor . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 109
Lucifer or Satan . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 38
Lust . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Luther . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
Late arrival to Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 390
The use of Latin in the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 131
Valid marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 283
Church laws . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 126
Jewish laws . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 29, title
Sacred Heart League . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Lent . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 221
Levites . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 402
The Life of Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
The Life of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 364
Limbo . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Litanies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Angelical Salutation
Early Christian lives . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 321
Wasted time . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 285
Louise Lateau . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Loving our neighbor . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 109
Lucifer or Satan . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 38
Desire . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Luther . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
M
Magi or Wise Men . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Magistrates . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 363
Mahomet . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 213
Man . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Maniple . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Manna . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 310
Manner of confessing our sins . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Manner of examining our conscience . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Manner of giving absolution . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 188
Marks of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Marriage at Cana . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 242
Marriage before a Protestant minister . . . . . . . . . . . 404
Master of Ceremonies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Meaning of forty days' indulgence . . . . . . . . . . . . . 237
Meditation or mental prayer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 304
Mercy of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 20
Merit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 103
Minister of Baptism . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 155
Ministers of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Minor Orders . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Miracles, true and false . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Mixed marriages . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 289
Molech . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Monks . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 213
Monsignor . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Moses . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Murder of infants or abortion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 154
Mystery . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 31
Mysteries of the Rosary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Magi or Wise Men . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Magistrates . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 363
Muhammad . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 213
Person . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Maniple . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Manna . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 310
How to confess our sins . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
How to examine our conscience . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
How to give absolution . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 188
Marks of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114
Marriage at Cana . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 242
Marriage before a Protestant minister . . . . . . . . . . . 404
Master of Ceremonies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Meaning of forty days' indulgence . . . . . . . . . . . . . 237
Meditation or mental prayer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 304
Mercy of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 20
Merit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 103
Minister of Baptism . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 155
Ministers of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Minor Orders . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Miracles, true and false . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Mixed marriages . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 289
Molech . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Monks . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 213
Monsignor . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Moses . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Killing of infants or abortion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 154
Mystery . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 31
Mysteries of the Rosary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
N
Names in Baptism . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 163
Names of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 66
Natural state of man . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 154
Necessary servile works . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 360
Necessity of religious instruction . . . . . . . . . . . . . 285
Neighbor . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 109
Newspapers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Noe's Ark . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Nuns . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Names in Baptism . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 163
Names of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 66
Natural state of man . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 154
Necessary servile works . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 360
Necessity of religious instruction . . . . . . . . . . . . . 285
Neighbor . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 109
Newspapers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Noe's Ark . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Nuns . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
O
Oath . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 347
Obedience to parents . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 284
Observance of Sunday . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Occasion of sin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 207
Offertory in the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Offering called "stipend" for Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Ostensorium or monstrance . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Outward signs of the Sacraments . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 136
Oath . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 347
Obedience to parents . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 284
Observance of Sunday . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Occasion of sin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 207
Offertory in the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Offering called "stipend" for Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Ostensorium or monstrance . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Outward signs of the Sacraments . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 136
P
Palestine . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Pall for the chalice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Pallium . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Palms . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Pantheon in Rome . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Paradise . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 40
Parish . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Parts of the Divine Office . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 391
Parts of the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Pasch . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Paschal lamb . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Passage of the Red Sea . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Passion of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Passover . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 17, title
Pastor . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Paten . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Patron saint . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 163
Payment of debts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 373
Penance given in confession . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Penitent thief . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 82
Penitents of the early ages . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Pentecost . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Perfection of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Persecution of the Christians . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
Persons excluded from Christian burial . . . . . . . . . . . 404
Peter's pence . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 125
Pharao's dream . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Pilgrim . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Plagues of Egypt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Pledge . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 351
Plenary indulgence . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 234
Poor in the true Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
Pope in politics . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 125
Prayer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 304
Preaching of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 185
Predominant sin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Preparation for confession . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Presence of God at our prayers . . . . . . . . . . . . Confiteor
Presentation in the temple . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Preservation of creatures by God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 17
Presumption . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 328
Priests . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Pride . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Promise of the Redeemer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 60
Proof of the assumption of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . 302
Prophets . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 11, title
Providence of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 416
Public life of Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Public profession of faith . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 326
Purgatory . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 414
Purificator . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Purpose of amendment . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Palestine . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
Pall for the chalice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Pallium . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Palms . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Pantheon in Rome . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Paradise . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 40
Parish . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Parts of the Divine Office . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 391
Parts of the Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Pasch . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Paschal lamb . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Passage of the Red Sea . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Passion of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Passover . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 17, title
Pastor . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Paten . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Patron saint . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 163
Payment of debts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 373
Penance given in confession . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Penitent thief . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 82
Penitents of the early ages . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Pentecost . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Perfection of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Persecution of the Christians . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
Persons excluded from Christian burial . . . . . . . . . . . 404
Peter's pence . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 125
Pharaoh's dream . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Pilgrim . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Plagues of Egypt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Pledge . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 351
Plenary indulgence . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 234
Poor in the true Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
Pope in politics . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 125
Prayer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 304
Preaching of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 185
Predominant sin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Preparation for confession . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Presence of God at our prayers . . . . . . . . . . . . Confiteor
Presentation in the temple . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Preservation of creatures by God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 17
Presumption . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 328
Priests . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Pride . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Promise of the Redeemer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 60
Proof of the assumption of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . 302
Prophets . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 11, title
Providence of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 416
Public life of Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76
Public profession of faith . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 326
Purgatory . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 414
Purificator . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Purpose of amendment . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 191
Q
Qualities of a good prayer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 307
Qualities of a good prayer . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 307
R
Rash judgment . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 380
Reading bad books or papers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 372
Reading good books or papers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Reading the letters of others . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 380
Real presence in the Holy Eucharist . . . . . . . . . . . . 238
Reason . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Receiving stolen goods . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 375
Rector . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Redeemer promised . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Redemption . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 7, title
Relics . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 340
Religious orders and communities . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Respect at Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Respect in church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
"Rest in peace" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 418
Restitution . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 375
Resurrection of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Resurrection of the body . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Revelation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Revenge . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 368
Rosary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Rash judgment . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 380
Reading bad books or papers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 372
Reading good books or papers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 354
Reading other people's letters . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 380
Real presence in the Holy Eucharist . . . . . . . . . . . . 238
Reason . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Receiving stolen goods . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 375
Rector . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Redeemer promised . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 72
Redemption . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 7, title
Relics . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 340
Religious orders and communities . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Respect at Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Respect in church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 115
"Rest in peace" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 418
Restitution . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 375
Resurrection of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Resurrection of the body . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Revelation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Revenge . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 368
Rosary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
S
Sabbath of the Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88
Sacramental grace . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 146
Sacramentals . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 292
Sacraments in which oil is used . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 291
Sacraments of the dead . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 140
Sacraments of the living . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 143
Sacred Heart of Jesus . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 270
Sacrifice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Sacrilege . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 144
Saints . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Salvation out of the Catholic Church . . . . . . . . . . . . 121
Sanctifying grace . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 105
Saracens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Scandal . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 413
Scapulars . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Schismatic . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Scourging at the pillar . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Scrupulous persons . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 217
Secret societies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 350
Secrets . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 380
Seven dolors of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Seven dolor beads . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Sickness . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 273
Sign of the Cross . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 295
Simony . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Sin, Original, actual, mortal, venial . . . . . . . . Lesson 6
Sins against faith . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 321
Slander . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 379
Slavery . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 7, title
Sloth . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Soul like to God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Soul, importance of saving one's . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 8
Spells . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 319
Spirit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Spiritual Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 270
Spiritual life resembles bodily life . . . . . . . . . . . . 137
Spiritual works of mercy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 222
Sponsors . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 165
Sponsors by proxy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 159
Spread of the Protestant religion . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
St. Joseph . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 63
St. Joseph's Day . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 74
St. Monica and St. Augustine . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 307
St. Patrick's Day . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 74
Stable at Bethlehem . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
State laws for marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 403
Stealing . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 375
Stigmata of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Stole . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Strange gods . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 315
Sub-deacon . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Sufferings of the damned . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 413
Suicide . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 367
Supernatural gifts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 103
Sabbath of the Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88
Sacramental grace . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 146
Sacramentals . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 292
Sacraments that use oil . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 291
Sacraments for the dead . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 140
Sacraments for the living . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 143
Sacred Heart of Jesus . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 270
Sacrifice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Sacrilege . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 144
Saints . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Apostles' Creed
Salvation outside the Catholic Church . . . . . . . . . . . . 121
Sanctifying grace . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 105
Saracens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 223
Scandal . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 413
Scapulars . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Schismatic . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 323
Scourging at the pillar . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Scrupulous people . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 217
Secret societies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 350
Secrets . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 380
Seven sorrows of the Blessed Virgin . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Seven sorrow beads . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302
Sickness . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 273
Sign of the Cross . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 295
Simony . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
Sin, Original, actual, mortal, venial . . . . . . . . Lesson 6
Sins against faith . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 321
Slander . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 379
Slavery . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 7, title
Laziness . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Soul similar to God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Soul, importance of saving one's . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 8
Spells . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 319
Spirit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 5
Spiritual Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 270
Spiritual life is like physical life . . . . . . . . . . . . 137
Spiritual works of mercy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 222
Sponsors . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 165
Sponsors by proxy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 159
Spread of the Protestant religion . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132
St. Joseph . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 63
St. Joseph's Day . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 74
St. Monica and St. Augustine . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 307
St. Patrick's Day . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 74
Stable at Bethlehem . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 75
State laws regarding marriage . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 403
Stealing . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 375
Stigmata of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Stole . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Strange gods . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 315
Sub-deacon . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Sufferings of the damned . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 413
Suicide . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 367
Supernatural gifts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 103
T
Temple of Jerusalem . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Temporal power of the Pope . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 135
Temporal punishment . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Temptation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
Testament, Old and New . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 153
Thanksgiving after Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 245
Things prepared for Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Things prepared for Viaticum and Extreme Unction . . . . . . 277
Time given to God's service . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 318
Time valuable in youth . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 322
Tithes and first-fruits in the Old Law . . . . . . . . . . . 402
Tobias . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 36
Tonsure . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Tower of Babel . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 11, title
Transfiguration of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Transubstantiation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 242
Two natures in Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 65
Temple of Jerusalem . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Temporal power of the Pope . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 135
Temporal punishment . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218
Temptation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . The Lord's Prayer
Testament, Old and New . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 153
Thanksgiving after Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 245
Things prepared for Mass . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250
Things prepared for Viaticum and Extreme Unction . . . . . . 277
Time given to God's service . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 318
Time valuable in youth . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 322
Tithes and first-fruits in the Old Law . . . . . . . . . . . 402
Tobias . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 36
Tonsure . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Tower of Babel . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . Lesson 11, title
Transfiguration of Our Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 89
Transubstantiation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 242
Two natures in Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 65
U
Unity of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 129
Unworthy Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 255
Use of sacramentals . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 292
Using the sayings of Holy Scripture in a profane sense . . . 340
Unity of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 129
Unworthy Communion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 255
Use of sacramentals . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 292
Using the sayings of Holy Scripture in a disrespectful way . . . 340
V
Veil of the temple . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Vespers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Vestments, their names and signification . . . . . . . . . . 250
Viaticum . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 258
Vicar general . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Vice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 106
Virtue . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 106
Visibility of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 133
Visible and invisible head of the Church . . . . . . . . . . 116
Visitation of the Blessed Virgin . . . The Angelical Salutation
Vocation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 51
Vow . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 350
Veil of the temple . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 81
Vespers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Vestments, their names and meanings . . . . . . . . . . 250
Viaticum . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 258
Vicar general . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 281
Vice . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 106
Virtue . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 106
Visibility of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 133
Visible and invisible head of the Church . . . . . . . . . . 116
Visitation of the Blessed Virgin . . . The Angelical Greeting
Vocation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 51
Vow . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 350
W
Warning against impostors . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 307
Ways of sharing in another's sin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 375
Whitsunday . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Who offered sacrifice in ancient times . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Who cannot be sponsors at Baptism . . . . . . . . . . . . . 165
Why children should study . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 285
Why God does not always grant our prayers . . . . . . . . . 307
Why holy days were instituted . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 391
Why sickness is sometimes sent . . . . . . . . Lesson 25, title
Why there are different religious orders . . . . . . . . . . 302
Woman with issue of blood . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 307
Works necessary to gain indulgences . . . . . . . . . . . . 237
World . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1
Worship of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 9
Warning against impostors . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 307
Ways of sharing in another's sin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 375
Whitsunday . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
Who offered sacrifices in ancient times . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Who cannot be sponsors at Baptism . . . . . . . . . . . . . 165
Why children should study . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 285
Why God does not always grant our prayers . . . . . . . . . 307
Why holy days were established . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 391
Why sickness is sometimes allowed . . . . . . . . Lesson 25, title
Why there are different religious orders . . . . . . . . . . 302
Woman with a flow of blood . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 307
Works necessary to receive indulgences . . . . . . . . . . . . 237
World . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1
Worship of God . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 9
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!